summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/52962-0.txt10819
-rw-r--r--old/52962-0.zipbin224259 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52962-h.zipbin500054 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52962-h/52962-h.htm14829
-rw-r--r--old/52962-h/images/cover.jpgbin259355 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52962-h/images/logo.jpgbin4468 -> 0 bytes
9 files changed, 17 insertions, 25648 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..9acdfd5
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #52962 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/52962)
diff --git a/old/52962-0.txt b/old/52962-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 8e23470..0000000
--- a/old/52962-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10819 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Hugh Gwyeth, by Beulah Marie Dix
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: Hugh Gwyeth
- A Roundhead Cavalier
-
-Author: Beulah Marie Dix
-
-Release Date: September 5, 2016 [EBook #52962]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HUGH GWYETH ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by KD Weeks and the Online Distributed Proofreading
-Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from
-images generously made available by The Internet
-Archive/American Libraries.)
-
-
-
-
-
-
- Transcriber’s Note:
-
-This version of the text cannot represent certain typographical effects.
-Italics are delimited with the ‘_’ character as _italic_. The few
-instances of blackletter font in the front matter use the ‘~’ as a
-delimiter.
-
-Please consult the note at the end of this text for a discussion of any
-textual issues encountered in its preparation.
-
-
-
-
- HUGH GWYETH
-
-
- A ROUNDHEAD CAVALIER
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- HUGH GWYETH
- A ROUNDHEAD CAVALIER
-
-
-
-
- BY
-
- BEULAH MARIE DIX
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- ~New York~
- THE MACMILLAN COMPANY
- LONDON: MACMILLAN & CO., LTD.
- 1913
-
-
- _All rights reserved_
-
-
-
-
- COPYRIGHT, 1899,
-
- BY THE MACMILLAN COMPANY.
-
- -------
-
-Set up and electrotyped March, 1899. Reprinted May, July, 1899; January,
-1900; October, 1908; January, 1913.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- ~Norwood Press~
- J. S. Cushing & Co.—Berwick & Smith
- Norwood Mass. U. S. A.
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS
-
-
- CHAPTER PAGE
-
- I. Tidings out of the North 1
- II. How One set out to seek his Fortune 16
- III. The Road to Nottingham 34
- IV. To Horse and Away 49
- V. In and Out of the “Golden Ram” 66
- VI. The End of the Journey 81
- VII. How the World dealt by a Gentleman 95
- VIII. The Interposition of John Ridydale 113
- IX. The Way to War 132
- X. In the Trail of the Battle 152
- XI. Comrades in Arms 171
- XII. For the Honor of the Gwyeths 190
- XIII. In the Fields toward Osney Abbey 208
- XIV. Under the King’s Displeasure 224
- XV. The Life of Edmund Burley 242
- XVI. Roundheads and Cavaliers 258
- XVII. The Stranger by the Way 274
- XVIII. The Call out of Kingsford 290
- XIX. The Riding of Arrow Water 307
- XX. Beneath the Roof of Everscombe 324
- XXI. The Fatherhood of Alan Gwyeth 340
- XXII. After the Victory 358
-
-
-
-
- HUGH GWYETH
-
- A ROUNDHEAD CAVALIER
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I
- TIDINGS OUT OF THE NORTH
-
-
-Up in the tops of the tall elms that overshadowed the east wing of
-Everscombe manor house the ancient rooks were gravely wrangling. A faint
-morning breeze swept the green branches and, as the leaves stirred, the
-warm September sunlight smiting through fell in flakes of yellow on the
-dark flagstones of the terrace below. For a moment Hugh Gwyeth ceased to
-toss up and catch the ball in his hand, while he stood to count the
-yellow spots that shifted on the walk. Eight, nine,—but other thoughts
-so filled his head that there he lost count and once more took up his
-listless tramp.
-
-Off to his left, where beyond the elms the lawn sloped down to the park,
-he could hear the calls of the boys at play,—his Oldesworth cousins and
-Aunt Rachel Millington’s sons. The Millingtons had come to Everscombe a
-week before out of Worcestershire, where the king’s men were up in arms
-and had plundered their house. Yet the young Millingtons were playing at
-ball with the Oldesworth lads as if it were only a holiday. “Children!”
-Hugh muttered contemptuously and, conscious of his own newly completed
-sixteen years, threw an increased dignity into his step. He was a wiry
-lad, of a slender, youthful figure, but for all that he carried himself
-well and with little awkwardness. Neither was he ill-looking; though
-there was a reddish tinge to his close-cut hair it changed to gold when
-he came into the sunlight, and at all times there was in his blue eyes a
-steady, frank look that made those who liked him forget the freckles
-across the bridge of his nose and cheek bones, and the almost aggressive
-squareness of his chin.
-
-Mouth and chin were even sullen now, as Hugh lingered a moment to glance
-up at the small diamond panes of the window of the east parlor. Within,
-Hugh’s grandfather, Gilbert Oldesworth, the master of Everscombe, his
-sons, Nathaniel and Thomas, his daughter’s husband, David Millington,
-and Roger Ingram, the lieutenant in Thomas Oldesworth’s troop of horse,
-were conferring with men from Warwick on the raising of forces, the
-getting of arms, and all the means for defending that part of the
-county; and Peregrine, the eldest of the Oldesworth lads, was allowed to
-be of their counsels. Hugh turned away sharply and resumed his dreary
-tramp up and down the flagged terrace. “If I had been Uncle Nathaniel’s
-son, they would have suffered me to be present as well as Peregrine,” he
-muttered, pausing to dig the toe of his shoe into a crack between the
-flagstones. “’Tis not just. I am near a man, and they might treat me—”
-He gave the ball an extra high toss and paced on slowly.
-
-But, call as he would upon his injured dignity, he could not refrain
-from facing about at the end of the walk and retracing his steps till he
-was loitering once more beneath the window of the east parlor. He was
-not listening, he told himself, nor was he spying; there was no harm in
-walking on the east terrace of a morning, nor in lingering there to play
-at ball. So he stood slipping the ball from hand to hand, but his eyes
-were fixed on the little panes of the window above and his thoughts were
-busy on what was happening within. Would the people of the hamlets round
-about Everscombe, the farmers and ploughboys, who of a Sunday sat
-stolidly in the pews of the village church at Kingsford, would they
-truly resist their sovereign? The Oldesworths would head them, without
-doubt, but how many others scattered through the county and all through
-wide England were of the like mind? And what would come of it? Would
-there be war in the land, such wars as Hugh had read the Greeks and
-Romans had waged, such as the great German wars in which his own father
-had borne a part? And if there was a war and brave deeds to do and fame
-to win, would his grandfather and his uncles let him come and fight too,
-or would they still shut him out with the little boys, as they had shut
-him out to-day?
-
-So he was thinking, when of a sudden the window at which he had been
-staring swung open, and Nathaniel Oldesworth, a mild-featured man of
-middle age, looked out upon him. Hugh flushed suddenly and kept his eyes
-on the ball he was still shifting from hand to hand. “You here, Hugh?”
-his uncle’s voice reached him. “Take yourself off to your play.”
-
-“Ay, sir,” Hugh answered, and sauntered away down the walk. He kept his
-chin up and his mouth was sulky, but in his boy’s heart every fibre of
-awakening manhood was quivering at this last insult. Go play! when every
-moment was big with events, when war was bursting on the land, and there
-was work for every man to do, he was bidden to content himself with a
-ball!
-
-He went slowly down the steps at the south end of the terrace and
-bearing off from the stables struck through the long grass toward the
-orchard. He walked with eyes on the ground, too deeply buried in his own
-resentful thoughts to heed whither he was going, but he realized when he
-entered the orchard, for the sunlight that had been all about him since
-he quitted the terrace went out; he saw the earth was no longer grassy
-but bald and brown, and he trod on a hard green apple that rolled under
-his foot.
-
-A second small apple suddenly plumped to the ground before him, and a
-girl’s voice called, “Hugh, Hugh.”
-
-The boy looked up. Just above his head, through the branches of the
-great apple tree, he saw the face of Lois Campion, the orphan niece of
-Nathaniel Oldesworth’s wife. “Are you hunting for snails?” she asked,
-while her dark eyes laughed. “Prithee, give over now, like a good lad,
-and help me hence. I have sat here half the morning for lack of an arm
-to aid me.”
-
-She had slipped down the branches to the fork of the tree so that she
-could rest her hands on Hugh’s shoulders, and as they came thus face to
-face her tone changed: “Why, Hugh, what has gone wrong?”
-
-“Nothing,” he answered shortly, swinging her down to the ground.
-
-“You look as though you had eaten a very sour apple,” said Lois. “Try
-these. There are sweet tastes in them, if you chew long enough.” She had
-seated herself at the foot of the tree with her head resting against the
-gnarled gray trunk.
-
-“It’s not apples I want,” Hugh replied gruffly, and then the troubled
-look in the girl’s eyes made him sit down beside her with a thought of
-saying something to make amends for his surliness; only words did not
-come easily, for his mind could run on nothing but his own discontent.
-
-“I think I know,” Lois spoke gently and put her hand on his arm. “’Tis
-because of Cousin Peregrine.”
-
-Hugh shook off her hand and dropped down full length on the ground with
-his forehead pressing upon his arms; he felt it would be the crowning
-humiliation of the morning if the girl should see the look on his face
-at the mere mention of his trouble.
-
-For a time there was silence, except for the thud of a falling apple and
-the soft rustle of leaves in the light wind; it was one of Lois’s best
-comrade qualities, Hugh realized vaguely now, that she knew when to hold
-her peace. It was he himself that renewed the conversation, when he felt
-assured that he had himself too well in hand to let any childish
-breaking be audible in his voice: “I wish my father had lived.”
-
-“I wish my parents had, too,” Lois answered quietly.
-
-“I did not wish it, when I spoke, because I loved them, I fear,” Hugh
-went on, digging up the scant blades of grass about him with one hand;
-“I do love them, but I did not think of it so, then. But I thought how,
-when a lad hath a father alive, things are made easy for him,—no, not
-easy; I do not mean skulking at home,—but he is helped to do a man’s
-part. Now there was a good friend of mine, there at Warwick school,
-Frank Pleydall; I’ve spoke of him to you. I was home with him once for
-the holidays, to a great house in Worcestershire, where his father, Sir
-William Pleydall, lives. And Frank had his own horses and dogs, and the
-servants did his bidding, and—and his father is very fond of him.” Hugh
-paused a moment, then gave words to the grievance nearest his heart:
-“And Peregrine, now, because he is Uncle Nathaniel’s son, he is to have
-a cornetcy in Uncle Thomas’s troop, and he will have a new horse,—I do
-not begrudge it to Peregrine, but they might try me and see what I can
-do.”
-
-“But, Hugh,” Lois ventured, “you are younger than Peregrine.”
-
-“Only two years and a half,” Hugh raised himself on one elbow, “and do
-but feel the thick of my right arm there. And at Warwick school when
-they taught us sword-play I learnt enough to worst Master Peregrine, I
-am sure. And I can stick to my saddle as well as he, though I never have
-anything to ride but a plough horse. And I have not even that now,” he
-went on, with an effort at a laugh, “since all have been taken to mount
-Uncle Thomas’s troop. But Peregrine will have a horse and a sword of his
-own and go to the wars. Do you understand what ’tis I mean, Lois?”
-
-“Yes,” Lois replied with a downward look and a quiver of the mouth. “You
-will think ’tis girl’s folly in me, but I have felt what you mean when I
-have seen Martha and Anne have new gowns, and I must wear my old frock
-still.”
-
-There was another long silence, broken this time by Lois. “Hugh,” she
-half whispered, “I believe we are very wicked and ungrateful to our
-kinsfolk.”
-
-“I do not believe so,” the boy answered doggedly; “they have given us
-nothing but food and clothes, and one craves other things besides.”
-
-Lois nodded without speaking, then fetched a breath like a sob. “Lois!”
-Hugh cried in honest alarm; he had never seen her thus before, “don’t
-cry. I am ashamed I bore myself so unmanly to hurt you. Don’t cry.” He
-took her hand in his, and tried to think of something comforting to say.
-
-Lois bit her lips and made not another sound till she could answer with
-only a slight tremble: “What you spoke of, made me feel lonely.”
-
-“I am sorry I spoke so,” Hugh said contritely, still holding her hand.
-“Shall we go look for apples now?”
-
-The girl shook her head: “Prithee, do not put me off, Hugh, and do not
-reproach yourself; I am not sorry that you spoke so. You are the only
-one to whom I can talk of such things, here at Everscombe.”
-
-“And you are the only one I have been able to talk to of anything that
-touches me nearly, these two years since my mother died.—Do you know,
-Lois, I sometimes think you look like her. She had brown hair like
-yours, for she was a true Oldesworth and dark. Now I am a Gwyeth, and so
-I come rightly by my red hair.”
-
-“You shall not slander it so,” Lois interrupted.
-
-“Aunt Delia calls it red. I care not for the color, but I’d like to let
-it grow.” Hugh ran his fingers through his cropped hair.
-
-“Would you turn Cavalier?” Lois asked half seriously.
-
-“Most gentlemen wear their hair long; even my grandfather and Uncle
-Nathaniel, for all they hold to Parliament.”
-
-“Master Thomas Oldesworth has cut his close; he says all soldiers do so
-in Germany.”
-
-“My father did not,” Hugh answered quickly. “And he had more experience
-in the German wars than ever Uncle Tom will have.”
-
-“Tell me about him again, Hugh, if you will,” Lois begged.
-
-The boy slipped down till he rested on his elbow once more. “There is
-not much I can tell,” he began, but his face was eager with interest in
-the old story. “I remember little of those times, but my mother was ever
-telling me of him. His name was Alan Gwyeth; ’tis a Welsh name, and he
-had Welsh blood in him. They put him to school, but he ran away to
-follow the wars in the Low Countries. Later he was here in Warwickshire
-to raise men who’d adventure for the German wars, and he met my mother,
-and they loved each other, so they married. My grandfather and Uncle
-Nathaniel did not like my father, so he left the kingdom straightway,
-and she went with him on his campaigns in Germany. I was born there; I
-think I can remember it, just a bit. A porcelain stove with tiles, and
-the story of Moses upon them; and a woman with flaxen hair who took care
-of me; and my father, I am sure I remember him, a very tall man with
-reddish hair and blue eyes, who carried me on his shoulder.” Hugh’s look
-strayed beyond the girl and he was silent a time. “Then it all ended and
-we came home to England. I remember the ship and I was sick; and then
-the great coach we rode in from Bristol; and how big Everscombe looked
-and lonesome, and my mother cried.”
-
-“And—and your father?” Lois asked timidly.
-
-“He died,” Hugh answered softly. “My mother never told me how, but it
-must have been in battle, for he was a very brave soldier, she said. And
-he was the tenderest and kindest man that ever lived, and far too good
-for her, she said, but I do not believe that. And just before she died
-she told me I must try always to be like him, a true-hearted gentleman
-and a gallant soldier.—I am glad I look like him, and then, sometimes,”
-Hugh’s tone grew more dubious, “but usually ’tis when I have done wrong,
-Aunt Delia says I am my father over again.”
-
-“Aunt Delia has a sharp tongue,” said Lois with a sigh.
-
-“I know it well,” Hugh answered ruefully.
-
-“But still, she has a kind heart,” the girl was amending charitably,
-when from across the orchard came a shrill call of “Hugh,” which ended
-in a high-pitched howl.
-
-Lois rose and peering under her hand gazed out into the sunlight of the
-level grass beyond the apple trees. “’Tis Sam Oldesworth,” she said, and
-as she spoke a boy of thirteen or fourteen years broke headlong into the
-shade of the orchard.
-
-“Where have you been, Hugh?” he panted. “Have you my ball safe? I’ve
-looked everywhere for you.”
-
-“For the ball? There ’tis,” Hugh replied.
-
-“Nay, not for that. There’s something up at the house for you.”
-
-“What is it?” Hugh came to his feet at a jump, while his thoughts sped
-bewilderingly to swords, horses, and commissions.
-
-“Guess,” replied Sam.
-
-Hugh turned his back and walked away toward the manor house at a
-dignified pace; it would not do to let a young sprig like Sam know his
-curiosity and eagerness. But Lois, having no such scruples, teased her
-cousin with questions till the boy, bubbling over with the importance of
-the news, admitted: “Well, the post from the north has come, and there
-is something for Hugh in the east parlor.”
-
-“A letter?” Hugh queried with momentary disappointment in his tone. But
-though a letter was not as good as a commission it was something he had
-never had before in his life, so he quickened his step and with high
-expectations entered the east wing and passed through the small hall to
-the parlor.
-
-The door stood open, and opposite the sunlight from the window, still
-flung wide, lay in a clear rectangle upon the dark floor. About the
-heavy oak table in the centre of the room, in speech of the news brought
-from the north by the freshly arrived letters, sat or stood in knots of
-two or three the grave-faced men of the conference. At the head of the
-table, where the sunlight fell upon his long white hair, sat Master
-Gilbert Oldesworth, an erect man with keen eyes and alert gestures, in
-spite of his seventy years. Hugh also caught sight of Peregrine and
-noted, with a certain satisfaction, that this fortunate cousin sat at
-the foot of the table and seemed to have small share in the business in
-hand. But next moment he had enough to do to give heed to his own
-concerns, for Nathaniel Oldesworth called him by name and he must enter
-to receive his letter. He felt his cheeks burn with the consciousness
-that strangers had their eyes on him and that he must appear to them a
-mere dishevelled, awkward schoolboy; he grew angry with himself for his
-folly, and his face burned even more. Scarcely daring to raise his eyes,
-he caught up the letter his uncle held out to him and slipped back again
-into the hall.
-
-Sam pounced upon him at once. “What is it?” he demanded, and Lois’s eyes
-asked the same question.
-
-Hugh forgot the hot embarrassment and misery of a moment before, as he
-turned the letter in his hand. “I don’t know the writing,” he said,
-prolonging the pleasure while he examined the superscription; then he
-tore open the paper, and the first sight of the sheet of big sprawling
-black letters was enough. “Ah, but I do know!” he cried. “’Tis from
-Frank Pleydall, Lois.”
-
-“Your school friend?”
-
-“Yes. I have not heard from him these six months, since he left the
-school. Doctor Masham, the master, said the queen was a Babylonish
-woman, and when Sir William heard of that he came to the school in a
-great rage and called Doctor Masham a canting Puritan and a hoary-headed
-traitor,--truly, the Doctor is but little older and not a bit more white
-headed than Sir William himself. And he took Frank away, and—I was right
-sorry to lose him.”
-
-“But you have found him again now,” said Lois. “Come, Sam.” She coaxed
-the youngster, still reluctant and lingering, out upon the terrace, and
-Hugh, happy in being alone, set himself down at once on the stairway
-that led from the hall to the upper story. It was hard to find a
-secluded place in Everscombe those days, what with the men from Thomas
-Oldesworth’s troop quartered in the old west wing, and the Millingtons
-and other refugee kinsfolk in the main part of the house. So in the fear
-that a noisy cousin or two might come to interrupt him, Hugh settled
-himself hastily and began his letter:—
-
-GOOD HUGH:
-
-It has come to my remembrance that it is many days since you have had
-news of me, so at a venture I send this letter to your grandfather’s
-house, though the roads are so beset and the post so delayed it is
-doubtful if it ever reach you. I am here at Nottingham with my father.
-He commands a notable troop of horse, drawn out of our own county, and
-many of them men bred on our own lands, proper stout fellows, that will
-make the rebels to skip, I promise you. My father is colonel, and some
-of my cousins and uncles and neighboring gentlemen hold commissions, and
-I think I shall prevail upon my father to bestow one on me, though he
-maintains I be over-young, which is all folly. The king’s standard was
-raised here week before last, and we all nigh split our throats with
-cheering. The town is full of soldiers and gentlemen from all over the
-kingdom, and many from following the wars abroad, and more coming every
-day. I have seen his Majesty the king,—God bless him! He rode through
-the street and he hath a noble face and is most gracious and kingly. I
-do not see how men can have the wickedness to take up arms against him.
-I have also seen his nephew, Prince Rupert, the famous German soldier,
-who they say shall have a great command in the war. My father has had
-speech with him and he commended our troop most graciously. It has been
-the most memorable time of all my life, and, best of all, I shall never
-go back to school now, but go to the wars. I would you might be with us,
-Hugh, for it is the only life for gentlemen of spirit. Heaven keep you
-well, and if this reaches you, write me in reply.
-
- Your loving friend to serve you,
-
- FRANCIS PLEYDALL.
-
-NOTTINGHAM, Sept. 5, 1642.
-
-I misremembered to tell you. Among the soldiers come from Germany is a
-certain Alan Gwyeth, a man of some forty years, with hair reddish gold
-like yours. It is an odd name and I thought perhaps he might be some
-kinsman of yours. We met with him the day the standard was raised, and I
-would have questioned him myself, but my father said I was over-forward
-and I had to hold my peace. Did your father leave any brothers or
-cousins in Germany? This man is a notable soldier and has got him a
-colonelcy under the Prince.
-
- F. P.
-
-Hugh sat staring at the paper and saw the black letters and the words
-but found no meaning in them. Across the dim hall he could see through
-the open door the strip of greensward that ran across the front of
-Everscombe, part black with the shadow of the east wing and part
-dazzling bright with the noon sun. He fixed his gaze upon the clean line
-where the shade gave way to vivid light, till the sunny greenness
-blurred before his eyes; he felt the roughness of the paper, as he
-creased and recreased it with nervous fingers, but he could not think;
-he could only feel that something vast and portentous was coming into
-his life.
-
-A noise of tramping feet and a burst of voices roused him. The
-conference ended, the men came slowly from the east parlor, and lingered
-speaking together, then scattered, some with Nathaniel Oldesworth into
-the main part of the house, some with Thomas Oldesworth out upon the
-terrace. Master Gilbert Oldesworth was not among them, Hugh noted, and
-on a sudden impulse he half ran across the hall and entered the east
-parlor, closing the door behind him.
-
-Master Oldesworth looked up from the paper over which he had been
-poring. “You would speak with me, Hugh?” he asked, with a touch of
-displeasure in his tone.
-
-“If I may. ’Tis important,” Hugh stammered. “Will you look at this
-letter? No, not all, just this place, sir.”
-
-Hugh stood at his grandfather’s side, griping the edge of the table so
-he saw the blood leave his fingers. In the elms outside the open window
-the rooks still scolded, and over in the corner of the room the great
-clock ticked loudly, but there was no other sound till Hugh had counted
-thrice sixty of its noisy ticks. Then the boy drew a quick breath, and,
-dreading what he might find, raised his eyes to his grandfather’s face.
-But he saw no sign there for several moments, not till Master Oldesworth
-had laid down Frank Pleydall’s letter, and then Hugh perceived there was
-something akin to pity in the old man’s eyes.
-
-“Well, Hugh, and what would you know?” he asked.
-
-“That man, Alan Gwyeth, is he—” Hugh felt and knew what the answer would
-be before Master Oldesworth spoke the words slowly: “Yes, Hugh, ’tis
-your father.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II
- HOW ONE SET OUT TO SEEK HIS FORTUNE
-
-
-“You must have known at last, but I had not thought it would be so
-soon,” Master Oldesworth went on. “’Twas folly ever to have kept it from
-you.”
-
-In a blind way Hugh had groped for a chair and sat down with his elbow
-on the table and his forehead pressing hard upon his hand. His face was
-toward the window and he was aware of the brightness flooding in through
-it, but he could see clearly only his grandfather’s thin, clean-shaven
-lips and searching eyes. “Tell me,” he found voice to say at last, “I
-want to know all. My father—he has been alive all these years? You
-knew?”
-
-Master Oldesworth nodded.
-
-“You deceived me?” Hugh’s voice rose shrill and uncontrollable. “You
-knew you were deceiving me? You had no right, ’twas wickedness, ’twas—”
-
-“It was your mother’s wish.”
-
-The burst of angry words was choked in Hugh’s throat; with a little
-shudder of the shoulders he dropped his head upon his folded arms. “Will
-you tell me wherefore, sir?” he asked in a dull tone.
-
-“Because of the never-dying folly of woman,” Master Oldesworth replied,
-with a sudden fierce harshness of tone that made Hugh lift his head. He
-felt that, if the revelation of the letter had not made every other
-happening of that day commonplace, he would have been surprised at the
-sudden lack of control that made his grandfather’s sallow cheeks flush
-and his thin lips move. But in a moment Master Oldesworth was as calm of
-demeanor as before and his voice was quite colorless when he resumed:
-“Hear the truth at last, Hugh, and you, too, will have reason to curse
-the folly of womankind. She, your mother, my best-beloved daughter, was
-most wilful, even from a child. Though you have none of her look I have
-noted in you something of her rash temper. Her own impulse and desire
-must always be her guides, and well they guided her. For there came a
-swashbuckling captain of horse out of Germany, with a brisk tongue and
-an insolent bearing, for which that mad girl put all her love on him,
-worthless hackster though he was.”
-
-“’Tis my father whom you speak of so?” Hugh cried, with an involuntary
-clinching of the hands.
-
-“Your mother’s work again!” said Master Oldesworth with a flicker of a
-smile, that was half sad and half contemptuous. “She fled away from her
-father’s house to marry this swaggering rascal; she followed him into
-Germany; and there she found true all her kinsmen had told her of his
-worthlessness and wickedness. So she took her child and gladly came back
-to us again.”
-
-“She never uttered word of this to me,” Hugh maintained doggedly.
-
-“I urged her to,” Master Oldesworth continued, “but, with the weakness
-of her sex, before six months were out she had forgot his unworthiness
-and baseness. She remembered only that she loved him and she blamed
-herself that she had left him; indeed, she would have returned if she
-had been assured he would receive her back. But I forbade her hold
-communication with him while she dwelt beneath my roof, and he himself
-did not care to seek her out, though she long looked for him. When he
-did not come she was the more convinced the fault was hers, and, since
-she had robbed her son of his father, as she phrased it, she would at
-least give him a true and noble conception of that father to cherish.
-Perhaps she held it compensation for the wrong she thought she had
-worked Alan Gwyeth that she sketched him unto you a paragon of all
-virtues. And partly for that he was dead to her, and partly for that she
-would not have the shame of her flight, as she called her most happy
-deliverance, be known to you, she gave him out to you as dead. ’Twas ill
-done, but I suffered her to rule you as she would; I had ever a weak
-fondness for her.”
-
-With a sudden jarring noise Hugh thrust back his chair and stumbling to
-the window stood so Master Oldesworth could not see his face. His poor
-mother, his poor mother! Because he knew in his heart she had done ill
-to him with her weak deceptions he loved her and pitied her all the
-more, and his eyes smarted with repressed tears that he could not see
-her nor tell her that it all mattered little, the agony this
-disillusionment was costing him; he knew she had meant it kindly and he
-thanked her for it.
-
-He was still staring out between the elms at the sloping lawn, where, he
-remembered as if it had happened years back, he had played that very
-morning like a boy, when his grandfather’s dry tones reached him: “This
-man would seem to have roistered through life without thought of her. Of
-late I did not know myself whether he were dead or living, but it seems
-he is sailing on the high waves of royal favor and has found himself
-fitting comradeship among the profligates and traitors of King Charles’s
-camp.”
-
-Hugh swept his hand across his eyes and faced about squarely. His father
-a profligate who had abandoned his mother! Who dared say it or believe
-it? His mother’s face as she had looked before she died came back to
-him. A true-hearted gentleman and a gallant soldier, like his
-father,—like his father.
-
-“And you never suspected anything of the truth ere this?” Master
-Oldesworth pursued.
-
-“Once, months back, Aunt Delia told me a story somewhat like this,”
-Hugh’s voice came low but so firm it surprised him, “but I held it only
-some of her spitefulness and I did not believe it.”
-
-Master Oldesworth looked up with a curious expression. “Do you believe
-it now?” he asked.
-
-“No,” Hugh answered honestly, then quickly added, “I crave your pardon,
-sir, but I cannot believe it.”
-
-“Have back this letter of yours,” Master Oldesworth said, rising, and as
-Hugh came up to him he put his hand on the boy’s shoulder. “You have a
-loyal heart, Hugh Gwyeth,” he said dryly, “and ’tis no shame of yours
-you have such a father.”
-
-“I am not ashamed of him, sir,” Hugh replied stoutly.
-
-“You are your mother over again,” said the old man, in a tone that held
-something of vexation and something of amusement, yet more of kindliness
-than he was accustomed to show his orphan grandson.
-
-Hugh was in no mood to note this, however, but, delaying only to take
-his precious letter, left the east parlor at a brisk step that verged
-upon a run. Once in the open air, where he was freed from the restraint
-of his grandfather’s presence, he leaped down the low terrace and,
-hallooing at the top of his lungs, raced full speed across the lawn. But
-when the shadow of the tall oaks on the border of the park fell upon him
-the noisiness of his joy somewhat abated. He rambled on more slowly with
-a happy under-consciousness of the dusky green of the old trees about
-him and the shimmer of the stray sunbeams; he wondered that the dull,
-familiar park seemed so joyous and beautiful a place.
-
-Not till he had crossed the grassy roadway that led to the manor house,
-and plunged into the thicker growth of trees, did he come again to the
-power of framing connected thoughts. Little by little he let his pace
-slacken, till at length he flung himself down in the shade of a beech
-tree and pulling out Frank’s letter read the last sentences aloud. His
-father was alive, an officer in the king’s army, at Nottingham, only the
-width of two counties away. Hugh clasped his hands behind his head and
-lying back gazed up unwinkingly at the cloudless blue sky; in his heart
-there was no room for any feeling save that of pure happiness, of which
-the bright day seemed a mere reflection. For he neither remembered nor
-heeded the words his grandfather had spoken of Alan Gwyeth; he only knew
-that a few score miles away the tall man with reddish hair and blue
-eyes, who used to carry him upon his shoulder, was alive and waiting for
-him.
-
-The resolve formed in these hours of reflection he told to Lois Campion,
-when, late in the afternoon, he crashed his way out to the edge of the
-park with the briskness of one who has made up his mind. The girl was
-playing at shuttlecock with Martha Oldesworth, but at sight of Hugh she
-quickly laid aside her battledoor and came to him where he was lingering
-for her beneath the oaks. “Where have you been?” she cried. “We missed
-you at dinner, and Peregrine, who was honey-tongued as ever, said you
-were sulking. But I knew ’twas some witchery in that letter.”
-
-Hugh laughed excitedly. “Witchery? Ay, ’twas that indeed, Lois. Can you
-believe it? My father is alive, at the king’s camp; and I have
-determined to go to him.”
-
-With that he made her sit down beside him and told her all, so
-confidently and happily she dared not venture more than one objection:
-“But ’tis a long way to Nottingham, Hugh.”
-
-“I can walk it. Take no heed to the way, Lois, but think of the end.”
-
-“When shall you go?” she asked, playing absently with some acorns she
-had gathered in her hand.
-
-“To-morrow night.”
-
-“So soon?” The acorns fell neglected to the ground.
-
-“Nay, ’tis delaying over-long. I would set out this very night, but I
-suppose I should take some time for preparation.”
-
-“And you must run from home by night?” she repeated sadly.
-
-“Like Dick Whittington. I wonder if I have such good fortune as he.”
-
-“How happy your father will be to see you!” Lois continued.
-
-“’Twill be naught but happiness for us all,” Hugh ran on boisterously.
-“Ah, must you go, Lois?”
-
-“I must finish my game with Martha,” the girl answered steadily. Hugh
-saw, however, that she did not go near Martha but walked away to the
-house, and he was vexed because she did not care enough about his
-departure to stay to talk with him.
-
-It was well for Hugh the day was nearly spent, if his plans were to be
-kept secret; for he longed to speak of them, and, now Lois would not
-listen, there was no one in whom he could safely confide. Moreover, Sam
-Oldesworth was so curious about the letter that it was a perilously
-great temptation to hint to him just a little, especially when the two
-boys were preparing for bed. Since the Millingtons had come to
-Everscombe Sam and Hugh had been obliged to sleep together, an
-arrangement never acceptable to the older boy and this night even
-dangerous. Fortunately he realized his weakness enough to reply shortly
-to all his companion’s eager questions, however gladly he would have
-told something of his secret, till Sam at last grumbled himself to
-sleep. But Hugh turned on his side and for hours lay staring into the
-dark of the chamber, planning for his journey and sometimes wondering
-where he would be in the blackness of the next night.
-
-In the morning, when he first woke and lay gazing at the familiar room,
-it gave him a feeling of surprisingly keen regret to tell himself that
-this was his last day at Everscombe. Perhaps it was the outward aspect
-of the day that made him feel so depressed, for a slow, drizzling rain
-was falling and the sky was thick with gray clouds.
-
-All the morning Hugh avoided his cousins, and even Lois, against whom
-the resentment of the previous afternoon still lasted, and prowled
-restlessly about the house to pay farewell visits to the rooms that he
-had known. Thus his Aunt Delia found him, loitering upon the garret
-stairs, and sharply bade him go about his business, so Hugh, his
-sensitive dignity a-quiver, drew back to his chamber, where he pretended
-to choose equipments for his journey. In reality it was a simple matter;
-he would wear his stuff jacket and breeches,—he owned no other suit of
-clothes,—and his one pair of stout shoes. He did not trouble himself
-about clean linen, but he took pains to see that his pistol was in
-order; it was an old one that had belonged to Peregrine, before he
-received a case of new ones in keeping with his position as cornet in
-the Parliament’s army. Peregrine’s old riding boots had also fallen to
-Hugh’s share; they were a trifle too big and were ill patched, but there
-was something trooper-like about them that made him sorry when he
-realized that he could not take them with him. He reluctantly dropped
-them back into the wardrobe, and then, the sight of them reminding him
-he had yet to bid farewell to his friends the horses, he spattered out
-through the rain to the stables.
-
-The stones of the stable yard were slippery and wet; at the trough in
-the centre three horses, with their coats steaming, were drinking, while
-the man at their heads, one of Tom Oldesworth’s newly levied troopers,
-joked noisily with a little knot of his comrades. Inside the big dark
-stable a great kicking and stamping of horses was rumblingly audible
-above the loud talk of the men at work. Hugh loitered into the confusion
-and, making his way through the main building, entered the quieter wing,
-where were the old family horses with whom he had acquaintance. But when
-he stepped through the connecting door he perceived that even here
-others were before him; standing with hands behind him and legs somewhat
-wide, as befitted a veteran horse-soldier, was Tom Oldesworth, a
-close-shaven, firm-mouthed man of thirty, in talk with his lieutenant,
-Roger Ingram. Near by stood Peregrine Oldesworth, a heavy-featured, dark
-lad, who was bearing his part in the conversation quite like a man.
-Whatever the matter was, they seemed too merry over it for any business
-of the troop, so Hugh thought it no harm to saunter over to them.
-
-“Looking for a commission, eh, Hugh?” Tom Oldesworth broke off his talk
-to ask jestingly.
-
-“Not under you, sir,” Hugh retorted, rather sharply.
-
-Oldesworth laughed and patted his head. “Never mind, my Roundhead,” he
-said cheerfully, as Hugh ducked out of his reach, “your turn’ll come
-soon. No doubt Peregrine will get a ball through his brains ere the
-winter be over, and then I promise you his place.”
-
-“Then you think the war will last till winter?” questioned Ingram.
-
-“Till winter? I tell you, Roger, we’re happy if we have a satisfactory
-peace in the land two full years hence.”
-
-“You’re out there, Captain. These gallants of the king’s will stand to
-fight here no better than they stood against the Scots. They’ll be beat
-to cover ere snow fall—”
-
-“Pshaw!” replied Oldesworth, convincingly. “Look you here, Roger.”
-Thereupon the two fell to discussing the king’s resources and those of
-Parliament, and comparing the merits of commanders, and quoting the
-opinions of leaders, till Hugh tired of it all and strolled away.
-
-He passed slowly down the line of stalls, caressing the soft muzzles of
-the kindly horses, and lingered a time to admire the big black charger
-that belonged to Captain Oldesworth. In the next stall stood a
-clean-limbed bay, which thrust out its head as if expecting notice; Hugh
-hesitated, then began stroking the velvety nose, when Peregrine
-swaggered up to him with a grand, “Don’t worry that horse of mine,
-Hugh.”
-
-“I was not worrying him,” Hugh answered hotly. “But you can be sure I’ll
-never touch him again.” He turned and walked away toward the open door.
-
-“Oh, you can touch him now and then,” Peregrine replied, as he followed
-after him out into the courtyard, where the rain had somewhat abated.
-“But he’s too brave a beast for you youngsters to be meddling with all
-the time. You’d spoil his temper.” Then, as Hugh still kept a sulky
-silence, his cousin asked abruptly, “What’s amiss with you to-day?”
-
-“Nothing.”
-
-“You’ve not been friendly of late. I believe you are jealous that I have
-a commission.”
-
-“I do not want your commission,” Hugh replied, and to show he spoke the
-truth he forced a laugh and tried to say carelessly, as he might have
-said a month before, “Tell you what I do want, though: a new flint for
-my pistol. Will you not give me one, Peregrine?”
-
-“Are you going to shoot Cavaliers?” the elder boy asked, as he halted to
-fumble in his pockets.
-
-“Maybe.”
-
-Peregrine drew out three bits of flint, turned them in his hand, then
-gave the least perfect to Hugh. “I took it from my new pistol this
-morning,” he explained. “’Tis good enough for any service you’ll need of
-it.”
-
-Hugh bit his lip, but with a muttered word of thanks took the flint.
-
-“I was furbishing up my weapons this morning,” Peregrine went on. “We go
-on real service next week; we determined on it yesterday at the
-conference.”
-
-“I thought Uncle Tom said the troop would not be in fit condition to
-serve for a fortnight.”
-
-“Not all the troop. But Uncle Tom, and I, and Lieutenant Ingram, are to
-take some thirty men that are in trim and go into Staffordshire to see
-what can be done among the godly people thereabouts.”
-
-“Good luck to you, Peregrine,” Hugh forced himself to say, then shook
-off his companion and, passing from the stable yard, trudged away
-through the wet grass, with the old jealous pang worrying him as
-savagely as ever. But soon he told himself that his father would
-probably give him a horse and good weapons too, and, being a colonel in
-the king’s army, would very likely let him go to the wars with him,
-perhaps even give him a commission; and, thinking still of his father,
-by the time he returned to the house he had quite forgotten Peregrine.
-
-The rain had nearly ceased; there seemed even a prospect of a clear
-sunset, and with the lightening of the weather Hugh cast aside the heavy
-feeling of half-regretful parting which had weighed on him all day and
-grew impatient for darkness, when he could set out on his journey. But
-the night came slowly, as any other night, with a rift of watery sunset
-in the west and mottled yellow clouds, that fading gave place to the
-long, gray twilight, which deepened imperceptibly.
-
-Hugh started early to his room, which was in the east wing, so he went
-by the staircase from the little hall. Halfway up, as he strode two
-steps at a time, he almost stumbled over a slight figure that caught at
-his arm. “Lois!” he cried.
-
-The girl rose to her feet. “Why are you angry with me, Hugh?” she asked,
-and though he could not see her face he knew by her voice she was almost
-sobbing.
-
-“Why did you run away from me yesterday?” he replied, feeling foolish
-and without excuse.
-
-“No matter. I have forgot. But I wanted to have speech with you.”
-
-“You waited here to bid me farewell? ’Twas good of you, Lois,” Hugh
-blurted out. “I am sorry I was so rough to you about yesterday.”
-
-“Then we’ll part still friends?” Lois said eagerly. “And here is
-something you are to take with you.”
-
-“Your five shillings?” Hugh broke out, as she pressed the coins into his
-hand. “Nay, Lois, I cannot.”
-
-“You must; ’twill be a long journey, and you have little money, I know.
-And I shall never have need of such a hoard. Prithee, take it, Hugh,
-else I shall think you still are angry because I left you yesterday. But
-truly, ’twas only that I could not bear the thought of your going.” She
-was crying now in good earnest, and Hugh tried awkwardly to soothe her
-and whisper her some comfort: he wished she were a boy and could go with
-him, perhaps even now he could come back some time and fetch her; he
-never would forget what a good friend she had been to him; and much more
-he was saying, when Martha’s voice came from below in the dusk of the
-hall: “Lois.”
-
-“I must go,” the girl whispered. “Farewell, Hugh.”
-
-“Farewell, Lois.”
-
-“God keep you, dear, always.”
-
-He heard her go slowly down the stairs and wished she had stayed with
-him longer; he might have said more cheering things. Then he heard the
-footsteps of the two girls die away in the hall, and he went on to his
-room.
-
-He had placed his pistol on a chair beneath his cloak and hat, and had
-just lain down in his undergarments and stockings beneath the coverings,
-when Sam came in full of conversation, which Hugh’s short replies
-quickly silenced. But after the boy had lain down Hugh remembered that
-this was the last night they would sleep together, and, repenting his
-shortness, he said gently: “Good night, Sam.”
-
-“What’s wrong with you?” asked his cousin, which made Hugh feel foolish
-and answer curtly, “Nothing.”
-
-Then there was a long silence in the dark chamber, till at length Sam
-was breathing deep and evenly. He was well asleep, Hugh assured himself,
-so, slipping quietly from the bed, he quickly drew on his outer clothes,
-put on cloak and hat, and tucked the pistol in his belt. He was just
-taking his shoes in his hand, when Sam stirred and asked drowsily: “What
-are you doing now?”
-
-“I saw Martha’s battledoor out o’ doors,” Hugh mumbled. “I must fetch it
-or the dew will spoil it.”
-
-Sam gave a sleepy sigh, then buried his head in the pillow again, and
-Hugh, waiting for no more, stole out of the room into the darkness of
-the corridor that was so thick it seemed tangible. He scuffed cautiously
-to the stairs and with his hand on the railing groped his way down. As
-he went he grew more accustomed to the blackness, and so, treading
-carefully, came without stumbling or noise to the outer door. He worked
-back the bolt, cautiously and slowly, and with a nervous start at each
-faint creak, till at last he could push the door open far enough to slip
-through. The grass felt cold beneath his stockinged feet; the night wind
-came damp and chilly against his face. With a shiver that was not all
-from cold he drew the door to, more quickly than he had thought, for the
-metal work jarred harshly.
-
-With a feeling that the whole household must be aroused he ran
-noiselessly across the terrace, and, pausing only to draw on his shoes,
-struck briskly through the wet grass toward the park. At its outskirts
-he halted and, glancing back, took a last look at Everscombe, black and
-silent under the stars. Only in one window, that of his grandfather’s
-chamber in the main building, was a candle burning, and the thought of
-the habitable room in which it shone made the night seem darker and
-lonelier. Hugh looked quickly away, and calling up his resolution
-plunged in among the trees.
-
-He had meant to go through to the highway by a footpath, but the woods
-were blacker than he had thought for; again and again he missed the
-track, till at last, finding himself on the beaten roadway from the
-manor house, he decided the quicker course was to follow it. He had
-covered perhaps half the distance and was trudging along with his head
-bent to look to his footsteps, when from the thicket just before him
-came a voice: “Stand, there!”
-
-Hugh stopped where he was, half frightened for the instant, then half
-inclined to run, when an erect figure stepping from beneath a
-neighboring tree barred his path. By the long cloak and the staff on
-which the man leaned Hugh guessed it was his grandfather, even before
-Master Oldesworth spoke again: “So you are leaving us, Hugh Gwyeth?”
-
-“Yes, sir,” Hugh replied defiantly.
-
-“So I had judged. You are bound for the near park gate?”
-
-Hugh nodded.
-
-“You must bear with my company that far.”
-
-So side by side they passed down the dark roadway, till presently the
-trees thinned and the starlight reached them. Then Hugh glanced up at
-his companion’s face but found it fixed in so stern an expression that
-he did not care to look again.
-
-“You are going to your father?” Master Oldesworth queried after a time.
-
-“Yes, sir,” Hugh replied. The defiance had gone from his tone now.
-
-At length the dimly seen roadway ran between two huge dark pillars, half
-hidden by the trees; it was the park gate, Hugh saw, and beyond was the
-king’s highway. Involuntarily he slackened his pace, and his grandfather
-halted too, and stood by one of the pillars, resting both hands upon the
-top of his staff. “Then you have the grace to hesitate a moment,” the
-old man spoke, “before you leave those who have sheltered you?”
-
-Hugh dared not trust his voice to reply, and after a moment Master
-Oldesworth continued slowly: “It is your mother over again. We reared
-her and cared for her, and she left us for Alan Gwyeth; and you—Have you
-not had a home here?”
-
-“Yes, sir,” Hugh answered meekly. He knew well that the grievances which
-were so true when he told them to Lois would be nothing in his
-grandfather’s sight.
-
-“And what has this father for whom you leave us done for you?” Master
-Oldesworth pursued. “You cannot answer? He broke your mother’s heart and
-deserted you—”
-
-“He is my father,” Hugh replied.
-
-“Go to him, then, as your mother did before you. But mark you this, Hugh
-Gwyeth: I received her back when Alan Gwyeth wearied of her, but I shall
-never receive you back. Go now, and you go for all time.”
-
-“I shall never ask you to take me back.” Hugh tried to speak stoutly,
-but his voice faltered in an ignoble manner.
-
-“Now consider well,” his grandfather continued. “When you pass the gate
-it will be to me as if you had never lived. Be not rash, Hugh,” he went
-on more gently. “Come back with me to the house; this folly of yours
-shall never be known, and I shall look to your welfare as I always have.
-But if you choose to go to that place of perdition, the king’s camp, and
-to that evil man, Alan Gwyeth, I forget you are my daughter’s son. Now
-make your choice between that man and me.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III
- THE ROAD TO NOTTINGHAM
-
-
-Over in the marsh beyond the dim highway the frogs were piping their
-lonesome note; the shrilling call of autumnal insects sounded from the
-wayside; of a sudden the waste darkness reëchoed with solitary noises.
-All came clearly to Hugh’s ear in the hush that followed his
-grandfather’s words, and with them something that was akin to fright
-laid hold on him. Outside the park gate the world looked vast and black;
-he felt himself weak in his youthfulness, so even the butt of his pistol
-for which he groped did not strengthen his courage. He looked to his
-grandfather and involuntarily made a step toward him, but Master
-Oldesworth still stood with his hands upon the top of his staff and
-watched him but made no sign. With a stinging sense of rebuff Hugh drew
-back and held himself quiet, while he strove to think clearly and so
-make his resolution without prejudice. But all the time he felt that
-invisible hands were surely haling him back to Everscombe and with his
-whole will he struggled against them. “Will it be ended past question
-when I go out at the gateway?” he cried, almost before his thought had
-framed the words.
-
-He did not even wait for an assent, but as he spoke stepped out beyond
-the pillars of the gate into the rough highway. There he faced about
-suddenly. “Grandfather,” he cried, “I—I am grateful for all you have
-done for me. Prithee, forgive me.” The words died away then, for he saw
-Master Oldesworth had turned and was walking slowly toward Everscombe,
-nor did he once look back.
-
-For an instant it was borne in on Hugh to run after his grandfather, to
-implore pardon, to beg to be taken back and suffered to live the old
-dull life at the manor house; then the impulse left him and he was more
-ashamed of it than of his previous wavering. Still he lingered by the
-gate, straining his eyes into the dusk of the park till long after he
-had lost sight of Master Oldesworth. Once more he became aware of the
-sad piping of frogs in the marsh, and he listened stupidly, while
-heavier and heavier he felt the weight of loneliness press upon him. For
-he now realized that his decision had indeed been irrevocable; for all
-time he was cut off from his kinsfolk and his only home.
-
-When at last he turned slowly from the gateway there was no hopefulness
-in his step nor did he lift his eyes from the ground, unless to glance
-up at the familiar trees of the park that he should not see again. But
-at length, through the branches before him, he beheld Charles’s Wain
-shining clear and the bright Pole Star that seemed to point him
-northward to the king and to his father. At that Hugh straightened his
-drooping shoulders resolutely and in good earnest set forth upon his
-journey.
-
-The new moon had long been set, but the stars were bright and the way
-amid the trees was plain to follow. A pleasant freshness of the early
-fall was in the faint night breeze and yet a lurking chill, that made
-Hugh glad to draw his cloak closer and trudge on more briskly. It was
-not long after midnight when he reached the first cottage on the
-outskirts of the village of Kingsford; he had passed the cheery little
-timbered dwelling many a time, but now, muffled in the night, it seemed
-unfamiliar. As his feet crunched the gravel of the road before the
-cottage he heard the house dog bark within, and a sudden feeling of
-being shut out came over him. The dark houses, as he hurried by them,
-had the awesome blankness of sleeping faces; even in the woods he had
-not been so lonely as here in Kingsford, where human beings were within
-call.
-
-But as he drew to the end of the straggling village he slackened his
-pace. The road, ascending slightly here, skirted the churchyard, where
-he could see the light streak that marked the pathway, and the huddled
-stones, blacker against the turf. For a moment he rested his arms upon
-the lich wall and stood gazing across the graves at the dense bulk of
-the little Norman church, with its side porch overshadowed by a dark yew
-tree and its square tower cleanly outlined against the starry sky. In
-the chancel of the church his mother lay buried. She would have approved
-what he was doing, he told himself; she would gladly have returned to
-Alan Gwyeth. With every fibre of his resolution newly braced he once
-more took up his march, down the gentle slope and across the one-arched
-bridge that spanned the river Arrow. There, with the sound of the
-hurrying water in his ears, he paused and took a final glance at the
-tower of Kingsford church, and as he passed on wondered vaguely if he
-should ever set eyes on it again, and when, and how.
-
-Beyond Kingsford the road ran once more through woods with now and again
-a space of open land or a retired farmhouse. Hugh gave little heed to
-the country round him, however; he noted only that he had firm road
-beneath his feet, the cool morning wind in his face, and the stars
-overhead to light him. But the wind grew chilly and faint with
-approaching dawn; the stars paled; from far away across the cleared
-fields a cock crowed and another answered him. When Hugh entered the
-village next beyond Kingsford, the sky was fading to a dull leaden color
-and he shivered with the cold of breaking day. Already people were
-beginning to stir; he met laborers going afield and from roadside barns
-heard men shouting to cattle, and the bark of dogs. About the little inn
-there were some signs of life, so he entered and bought bread of a
-tousled-headed woman. Coming out of the house he saw the eastern sky was
-breaking into billows of pink, and a little later the cold yellow sun
-burst forth.
-
-Hugh munched his bread as he tramped along, and the food and the
-daylight heartened him wonderfully. When the sun got higher he slung his
-cloak over one shoulder, whistled for company, and almost felt it in his
-heart to run when he came to an especially even bit of road. For he was
-his own man now, out in the world, with his pistol at his side, his five
-shillings and odd pence in his pocket, and his face set toward
-Nottingham.
-
-Something before noon he trudged into the great town of Warwick and made
-his way to a tavern he knew from his school days. That time was now a
-good four months past, so he felt entitled to put a bit of swagger into
-his gait and rather hoped that in his new freedom he might meet with
-some of his former schoolfellows. But he kept a wary eye out for his old
-master, Doctor Masham, who, he suspected, might apprehend him on the
-spot for a runaway and pack him off to Everscombe; so he drew a breath
-of relief when he reached the tavern in safety. There he bought him
-sixpence worth of bread and meat, and, too hungry to give great heed to
-the varied company in which he found himself, spared expense by eating
-in the common room.
-
-As his hunger abated he became aware of an exceeding stiffness in the
-muscles of his legs which made him almost wince when he rose again. He
-hobbled as far as the door, where a bench in the sun proved so tempting
-that he sat down to rest him just a moment before starting out. Not only
-did his legs ache but he found his eyelids heavy and his head dull, and
-he was possessed of a great desire to yawn and stretch himself. He
-finally lay down with his head on his arms and would have given himself
-up to thoughts of Nottingham, only an endless line of swaying trees and
-dark farmhouses kept sliding before his eyes.
-
-The next thing he knew some one shook him, and he heard the voice of one
-of the drawers saying, “Now then, master, dost mean to pay us for the
-use o’ that bench?”
-
-Hugh blinked his eyes open and sat up stiffly; one or two idlers stood
-gazing at him with amused faces, but for the rest the inn porch was
-deserted, and the sunlight had climbed above the windows of the second
-story. “Why, what’s the time?” he cried, broad awake as he perceived
-that.
-
-“Mid-afternoon and long past,” said the drawer, whereat Hugh jumped to
-his feet and walked away, so vexed at his sluggishness that for the
-first half-mile he scarcely heeded the soreness of his legs.
-
-After that his gait grew slower and more halting, but he set his teeth
-and pulled himself along, as if it were an enemy he held by the collar;
-he had made up his mind to sleep some six or eight miles out of Warwick
-at a hamlet that marked the furthest limit of his school rambles, and
-his plan should not be altered because he had foolishly slept away
-precious time. The sun set and left him toiling along the highway; the
-twilight darkened; and the crescent of the moon was riding low among the
-stars, when Hugh dragged his tired feet over the threshold of the inn
-for which he aimed. The house was about closing and there was little
-welcome for this belated traveller, but from sheer weariness the boy was
-past resenting uncivil usage. He ate thankfully what was given him,
-stumbled away to his chamber, and, almost before he had flung off his
-dusty clothes, was sound asleep.
-
-When he woke the mid-morning sun was streaming through the window full
-in his face, but there was a sharpness in the air of the little chamber
-that made him pull the blankets up to his chin. The poor inn bed seemed
-far more comfortable than any he had slept upon at Everscombe; it took
-an inordinate amount of resolution to rise from it, and an equal courage
-to drag his shoes on to his swollen feet. But he had already lost the
-bracing early hours of the day and he must waste no more time in
-coddling himself, so he took the road at once, as briskly as his limbs
-would bear him.
-
-Sore and stiff as he still was from yesterday’s long march, he made slow
-progress; it was close on midday when, passing through the town of
-Coventry, he entered upon the old Roman road, the Fosse, which he was to
-follow. The sight of the straight way stretching endlessly northeast
-discouraged him at first, but after a short rest he pulled himself
-together and, hobbling on, half forgot the pain in his heels in the
-exhilaration of going forward. It was new country he was now passing
-through, for he was no traveller; Everscombe to Warwick had been his
-usual round, save for that one trip into Worcestershire with Frank
-Pleydall. Since the last year, when Peregrine had been up to London with
-his father, Hugh had fretted at the narrow range of his journeyings and
-felt aggrieved at having made his German travels so young that he could
-cudgel up only scant recollections of them. But now Peregrine might go
-to London or Staffordshire or whither he pleased; Hugh felt no jealousy,
-for he knew it was far pleasanter to be an independent traveller, bound
-to Nottingham and a soldier father.
-
-Thus, though he no longer had any wish to run, he contrived to jog along
-quite cheerily till mid-afternoon. Then the low-lying clouds darkened
-and a soft rain, striking chilly against Hugh’s face, made him glad to
-pull his cloak up to his eyes. The fields and cottages looked gray
-through the downpour, and then all he saw was the broad puddles of the
-roadway, as of necessity he bent his head against the storm. At each
-step he could hear the water oozing in his shoes, his stockings were
-clammy wet, and his hat brim flapped cold against his forehead; but as
-the afternoon waned he lost these single sensations, and only knew that
-from head to foot he was soaked and numb and weary. Still he plodded on,
-because he must hold out till he reached an inn, but it was at a heavy
-mechanical pace, while he counted the steps and wondered drearily if the
-march would never end.
-
-Twilight was turning to night when he splashed at last into a
-considerable village and stumbled into the first inn to which he came.
-There was a brisk fire in the common room and but one other guest, so
-Hugh was free to slip into the chimney corner and dry his dripping
-clothes while he ate his supper. For civility’s sake he began talking to
-his companion, from whom he learned that he was now over the boundary
-and into Leicestershire. The knowledge gave him a childish homesick
-pang; Everscombe seemed to have fallen hopelessly far behind him and
-Nottingham was still distant the length of a county. With no further
-care to eat he thrust aside his trencher and dragged himself off to bed.
-
-In his waking moments he heard the rain plashing softly on the thatch of
-the shed beneath his window, and with the morning light he found the sky
-still gray and the storm still beating down. He put out one hand to his
-coat, flung on the stool beside his pallet, and felt that it was not
-half dried from yesterday’s soaking. Then for a time he rested quiet
-again, while he wondered in half-shamed fashion if he might not lie by a
-day till the storm was over. But when he reckoned up his store of money,
-he saw he could not afford to lose so many hours; it was yet more than
-two days’ march to Nottingham, and he had not full three shillings to
-keep him on the way. He wondered at the speed with which money went, for
-he was new to ordering such matters; hitherto he had been sure of his
-three meals a day and bed at night, and looked upon stray sixpences as
-valuable only for the apples and tops into which they might be turned.
-He put that last recollection out of his head as speedily as possible,
-ashamed of his scarcely ended childhood, and, accepting the
-responsibilities of the manhood he had claimed for himself, got up and
-dragged on his damp clothes.
-
-After breakfasting he wrapped his sodden cloak about him and plunged
-resolutely out into the rain. The heavy mud stayed him with clogging his
-shoes, but he was now somewhat seasoned for the march and managed to
-keep up a pace that, though not of the fastest, was steady. So he came
-at length through the afternoon drizzle to the town of Leicester, which
-he loyally told himself was not the half as fine as his own old Warwick.
-But none the less he made his lodging there that night, and he went to
-bed hopefully; for the western clouds were showing a faint yellow streak
-that promised better weather on the morrow.
-
-Sure enough, when morning came the rain had ceased to fall, and though
-the air was still heavy with mist there seemed a prospect the sun might
-yet break through. Hugh took the highway in gay spirits, and plodding
-along at a stouter pace than on the day before congratulated himself on
-covering such a deal of ground. But by noon he came to a less flattering
-estimate of himself; for, talking with an idler at a small tavern he had
-entered to buy his dinner, he discovered he was now following the Fosse
-not to Nottingham but to Newark. Thereat Hugh faced about to retrace his
-steps, too vexed at his own stupidity to allow himself to stop for
-dinner. His informant called after him some direction about a cross-way
-to the Nottingham road, which he scarcely heeded at the moment; but
-afterward, when he was out of the village, he remembered, and striking
-across the fields came into a narrow road full of ruts and great
-puddles.
-
-At first Hugh splashed along recklessly, but presently, when a streak of
-sunlight crept through the trees and turned the puddles bright, he let
-his pace slacken and little by little brought himself back to a more
-contented mood. After all, he could make up by steady walking what he
-had lost, and in any case Nottingham was now less than two days’ journey
-distant. He began whistling for content, then stopped, as a rustling in
-the bushes ahead caught his ear. He saw the branches crackle outward,
-and two men, bursting through, came swinging down the roadway to meet
-him.
-
-Recovering from his first surprise, Hugh prepared to give them the usual
-traveller’s good day, but on second glance kept to his side of the road
-and walked more rapidly. One of the fellows was thick-set and well
-tanned, and chewed a straw as he trudged; the other, a younger man, clad
-like a field laborer, was taller and hulking, with a bearded, low-browed
-face. As they came abreast he bade Hugh a surly good even and on the
-word, almost before the boy could reply, gave a grip at his collar. Hugh
-dodged back and pulled out his pistol, while the thought flashed through
-his head that running was impossible in this mire,—and then it was not
-befitting his father’s son. Next instant the tall man sprang upon him
-and Hugh, thrusting the pistol into his face, pulled the trigger, then
-felt the weapon knocked out of his hand and found himself grappling with
-his big antagonist. The man’s fingers pressed into his throat, he knew;
-and he remembered afterward how a smooch of red flecked the fellow’s
-beard, as he dashed his fist against his mouth. Then he was griping the
-other about the neck, hammering up at that stained face, and he heard
-the fellow bawl, “Devil and all! Why don’t ’ee come in and help me,
-Jock?” Another gruff voice retorted, “If thou canst not handle a younker
-like that, thou deservest to have bloody teeth.” Then of a sudden Hugh
-found himself twisted over so he saw the sky above him all shot with
-black, and he felt a bursting pain in his forehead. Thrusting up his
-hands gropingly, he went down full length in the mud without strength
-enough in him to move, even when the tall man knelt over him and, with
-one hand on his throat, rifled his pockets.
-
-“Here, have back your pistol, master,” he heard the gruff voice say, and
-he dimly saw the well tanned man, with a grin on his face, fling the
-pistol down in the mud beside him. Then the two walked off at their old
-swinging pace, and Hugh dragged himself up on his elbow and lay staring
-uncomprehendingly at his bleeding knuckles. After a time he got
-painfully to his feet and in mechanical fashion reckoned up the damages;
-they had taken his cloak and cleaned his pockets of money and of
-everything but the creased letter from Frank Pleydall and a loose bit of
-string. They had left him nothing but the torn and well-muddied clothes
-he wore and the pistol, that now was all befouled with mire. As Hugh
-picked it up all the hot anger of the actual conflict swept over him
-again, and with some wild idea of making the robbers restore their
-plunder he staggered a few steps down the road. Then strength failed
-him, and dropping down by the roadside he sat with his aching head in
-his hands. The world was a brutal place, he reflected with dumb
-resentment; even if a man had courage enough he did not always have the
-muscle to defend his own, not even with a pistol to back him.
-
-It did not better matters to sit there and whimper so after a time he
-rose and, still rather dazed with his drubbing, went unsteadily on his
-way. At the first brook he halted to wash his wounded hands and cleanse
-the pistol, which he dried upon his coat as well as he could. The rest
-of the afternoon he marched slowly because of the dizziness in his head,
-and so the twilight had overtaken him before he reached the main road
-and a village that lay upon it.
-
-Close by the wayside stood a tavern, where candles were lighted and food
-would be cooking, but Hugh only gave one wistful look and passed on. He
-made his supper of a drink of water from the public well, and, falling
-in speech there with some loiterers, he found he was now into the shire
-of Nottingham and not above ten miles from the town. His heart jumped at
-the news, but next moment he was telling himself he could not tramp
-those miles in the dark and he grew sober as he realized unwillingly
-that he must sleep in the open. Till mid-evening he lingered in the
-village street, then, drawing reluctantly away from the sight of the few
-candles that still shone in cottages, passed on to the outskirts of the
-hamlet. After a cautious reconnoissance he crept through a hedge into a
-field, where he had dimly made out in the darkness a stack of straw, in
-the lee of which he snuggled down. The straw rustled with startling
-loudness at his least movement, and the earth beneath him was so damp
-his teeth chattered in his head. The strangeness of the place kept him
-many moments awake, but he held his eyes shut that he might not have
-sight of the lowering sky. Little by little he forgot it all and fell to
-thinking of the last time he had lain in the open, when he and Sam
-Oldesworth had stolen out for a frolic to lie the night in Everscombe
-Park. How Sam would have marvelled at this nights doings! And Lois, only
-Lois would have pitied him, like a girl.
-
-Then he knew there had been a long space in which Lois and all other
-remembrances left him, and he found himself shivering in the midst of
-wet straw with gray morning light all around him. He crawled to his feet
-and making his way to the highroad slowly set forth again. He was keenly
-hungry with his twenty-four hours of fasting and stiff with the dampness
-of his lodging, but he cheered himself with the thought that before
-night he would be in Nottingham. He would have enough to eat then, and a
-bed to sleep in, and decent clothes once more; but he put aside these
-creature comforts at the thought that he would see his father before he
-slept again. He wondered what his father would say, and he planned what
-he would tell him, and how he would make light of his long walk and the
-hunger and the cold.
-
-His heart fairly jumped within him when at last, in the mid-afternoon,
-he saw from a hill a great congregation of houses and steeples, which he
-knew must be Nottingham. He started down the hill on the run, though his
-knees were smiting together with his long fast. He thought he could keep
-up the pace clear to the gates of the town, but a troublesome stone got
-into his shoe, so presently he had to pause and sit down under a hedge
-to look to it. As he was pulling on the shoe again a man passing by bade
-him good day, and Hugh, seeing there were houses within call, so he need
-not fear a second assault, entered into talk with him: “Yonder’s
-Nottingham, is it not?”
-
-“O’ course,” answered the other, proportioning his courtesy to the state
-of Hugh’s jacket.
-
-“How do you like having a king lie so near?” Hugh laughed for the sheer
-happiness that was in him.
-
-“Ill enough,” growled the other, “wi’ his swaggering ruffians breaking
-our fields and kissing our wenches. Praise Heaven they be gone now.”
-
-“Gone?” Hugh echoed blankly.
-
-“Ay, his Majesty and the whole crew of his rakehelly followers went
-packing westward three days back.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV
- TO HORSE AND AWAY
-
-
-If Hugh Gwyeth had been a few years older he might perhaps have cursed
-his ill fortune; if he had been a few years younger he would assuredly
-have put his head down on his knees and wept; as it was, being neither
-man nor child, he blinked his eyelids rapidly and forced a weak grin,
-then asked: “There’s a road that runs west from Nottingham, is there
-not, friend? Perhaps then there is some cross-way from here by which I
-may reach it?”
-
-The man delayed long enough to give full information about a path, a
-stile, a meadow, and an ancient right of way, which Hugh checked off
-mechanically. But after the man had passed on he still sat a time
-staring at the distant roofs of Nottingham and blinking fast.
-
-At length he got to his feet and started down the hillside by the path
-the man had shown him, slowly, for all the spring had gone out of his
-gait now, and his knees felt weak and shook so that more than once he
-had to pause to rest. During such a halt a sickening fear seized him:
-suppose after all he should never reach his father? There was no danger
-of his dying of starvation yet, for he had had food as late as the
-previous morning; but what if strength failed him and he fell down in
-the fields or lonely woods and slowly perished there? That fear still
-staying with him, he made his night’s resting-place under a hedge,
-almost within hail of a farmhouse. He lay down early in the twilight,
-too exhausted to make the day’s march longer, but he could not sleep for
-very hunger. In the first hours of his waking the dim light in the
-distant farmhouse gave him company, but after that he had only the
-stars. He lay huddled in a heap for warmth and stared up into the sky at
-Charles’s Wain and the North Star, that were shining clear as on the
-night when he quitted Everscombe.
-
-He lost sight of the stars at last, slept, and woke in white moonlight,
-then slept and woke again, and, finding the chilly dawn breaking, rose
-and plodded painfully out into the highway. The farmhouse in the gray
-morning did not bear out the hospitable promise of its candle of the
-night before; so, sick with hunger though he was, Hugh went by it
-without so much as asking for a drink of water. But a few rods farther
-on, when he caught sight of some apple trees, he crawled through the
-hedge and helped himself, then hurried away guiltily and tramped the
-next quarter mile so fearful of apprehension that he durst not taste the
-plunder. When he did so he found that the apples were half sour and
-hard, so he could scarcely swallow a mouthful, and that little sickened
-him. When he resumed his walk he felt dizzier and weaker even than
-before.
-
-About eleven of the morning he passed through a small village, where he
-met people coming to their midday meal. He loitered along slowly and
-rested a time by a well in the centre of the place; it was in his mind
-to go boldly to some cottage and ask for food, but he could not decide
-which house looked least inhospitable. While he was still debating, the
-shameful realization of what he was doing came over him; he jumped up
-and, pulling his battered felt hat over his face, walked away with
-something of his old dignified step. But once outside the village his
-pace slackened, as he told himself unsparingly that begging befitted a
-gentleman far better than stealing, and he must now do one or the other.
-
-It was several hours later that a third resource occurred to him: he
-might trade something for food, his pistol, perhaps. He examined it
-carefully and decided that, though it looked a trifle rusty, it might
-serve. In the expectation of getting food for it at the next town he
-labored on more hopefully, but the next village seemed never to come,
-for his knees were now fairly knocking together and his halts grew more
-frequent and prolonged. Once, when he had to cross a small stream, he
-found himself too unsure of foot to keep the stepping-stones, so he must
-splash into the water up to his knees. A branch sent his hat into the
-stream, and, without heart enough left even to struggle after it, he let
-it drift away.
-
-The sun was nearly set when at last he came to scattered houses, which
-he judged must be on the outskirts of a considerable town. At the
-thought of food he stumbled forward more rapidly, with his pistol in his
-hand ready for the barter, but he saw no possible purchaser till he came
-to a small inn. There he found a knot of men gathered about a side door,
-so, after a moment’s hesitation, he ventured into the courtyard. Country
-fellows they proved to be, idling and smoking on the inn porch; one, who
-took the deference of his comrades as a matter of course, had the look
-of a small farmer; another seemed a smith; the rest were of the ordinary
-breed of tavern frequenters. Hugh paused by a horseblock, and, looking
-them over, found little encouragement in their appearance, yet he was
-trying to frame a proper greeting with which to go up to them, when a
-tapster bustled out on the porch and, getting sight of him, hailed him
-roughly, “Now then, what brings you here?”
-
-Hugh hesitated over to the porch; he had forgot what he had meant to say
-and for a moment no words came to him; then, realizing it was now or
-never, he managed to stammer: “I have a pistol here. Maybe some one of
-you would—wish to buy it.” As he spoke he held out the pistol, but the
-farmer, the great man of the crew, shoved it aside and, pulling fiercely
-at his pipe, wheezed out something about vagabonds and the stocks. The
-blacksmith, however, took the pistol carelessly, turned it over, and
-laughed. “How many men hast killed wi’ this, sirrah?” he asked in a big
-voice, and passed the pistol to his neighbor, who grinned and offered a
-ha’penny for it.
-
-Hugh gazed helplessly at the ring of mocking faces, then let his eyes
-drop to the ground, and with the blood tingling in his cheeks waited
-their pleasure. He would gladly have seized upon his pistol and flung
-away from them, but he felt too faint and hungry to walk a rod, and
-before he could get food he must make this sale. But at last, with slow
-sickening disappointment, he realized they had no notion of purchasing,
-but were making sport of him. “If you will not buy—” he blurted out with
-weak anger.
-
-“What is going on here?” a pleasantly drawling voice struck in.
-
-Turning sharply Hugh almost brushed against a man who had approached
-from the direction of the stables, a gentleman, by his dress and easy
-bearing. “Will you not suffer me to see, friends?” he drawled slowly,
-and reaching out his hand took the pistol from the man who held it.
-
-Gazing up at him hopefully Hugh saw that the newcomer was not above two
-or three and twenty years of age, with long dark hair and a slight
-mustache, under which Hugh fancied he saw his mouth twitch as he looked
-the pistol over. Then the gentleman glanced up and showed a pair of
-humorous brown eyes, which, as he surveyed Hugh, suddenly grew grave.
-“Here, I’ve need of a pistol,” he said, and held out a piece of money.
-
-It was a crown piece, Hugh saw, that would buy unlimited bread, and
-meat, too; but, as his fingers were closing over it, the remembrance of
-the twitch in the purchaser’s lips and the laugh in his eyes recurred to
-him, and of a sudden he understood that a pistol which thieves
-themselves would not deprive him of could not be worth even a ha’penny.
-He had no right to take money for it, he knew, and in his disappointment
-he grew angry at his own stupidity, and angry at the brown-haired
-gentleman for offering him charity, and angry at the other men who
-looked on and thought him a beggar and worse. “After all, I’ll not sell
-it,” he muttered sullenly. “Perhaps—’tis not in good condition.”
-
-“Tis a serviceable weapon,” replied the other.
-
-“It’s worthless,” Hugh maintained doggedly. “Give it back to me.”
-
-“But I’ve taken a fancy to it.”
-
-“Keep it, then,” Hugh retorted, fiercely, so his voice might not break,
-and elbowing his way through the group of men walked off. He could smell
-the food cooking inside the tavern, and hunger gnawed him so savagely
-that even the thought that he had refused charity and had not deceived
-any one into buying a worthless pistol could not keep a lump from
-gathering in his throat. His step wavered and he had to halt an instant
-to lean against the gate-post: out beyond the street looked lonely and
-chill in the misty twilight. Just then he heard the click of spurs upon
-the stones of the courtyard, and some one took him by the shoulder. Even
-before he heard the drawl he knew it was the young gentleman. “Look you
-here, sir, I cannot take your pistol as a gift.”
-
-More than one rough speech came to Hugh’s lips, but he did not utter a
-word, only shook off the grasp on his shoulder and without looking up
-made a step forward. Then his knees seemed to give way, the ground
-suddenly came nearer, and, pride, resentment, and all, he pitched down
-on the stones at the gentleman’s feet.
-
-The other bent over him quickly, and this time Hugh had neither strength
-nor will to shake him off. “What’s wrong with you, lad?” There was
-almost no drawl in the speakers voice, “Hurt? Tired? Hungry?”
-
-Hugh nodded dumbly.
-
-“Well, well! That’s easier remedied than a broken leg. Up with you,
-now.” Hugh found himself upon his feet again, and, with the young man’s
-hand beneath his elbow, stumbled obediently back across the courtyard
-and through the little group about the door, who made way for them.
-Within they turned up a staircase, and now he heard the man beside him
-asking: “You’ll not refuse to take supper with me, perchance? When
-gentlemen meet on the road—”
-
-“You’ve no need to make it easy unto me,” Hugh gulped out brokenly. “If
-some one did not help me I doubt if I could tramp many days more,
-and—I’d liefer take help from you.”
-
-Indeed, utter weariness and hunger had for the moment made an end of
-Hugh’s dignity as effectually as if he had cast it quite away at the inn
-gate. He suffered the stranger to lead him into a room and seat him in a
-big chair by the fire, where he drank what was given him and swallowed
-down some mutton broth, sparingly, at first, as he was told. He troubled
-himself neither to think nor to speak, but he noted that the dark inn
-chamber seemed like home, the fire felt warm, and the candles twinkled
-dazzlingly. He found, too, that the brown-haired gentleman had a kind,
-elder-brotherly way with him, and that in private life he dispensed with
-his drawl, though his voice lost none of its pleasant tone.
-
-“Well, you feel almost your own man again now, do you not?” his host
-queried at last.
-
-Hugh essayed a smile in reply.
-
-“Wait an hour or so and, if soft answers still have power with tavern
-women, we’ll have a good supper then,—I take it you’ll be ready for it.
-And now it seems time for ceremonious introductions. My name is Richard
-Strangwayes.”
-
-“And my name is Hugh Gwyeth. My father is Colonel Alan Gwyeth of the
-king’s army.” Hugh spoke slowly as if he liked to linger over the words;
-it was the first time he had ever claimed his father.
-
-“And you are bound for the king’s camp?” asked Strangwayes, sitting down
-on the opposite side of the fireplace.
-
-Hugh explained very briefly that he had left home to join his father and
-had had a hard march, to which Strangwayes listened with sympathetic
-eyes, though when he took up the conversation again his tone was light.
-“We are headed for the same place, then, Master Gwyeth, for I am wearing
-out my horse to reach his Majesty’s army. I am going to join my uncle,
-Sir William Pleydall—”
-
-Hugh felt he could have hugged the man, he seemed suddenly to have come
-so very near. “Why, I know Sir William,” he cried, “I was at school with
-his son. I’ve a letter from him here.” Pulling out Frank’s worn letter
-he passed it to Strangwayes, who stared at him an instant, then hastily
-scanned the sheet. When he handed it back Hugh noted a change in his
-manner; he had been kind before with the kindness of one stranger to
-another, but now he seemed to have taken to himself a permanent right to
-befriend Hugh. He came across the hearth and shook hands with the boy.
-“I’m right glad we chanced to meet, Hugh,” he said warmly. “We’ll
-journey the rest of the way together. Oh, yes, I can procure you a
-horse.”
-
-Hugh ventured some weak objection, rather shamefacedly, for he knew he
-hoped Strangwayes would thrust it aside, and he felt only satisfaction
-when the young man did so. “Leave you to come on alone? Folly! I only
-lend you the horse; your father will settle the matter with me. I’ll
-charge him Jew’s interest, if ’twill content you. Do you think I mean to
-leave my cousin Frank’s comrade to fray out his clothes and his body
-along the road?”
-
-Afterwards, when they were eating supper together and the maid who
-served them had quitted the room, Strangwayes suddenly looked up and
-asked quizzically, “You are well assured there is no Spanish blood in
-you?”
-
-Hugh was quite sure; why had Master Strangwayes asked? What were
-Spaniards like, anyway? Strangwayes drawled on disjointedly for a
-quarter of an hour, while his eyes laughed in a provoking way: Spaniards
-were fierce fighters, and their women were pretty, and they liked gold,
-and they were proud as the devil, and they were very cruel, and they had
-a deal of dignity, and they grew oranges in their country. “Dream it out
-to-night, Hugh,” he advised, as they rose from the table; but Hugh
-disobeyed flagrantly, for the instant he was laid in a Christian bed
-once more he was sound asleep.
-
-He woke in broad daylight, and, having assured himself that the bed was
-real, so Richard Strangwayes could not have been a dream, dozed
-contentedly again, and woke with a start to rise and dress with the
-unsettled feeling of one who has slept long enough to lose count of
-time. When he went downstairs he judged by the sunlight that flooded the
-courtyard that it must be near noon, and his guess was verified by the
-tapster, who was vastly more respectful than he had been on the
-preceding evening. Those loitering about the courtyard, too, eyed him
-curiously but no longer mocked him. The only relic of last night’s
-dismal scene which he found was a rusted pistol that lay near the post
-of the outer gate. After a hasty glance about to make sure none were
-looking, Hugh snatched it up and, hiding it beneath his coat, sauntered
-nonchalantly out of the courtyard. Just across the road was a sluggish
-muddy ditch, and into this he dropped the pistol that had once been
-Peregrine Oldesworth’s. Even as he did so he felt a quick pang of
-regret, for he realized he had trusted in the worthless weapon as he
-never could trust again in the truest sword or the surest musket.
-
-A bit saddened and a bit shamed at such a feeling, he retraced his steps
-to the gateway, where he came face to face with Strangwayes, very
-martial indeed with his big hat and riding-boots, who trotted up on a
-long-legged white horse. By the bridle he led a despondent-looking gray,
-which halted with the greatest readiness, as Strangwayes reined in his
-own steed and addressed Hugh: “What do you think of this high-tempered
-charger? Unless appearances are arrant liars, he is the prettiest bit of
-horse-flesh within two league of here. His Majesty,—Heaven bless him and
-requite it to his followers!—has carried away every well-seeming thing
-that goes o’ four legs. Here, sirrah hostler, give the beasts a bite.
-We’ll do the like service to ourselves, Hugh, and then the word is, ‘To
-horse and away.’”
-
-“I am ready,” Hugh answered. “But I fear I have made you to lose time—”
-
-“Time spent in horse-dealing is never lost,” Strangwayes replied
-sententiously; “especially when the rascal who owns the horse has
-likewise a winsome daughter. Now come to dinner.”
-
-It was during this meal that a new care burdened Hugh. Now that he was
-no longer half starved and near desperate he had time to take heed to
-minor matters, and he was keenly aware of the holes in his stockings and
-the rents in his breeches and jacket. It seemed Strangwayes had guessed
-something of his thought, for, as they rose from the table, he spoke out
-with a half embarrassment: “Look you here, Hugh, I meant—to lend you
-money to get you fresh clothes, but, faith, the gray there cost a penny
-more than I thought, and, as we’ve no wish to starve again, methinks you
-must be content to let your new coat ride away on his back.”
-
-“’Tis no great matter,” Hugh forced himself to say. “If you be willing
-to take the road with such a vagrant-looking fellow as I.”
-
-Strangwayes suggested, however, that they do what they could, so the
-tapster was bribed and the chambermaid cajoled, till out of the inn
-stores Hugh was furnished with a cap and a pair of boothose, and a good
-part of the hedge mud was brushed off the rest of his apparel. So when
-at last he rode out from the inn on the gray horse Hugh felt himself a
-very passable Cavalier, for his covered head greatly increased his
-self-respect, and the boothose in most hypocritical fashion concealed
-the torn stockings. But had he been quite out at elbow he felt he would
-have shone in the borrowed light of Strangwayes’ completeness, and would
-have been content with that or anything he might owe to his new friend.
-
-That night they slept within the borders of Staffordshire, and, sparing
-their horses, took the road late next morning beneath a lowering sky.
-They were headed for Shrewsbury, Hugh learned, whither the king was
-marching by a northern road; they would keep to the south, however, in
-the hope of speedily overtaking a scouting party led by one Butler, an
-old friend of Strangwayes, whom the reports of tavern-keepers placed
-less than four and twenty hours ahead of them. If the horses held out,
-they doubtless would come up with him in the course of a twelvemonth,
-Strangwayes announced dolorously, after a morning spent in flogging his
-beast along the heavy road. It was impossible to mend the pace, so they
-forgot it at last in talk, for after his days of non-intercourse Hugh
-was but too happy to tell some one his thoughts and plans; and he felt
-Strangwayes was as safe a confessor as a man could have. So he related
-his early life, much in detail, and the intimate reasons of his present
-quest, and all he knew of his father. At that Strangwayes’ dark eyebrows
-went up amazingly and came down in a twist above his nose. “Name of
-Heaven!” he ejaculated, turning in his saddle to face Hugh, “do you mean
-to tell me you are tracing over the kingdom after a father who has not
-set eyes on you for twelve years? What think you the man will say to you
-or do with you?”
-
-Hugh paused blankly, assailed with sudden queer doubts, as Strangwayes
-thus harked back to his grandfather’s hints. But next instant the older
-man laughed off his surprise and plunged headlong into a tale that soon
-ended Hugh’s discomfort. “Confidence for confidence, Hugh. Would you
-hear something of myself? If they ever put me in a chap-book they can
-say I was the unhappy third son of a worthy knight of Lincolnshire. They
-put me to school at a tender age,—pass over that; no doubt you can guess
-what it means. No, I did not run from school; mine has been a sober and
-industrious life, fit for all youth to take instruction by. When I was
-sixteen I betook myself to Oxford, for my father was too loyal a
-gentleman to trust even so poor a piece of goods as a third son among
-the Puritans of Cambridge. There at Oxford I improved my hours to best
-advantage and learned to play famously at bowls, and would have become a
-past master at tennis, had not the Scots war broke out. Sir William
-Pleydall procured me a lieutenancy—”
-
-“And you have been to war once already?” asked Hugh, suffering the gray
-to slacken the pace to his natural amble. “Tell me of your battles, I
-pray you, Master Strangwayes.”
-
-“If you’ll clip my title to Dick,” replied the other. “It sounds more
-natural. Truth to tell, I was in but one battle, Hugh, and that was the
-fierce and bloodless battle of Wilterswick, here in this same pleasant
-Staffordshire. You remember, doubtless, when the king went against the
-Scots, how loath our excellent yokels were to follow after. Rank
-Puritans, the most of the levies were, and worked off their warlike
-energies pulling down communion rails and hunting parsons out of their
-parishes. We had a choice lot of such spirits in our troop, and, to put
-a leaven to the whole lump, the captain was an Irishman, ergo, a
-Catholic. A proper black fellow he was, Dennis Butler; the same one at
-whose mess-table we may chance to sit to-morrow night. This Butler and I
-took ourselves to rest one wet night at Wilterswick, and, faith, we
-waked to the hunt’s up of a big stone crashing in at our casement and
-found our trusty followers crowding the street before the inn, clamoring
-to hang the captain for a Papist. At their head was a venomous,
-two-legged viper, Constant-In-Business Emry,—he was rightly named,—a
-starveling of a fellow,—I’d swear he began life a tailor. Butler had
-rated him a day or two before, so he was in earnest, and, truth, the
-rest of them looked it. So Denny Butler, being a gentleman of resources,
-gathered himself into his clothes and left by the rear door.”
-
-“And you?” Hugh cried out, “I hold your captain went like a coward.”
-
-“Nay, nay, we’d agreed to it; I knew they’d not hurt me. So I slipped on
-my shirt and breeches, and went down to speak unto them. They threw
-stones and other things, and roared somewhat, but at last I made myself
-heard; then I talked to them like a preacher and a father, and tripped
-up Constant-In-Business Emry on a theological point, and demonstrated
-that I was a good Church of England man, like all my ancestors before
-me. By that they were tolerably subdued, so I called for a Book of
-Common Prayers and read them morning service, then down we all knelt in
-the mud of the courtyard and I prayed over them. You never know how hard
-you can pray till you’re put to it. By that Butler was well away, so I
-went back to my chamber and finished dressing. I ruined a serviceable
-pair of velvet breeches kneeling in that mud, and the lesson of that is
-to go rough clad when you go to war. And that was the end of my military
-glory, for the king struck a truce with the Scots, I lost my commission,
-and, as I would have no more of the university, my father packed me off
-to London to take chambers in the Middle Temple. He held the Puritans
-should not have a monopoly of lawyers, ‘fight the devil with his own
-weapons,’ as ’twere. But I confess the only court I followed was the
-king’s court and I learned far more of dancing and sonneteering than of
-the precepts of worthy Sir Edward Coke. Then my father,—Heaven rest
-him!—died, and left me an annuity. I have no liking for annuities; they
-encourage a man in the sordid practice of living within his means. I
-sold mine out of hand, and, with a droll streak of prudence, as rare as
-strange, committed a round sum to Sir William Pleydall to hold in trust
-for me, then set out with the rest to see the world. I went to the Low
-Countries and served a time as a gentleman volunteer, and then to
-France, where I learned some handy tricks at fencing.”
-
-“You’re a great swordsman?” Hugh queried with bated breath. “Did you
-ever fight a duel?”
-
-“On my honor, yes,” the other replied with a smile. “No earlier than
-last April I crossed swords with a certain Vicomte de Saint Ambroix. The
-manner of it? Do you think of challenging any one, Master Hugh? Why,
-monsieur the vicomte chose to speak some scurvy untruths of Englishwomen
-in my company, so I did but go up to him and strike him across the
-mouth, saying, ‘Monsieur, I do myself the honor of telling you that you
-lie in your throat.’ Which was a great waste of words. But we fought and
-he was hurt somewhat in the shoulder. No, I have no scars, but I got
-then a piteous gaping wound in a crimson satin doublet of mine, which
-has never healed, as flesh and blood heals in time. That was the last
-adventure, fortunately, for here comes what shall abridge my story.”
-Strangwayes pointed before him where the dusky roofs of a straggling
-village showed among the wet trees.
-
-“But how came you home, Dick?” Hugh coaxed.
-
-“Simply told. I heard there was work for men of enterprise, and I judged
-my loyal uncle would have turned my pounds and shillings into troopers
-and muskets, and would gladly give me a commission in exchange. So I
-spent what surplus money I had,—’tis the surest way to cheat
-thieves,—and took ship for King’s Lynn. I paid a swift visit to my elder
-brother in Lincolnshire; he is for the Parliament,—Heaven and my
-father’s spirit forgive him! So I mounted and faced me westward to the
-king, and here I am now, and here we are.”
-
-The two horses clinked across the cobbles of the courtyard of the
-village inn, a hostler ran up officiously, and the host himself came
-puffing out to greet the guests. “Well, friend, what news on the road?”
-cried Strangwayes, swinging out of his saddle. “Has a troop of Cavaliers
-passed through here?”
-
-The host gazed from one to the other, then up at the sky, then back at
-the travellers. “Be you king’s men?” he finally asked, with mild
-curiosity.
-
-“Sure, I trust we all be honest people,” Strangwayes answered dryly.
-
-“Well, well, that may be as it may be; I say naught; only ’tis good hap
-for you, you lie in a snug haven to-night.”
-
-“Why, what mean you? Are there hobgoblins farther on?” Strangwayes’
-voice dropped to a ridiculous quaver that made Hugh smile.
-
-“Worse nor hobgoblins, master,” replied the host. “Have ye not heard,
-then? They do say a stout band of Puritan rogues are plundering the
-country, yonder toward the west of us.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V
- IN AND OUT OF THE “GOLDEN RAM”
-
-
-Though the dawn of another day had broken, slate-colored clouds still
-hid the sun and a mist like a fine rain hung in the air; even the white
-horse and the gray, standing saddled and ready in the inn yard, touched
-noses as if they vowed the weather bad. Hugh slapped their flanks and
-settled their damp manes, while he waited for Strangwayes to pay the
-reckoning to the mildly curious host, but the process proved so long
-that at last he mounted into the saddle and ambled slowly out into the
-highway. Turning the gray horse’s nose to the west he paced forward,
-with his heart a-jump at the thought that yonder in the mist before him
-real danger that tested men’s courage might be lurking.
-
-A gay clatter of hoofs on the uneven roadway made him turn just as
-Strangwayes came abreast of him. At once Hugh blurted out what was
-uppermost in his thoughts: “Do you think, Dick, the host spoke true? Are
-there enemies before us? What think you?”
-
-“I think there be two whose words are not to be over-trusted: a woman
-when she will have a boon of you, and a tavern-keeper when he will have
-you to tarry in his lodgings.”
-
-“Then you believe the host’s talk of Roundheads—”
-
-“Mere words to frighten children. It troubles me not the half as much as
-his showing me just now that Butler must have borne more northward.
-Well, let the Irish rogue go hang! We’ll push on as we are and reach
-Shrewsbury,—some day.—Come up, you crows’ meat!” This to the white
-horse, whose nose was at its knees.
-
-“To-day will be but as yesterday, then, without any danger?” asked Hugh,
-a thought relieved, yet with room for a feeling of grievous
-disappointment at being cheated of his looked-for adventure.
-
-Strangwayes’ telltale eyes laughed immoderately, though he kept his
-mouth grave: “You’ll have all the adventures you need, after you reach
-the king’s army. Still, as I have an honest liking for you, mayhap, if
-you’re a good lad, I’ll find you one ere we come thither.”
-
-Then they fell to speaking of all they would do, when once they were
-enrolled among his Majesty’s followers, and, what with talking and
-urging on their laggard horses, they kept themselves employed till past
-noon. “We’ll bait here,” Strangwayes announced, as rounding a curve they
-got sight of a tiny hamlet half concealed beneath a hill. “Then we’ll
-make a long stage this afternoon and sleep the night well within the
-borders of Shropshire.”
-
-At that cheering thought they put the horses to their best pace and
-clattered through the village street quite gallantly, though there were
-none to admire them, save a flock of geese, and a foolish-looking girl,
-who seemed the whole population of the little place. Thus they came to
-the farther end of the hamlet, where, a bit retired from the neighboring
-cottages, stood a shabby inn, before which hung a sign-board bearing a
-faded yellow sheep. “Golden Ram!” Strangwayes translated it. “Mutton
-would suit me as well!”
-
-They rattled into the little inn yard, ducking down in their saddles to
-save their heads from the bar across the low gateway, and drew rein just
-in time to avoid riding down a flurried serving-maid. Strangwayes almost
-fell out of his saddle, so promptly he dismounted to reassure her.
-“You’re not harmed, my lass?” he asked anxiously, slipping one arm about
-her as if he expected her to faint, though, from her fine fresh color,
-that did not seem likely. Hugh had already seen something of his
-friend’s civilities to barmaids, so he kept to his saddle and felt
-rather foolish, when suddenly the host, a scrawny man with a lantern
-face, appeared in the doorway. At sight of him Strangwayes, in his turn,
-looked a bit foolish, and stepping away from the maid began briskly,
-“Well, friend, what can you give us to dinner?” There he paused
-dumfounded, and stared, then cried out: “Heaven keep us! If it be not my
-constant friend Emry, as busy as ever! Verily, ’tis a true saying that
-the Lord will not see the righteous forsaken.”
-
-“Lieutenant Strangwayes was always a merry gentleman,”
-Constant-In-Business Emry replied, with a rather dubious countenance.
-
-“Tut, tut! You’re all mistaken, my man. I abominate merriment as much as
-I do ale. Which calls it to my mind I am uncommon dry and thirsty. Jump
-down, Hugh. We’ll have experience of a Puritan tavern.”
-
-“Ay, men must eat,” sighed Emry. “Though my calling may smack of the
-carnal taint, yet ’tis not all ungodly, since—”
-
-“Don’t trouble yourself for that,” Strangwayes replied. “Faith, I never
-thought to surprise you in so honest a calling.”
-
-With that he led the way into the inn, where he and Hugh dined together
-in an upper chamber. The food was none of the best, Hugh privately
-thought, but Strangwayes praised it mightily to the maid who served
-them, the same they had encountered in the courtyard. She was a
-stepdaughter of Emry, who had married her mother, the now deceased
-hostess of the “Golden Ram,” so she told Strangwayes, and added much
-more touching Emry, who seemed the same old Puritan malcontent of
-Wilterswick. Soon the talk turned from him to gayer matters, for the
-girl was fresh-faced and black-eyed, so Strangwayes gave more heed to
-her than to his meat and drink. Hugh, feeling more foolish and out of
-place than ever, choked down his food quickly, then left the room, and,
-as he closed the door, heard a suppressed squeak: “Don’t ’ee, sir. An
-thou kiss me again I’ll scream.”
-
-Hugh stamped downstairs and stood glowering out into the courtyard,
-where the mist was now dribbling down in a slow rain. He watched the
-grayish streaks it made across the black openings of the sheds opposite
-the inn porch, and athwart the gaping door of the stable at his right. A
-wretched chilly day it was, and—why need Dick Strangwayes play the fool
-because a wench had red cheeks? When he heard his friend’s step he did
-not even turn his head, and then Strangwayes came up alongside him, and
-clapping one arm about his shoulders said in a low tone, “Jealous of a
-tavern maid, or I’ll hang myself!” Then he walked off laughing and
-disappeared into the stable.
-
-But when Strangwayes came out again some time later the laughter had
-gone from his face, and in its stead was a troubled, angry look that
-made Hugh forget his petty vexation and run down from the porch to meet
-him. “What has happened, Dick?” he begged.
-
-“Why, nothing,” replied Strangwayes, and took hold of his arm, so they
-paced up and down the courtyard together, “and yet everything is amiss.
-The white horse has gone lame.”
-
-“Is that all?”
-
-“Enough. Unless you fancy walking ten miles through the mud and rain to
-the next village. I do not.”
-
-“You can ride my horse. That is, he’s yours, of course.”
-
-“Or you might carry me,” Strangwayes answered soberly. “No, Hugh,
-neither you nor I will walk that ten miles nor the half of it, dragging
-a hobbled horse behind us.”
-
-“Well, at worst,” Hugh tried to speak cheerfully, “we shall but lose a
-few hours.”
-
-“Ay, is that all? Tell me this, Hugh: why did a sound horse go lame in
-the mere course of dinner?”
-
-“Then it’s possible ’twas done with fore-thought?” Hugh cried.
-“Perchance they mean—”
-
-“Hush, hush, you fire-eater!” Strangwayes interrupted hastily. “If ’twas
-the inn people lamed the horse they did it only to stay us here, that
-they might profit by our tarrying. Or to hinder us in our journey, for
-this knave Emry has no love unto me.”
-
-Yet Strangwayes, Hugh took note when they returned to the house, was
-merry as ever in his talk with the lean-visaged Emry. He ordered a
-chamber for the night, and then, free to go and come as he pleased, went
-sauntering into every corner of the hostelry, from the common room to
-the sheds and stable. About twilight the journey ended in the kitchen,
-where, finding Emry’s stepdaughter at work, Strangwayes seated himself
-on a table and entered into ardent conversation with her about
-butter-making.
-
-Left to himself, Hugh sat down on the settle and, poking the fire
-vigorously, watched the embers die down and then flare up again, while
-the light waned or reddened throughout the room. Bits of the smoky
-ceiling and black walls started into sudden radiance, or the fire gleam
-was given back by a copper kettle or pewter plate, and once the sudden
-blaze lit up the two who were by the table. Strangwayes’ face was half
-shadowed by his long hair, so only his clean-cut chin and confident
-mouth showed vividly; but the girls face, with drooping eyelids and
-sober lips that now were silent, was very clear to see.
-
-Hugh turned once more to the embers and paid the others no further heed,
-till Strangwayes came to his side with the noisy announcement that, the
-kitchen being a very delectable place, they would eat supper there. So
-the maid lit candles and fetched them food, though she kept silent, even
-to Strangwayes’ gayest nonsense. At the last she brought wine, as he
-bade, and filling a glass held it out to him. Hugh, glancing up, left
-eating to stare at the girl’s white face, and Strangwayes of a sudden
-caught hold of her arm. “What’s wrong with you, wench?” he asked
-abruptly.
-
-At that the wine went slopping to the floor. “Don’t ’ee tell, sir,” the
-girl murmured, under her breath, “father’d kill me, if he knew. But
-there be Roundhead troopers,—they come hither to-night.”
-
-A side glance from Strangwayes checked the exclamation that was on the
-tip of Hugh’s tongue. The girl went on softly: "Father said: ‘He is a
-swaggering child of Satan, this Papist Strangwayes. A shall not go out
-of the “Golden Ram” till he goes strapped to another man’s saddle-bow.’"
-
-Strangwayes’ nostrils contracted, but he said nothing, merely whistled
-between his teeth. “A merry fellow your father is,” he broke silence at
-length; “he does not deserve to have so good a lass for his daughter.
-Here’s a half-crown to pay for the good wine your floor will scarce
-appreciate, and here’s a kiss for yourself. And prithee fetch me more
-drink.”
-
-As the girl turned away, Hugh, for all his hot excitement, found wit
-enough to say softly: “For the host’s talk of Roundheads ’twas mere
-words to frighten children.”
-
-“My boy,” Strangwayes replied, “if you do not hold your tongue as to
-that, I’ll put you on the sound horse and pack you off to the next
-village.” Then his face turned cheery as ever, as the maid came back
-with the glass of wine, which he sipped slowly, questioning her softly
-meantime: “What hour will these people come, do you know?”
-
-“About mid-evening, I heard father say.”
-
-“How many?”
-
-“Only five or six. A grand officer and some common men. They were here
-yesternight and before that.”
-
-“Are there any men in the inn save your worthy, busy father and his
-groom?”
-
-“No others. But they are keeping watch of the inn gate and the stairs to
-the upper story.”
-
-Strangwayes drained off the last of the wine, then rose. “Tell me one
-thing,” he asked, “is there any way from the upper floor into the
-stable?”
-
-“Through the loft above the kitchen.”
-
-“It may chance your father and his man will be here in the kitchen the
-next hour; then, if you love me, lass, keep up a great clattering of
-your pans. Here, Hugh, take a brace of candles and off with you to bed.”
-
-Hugh went slowly into the common room, where sat Emry, to all
-appearances wrapped in pious meditations, and passed firmly up the
-stairs. How the little flames of the candles flickered, he observed, and
-how light and eager he felt; yet there was a kind of foolish trembling
-in his knees.
-
-Scarcely within the chamber Strangwayes rejoined him. “Are you satisfied
-with this brave adventure, my man?” was his greeting.
-
-Hugh nodded. “I know you’ll bring us through safe, Dick.”
-
-“Humph! To do that we need but to slip out at a window of the inn. I’ve
-a better plan, Hugh, if you’ll come in with me. We cannot bear off our
-noble white steed and our fleet gray, for to ride hence is the surest
-means to fall foul of these Roundheads. Then say we lurk here and, turn
-and turn about, possess ourselves of two of their horses.”
-
-“That’s your plan?” Hugh repeated amazedly. “Why, yes, of course I’ll
-follow, if you bid. But you must tell me what to do.”
-
-“First, here are the brace of pistols from my holsters,” Strangwayes
-answered; “you are to take one of them. I grieve I cannot make two of my
-rapier, but ’tis impossible. Now, note you, we go to bed—”
-
-“What do you mean?” Hugh cried.
-
-“No, no, no, don’t pull off your coat yet. To the mind of
-Constant-in-the-Devil’s-Work Emry we take ourselves to bed, for we blow
-out our candles, save this one, which I cut down till it will burn not
-above half an hour. And I set it where the light will smite through the
-window. Now tread softly and follow me.”
-
-Outside the chamber the corridor was very dark and still, so that the
-least creak of a board was appallingly loud, but there was no other
-noise, save the faint sound of a girl’s singing in the kitchen below.
-Down the corridor they passed what seemed immeasurable lengths, till
-Hugh’s knees ached with the slow step, step, to a point where he felt
-for sheer nervousness he must stamp or shout or do something foolish.
-Then he heard the faint squeak of a door, as Strangwayes, a black figure
-in the dusk, swung it gently ajar, and he stepped cautiously into a
-loft, where a square of fainter darkness at the left showed a window was
-cut. After a moment he found it lighter here than in the corridor, so,
-groping with more confidence, he was presently at Strangwayes’ heels.
-Right below he heard the muffled voice still singing words that were
-undistinguishable. “That’s a rare wench,” Strangwayes just breathed.
-“And here’s the hole into the stable loft. Count sixty ere you follow,
-or you’ll be putting your heels through my skull.”
-
-A long sixty it was, but Hugh counted ten more to be certain, then,
-crawling through a low window that bruised his head, hung an instant by
-his hands, while he wondered how far it was to fall. Just there
-Strangwayes put his arms about him and rolled him over into a pile of
-hay. “Not above a foot to drop, Hugh,” he whispered, with a suppressed
-chuckle, “but an inch is as bad as a mile in the dark. For the rest of
-the way I am sure; I used my eyes this afternoon.”
-
-They quickly slid down from the hay-loft to the floor of the barn, and
-as they went Hugh found time, perilous though the moment was, to feel
-half shamed that Strangwayes was taking such care of him, as if he were
-a little boy. The lighter square of the opening guided them to the
-stable door, where Strangwayes caught Hugh’s arm. “Briskly now; they may
-be spying from the gate. But softly.”
-
-Hugh fairly held his breath in the three quick paces across the corner
-of the courtyard till he found the grateful, pitchy darkness of a shed
-around him. He smelt the freshness of new litter, heard it rustle about
-his ankles, and then Strangwayes pulled him down beside him amidst
-trusses of straw. “You understand, Hugh,” he whispered, “if we stayed in
-the stable these knaves of troopers might mistake us for hay, when they
-came to feed their horses, and the mistake would grieve us all. Now here
-in the shed we can lie close till they leave the stable under guard of a
-man or two, and then we will follow the fundamental maxim of warfare and
-supply ourselves from the enemy. Unless they come first to rouse us in
-our beds. Look you, Hugh, yonder, that little light, is our chamber.
-There, it has gone out,” he added presently. “Now, when next we see a
-light in that room, we’ll know they have gone thither and discovered our
-removal, and we must be up and doing.”
-
-Then for a long time there was silence betwixt them, while Hugh thought
-of many things and felt the brave pistol under his coat. He tried to
-make out a single star in the misty night that was around them, and he
-strained his ears with listening for hoof-beats, till he wearied of it
-and put his head down on his arms. Presently Strangwayes took him in the
-ribs with his elbow. “Hugh,” he whispered in an odd, half-jesting voice,
-“have you courage?”
-
-“In truth, I was wondering,” Hugh blurted out. Strangwayes put his arm
-about him as they lay, and once more many moments ran by. Then suddenly
-Strangwayes whispered sharply, “Hark!”
-
-Hugh raised his head, and he, too, caught, far off upon the highway, the
-thud, thud of swiftly approaching horses, that slackened in speed but
-grew louder and louder. He felt his heart thump shamefully, and,
-reaching out his hand, griped Strangwayes’ coat. Then the hoofs sounded
-right upon them, and there came shouts of men and the clatter of horses
-across the inn yard. Through the misty darkness shone a sudden light,
-against which Hugh could see outlined the top of the straw-pile. He saw,
-too, Strangwayes, with his bare head uplifted, peer out through an
-armful of the loose straw he held up before him, and he heard him
-whisper: “Six men, Hugh. Two are officers, I judge. One of them has
-passed into the inn. The rest are heading into the stable.”
-
-Hugh pulled himself up on his knees and gazed out. There were torches in
-the inn yard that made a half circle of light about the stable door, but
-left the rest black as ever. Men were leading horses into the stable,
-and calling and swearing to each other, so they could be heard even
-after the great door swallowed them up. The house itself was silent as
-before, but a moment later, and, even as he gazed, from the farther
-window in the upper story a faint light streamed out. “Curse them! They
-need not have gone prowling so soon,” Strangwayes rapped out between his
-teeth. “We must make a dash for it. They are only five against two.”
-
-Both were now on their feet among the straw, and Strangwayes had made a
-step to the opening of the shed, when Hugh caught his arm. “Wait, wait,
-Dick,” he panted, the words instinctively saying themselves, “that’s but
-a small chance. Nay, I am not afraid; ’tis only I have a better way.
-With my ragged clothes,—I’ll slip my cap under my jacket,—they’ll think
-me a stable-boy. Let me go first into the stable. Perhaps I can get a
-couple of horses out into the court. Yes, I am going.”
-
-Strangwayes gave a glance at the lighted window. “If you’re beset, call.
-God speed!” he whispered, and Hugh ran out from the shed.
-
-For a moment his eyes were dazzled with the sudden light about him, then
-he blinked it away and went forward. He seemed scarcely to feel the
-solid ground beneath him, nor to hear his own step, for the pounding of
-the blood in his temples. Yet there was no fear nor any feeling within
-him, only he saw the opened door to the lighted stable, and he stepped
-in boldly.
-
-There he halted and of a sudden griped at the side of the door to hold
-himself erect. For just before him, saddled, bridled, and all, stood two
-horses, a black and a bay, which he had last caressed in the stable of
-Everscombe Manor. Beside the bay loitered a stalwart young officer, who
-at his step glanced up and showed the face of Peregrine Oldesworth.
-“Hugh!” he cried amazedly, and the troopers, unsaddling the horses at
-the farther end of the stable, looked up at the cry.
-
-Hugh felt his nerves tingle, but with a calmness that seemed no part of
-him he walked into the stable. “Good even, Cousin Peregrine,” he said
-quietly, though his voice shook a trifle. “May I lead out the horses to
-water?” His hands closed on the reins of the bay and the black.
-
-“What are you doing here?” Peregrine asked astonishedly.
-
-“What I can,” Hugh replied, with growing confidence.
-
-“You’ve come down in the world, Master Runaway,” said Peregrine, and by
-his look Hugh knew he was not sorry that his proud cousin should groom
-his horse. That triumphant look strengthening him mightily, he
-deliberately faced the horses about and led them the few steps to the
-door. “I’m down, Cousin Peregrine,” he said, with a quick laugh, “but
-maybe I’ll be up in the saddle again.”
-
-“What are you about with the horses?” Peregrine cried, with a first
-realization that all was not well. “Halt, there!”
-
-For answer Hugh gave a cry of “Dick!” and jerking at the bits brought
-the two horses into the courtyard on the run. The beasts were plunging
-and wrenching at their bridles, behind him he heard the stamp of men
-rushing across the stable,—all in a second,—then a dark figure had
-sprung out from the shelter of the shed. “Look to yourself, Hugh!”
-Strangwayes shouted, and helter-skelter Hugh made a spring for the back
-of the bay horse. He got the reins in his hand anyhow and his leg across
-the saddle, then, griping the pommel and the horse’s mane, clung for his
-life as the frightened animal dashed for the gate. Men were shouting and
-running, he heard the thud of another horse behind him, the crack of a
-pistol, then, as he galloped past the inn, a casement suddenly swung
-open. A bar of light dazzled in his eyes, and for the fraction of an
-instant he saw the face of Thomas Oldesworth, as he leaned out, pistol
-in hand. He heard the report of the shot, and then he flung himself
-forward in the saddle to save his head from the bar at the gate.
-
-Now he was out on the highway, the bay plunging and leaping beneath him,
-and groping wildly he got one foot into the stirrup. Just then the black
-horse with its bareheaded rider came abreast of him, passed him, and
-Hugh galloped blindly at its heels. Well in the rear he heard the beat
-of other horse-hoofs, but he had both feet in the stirrups now and the
-reins in his hands, so he turned boldly into the fields behind the black
-horse. There was a dark wall, he remembered, that he jumped recklessly,
-and a stretch of rough ground, where he must hold his reins taut. There
-the black slackened pace somewhat and Hugh galloped up breathless.
-“We’ll give them the slip yet, will we not?” he cried, and then he heard
-Strangwayes breathing in quick painful gasps, and saw he sat drooping
-forward in his saddle. “Dick, Dick,” he almost screamed, “sure, you’re
-not—”
-
-“Ay,” Strangwayes panted, “I’m hit.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI
- THE END OF THE JOURNEY
-
-
-For perhaps an hour the black and the bay crashed at a fierce pace
-across the dark countryside. Hugh had afterwards a confused remembrance
-of thickets where he must bend his head to escape the swishing boughs,
-of a ford where the water flew high as the girths, of a cluster of
-cottages, black and silent in the night. Cleared land and highway sped
-by him hazily, but always he had the mist in his face, faint hoof-notes
-that ever grew fainter behind him, and just before him the black horse
-with the piteously slouching figure in the saddle. Once and again Hugh
-had cried out to him: How grievously was he hurt? Could not he stay to
-look to it? Each time the terse reply had come: “’Tis nothing. Ride on.”
-
-But the pursuing horses were at last no longer audible; moment after
-moment passed, and still no sound reached them but the echo of their own
-gallop. Slowly the black’s pace sobered to a trot, and Hugh rode up knee
-to knee with his friend. “Dick, ’tis not mortal? Tell me,” he entreated.
-
-“‘Not as wide as the church door,’ as saith the gentleman in the play,”
-Strangwayes replied, but for all his gay tone Hugh caught in his voice a
-strained note that frightened him; “a mere pistol wound. That knave in
-the window gave’t me. Why did you not shoot him down?”
-
-“’Twas my uncle,” Hugh replied.
-
-“A sweet family you belong to, then,” Strangwayes muttered.
-
-“I would it had been me he shot. If he has killed you—” Hugh gulped out.
-
-“Nonsense!” Strangwayes answered testily. “Ride on, and trouble me with
-no more such talk.”
-
-For another long space they rode in silence, Strangwayes with his head
-sunk on his chest and his left arm motionless. Hugh pressed close to
-him, lest he fall from his saddle, but he did not venture to trouble him
-with further speech. Thus the breaking day came upon them, as they
-trotted through a bit of wet woodland, and Hugh at last could see his
-comrade’s white face, that looked gray in the uncertain light, and
-thought to make out a dark splotch upon the back of his coat. At the
-farther verge of the wood, where a small brook, flowing across the road,
-broadened into a pool on the right, Strangwayes reined in his horse with
-two or three one-handed jerks at the bridle. “You’ll have to try your
-’prentice hand at surgery,” he said, as Hugh sprang down from the bay;
-“adventures do often entail such postscripts.”
-
-“Do not make a jest of it,” Hugh answered chokedly, and putting his arm
-about Strangwayes helped him to climb from the saddle and to seat
-himself on the brink of the pool. He still kept his arm about his
-friend, and now, feeling something damp against his sleeve, he looked
-closer and found the back of Strangwayes’ coat was all wet and warm.
-“’Tis here you’re wounded?” he cried.
-
-“Yes, in the back,” the other replied, with a half-suppressed groan. “A
-brave place for a gentleman to take his first hurt! Draw my coat off,
-gently. Now take my knife and rip off my shirt. ’Twill serve for
-bandages.”
-
-Somehow Hugh mastered the nervous trembling in his fingers sufficiently
-to cut away the shirt, upon which the broad stain of red showed with
-sickening clearness. Beneath, Strangwayes’ back was slimy with blood,
-and the dark drops were oozing from a jagged wound in the fleshy part of
-the left shoulder. Strangwayes, who was sitting with his full weight
-thrown upon his right arm, never uttered sound nor winced, but Hugh sank
-down on his knees, and for a moment felt too faint to do more than
-support his friend with his arm.
-
- “‘O dinna ye see the red heart’s blood
- Run trickling down my knee,’”
-
-Strangwayes half hummed, and turned his head to look at Hugh. His brows
-were puckered with pain, but there was the ghost of a smile on his lips
-as he drawled, “Why, Hughie, man, methinks I be the one to feel sick,
-not you.”
-
-Thereat Hugh set his teeth, and, shamed into strength by the other’s
-courage, dipped half the cut shirt into the brook and washed the wound,
-tenderly as he was able, then made shift to bandage it, as Strangwayes
-directed. “Well, I’m still wearing a shirt,” the latter said, as Hugh
-carefully helped him into his coat, “but ’tis not in the usual way. You
-must fasten my coat up to my chin, Hugh, and pray none note my lack of
-linen, nor the bullet-hole in the back. What a place to be wounded!”
-
-The rim of the sun was just showing above the eastern trees when they
-started to horse once more. Strangwayes, leaning heavily on Hugh,
-managed to climb into his saddle, and then he let his hand rest a moment
-on the boy’s shoulder, while he looked down at him. “So you are troubled
-for me?” he asked dryly.
-
-“More than I would be for any man, unless ’twere my father.”
-
-“You’re a brave lad, Hugh,” Strangwayes said irrelevantly. “I would fain
-hug you, if I would not topple out of my saddle if I tried. I thank
-Heaven ’twas not you got hurt by my fool’s trick last night.” Then he
-put his horse slowly forward, so Hugh mounted the bay and came after.
-
-They went at a gentler pace now, by the highway or by short cuts through
-the fields, for Strangwayes knew this country well, he explained, from
-his old experience in the king’s army. He kept a little in advance, one
-hand on the bridle rein, the other arm limp, and his whole body stooping
-a trifle forward. Hugh realized with a helpless pang that his friend was
-suffering, he dared not think how much, nor how it might end, yet he was
-powerless to aid him. Once, when they rode through a village where the
-people were astir about their morning business, he begged Strangwayes to
-stop and have his wound looked to, at least have drink to strengthen
-him. But the other shook his head, then spoke with pauses between
-phrases: “They’d not succor me for love, Hugh; we are not strong enough
-to force them; and for the rest, I’ve not a shilling to soften them.”
-
-“How?”
-
-“What I had was none too much to give that maid for the saving of our
-liberty, perchance our lives. At least, I rate my life thus high.”
-
-“And that I could be angry with you for such a matter as fooling with
-her!” Hugh broke out penitently.
-
-“’Tis for a man’s advantage to be friendly with all women,” Strangwayes
-answered in a matter-of-fact tone. “Had I sulked in her presence, like
-some haughty gentlemen I know of, we’d be tramping the road to a rebel
-prison now, Hugh. That knave Emry! I contrived to reach him a crack on
-the head with the butt of my pistol as I rode out, he’ll remember some
-days.”
-
-But after that one burst of everyday speech Strangwayes lapsed again
-into silence, with so slack a hold on the reins that Hugh, coming close
-alongside, ventured now and then to put hand to the bit and guide the
-black horse. Lines of pain were deepening in the wounded man’s brows and
-about his white lips, and once, as they descended a steep pitch
-abruptly, he only half stifled a groan.
-
-So when they reached the next village Hugh took matters into his own
-hands by pulling up both horses before a wayside tavern. “What’s to do?”
-Strangwayes asked listlessly.
-
-“I am going to get you drink,” Hugh answered, and jumping down from his
-horse entered the tavern and made for the common room. There he found a
-surly tapster, and, trying hard to be civil and yet not abject, begged:
-“Can you give me a glass of aqua vitæ? I’ve a wounded friend here—”
-
-To which the tapster simply responded: “Pack!”
-
-Hugh gave back a step or two, and then, with the feeling that
-Strangwayes might be dying and he must do something, however desperate,
-pulled out his pistol. “I must have that aqua vitæ,” he said quietly.
-“Either you give it me or I go fetch it. Make up your mind.”
-
-Instead the tapster drew away to the door, bawling for assistance till
-he roused up another man and a maid and the hostess herself. Hugh, with
-his back to the wall and the pistol in his hand, felt unjustified and
-ashamed, but, the thought of Strangwayes nerving him, repeated his
-request to the hostess. She fell to rating him shrilly for a bullying
-swashbuckler to frighten a poor woman so, and, as the men would not
-check her and Hugh could not use his pistol for argument here, she was
-like to keep it up some time. Happily the maid, who had peered out at
-the window, broke in with a glowing account of the fine horses and the
-poor wounded gentleman, whereat the landlady, after boxing the wench’s
-ears for gaping out of doors, bounced over to the casement. The sight of
-Dick Strangwayes or of the horses must have softened her, for after an
-instant’s gazing she began to rate the tapster and bade him fetch what
-the young gentleman required.
-
-When Hugh came out triumphant with the glass of spirits he found the
-rest of the inn people gathered about the horses, and the hostess very
-pressingly urging Strangwayes to light and rest at her house. She was
-but too glad to help a gentleman fallen on misfortune, she explained,
-especially when the gentleman served the king, bless him! His Majesty
-and all his men had passed through there and some of them had lain in
-her house only the night before.
-
-“Then we’ll soon be up with your friends, Dick,” Hugh urged, trying to
-speak cheerfully.
-
-Strangwayes just nodded, then drank the hostess’s health in the aqua
-vitæ, and with a flicker of energy bade Hugh get to his saddle. As they
-left the little knot of staring people behind them, he turned his face
-toward Hugh and, forcing his drawn lips into a smile, asked: “You raided
-those inn folk? You’re learning bravely, my Spanish Puritan.”
-
-Then he became silent and suffered the gallant pace at which he had set
-out to slacken. The black showed a tendency to veer from one side of the
-road to the other, till at last, not above two miles from the tavern,
-Strangwayes dropped the bridle rein into Hugh’s ready hand. “You must
-lead the horse a bit,” he said wearily. “I’ll rest me.”
-
-Of those last miles Hugh kept only blurred recollections, among which
-the dazzle of sunlight upon the firm road beneath the horses’ feet, the
-sight of men laboring in tilled fields, and the smell of moist woods,
-recurred vaguely. Through all the shifting changes of the wayside
-Strangwayes, as he sat bowing over the pommel of his saddle with his
-pallid face hidden on his breast, was alone a living reality.
-
-The long piece of woodland ended at last, and across the fields the
-roofs of a village came in sight. To the left horses grazing in a meadow
-whickered to the passing chargers, and then the riders trotted slowly in
-among the houses. There was a smith’s shop, Hugh remembered, about which
-lounged men in great boots and buff jackets, and before the village inn
-were more in the same attire. Hugh reined up there, scarcely knowing
-what he purposed, but before he could dismount a young man with long
-light brown hair, who wore a scarlet sash across his jacket, advanced
-from the inn door. “King’s men?” the stranger asked. “Why, what has
-befallen here?”
-
-Strangwayes raised his chin a trifle, then his head sank again. “Who
-commands?” he asked faintly.
-
-“Captain Dennis Butler.”
-
-“Tell him, Richard Strangwayes seeks him. He—” There the voice trailed
-off inaudibly.
-
-Hugh leaned a little from his saddle and got his arm about his friend.
-Men were hurrying forward curiously, but of a sudden they drew aside to
-make way for a thick-set officer with a black beard, who came striding
-through their midst. “On my soul, ’tis Dicky Strangwayes!” he cried,
-halting at the injured man’s stirrup. “Gad, but you’re come in good
-time! We can give you a bottle of Burgundy to crack or a rebel throat to
-cut—”
-
-“Ah, Captain, if you’ll give me a bed, I ask nothing else of you,”
-Strangwayes gasped out, and pitched forward, half into Butler’s arms.
-
-They had him off the horse and two of the troopers carried him into the
-house, so speedily that Hugh got only a glimpse of his friend’s
-deathlike face. He jumped down, intent on following, but the youngish
-officer with the light hair, paying him no heed, walked away and left
-him to the curious troopers. They asked him many questions touching
-Strangwayes and how he had been hurt, which Hugh, with eyes on the door
-by which his comrade had disappeared, could only answer disjointedly.
-Presently a man came out and, saying that Guidon Allestree had so
-ordered it, led the black and the bay off to be groomed and fed. Still
-unbidden Hugh followed into the stable yard, where, sitting down on the
-shaft of a cart, he stared at the inn till he knew every angle of its
-timbered roof. He realized vaguely that men passed him by, and one
-group, loafing near at hand in the shelter of a shed, he heard talking
-loudly together. Once, when they were complaining of the lack of liquor
-at this tavern, he was aware that one grumbled, “No wonder; Gwyeth’s men
-lay here yesternight.”
-
-Even that seemed not to be personal to Hugh, and he still sat staring at
-the blank inn windows, while he wondered to what room they had carried
-Strangwayes. At last he could endure the suspense no longer, but taking
-his courage in his hand walked into the house, where, halfway up the
-stairs, he met the light-haired man. “I pray you, may I not see Master
-Strangwayes?” Hugh blurted out his business at once.
-
-“The surgeon has forbidden it. They have but just cut out the bullet,
-and he is too weak to be worried.”
-
-“Is there—much danger?” Hugh faltered.
-
-“Nay, very little. A mere ugly flesh wound, but he has lost much blood
-and is near exhausted.—Come, come, don’t give way like that, boy,” the
-young man added, as a sob of sheer relief escaped Hugh. “Your master’ll
-be sound enough in a couple of weeks.”
-
-Hugh looked up with his face aflame; because his clothes were ragged was
-no reason that the young officer should take him for a horse-boy. “Will
-you be so good as tell Dick I am glad he is recovered?” he said slowly.
-“And give him back his pistol here, and tell him since he is in the
-hands of friends I have gone about my own affairs.”
-
-So saying he went down the stairs and, without a single glance at the
-light-haired officer, passed out into the courtyard. He would not hang
-about the place a moment longer, he vowed, but then he reproached
-himself for deserting Strangwayes and had half a mind to go back, when
-by chance he caught sight of the same group of loungers he remembered
-had spoken of Colonel Gwyeth. On the impulse he went to them and,
-questioning them, learned that not only had Colonel Alan Gwyeth been
-that very morning at the inn, but he was now not above eight miles
-distant at Shrewsbury.
-
-At that Hugh faced about and took the highway for the great town. It was
-not deserting Dick Strangwayes now, he told himself, for his father
-would doubtless let him have a horse and ride back next day to see his
-friend, and in any case he must go forward, lest his father be off to
-some other part of the country. So during the sunny last hours of the
-afternoon he hurried along, scarcely observing the villages through
-which he passed nor the men on foot or horseback whom he met or
-overtook, in the eager hope at each turn of the road that he would come
-upon Shrewsbury steeples. He hardly felt sleepy from last night’s long
-watch, nor stiff with his rough ride, just eager and happy. When he
-thought of Strangwayes it was only to be thankful that his hurt had not
-proved mortal, and to be glad that the skirmish at the “Golden Ram” had
-happened. For now he could go to his father, not a raw schoolboy, but a
-young gentleman who had been under fire; he was just a bit sorry he had
-not himself been wounded.
-
-But when at length he saw the last horizontal rays of the sun upon the
-clustered roofs of Shrewsbury, his happy mood seemed to end. It was all
-too good to be true; once before he had thought himself almost in his
-fathers arms and he had been deceived. He hardly dared ask a countryman
-if the king were lodging in the town yonder, and, finding it true, could
-not walk forward fast enough, lest before he came up his Majesty should
-move away.
-
-Walk fast as he would, twilight was deepening when he entered the town,
-but hordes of people—gaping country folk, sober burghers, swaggering
-troopers, gayly dressed gentlemen—made the dusky streets lively as by
-day. Among them all Hugh forced a path, jostled and pushed, and pushing
-in his turn. He began inquiring of those he met if Colonel Alan Gwyeth
-lodged in the town, and some had not heard the name, and some knew such
-an officer was with the king but knew not where he lay. At last he
-chanced upon a foot soldier who directed him for Alan Gwyeth’s lodgings
-to the west gate of the town. Thither Hugh tramped to search the
-neighborhood for the house and get cursed for disturbing people, but
-still he persisted in his search, though there would creep in upon him a
-hopeless feeling that it had all been delusion from the first and he
-never would find his father.
-
-In the end he got a direction that took him out a quarter-mile beyond
-the west gate to an old timbered house that sat close upon the road;
-knocking and making his usual inquiry of a curt servant, he found that
-Colonel Alan Gwyeth lodged there. Almost unable to believe it, Hugh
-repeated the words blankly after the servant, then stood staring at him
-without speaking till the door was nearly shut in his face. He stayed it
-with one hand, while he asked to see the colonel.
-
-“He is hence with other gentlemen this evening; I know not when he will
-return,” was the short reply before the door was closed in good earnest.
-
-Hugh still stood on the steps, trying to comprehend that it was all
-true; in a few hours his father, the tall reddish-haired man, would be
-walking up to that very door. He would see him, at last. He went slowly
-down to the road, and then paused; if he walked away his father might
-come, for the evening was already half spent. He decided it would be
-better to wait there, so he went up the steps again and sat down.
-
-At first he had no lack of company; horsemen went swinging by, and
-groups of men, some staidly, some boisterously with shouts and songs,
-passed in the road below him. Hugh listened with ears alert and as each
-dark form drew near asked himself if that might be the one. Gradually as
-the evening wore on passers-by became less frequent and Hugh wearied of
-starting at each new step. He became aware, too, that he was stiff with
-sitting in one position and the night was cold enough to make his
-clothes of small protection. He looked up at the sharp stars and counted
-them and picked out those he knew. Then he changed his position once
-more, and fell to thinking how good a hot meal would taste; he had not
-eaten food since the supper of the night before. And he was tired, too;
-he leaned his head against the railing of the stairs, and, just closing
-his eyes, saw the trees and fields of the night ride go by, and saw
-Strangwayes’ white face, and saw the face of the tall man who used to
-carry him on his shoulder.
-
-A great noise of talking made him rouse up, wondering dazedly if he had
-slept. Somebody was shouting out a drinking song, and others, with
-voices crisp in the chilly air, were disputing together. A torch seemed
-to glare in his very face, and a man, the first of several stumbling up
-the steps, nearly fell over him, and swore at him, then dragged him to
-his feet with a rough, “What are you doing here, sirrah?”
-
-Rubbing the dazzle of the light out of his eyes, Hugh saw five or six
-men about him on the steps, two with torches, who seemed mere troopers,
-and the others finely dressed. “Is—Colonel Gwyeth here?” he faltered,
-with a half hope that the meeting might be deferred a bit longer.
-
-“Here, Alan, this gentleman has commands for you,” some one called, and
-laughed.
-
-At that another man came briskly up from the street and, shoving the
-others aside, pushed under the light of the torches. A man of short
-forty years, and but little above middle height, Hugh perceived, in a
-velvet suit with a plumed hat and a cloak wrapped up to his chin.
-Beneath the torchlight his long hair and close-trimmed beard seemed the
-color of gold, and he had blue eyes that looked angry and his face was
-flushed. “What’s to do here?” he asked curtly, and a trick of the tone
-set Hugh’s memory struggling for something that had long been past.
-“What do you want of me, you knave?”
-
-Hugh looked up at the flushed, impatient face, and, stammering to find
-words, wished it were all over and these men gone, and he were alone
-with this stranger; then he hesitated desperately, “Colonel Gwyeth, if
-it like you, I am your son.”
-
-Somebody laughed foolishly, and another began, “’Tis a wise child—” but
-Alan Gwyeth looked Hugh over and then, turning on his heel with a curt
-“The devil you are!” walked through the open door into the house. The
-others tramped noisily after him; some one gave Hugh a hasty shove that
-sent him pitching to the foot of the steps, and as he recovered himself
-he heard the house-door slammed.
-
-
- CHAPTER VII
- HOW THE WORLD DEALT BY A GENTLEMAN
-
-
-He could get only a broken sleep, because of a door that was always
-slamming; sometimes men were laughing, too, but the crash of the closing
-door was louder still, so loud Hugh woke at last. “It was all a bad
-dream,” he said in his thoughts, with a lightening of the heart that
-made him feel like his old self. But next moment his hand touched the
-damp boards of the doorway in which he was crouched and found them real;
-across the roadway the dim houses, with the mist that comes before day
-hanging over them, were real; and so was the blank sky. Then all that
-had happened last night was true: there was a lad named Hugh Gwyeth,
-whose father would have none of him, who had not a friend to turn to,
-nor a penny to his name, nor, except for this cold doorway whither he
-had crawled, a place to lay his head. Hugh sat up and, as if it were
-another man’s concern, checked it all off dispassionately.
-
-Just then a drunken trooper came reeling down the empty street, and Hugh
-found himself making nice calculations as to whether the man’s zig-zag
-progress would plunge him into a muddy puddle just opposite the doorway,
-or bring him safely by on the far side. When the fellow staggered past
-unsplashed Hugh lost interest in him, and began counting the windows of
-the opposite houses, that were slowly lighting up with the dawn.
-Presently a man on a red horse came clicking down the narrow way, then
-two men helping a comrade home, then a little squad of foot soldiers
-under a brisk officer; and after that townsmen and stray troopers came
-in greater numbers, the doors and windows opened, and the day began.
-
-All the long morning Hugh tramped the streets of Shrewsbury, aimlessly,
-for he had nowhere to go. Everscombe was not to be thought of; even if
-he had been at the very gates of the manor house, even if his
-grandfather had found it in his heart to relent, the affair at the
-“Golden Ram” would have made forgiveness impossible to his kinsfolk.
-Neither could he go back to Strangwayes, who had lent him a horse for
-which his father was to pay; at least the bay would compensate for that,
-but he had no right to ask farther kindness which he could never return.
-And then Strangwayes’ new friends had shown him out of doors; perhaps
-Dick would not care to have him come back.
-
-With such broken reflections Hugh loitered through the town, and now and
-again, in gazing at the swarming men and brave horses that filled the
-streets, tried to forget his miserable plight. About noon he stood many
-minutes in a gutter and listlessly watched a great body of horse march
-by. He heard some one say the king was going northward on an expedition,
-and he asked himself if Colonel Gwyeth went too, and was troubled an
-instant till he realized that he had now no call to follow.
-
-Then he let all that pass, and thought only that the autumn air was
-chilly and he was hungry, so that though he pulled his belt a notch
-tighter it availed nothing. A man must eat, and out in the world food
-came only by work, he realized; and with that he fell to wondering if
-there were any labor to which he might turn his hand. A small knowledge
-of Latin, small skill with a sword, and the ability to back a
-horse,—that summed up his accomplishments. Hugh told them over with a
-feeling that either he had not been equipped for such a fortune as this,
-or he had struck out for himself long before his education was
-completed. But if he could ride and handle a sword he might turn
-trooper, so, coming in sight of a smith’s shop and men, one of whom
-looked a petty officer, lounging about it, he ventured up shyly and, as
-the fellows were in good humor, questioned them tentatively, if they
-might not perhaps care to enroll him among them. They only laughed at
-him, and the petty officer bade him run home and grow. With his hopes a
-bit dashed Hugh walked away, but, strengthened by having a purpose,
-tramped the town all the afternoon in search of employment among the
-horse soldiery. But those he applied to either lost their tempers and
-swore at him, or laughed and chaffed him; and the foot soldiers, to whom
-he finally offered himself, were even more contemptuous. “You? ’Twould
-need another fellow to bear your musket,” the last man he questioned
-answered him gruffly.
-
-That night Hugh slept in the sheltered corner of an alley, and two
-officers, tramping through at midnight with a torchbearer, stumbled over
-him. One kicked him, the other, glancing at him, flung him a penny
-before he passed on. When the coin fell beside him Hugh did not move,
-but after the torch had blinked out of sight he groped his hand along
-the damp ground, shaking with nervousness that he did not find the
-penny, and, as his fingers closed on it, almost sobbed with relief. He
-sought out a bakehouse at once, and sitting on some dingy steps opposite
-waited the hungry hours till morning broke, the shop opened, and
-bursting in headlong he could buy his bread. It went very quickly,
-leaving him hungrier than ever, but he got no more till next morning,
-when a gentleman paid him twopence for holding his horse.
-
-He had now given over tramping the town, for he knew it was useless; he
-had sought employment in every troop in Shrewsbury, and everywhere he
-had been rebuffed. So the most of the day he sat on a doorstep and, idly
-watching the street and the sky, tried to forget what life had looked
-like four days ago. When he was ordered off the step he loitered slowly
-out by the western gate, and, finding him a snug corner in the lee of a
-shed opposite a wayside alehouse, lay down for the night. He was
-beginning now to get a realization of what had befallen, as a man who
-has been stunned recovers consciousness with a sense of pain, and he had
-a feeling that if he could have cried a long time it would have eased
-him, but the hard manhood that had been thrust upon him would not suffer
-that nor anything which might relieve him.
-
-Toward morning a noise of loud singing woke him. He tried to sleep
-again, but the singing worried him and besides he felt cold and cramped.
-He rose at last to stretch himself, and stepping out into the road saw,
-sprawled across the doorstone of the alehouse, a big dark figure that
-was yelling lustily at the sky. “Have you come at last?” the fellow
-cried, “I said to myself,—maybe you heard me,—‘Bob, if thou keepst it up
-time enough some mother’s son will come.’ Look ’ee here, lad, you’re to
-do me a kindness. I am quite sober, mark you, sober as parson himself,
-but somewhat is amiss with my legs. An you’ll aid me to the stable
-you’ll do his Majesty a great service.”
-
-There might be a ha’penny at the end of it, so Hugh suffered the
-trooper, as he judged the man to be, to lean on him, and they set out
-unsteadily. What with keeping his charge erect and looking to the rough
-highway lest they both go down, he paid little heed to the landmarks,
-though once, at a half-articulate order from his companion, he swerved
-over to the left and, keeping a dark house on one hand, walked toward a
-dim light. They were just near enough for Hugh to perceive it shone from
-an isolated low building, when an armed man challenged them, but at a
-thick reply from the trooper let them go stumbling on. The familiar
-stamp of horses was now audible, the light shone clearer, and at last
-Hugh guided his shambling comrade in at the open door of a stable. On
-either hand the uncertain light of a brace of lanterns showed rows of
-dim stanchions and tethered horses, before it merged away into the dark
-lofts and vast roof. In the centre of the stable the lanterns flung a
-clear circle of yellow light, and there four fully armed carabineers,
-seated on kegs or sprawling on the floor, were playing at dice. The
-sound of footsteps made them look up, and one half swore, while another
-started as if to sweep up dice and boxes. “Does this man belong to you?”
-Hugh asked desperately, for his companion, with his florid face suddenly
-turned melancholy, was leaning against the doorpost and blinked at the
-light, but said nothing.
-
-“Yes, he belongs to us,” replied one with a beard, who seemed the leader
-of the party, “the more sorrow to us.” He threw his dice deliberately:
-“Seven-tray-cinque.—Pitch him down on the hay yonder.”
-
-“Nick, how can you use a comrade so?” maundered the prodigal, as Hugh
-helped him across the stable and suffered him to roll over on a heap of
-hay.
-
-“Be thankful you get no worse. If old Jack Ridydale had not shogged off
-with the troop to Chester, you’d get the devil for this; he’s the man
-could give it you.”
-
-“Hardwyn has mind to make himself such another,” said one of the younger
-and less assured men.
-
-“Jeff Hardwyn is a cursed better soldier than ever thou’lt be,” Nick
-replied concisely, and the play went on.
-
-None took heed of Hugh, so, after a moment’s hesitation, he sat down on
-the loose hay, where his drunken friend had fallen sound asleep. He had
-no call to linger, but the hay was far softer than the ground of the
-streets, so he sat there and listened to the gruff talk of the men and
-the click of the dice. At length he stretched himself out, and, watching
-the dim lanterns flicker, he, too, went to sleep.
-
-Of a sudden he was wakened by some one’s pitching him roughly off the
-hay. There was dull morning light in the stable now, men were feeding
-and grooming horses, and right over him stood a shock-headed fellow,
-with more of the peasant than the trooper still visible in him, who
-demanded, “What beest thou here for?”
-
-“’Twas no harm,” Hugh answered, getting up stiffly; he had meant to walk
-away, but in the stable there was at least a roof over him, and he
-hesitated. “I can feed your horse for you,” he ventured.
-
-“Then run fetch a bucket of water,” the other commanded. Hugh caught up
-the bucket, and, hurrying out into the chill of the morning, found
-between the stable and the big house a well where he drew the water, as
-he was bidden. After that he fetched more water, brought fodder, rubbed
-down a horse,—it was marvellous the amount of work that could be found
-for an extra pair of hands to do. But, weary and faint though he was,
-Hugh labored on bravely, with a special effort to satisfy Jonas Unger,
-the trooper who had first roused him, in which he succeeded so well that
-when at last the men tramped away to breakfast Unger permitted him to
-follow along. Crossing an open space betwixt the great house and the
-stables, they came out through a hedge-gap upon a byway and scattered
-cottages where the carabineers were quartered. Hugh slunk into the
-common room of one of these cottages at the heels of Unger and the man
-called Nick Cowper, and there, sitting at table, with white lips and
-heavy eyes, found the roisterer he had helped home the night before. Bob
-Saxon, as his mates called the fellow, was past much talk this morning,
-and the others were in tolerably good temper, so Hugh was suffered to
-take a share of their rations, which he ate on the doorstone. The food
-was coarse, but there was almost enough to satisfy him, so, in the hope
-of earning more, when the men went back to the stables he followed them.
-
-After a time a curt officer entered the stable, and, ordering the little
-troop to horse, led it away to be exercised. Hugh cleaned out a stall
-and had some speech with other ragged hangers-on who made refuge in the
-stable, but, liking the company little, soon held his peace and gave
-heed only to his work. About noon the troop returned with the horses all
-sweaty, and a deal of unharnessing and rubbing down to be done. Hugh
-came forward to take his share and was removing the saddle from Saxon’s
-horse, when he thought to hear mention of a name that made his hands
-shake at their task. Pausing to look up, he saw it was a sunburned man
-with a twist of mustache who was speaking: “Ay, ’twas one of the
-colonel’s men brought the tidings. The king has surely taken in
-Chester.”
-
-“Good news, in truth, Corporal Hardwyn!” replied Cowper, whom the man
-addressed. “And we tied here to hammer wit into dunder-pated raw levies!
-Ay, ’twas like Colonel Gwyeth to serve us such a trick.”
-
-Hugh heard no more for the rush of blood to his temples; still he could
-not believe his bad fortune had served him such a cruel turn, so, when
-he had put Saxon’s horse into its stall, he went up to Cowper and asked
-point-blank: “An’t like you, who commands this troop?”
-
-“What is that to you, sirrah?” asked Cowper.
-
-“Is it—Alan Gwyeth?” Hugh persisted.
-
-“Yes, hang you!” replied the man, and boxed his ears for asking.
-
-Even as he reeled back with his face tingling, Hugh found room in his
-heart to be thankful that he had told no one his name. These knaves must
-never know it was their commander’s son whom they had the right to knock
-about. Perhaps the dignity of his family required that he should leave
-the place at once, he reflected dolefully, as he groomed Cowper’s horse;
-but, after all, it was better to drudge for his father’s troopers than
-to beg in Shrewsbury streets.
-
-So Hugh stayed on at the troop stables, where he groomed horses, and
-cleaned stalls, and fetched and carried with all the strength and
-readiness necessary to please a score of rough masters. From day’s end
-to day’s end it was hard, hateful labor with no sign of release. Once,
-to be sure, at the news that the king had returned from Chester,
-something that was half hope and half dread awoke in him, for there was
-a chance that at any hour Colonel Gwyeth might come to the stables. But
-soon he learned that his father had gone foraying to the eastward, so
-even that small hope vanished, and life meant only to work with all his
-strength, sleep on the hay, share the troopers’ rations, and through all
-endure such abuse and brutality as they might choose to inflict upon
-him.
-
-It was not long before Hugh dropped his old methods of classification
-and grouped men in two great divisions: those who struck at you for the
-fun of seeing you dodge, and those who struck to hurt you. Of the former
-class was Bob Saxon, who had a certain good nature about him, though his
-horseplay was apt to be rough. He had been to the wars in Germany, Hugh
-gathered from the big stories the fellow told, and for that reason Hugh
-felt drawn toward him; at least, Saxon knew the land where he had been
-born, and he knew Colonel Gwyeth. “There’s a man would take a trot
-through hell, if he had the word,” he once said admiringly of the
-colonel, whereat Hugh felt a feeble thrill of pride, and held his chin
-higher, till Cowper happened along and set him to cleaning his boots.
-Hugh considered there was nothing good to be said for Nick Cowper; he
-had an unconscious knack of setting tasks that peculiarly unbefitted a
-gentleman, while at all times he was brutal with the fierce roughness of
-a seasoned campaigner, who struck to hurt. To be sure, no malice seemed
-behind his brutality; it was merely his way of reducing command to terms
-of the senses, but that gave small remedy to Hugh’s skin or to his
-wounded dignity, when Cowper sent him stumbling about his work with his
-lip cut or his nose bleeding.
-
-But Hugh was to learn there were rougher dealers even than Cowper, when
-he came into conflict with Jeff Hardwyn, the corporal. He was one who
-seldom lifted his hand against any man, but when he ordered the troopers
-obeyed; and Hugh, with a feeling that he must not get the fellow’s
-ill-will, jumped to do his bidding and called him “sir.” But, for all
-these poor defences, he at last fell under the corporal’s displeasure,
-by such trivial happenings that even looking back he did not understand
-how it had come to pass. There had been a day of heavy rains that turned
-the roads to mud, in the midst of which Unger sent Hugh tramping through
-Shrewsbury in quest of a man he was not able to find. When the boy
-returned late in the afternoon, drenched and tired, he discovered the
-whole errand had been a mere hoax for the diversion of Unger and Saxon
-and the half-dozen others who were loafing in the dry stable. “Next
-time, pray you take a fair day to be witty,” Hugh said, trying not to
-show temper, and was starting out to forage hungrily for dinner when
-Hardwyn bade him stop and tighten a buckle on his saddle girth. Pulling
-off his coat, Hugh turned to the job, which he found harder than he
-thought, so he did it hastily, then ran out to seek his dinner, and, for
-his late coming, got none at all.
-
-But when he splashed wearily back to the stable he suddenly forgot all
-the petty misadventures of the luckless day, for over by the stalls
-Hardwyn was standing with his brows drawn together ominously. “Can you
-not tighten a buckle better than that?” he asked, and tapped the saddle
-at his feet with the toe of his boot.
-
-“I did it as well as I knew, sir,” Hugh replied.
-
-“Well, I’ll learn you to do it better next time,” said Hardwyn without
-temper, and crossing the stable picked up a heavy horsewhip.
-
-Hugh thought that the heart had gone out of his body, so weak and empty
-of strength did he feel. He had been whipped many times, at school and
-at Everscombe, but he knew this would be different, and he was half
-afraid, yet he did not run. Indeed, when Hardwyn took him by the neck of
-his shirt, he looked up and said quietly, “I am not going to run away.”
-
-“No, I’ll wager you’re not,” Hardwyn answered, and brought the whip
-stinging down across his back.
-
-Hugh heard his shirt rip in the grasp on his neck, and he felt a foolish
-concern over it; he saw the loose spears of hay scattered on the dingy
-floor at his feet; and he wondered why, since he had not meant to
-struggle, he had twisted up one arm and griped Hardwyn’s wrist that held
-him. He knew that he was counting the blows, eleven so far, but he durst
-not open his lips lest in spite of himself he cry out. Were the cuts of
-the whip bringing blood, he wondered? He did not hear the strokes, but
-he counted them by feeling; at first each had seemed distinct and left a
-lingering smart, but now his whole back was wincing and quivering. He
-heard Hardwyn draw a deep breath and for a second hoped he might stop,
-but there came another slash of the whip. Then, of a sudden, it was
-borne in on him that Hardwyn meant to flog him till he cried. Hugh set
-his teeth tight on his lip and only thought, “I will not, I will not,”
-and felt the whip-cuts, nothing more, till the floor seemed blurry and
-came nearer, and his shirt ripped again. Then he heard Saxon’s voice:
-“Don’t kill the lad, sir.”
-
-“Curse his stubbornness!” Hardwyn panted out, and then there were other
-blows of which Hugh kept no count. He only knew that at the last he
-found himself free to reel over against the boards of a stall, and,
-without glancing at the other men around them, he looked up into
-Hardwyn’s flushed face a long minute. Then, still keeping hold on the
-stall, he made a step toward the door, but Hardwyn picked up the saddle
-and flung it down before him. “Mend that aright now,” he ordered, “and,
-harkee, if ever you bungle another piece of work like that, I’ll flay
-you alive.”
-
-Without a word Hugh took up the saddle and tightened the buckle. His
-fingers shook, he noted, and once, when he put his hand to his mouth, he
-felt his lip was bleeding where he had bitten it. But he had not cried
-or spoken, nor would he; when the saddle was put to rights he flung it
-over its peg, and, still keeping silence, walked out of the stable
-toward the highway.
-
-So long as he was in sight of the men he walked with tolerable
-erectness, but he knew it could not last long and he must get away from
-every one, so he struck across the road into the fields. There he turned
-eastward on a course that would finally bring him round Shrewsbury to
-the main highway. For eastward lay the village where he had left
-Strangwayes; Dick would protect him, he knew, and yet he knew he was not
-going to him.
-
-As well walk eastward as another way, though, but he ached from head to
-foot and his back throbbed painfully; so at last, on a bleak hilltop, he
-sat down to rest, and watched the twilight close in. A little below him
-he could see the dim roofs of Shrewsbury and the purpling sky above. The
-western star came out first, and, as the night darkened, many more
-showed till he lost count of them and turned his eyes to the lights of
-the town. As he gazed thither he caught, clear and vibrant on the still
-air, the note of a bell. On the instant the foolish old tale of Dick
-Whittington came back to him: “Turn again, turn again.” Then he
-remembered how Lois and he had spoke together the day before he set out
-from Everscombe; and, when he had hoped for Whittington’s fortune, she
-had answered that his father would be glad to see him.
-
-Of a sudden Hugh found himself lying face down in the wet grass of the
-hillside with his fingers digging into the turf. If he were only dead,
-now while he still possessed some shred of self-respect! He could not go
-on living, a mere horse-boy, everybody’s drudge, with his highest hope
-to be some day a swaggering private trooper, and then to be knocked on
-the head in a petty skirmish. It was so piteously different from the
-soldierly life he had planned, but he did not ask for that now, only not
-to be bullied and flogged any more.
-
-Then that mood passed, and he knew only that he was cold in his torn
-shirt and his back was sore so he was loath to move. But the cold at
-last forced him to his feet and set him pacing up and down the wet
-grass; he still loved life enough to exert himself to keep it. Then he
-began to realize that, after all, he had acted like a child. Was this
-life so much less endurable than that at Everscombe? Was it worse to
-earn his living of a gang of brutal troopers than be dependent on
-grudging relatives? If he did get more blows, a man must not whimper for
-that, and he was now a man. Neither must a man go crying to his friends;
-rather the thing that best befitted a gentleman was to accept the life
-he had taken up and go on bravely.
-
-So, in the early hours of the morning, Hugh Gwyeth faced westward and
-tramped back to the stables. Reaching there about dawn, he walked in as
-usual, and taking up a bucket, went to draw water. He had a curious
-sense of not feeling ashamed nor abashed, as he thought to feel when
-facing the men once more, but rather proud of himself and of more
-dignity than ever. He had no hope, however, of being a hero in the sight
-of the troopers. Some of them chaffed him over his beating and his
-slinking back again. “You wanted more of the same, did you?” Hardwyn
-asked dryly, whereat the others laughed. Saxon chaffed him too; but
-later, when Hugh came to the cottage for breakfast, he asked him roughly
-if the whip had drawn blood, and then he helped the boy to wash off his
-hurt back.
-
-By next day every one had forgotten that Hardwyn had flogged him, and
-life went on in its old course. Only Hugh took it now as an accepted
-thing; there was no escape, so he would make the best of it, do as he
-was bidden, dodge what blows he could, and, what he could not dodge,
-bear without flinching. He even contrived, so long as he could busy
-himself about the horses, to find a sort of negative pleasure in the
-life. To groom and feed and water the great, friendly animals did not
-seem menial, but this made only a part of the day’s routine, and Hugh’s
-pride could not yet stoop willingly to cleaning boots and fetching beer.
-The last was the most humiliating employment of all; though he might
-reconcile himself to slipping into an obscure corner and cleaning the
-boots of a man who was older than he and a better soldier, he felt that
-to tramp a quarter-mile on the highway with a brace of jugs and fetch
-bad beer from an alehouse for a crew of peasant troopers could never
-befit a gentleman.
-
-Late of an October afternoon he was trudging back to the stable from
-such an errand, when he met a gay company of horsemen and, to save being
-trampled on, halted at one side of the road till they should pass. By
-chance he glanced up and among the riders saw one very young gentleman
-with yellow curls, who wore a fine blue velvet suit and a big hat, and
-bestrode a dainty roan mare. Hugh caught his breath and looked again,
-then dodged headlong back from the road, in behind a cottage out of
-sight. Halting there a moment he instinctively looked himself
-over,—ragged shirt with the sleeves rolled up to the shoulders, ragged
-breeches stained with mud, half-worn boothose, and shoes that were
-falling to pieces. He wondered if Frank Pleydall, in his fine clothes,
-on his good horse, had recognized him, and he thought it unlikely. With
-a foolish dread of a second encounter he made his way back to the stable
-through the fields; the going was rough, and he now perceived much of
-the beer had slopped out of the jugs. “I shall be flogged for that,” he
-told himself, and, with something that was not jealousy but hurt him
-keenly, he wondered if Frank Pleydall knew what a happy lad he was.
-
-But, much as he expected it, Hugh did not get a flogging; for when he
-came into the stable yard he found strange horses standing there, and
-two or three troopers he did not know, and his own acquaintances looked
-energetic and on good behavior, so much perturbed they did not even rate
-him about the beer. “The colonel is back from the eastward,” Unger
-explained, “and Corporal Ridydale is on our shoulders again.”
-
-“He’ll send you packing,” Cowper spoke cheerfully to Hugh.
-
-Just then Saxon, riding in, called to Hugh to groom his well-bespattered
-horse, so the boy, eager though he was to hear more, must walk away with
-the beast to the open floor of the stable, where he fell to work. It
-darkened and lanterns were lit; one was hung from a stanchion, and just
-beneath Hugh saw a stranger standing, a tall, thickset man of middle age
-with a heavy beard, who seemed to have an eye for all the business of
-the stable, and at whose word men moved to obey, even more readily than
-they did for Hardwyn. He must be John Ridydale, Hugh decided, so he got
-Saxon’s horse betwixt them, and, working briskly, hoped he might not be
-noticed. But presently Ridydale stopped giving orders, and Hugh, getting
-uneasy at his silence and looking sidewise at the man, found he was
-gazing at him with his brows drawn together. Hugh feigned to be very
-busy with the horse, but the currycomb moved unsteadily in his hand,
-while he waited, and wondered if Ridydale would kick him out of the
-stable at once or let him stay long enough to get his supper. Then he
-heard a heavy step and, looking up and finding the corporal beside him,
-drew back a pace warily; but the other griped him by the shoulder with a
-sharp, “What’s your name, lad?”
-
-“Hugh.”
-
-“What else?”
-
-“Nothing else, sir.”
-
-Hugh had his arm half raised to shield his head, but Ridydale did not
-strike at him, only said with something strangely like kindliness, “Come
-outside here.”
-
-There were horses at the trough by the door, Hugh noted, and through the
-stable yard a twilight mist, in which the cottage lights looked blurry,
-was shutting down. They had drawn away from any stray troopers, and now,
-right by the hedge, Ridydale, with his grasp still on Hugh’s shoulder,
-halted him and asked, “The rest of the name mightn’t be Gwyeth, perhaps,
-master?”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII
- THE INTERPOSITION OF JOHN RIDYDALE
-
-
-It shamed Hugh afterward to remember how overwhelmingly, at that first
-dim prospect of relief, the realization of his friendlessness and
-degradation came over him, till not even sufficient spirit was left in
-him to make his usual evasions. “Yes, I am Hugh Gwyeth,” he answered
-simply; “I am the colonel’s son.”
-
-Then he felt the sharp sting of twigs across his face, as he pressed his
-head upon his folded arms against the yielding hedge, and his breath
-came stranglingly for a great lump that had gathered in his throat and
-was near choking him. Ridydale was patting him on the shoulder, he knew,
-and he heard him say: “Come, come, master, don’t go play the woman now.
-’Tis all well, I tell you.”
-
-At that Hugh lifted his head from his arms. “Did my father send you to
-seek me?” he asked, eagerly, as the griping feeling in his throat would
-let him.
-
-Ridydale hesitated a moment. “I’ll wager he’ll be glad enough that I
-have found you, sir,” he said at length. “For now, get you over to the
-cottage where the light shows yonder and bide till I come.”
-
-“But Saxon’s horse,”—Hugh’s long drill in stable duty made him protest.
-
-“Hang the horse and Bob Saxon, too!” growled Ridydale, with an expletive
-or so. “A pretty trade for your father’s son to turn a hand to!”
-
-Still muttering, he strode back to the stable, while Hugh obediently
-made his way, by the hedge-gap and the well-trodden path, to the
-farthest of the cluster of cottages that quartered the troop. By virtue
-of his coming from Corporal Ridydale he was suffered to enter the
-low-studded living room and sit down on a stool in the chimney corner.
-It was a poor smoky room, but with the fire and candle it was warmer and
-brighter than the stable, and there was a home-likeness about the
-children sprawling on the hearth, the woman cooking pottage at the fire,
-even about her stolid peasant husband, that made Hugh content to sit in
-a kind of open-eyed drowse and watch them. In these hours of negative
-comfort the whole burden of responsibility seemed slipped from him, and
-he neither thought nor vexed himself with anticipation, only waited for
-Ridydale.
-
-All save the cottager’s wife had packed to bed in the loft before the
-corporal returned. Hugh heard him outside, rating some unknown trooper
-with bullying volubility, and then he came in, grumbling about the
-mismanagement of Hardwyn, who in his absence had got the men out of all
-conceit of obedience. By the time they sat down to supper he had almost
-calmed himself, however, and was kindly spoken to the woman who attended
-them and brusquely civil to Hugh, who after his vagabond period felt ill
-at ease, even at so poor a board. Ridydale noted all that, and
-apparently he had made inquiries too, for when they were left alone at
-table he spoke out, half angrily and half sorrowfully, “So you’ve been
-drudging in the stables ever since that night, sir?”
-
-“There was nothing else to do,” Hugh answered, and took another piece of
-bread, with a comfortable sense that he could have all he wanted.
-
-“’Twas hard to think at first it could be the colonel’s son,” Ridydale
-went on, “though I was on the watch for you. I heard of that blockhead
-Rodes,—he who bore the colonel’s torch that night—how you came unto him.
-Rodes told it for a jest the colonel’s comrades would put upon him, but
-I that had been with him nigh twenty years, I had a shrewd doubt there
-might be some truth lay at the bottom of it. So I took it on myself to
-make search, so soon as we returned to Shrewsbury. Lord save me, sir,
-when I used to see you, there where we were in Lower Saxony, such a
-well-favored little rascal, I never thought to come upon you currying
-horses for your father’s men.”
-
-“You were in Germany?” Hugh asked.
-
-“Where the colonel has been I have been, these twenty years. I went as
-his man when he first crossed to the Low Countries—a proper young
-soldier he was! Then I was back with him in Warwickshire, seventeen
-years agone; it seems longer.”
-
-“Then—you knew my mother?” Hugh asked, pushing aside his trencher.
-
-“Ay, Mistress Ruth Oldesworth, and a gallant-spirited young gentlewoman
-she was. To leave her knave kinsfolk so, for love o’ the colonel! And
-she was that kind spoken to all of us that followed him. Faith, a man
-could nigh forgive her, even for deserting the colonel so.” Hugh broke
-out.
-
-Hugh rumpled the hair back from his forehead, while he strove to grasp
-the significance of this new information. He realized that these last
-weeks there had been in his heart an unphrased feeling that his father
-was cruel, and his mother must have suffered much, just as he was
-suffering. Once he had held both parents something nobler than human
-creatures; and latterly his mother had seemed more than ever a saint,
-and his father an utter wretch; but now, what was he to think? Ridydale
-spoke presently. Hugh replied, and snuffed the candle with his fingers a
-moment, then broke out: Ridydale thoughtfully eyed the fire smouldering
-on the hearth, and tousled his beard with one hand.he began at length.
-“They were both very young and high-tempered, and he would have his
-pleasure. He was stubborn, though I grudge to say it of him, and she was
-not over-patient. There was words betwixt them, and that same day our
-troop was sent foraying southward and he did not even take leave of her.
-But he faced the troop about ere the sennight were over and brought us
-home at a gallop. And when he came to quarters she had taken you and
-gone for England. He never said word of it, even to me, save, ‘She might
-ha’ left me the lad; he was as much mine as hers.’”
-
-“Then—he did have some care for me once?” Hugh asked; he was keeping his
-face turned toward the fire, away from his companion.
-
-Hugh smiled at the fire, rather tremulously; it was dawning upon him
-that Ridydale, for all his formal respect and kindness, was disappointed
-that he did not bear out the promises of his babyhood, and he had a
-doleful feeling that in the same way Colonel Gwyeth, too, would always
-be disappointed in him. Ridydale began again, “and joined ourselves unto
-King Gustavus. For the colonel would not make a start to follow his
-lady; perhaps ’twas stubbornness, but he had no word of her since she
-quitted Germany, and he was too proud to go a-begging to her, so we just
-stayed on in the Swedish army. Once—’twas the year we fought at
-Wolfenbüttel—there came a gentleman volunteer from England with tidings
-out of Warwickshire, and so we learned that she was dead.”
-
-Hugh blinked at the fire and made no answer. Ridydale mused aloud. Then,
-as Hugh still kept silent, Ridydale suggested they get to bed, and led
-the way up the steep ladder to the loft. There were two pallets in
-Ridydale’s rough chamber, and Hugh wondered impersonally, as he lay down
-on one, what trooper the corporal had violently dispossessed of his
-quarters to make room for him. At the foot of the pallet, in the sloping
-roof, was a small window, through which Hugh found, after the candle was
-out, he could see five bright stars and a patch of purple-black sky. He
-lay staring at the stars and saw no meaning in them, for thinking busily
-to himself and trying to comprehend that his parents had been neither
-all good nor utterly depraved, but just frail everyday human creatures,
-whom he must love and bear with for their humanness.
-
-Next morning he awoke of his own accord, without being kicked, and,
-finding the room empty and a sunbeam coming through the little window,
-rose up and went briskly below stairs. Late though he was, the woman
-gave him all the breakfast he wanted, and then force of habit took him
-over to the stable.Saxon greeted him, and the other men merely pestered
-him with questions but gave him no blows.
-
-With a feeling that it was not yet time to proclaim his identity to all,
-Hugh answered evasively, and then, because it was irksome to be idle, he
-watered one of the horses, and, as Unger had bidden him the day before,
-began patching up a headstall. He was sitting on a keg, fumbling with a
-refractory buckle, when Ridydale bore down upon him with a fierce,
-Arguing that if he were still a stable-boy Ridydale had the right to
-command him, and if he were a gentleman Ridydale’s friendliness had
-given him the right to make requests, Hugh laid aside the headstall and
-went meekly back to the cottage, where till dinner time he lounged
-ingloriously on the doorstone. After the noon meal Ridydale, very sullen
-and wrathful, beckoned him outside and rated him, respectfully but
-severely. “’Tis not becoming a gentleman like you to fetch and carry for
-those dogs of troopers,” he explained. It was so ludicrously like the
-view of what befitted a gentleman which up to a fortnight ago he himself
-had held that Hugh could not help smiling. “Methinks ’tis not what a
-gentleman does but how he does it makes the disgrace,” he said.
-
-Ridydale shook his head and looked dubious, then, coming apparently to a
-better temper, changed the subject by offering to lend Hugh money with
-which to buy fresh clothes. “The colonel will be here to-night,” he
-concluded, “and I’ve a plan to wait a good-natured moment and tell him
-of you. I’m thinking he’ll ask to see you, and you should not come
-before him in such rags as these.”
-
-But Hugh had had enough of borrowing on the chance of Colonel Gwyeth’s
-making repayment, and he refused the loan; if the colonel chose to
-provide for him, he reasoned to himself, he need wear his rags but few
-hours longer; and if the colonel rebuffed him again he would liefer have
-rags than whole clothes and a debt to so short-pursed a man as a
-corporal of carabineers. Ridydale fairly let slip his self-control at
-the boy’s obstinate refusal. “If ’twere not for your red hair and your
-trick of setting your lips together, I’d doubt if you were a Gwyeth,” he
-broke out at last, and marched away to the stables in some temper.
-
-Whereat Hugh felt angry, then grew thoughtful, and, reflecting that the
-man, for all his arbitrary ways, had treated him with real kindness,
-wondered if he might not have somewhat tempered his refusal. So, when he
-next saw Ridydale, at supper, he tried to talk him into good humor by
-questioning him of his father, which much mollified the corporal, and
-then of the troop, and finally of the progress of the war. It seemed
-Colonel Gwyeth’s force had shared with Sir William Pleydall’s troop some
-brisk skirmishing about Worcester; Hugh wondered if Frank had had the
-good fortune to be present, and sought to get news of the Pleydalls from
-Ridydale, who, when he learned Hugh had acquaintance with such
-gentlemen, looked a trifle more favorably upon him. The boy was sorely
-tempted to tell him the story of Dick Strangwayes and the skirmish at
-the “Golden Ram,” but, after all, that was a kind of self-glorification
-that would become Bob Saxon better than Hugh Gwyeth. So he held his
-peace, and was thankful that he had got Ridydale into a mood where, if
-he still esteemed him rather a weak-spirited fellow, he did not utterly
-despise him.
-
-But early as next morning it was Hugh’s ill luck to destroy whatever
-good impression he had made. Having risen late, he had fetched a bucket
-of water up to the chamber, and, stripped to the waist, was bathing
-himself with much splashing, when Ridydale unexpectedly came in. “The
-colonel has granted to speak with me ere noon,” the corporal announced
-his business at once, “so you shall speedily—” There he paused, looking
-sharply at Hugh, who stood sidewise toward him, then strode over to the
-boy. “How got you those fresh scars on your back?” he demanded.
-
-“No matter,” answered Hugh, facing hastily toward the speaker.
-
-Ridydale took him unceremoniously by the shoulders, and turned him
-round. “’Twas done with a whip!” he burst out. “What means this? Have
-you been flogged?”
-
-“Yes,” Hugh replied. “Now have the goodness to take your hands off me.”
-
-“Was it done here at the stables?” Ridydale persisted. “Answer me,
-master.”
-
-“Do you look for me to turn tale-bearer?” Hugh retorted.
-
-“I look to cut some combs for this,” Ridydale stormed. “Though you lack
-in spirit you bear your father’s name, and for that they that misuse you
-shall answer—”
-
-“I pray you, let it all go,” Hugh interrupted. “I have suffered no
-harm—”
-
-Ridydale stamped his foot down on the floor. “Harm, quotha! Why, you
-might be a brat out of the kennel for all the shame you take from it.
-Tell me, what can befall a man of gentle birth that’s worse harm than to
-be banged by a pack of knaves?”
-
-Hugh busied himself in pulling on his shirt, and made no reply.
-
-“Well, ’tis time the colonel took you in hand,” Ridydale blustered. “You
-need to be taught what befits a gentleman.”
-
-Then he went noisily out of the room, and Hugh heard him clatter down
-the ladder from the loft. Looking out at the little window he saw
-Ridydale head for the stables, and he hoped the man might not make
-inquiries there or bring any one into disgrace for what had befallen.
-Then, as he turned back to finish dressing, a new alarm seized Hugh:
-what if the corporal, in his irritation, should refrain from speaking
-for him to Colonel Gwyeth? But next moment he had quite accepted the
-thought; indeed, he seemed all along to have half suspected some
-miscarriage would destroy his faint hope of the last few hours. It would
-only be of a piece with all that happened to him since he set out from
-Everscombe.
-
-So, on the whole, he was surprised when about an hour later the
-cottager’s wife knocked at his door with the news that a trooper was
-below, come to take him before the colonel. No, he was not excited, Hugh
-told himself, for he cared not what the issue might be; he had twice
-gone so eagerly to meet his father, and each time been so bitterly
-disappointed, that now, whatever good fortune might be before him, it
-could awake in him no fresh anticipation. Yet, for all that, he came
-down the ladder rather briskly, and, when he found himself actually
-setting forth to Colonel Gwyeth’s quarters, felt a thrill of something
-like apprehension.
-
-The bit of walk up the byway and along the main road to the great house,
-the back of which Hugh knew so well from his stable days, ended all too
-soon. Still repeating to himself that he did not care, he was not
-frightened, Hugh followed the trooper through the doorway; and then the
-door had closed, he was left alone in a dim back room, and suddenly he
-realized that in sober truth he was near to trembling with nervous
-dread. He was afraid of that flushed, red-haired man who had publicly
-rejected him; he was afraid of his roughness and more afraid of his
-tenderness, and if it had not been for shame at running away so
-ignominiously he would have bolted out of the house. Since that was not
-to be thought of he sat down on the window-seat and studied the dead
-leaves and withered flower-stalks of a strip of garden outside. Then he
-looked about the room and counted the oak panels in the walls and the
-diamond panes in the windows, but after all his eyes strayed to the door
-opposite, by which his guide had left him, and he found himself
-listening to the subdued hum of men’s voices that sounded within. Once a
-single voice rose choked and impatient, and immediately after feet
-scurried down the passage outside the entrance door. Getting up, Hugh
-tried hard to stare out at the window, but soon found himself facing the
-door and listening. All within was quiet now; indeed, there was not a
-sound nor a warning when at length the door was flung open and Ridydale
-himself beckoned him to come in. “Don’t be afeard, sir,” he said under
-his breath as Hugh passed him, and even in the midst of his own
-agitation Hugh noted that the corporal’s face was anxious and his manner
-subdued.
-
-“No prompting, Corporal Ridydale,” interrupted a stern voice that Hugh
-remembered. “Come hither, sirrah.”
-
-Hugh halted where he was, a few paces from the door, and looked toward
-the fireplace. Before the hearth Colonel Gwyeth was standing with his
-hands behind him; the set of his lips could not be judged because of his
-thick beard, but his brows were contracted so his eyes looked black
-beneath them. “So this is my son,” he began more quietly.
-
-Hugh bowed his head without speaking; for the moment he dared not trust
-his voice.
-
-“Come, come, hold up your head, man,” the colonel broke out impatiently;
-and then, with a visible effort to maintain his quieter tone, “Why have
-you not come to me ere this?”
-
-“I did not court a second rejection, sir,” Hugh answered, with a steady
-voice, though his hands were crushing his cap into a little wad.
-
-“There was no need of a first rejection, as you call it. You could have
-spared us both all this shame had you chosen a proper time and place to
-seek me.”
-
-“I had come some miles and I was eager to see you,” Hugh answered
-slowly.
-
-“Had they used you ill at Everscombe that you ran away?” the colonel
-broke in.
-
-“N-no, sir,” Hugh must admit in simple justice. “My grandfather always
-used me rather kindly.”
-
-“Gilbert Oldesworth?” Colonel Gwyeth turned impatiently from the
-fireplace. “’Twas of him, I doubt not, you had your good Roundhead
-doctrine.”
-
-“I—do not understand, sir.”
-
-“The doctrine of giving your cheek unto the smiter. That cut on your
-face, now, was that, too, given you by one of my grooms?”
-
-Hugh felt the blood sting in his cheeks; he looked at his father but
-made no answer.
-
-“Perchance, sir—” Ridydale ventured in a subdued voice.
-
-“Be quiet, John.—I have heard the whole history of your last fortnight,
-Hugh Gwyeth, your honorable associates, your gentle bearing, all you
-have done to uphold the credit of your house.”
-
-“On my soul, sir, you do the lad wrong,” Ridydale struck in rashly.
-“Though his way be not your way, he is but young and—”
-
-“Hold your tongue, John Ridydale!” the colonel cried, banging his fist
-down on the table beside him. “And for you, sirrah Hugh, if you have
-aught to say for yourself, say it out now.”
-
-“I know not why I should defend myself, sir.” Now they would hark to him
-at last, Hugh was amazed to find how hot and thick his words came. “I
-know not what I have done shameful, unless it becomes a gentleman better
-to starve than to work for his bread.”
-
-“You have only done this much, that you have bitterly disappointed me,”
-Colonel Gwyeth answered sharply. “For my gallant young gentleman I had
-thought on, those crop-eared kinsmen of mine have sent me a snivelling
-young Roundhead—”
-
-“For my hair, that is not my fault,” Hugh blurted out, “and for
-snivelling, you have no right to put that word to me. You may ask any
-one—”
-
-Colonel Gwyeth swept back one arm with an impatient movement that sent
-some loose papers from the table crackling to the floor. “Can you not
-understand now what you have done?” he cried. “When you ran away from
-your school you looked for me to make a soldier of you, did you not?
-Tell me now, how can I set over my troopers a fellow their whips have
-lashed?”
-
-For the moment Hugh found no words; the full significance of his
-father’s speech, the totally new view of his weeks of discipline,
-dismayed him beyond reply. With it all came a feeling that he was
-bitterly sorry that the matter had gone amiss; in time he might have
-come to like the red-haired man, who was disappointed in him, and the
-red-haired man might have come to like him. Even yet it was possible he
-might win the colonel’s favor, if he could show his mettle, if he were
-only given a chance! Then he heard Ridydale venture, “An’t like you,
-sir—”
-
-“Enough, Jack,” the colonel replied, with a poor assumption of a casual
-tone. “I want you now to take Master Hugh here and get him fitting
-clothes and a steady horse. By to-morrow night I shall have procured a
-pass—”
-
-“What mean you to do with me?” Hugh cried out, making a step toward his
-father.
-
-“I am going to despatch you back to your kinsfolk at Everscombe.”
-
-There was an instant of silence; then, “You hold me so mean-spirited a
-fellow that you will not keep me with you?” Hugh asked slowly.
-
-“Your ways suit your Puritan kindred better than they suit me,” Gwyeth
-answered, fumbling among the papers on the table. “’Tis too late now for
-me to mend what they have marred. So I shall furnish you with a horse
-and clothes—”
-
-“I did not come out of Warwickshire to beg a new coat and a nag of you.”
-As he spoke, Hugh half turned away to the door and he perceived now that
-Ridydale was violently signing to him to be quiet and stay where he was.
-He did not heed, but, stepping to the door, laid his hand on the latch.
-“And I shall not go back to Everscombe, sir,” he finished his speech
-deliberately.
-
-“Tut, tut! You are too old for such childishness,” answered the colonel,
-with exasperating contempt.
-
-“I will not go to Everscombe,” Hugh repeated.
-
-“Do you turn saucy, you young crop-head?” replied Colonel Gwyeth,
-letting slip his assumption of calmness. “You will do as I bid you.”
-
-“You have no right to say ‘do this’ unto me,” Hugh flung back. “And I
-want nothing of you,—nothing that you have offered me. I had rather get
-my head broke in a troop stable twenty times over. But I’ll leave your
-stable. And I’ll never trouble you more, sir, with coming unto you,
-unless you choose to send for me again.” All this he said fast, but
-without raising his voice, and throughout he kept his eyes fixed on the
-colonel, who stood with his clinched hand resting on the table, and a
-black look on his face. But Hugh gave him no time to answer, just said,
-“Good morrow, sir,” with much dignity, set his cap on his head, and
-walked out of the room. He took great pains to close the door carefully
-behind him.
-
-Once outside upon the highway, he became aware that his face was burning
-hot and every fibre of his body seemed braced as for actual battle.
-Heading blindly toward Shrewsbury he tramped along fiercely, while he
-went over and over the incidents of the last half-hour. If any man but
-his own father had dared speak so contemptuously and so untruly of him!
-No, if it had been another than his father, it would not have mattered.
-But that Colonel Gwyeth, of all men, should hold him such a miserable
-fellow, and give him no chance to prove himself better!
-
-Just then he heard behind him Ridydale’s voice: “Master Hugh! Stay a
-moment, sir.” The corporal had plainly run from the house, but, so soon
-as Hugh halted, he sobered his pace and came up at a more dignified
-gait. “On my soul, sir, I meant not to put all awry,” he broke out at
-once.
-
-“Did you bear the tale of that flogging unto him?” Hugh asked hotly.
-
-“Ay. But not as you think, sir, on my honor.” Ridydale strode at Hugh’s
-side while he poured out the story: “I had taken me to the stables and
-dragged the truth from the knaves there. Well, I’ll settle that score
-with Jeff Hardwyn. I was hot with it all when I came to the colonel, and
-he bespeaks me very careless and cool, if ’twas his son indeed, belike
-in time, and so on. I might ha’ known ’twas but the way of him and he
-would yet make it right, but I blurted out he’d best move quickly for
-his son’s sake, not leave him to be buffeted by every cullion in his
-stables. Well, he got the whole story of me then, sir, and off he goes
-into one of his fine Gwyeth rages, and packs off Rodes after you, and
-rates every one in the house on whom he can put hands until you come.
-And I left him in such another rage. Why in Heaven’s name did you go
-about to defy him so, sir?”
-
-“Because he drove me to it,” Hugh retorted, and pressed on with his face
-set to the front.
-
-“Well, no one is driving you now that you keep such a pace. Whither are
-you going, an’t like you?”
-
-“Shrewsbury. To seek in all the troop stables till I find those who will
-employ me.”
-
-“Nay, nay, lad, come back with me, if you have it in heart to forgive
-me. On my soul, I meant not so to dash your fortunes. By the Lord, I’ve
-a liking for you, sir, in spite of your meek bearing. And I doubt not
-your father would see there was some good in you, in time. Only come
-back, and mayhap he—”
-
-“Before I’d beg of Colonel Gwyeth now, I’d go carry a musket for a
-common foot soldier,” Hugh answered.
-
-“Well, you’ve not your father’s spirit,” Ridydale jerked out
-impatiently.
-
-Hugh turned on him: “I trust I’ve not. I trust I’ll never live to cast
-off a son of my own.”
-
-At that Ridydale stared blankly, then stopped short and burst out
-laughing. “By the Lord, you are the colonel over again, sir, whether it
-like you or not! My faith, and he does not realize it even now, no more
-than I did. Why, there’s mettle in you, sir, after all. Now come back.”
-
-But Hugh very plainly showed his whole intent was turned to Shrewsbury,
-so at length Ridydale abruptly yielded. “I’ll come along with you,” he
-offered. “Very like I can find employment for you there, sir. If you
-care to trust unto me—”
-
-“Ay, and I thank you too,” Hugh answered, touched for the moment, till
-he remembered that Ridydale cared for him only as he would have cared
-for a dog, had it borne the name of Gwyeth.
-
-After that they trudged on in silence, past the huddled, outlying
-houses, through the west gate of Shrewsbury, and so into the crowd and
-confusion of the garrison streets. It was somewhat past noon, Hugh
-judged by the position of the sun, and then the sun was shut out, as
-they turned into a narrow byway where the mud was deep in the shadow of
-the tall houses. “This has not much the look of a troop stable,” Hugh
-suggested, as Ridydale halted and knocked at the dark rear door of what
-seemed a considerable mansion.
-
-But Ridydale was speaking a word aside to the serving man who opened,
-and paid no heed. Presently he stepped in, bidding Hugh follow, and
-then, leaving him alone in a dingy anteroom, he walked away with the
-servant. Seating himself on a bench by the wall Hugh tried to run over
-the morning’s events, and then to put them by and think only of what was
-before him: stable-boy, trooper one day, perhaps. Only it was not a good
-thing to hope forward to, so he drummed his finger-tips on the bench and
-wondered why Ridydale delayed.
-
-Just then there came a quick, light step outside the inner door. “Where
-is he?” a shrill voice cried. The door was kicked open, and there
-plunged in headlong a slim figure in blue. “Hugh, you scoundrel! Where
-have you been? Why did you not seek me out at first? Hang me if I be not
-glad to see you, old lad.”
-
-“Frankie Pleydall!” was all Hugh could get out for the arms about his
-neck that were near to strangling him.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX
- THE WAY TO WAR
-
-
-“That was friendly conduct of you!” Frank Pleydall, having ended his
-last hot tirade, suffered himself to fall back once more with his
-shoulders against one arm of his big chair and his legs hanging over the
-other. “I take it, had not that tall corporal of yours come hither and
-opened up the matter to us, you’d have gone sweat in a stable, eh? On
-your honor, Hugh, did you enjoy the life?”
-
-“Would you?” Hugh retorted, and then, as he looked at Frank’s curls and
-fair skin, the impossibility of his going through such experience came
-home to him. He shrugged his shoulders and, turning to the mirror, went
-on dragging the comb through his rebellious hair, rather slowly, for to
-be cleanly and freshly clad was an unwonted sensation, to enjoy which he
-was willing to dally a trifle in dressing. From time to time he paused
-to glance at Frank, who lounged and chatted, just as he had done in the
-old days at school, or to look about the dark room, with great bed and
-heavy furniture, that recalled to him his grandfather’s chamber at
-Everscombe. After all, he still felt at home in well-ordered life;
-“outcast” was not stamped upon him for all time. In Frank’s stockings
-and shirt, which was rather scant for him, and a certain Cornet
-Griffith’s gray breeches, and another officer’s half-worn shoes, swept
-up in the general levy Frank had made on the nearest wardrobes, he
-thought himself for a moment the same young gentleman who had left
-Everscombe a month before. Then, chancing to meet the blue eyes that
-looked back at him out of the mirror, he realized this was not the face
-he used to know; this face was thin, so the jaws seemed squarer, and
-there was a firmer set to the lips, and a new depth to the eyes. A
-slight cut on one cheek and a bruise above one eye he noted, too,
-without great resentment against those who had given them; such marks
-would pass quickly, he knew, but the endurance and obedience he had
-acquired with them would remain.
-
-“I should think it would pleasure you to study that well-favored face,”
-Frank chuckled lazily. “When you’re done, sir, get on your coat, and
-I’ll take you to my father.”
-
-Hugh pulled on Cornet Griffith’s gray jacket, which was somewhat too
-large for him, and stood turning back the long sleeves. “What a tall
-fellow you seem!” his comrade broke out, bringing his feet down to the
-floor and sitting forward in his chair. “On my conscience, I could swear
-you were more than six months elder than I.”
-
-“So could I,” Hugh answered thoughtfully.
-
-“Well, for all that you are not to treat me like a boy as the other men
-do; you’re nothing but a lad yourself.”
-
-Hugh laughed, and put his hand down on Frank’s shoulder. “We’ll be good
-comrades as we ever have been,” he said. “I shall never forget how
-kindly you have used me this day.”
-
-“Oh, hang all that!” Frank put in hastily. “You’d do the like for me.
-And ’tis pleasure for me to have you with me. You can share my
-chamber,—there’s space enough for one to be lonesome,—and we’ll go to
-the wars together, eh?”
-
-The realization of part of the boyish plan he had brought with him from
-Everscombe pleased Hugh gravely, but he had been too often disappointed
-to clutch eagerly at any hope, so he only said, “I’d like it right
-well,—if your father wish me to stay.”
-
-“If I wish it, he will,” Frank answered confidently, and so they went
-arm in arm down the stairs.
-
-Large as the house was, Sir William and the officers of his troop
-contrived to fill it only too full, Hugh concluded, after Frank had
-haled him, to his great embarrassment, into several rooms, and presented
-him formally to all the men on whom he could lay hands. Of the number he
-best remembered a dry-spoken Captain Turner, who told him, with an
-implication that made Hugh’s face redden, that he ought in justice to
-notify the rebels that he had joined the king. He remembered, too, a
-long-legged Cornet Griffith, whose boyish face at sight of him took on
-such a rueful look that Hugh suspected the loan of the gray clothes had
-been a forced one. He ventured a private expostulation to Frank, who
-merely laughed: “Oh, Ned Griffith is a cousin of mine, so he ought to be
-glad to lend me his goods.—And here I have found my father out at last.”
-
-With that he dragged Hugh by the sleeve into a retired parlor, where Sir
-William Pleydall, a stout florid man of near sixty, was sitting at a
-table dictating to a secretary. “Here is Hugh Gwyeth, sir, of whom
-Colonel Gwyeth’s corporal told you,” Frank announced. “You’ll entertain
-him as a gentleman volunteer, will you not, sir?”
-
-“Will you be silent, Francis, till I have done with this piece of work?”
-Sir William burst out.
-
-Frank knelt down on a chair with his elbows on the table and his chin in
-his hands, so the candlelight fell across his girlishly fair face. “I am
-right sorry, sir,” he began winningly, “I did not mark you were busied.
-I had thought—you would gladly aid a friend of mine. Have I offended you
-greatly, sir?”
-
-“No, Frank,” Sir William answered hastily, and, putting by the papers he
-held, motioned Hugh to come over to him. “I remember you very well,
-sir,” he began. “You were home with Frank one Michaelmas time. So you
-ran away from that school? ’Twas very well done of you. That man Masham
-is a cozening, foul-mouthed knave of a crop-headed Puritan.” Sir
-William’s face flushed and Frank made haste to change the subject. “You
-promised me Hugh should stay with me, sir, you’ll recollect.”
-
-“If he care to,” Sir William made answer. “You look sober enough, Master
-Gwyeth, to keep my lad in proper behavior.”
-
-“I would gladly serve you, Sir William, in any way I could,” Hugh said
-earnestly. “I think I could fight—”
-
-Sir William began laughing. “Call yourself a gentleman volunteer, if
-’tis any satisfaction to you,” he said, and seemed about to end the
-conversation; but, after a second glance at Hugh, asked abruptly in a
-lower tone, “Between ourselves, sir, what vice was there in you
-wherefore your father would not entertain you?”
-
-“I did not chance to please him,” Hugh answered.
-
-“But you are his only son, are you not?” asked Sir William, looking, not
-at Hugh, but at Frank, who was still kneeling by the table.
-
-“Yes, Sir William,” Hugh replied, with his eyes suddenly lowered.
-
-The baronet was silent a moment, then, “Stay with us as long as you
-please, my lad,” he said in a kinder tone than he had yet used, and with
-that, abruptly taking up his papers, turned again to his secretary.
-
-Hugh came out in silence from the little parlor, and for a time, while
-he enjoyed the realization that he had not lost a boy’s capacity for
-feeling happy and hopeful, could make no reply to Frank’s brisk chatter.
-But, before the evening was over, he made amends to Master Pleydall,
-for, snugly settled in a window-seat with his friend, he recounted to
-him not only the distinctions he hoped to win in the war, but all that
-had befallen him in the last six months. Frank, hugging his knees in his
-excitement, wished audibly he had been with Hugh to run away; two days
-without food seemed so slight a thing when told. But Strangwayes’ share
-in events surprised him enough to make him leave clasping his knees and
-sit up straight: “Met my Cousin Dick? What good fortune for you! He used
-to be a gay kindly fellow, the best liked of all my father’s nephews.
-What manner of man is he grown now?”
-
-Hugh’s eager account made Frank look dubious. “Very like when he comes
-again you’ll not wish to be my comrade any more,” he suggested
-jealously.
-
-“You’re somewhat of a fool, Frank,” Hugh answered candidly. “Tell me
-now, have you had news of Dick of late?”
-
-“Ay, he’s still with Butler’s troop; we only learned that on coming out
-of Worcestershire two days back. He is but just recovered from his wound
-and fever—”
-
-“Do you think, Frank,” Hugh interrupted, “to-morrow we might walk over
-to the village and see him?”
-
-“I take it you’ll not,” Frank retorted. “Where have you kept yourself
-from the news? To-morrow we march southward to flay the skin off that
-old fox, the rebel Earl of Essex. We’ll make short work of him, and
-then—” he trailed off into an exact exposition of the way the war would
-go, which ended only at bedtime.
-
-Next day, as Frank had promised, in a keen, clear weather that made the
-throngs of troop-horses prance and gave a vividness to every bright coat
-and sword-hilt, the southward march began. Hugh, riding forth bravely
-with Frank, Captain Turner, and others of Sir William’s officers, felt
-he could have shouted for mere pleasure in the sight of the plunging
-horses, the troops of men, and the throngs of friendly townsfolk that
-lined the streets of Shrewsbury. In every fibre of him was a bracing
-sensation, not only from the crisp air and the sunlight, but from the
-mere feeling of the horse moving beneath him and the ordered motion all
-about him of men and beasts. Now first it came over him that, even if he
-might not serve with his father, he was glad that he was one of his
-Majesty’s great marching army, bound to fight for the king.
-
-At the east gate, by which all must pass, horses and men were wedged
-thickly, so presently Hugh found himself forced to one side of the
-gateway, where his progress was checked. An ammunition wagon had broken
-down and blocked the way ahead, the word ran through the crowd, whereat
-some men swore, and others, laughing, took the delay merrily. While they
-were waiting thus, an officer with one trooper attending rode headlong
-into the thick of them and there stuck fast. “You’ll need slacken pace,
-sir, you’ll find,” Turner called to him.
-
-“I’ve no wish to show my steed’s quality,” replied the other. “But I’d
-fain be with a troop of mine that’s somewhere ahead on the road ’twixt
-here and Staffordshire.” He impatiently thrust back the flapping brim of
-his felt hat, and Hugh was made sure of what he had guessed by the
-voice, that it was Colonel Gwyeth himself.
-
-At first he felt a kind of trembling, which was foolish, he told
-himself; for he no longer feared the man. So he did not even try to urge
-his horse forward, but suffered the beast to keep his stand, while he
-gazed fixedly at the colonel. All through the press ran a swaying
-motion, which soon forced Colonel Gwyeth, still in loud speech with
-Turner, knee to knee with Hugh, and at the touch he faced toward him.
-Hugh felt a thrill go through him, but he looked his father squarely in
-the eyes and, lifting his hat a trifle, said, “Good morrow, sir.”
-
-“In the name of the fiend!” Gwyeth broke out; he had to turn in his
-saddle to say it, for the movement in the throng had now brought him
-level with the nose of Hugh’s horse. “Well, sir, you seem fully able to
-fend for yourself.”
-
-So he was swept away, and next instant Ridydale following him was up
-alongside. “’Tis all well, Master Hugh?” he asked in a low tone as he
-brushed by.
-
-“Ay, thanks to you,” Hugh replied, and then Ridydale was forced away, so
-he lost him in the ruck of horsemen. After that he gave heed only to
-edging his own beast forward till they were out upon the highway, where
-they found the road so nearly choked with the riders of their troop,
-which they presently overtook, that a swift pace was still out of the
-question. This was somewhat of a relief to Hugh, for the borrowed sorrel
-which he bestrode was of no great speed, and made him think sadly of the
-bay horse he had ridden on the headlong dash from the “Golden Ram.”
-Frank, however, who was capitally mounted on his roan mare, The Jade, so
-named for her wretched temper, lamented all the morning that he had not
-space sufficient to show his steed’s fine paces.
-
-About noon, as they passed through the village where Hugh had met with
-Butler’s troop, he coaxed Frank out of the ranks and, with an eager hope
-of seeing Dick Strangwayes again, headed for the inn. But the place was
-filled with thirsty troopers, so the tapsters were too busy to pay much
-heed to the boys till Frank tried bribery. Then they learned that the
-day before Butler’s dragoons had started southward to capture some arms
-at a Puritan country-seat; and, though he looked scarce fit to ride, the
-gentleman who had lain ill at the house had gone with them. “Well,
-Cousin Dick must be a hardy fellow,” said Frank, as the two boys got to
-horse again. “Though, to be sure, all the gentlemen of our family are.”
-He flung out his chest as full as possible while he spoke, and presently
-got his hat tilted over one ear at a swaggering angle.
-
-Thus the march went on, by south and east, over ground Hugh had already
-once ridden at a time that now seemed immeasurable years behind him. He
-had let his life at Shrewsbury and his father’s rejection of him slip
-backward in his memory, till now he found himself living heartily in the
-present. Existence meant not to worry at what was past, but to sleep in
-an inn bed or on a cottage floor, whatever quarters fell to the troop,
-to eat what fare Sir William’s officers could procure, and through all,
-wet or dry, to ride on whither the king led.
-
-Very early in the march they entered the hamlet of the “Golden Ram,”
-where Hugh, as he held it to be his duty, sought out Sir William and
-laid before him the story of Emry’s treachery. The baronet, after some
-moments of explosive swearing, sent men to apprehend the fellow, and
-bade Hugh go to guide them. But when they came to the inn they found
-that at their approach Constant-In-Business Emry had discreetly removed,
-and there was left only the red-cheeked maid with the black eyes, who
-joked and flirted with the troopers while she drew them ale. At first
-she did not recognize Hugh, and, when she did, seemed to take little
-interest in him; but, as the men tramped out, she ran after him, and
-catching his arm asked him in a whisper how the dark gentleman fared,
-and if he had been hurt in the scuffle. The news of Dick’s illness made
-her half sniffle, which touched Hugh so that, having no money to give
-her, he tried his friend’s tactics and kissed her. Whereat the wench,
-after a feint at boxing his ears, darted back to the door of the common
-room, where she paused, laughing shrilly. “Ride away, my lad,” she
-called after him. “It takes more than jack-boots and spurs to make a
-man.”
-
-Hugh went back to his horse in some mortification; it might be well
-enough for Dick Strangwayes to be on good terms with all women, but he
-had no will to meddle farther in such matters.
-
-Yet, scarcely a week later, he found himself seated at a table in a
-stuffy chamber, trying by the flicker of a guttering candle to blot out
-a letter to a girl. For the army was now among the Warwickshire fields,
-and the sight of home country brought back to Hugh’s thoughts Everscombe
-and the good friend he had left there. So, while Frank jeered from the
-bed about his sweetheart, and urged him to put out the candle and lie
-down, Hugh, sitting in his shirt-sleeves, painfully scrawled some
-ill-spelt lines to Lois Campion. Much had happened that would only make
-her miserable to know, so he spoke little of his father, only told her
-he was well and happy, and, as Colonel Gwyeth could offer him no place
-in his troop, was serving with Sir William Pleydall. He sent his duty to
-his grandfather, too, and his obedient faithful services to her.
-
-Just there Frank sat up in bed, and, throwing a boot at the candle,
-contrived to overturn the ink-bottle. Shutting his lips, Hugh mopped up
-the stuff, then, still without speaking, began to undress. “Now you’ve
-lost your temper, Master Roundhead,” Frank teased; but Hugh held his
-tongue till he had blown out the candle and stretched himself in the
-bed, then said only, “Good night.”
-
-He was almost asleep when Frank began shaking him. “Hugh, prithee, good
-Hugh,” he coaxed, “are you truly angry? Pray you, forgive me, Hugh.”
-
-“Don’t I always?” Hugh answered, half waked. “Go to sleep, Frank.”
-
-So they began next morning on as good terms as ever, and before night
-had barely avoided two of those quarrels which Frank made a daily
-incident to friendship. But by the following sunrise even Frank was too
-busied with other matters for such diversion. “The rumor’s abroad that
-we’re to bang old Essex soon,” he broke out, as he and Hugh rode a
-little before Sir William’s troop along the stony Warwickshire road.
-
-“We’ve been going to ever since we left Shrewsbury,” Hugh replied. “I
-hope—Perhaps if I did somewhat in battle some one would bestow a
-commission on me; I’d like not to tax your hospitality longer.” Then he
-repented of the last as an ungracious speech.
-
-But Frank, without heeding, ran on: “I hope I shall get a share in this
-work, and I will, if I lose my head for it. You’ll understand, Hugh, my
-father let me have no share in the fighting in Worcestershire; they left
-me at home when they went out to Powick Bridge. On my honor, Hugh, I
-wish sometimes one or two of my sisters had been boys. ’Tis a fine
-thing, no doubt, to be sole heir to a great property, but a man would
-like a little liberty now and again, not to be ever kept close and out
-of harm like a girl. Now I’ll lay you any amount of money my father will
-strive to keep me from this battle.”
-
-Hugh did not look properly sympathetic, so Frank added pettishly: “And
-he’ll rate you no higher than me, so if you are to have a hand in the
-fighting and get you a commission, you must look to yourself.”
-
-None the less Hugh cherished a suspicion that if a battle took place
-under his very nose he would be aware of it, and in that hope he went
-trustingly to sleep next night. Sir William’s troop was quartered about
-a small manor house, some three miles to the west of Edgcott, where the
-king lay. Hugh noted the place merely as one that gave comfortable
-harborage, for he and Frank were assigned a chamber to themselves, where
-they went promptly and wearily to bed. But barely asleep, as it seemed,
-a troublesome dream disturbed Hugh; he thought himself back in the
-Shrewsbury stables, where the horses had all turned restless and stamped
-unceasingly in their stalls. Then of a sudden he sat up in bed, broad
-awake, just in time to see the door kicked open, and Griffith, with his
-coat in one hand and a candle in the other, stumble in. “Up with you,
-youngsters!” he cried. “Essex is coming.”
-
-“Essex?” Frank whimpered sleepily. “We’ll kill him.”
-
-“Leave us the candle, Cornet Griffith,” Hugh cried, springing up and
-beginning to fling on his clothes. “How near are the enemy?” His teeth
-were chattering with the cold of the room and a nervous something that
-made his fingers shake.
-
-“The Lord knows!” Griffith replied, struggling into his coat. “The word
-to get under arms has but just come.”
-
-“Where is my other stocking?” Frank put in piteously from his side of
-the bed. “Hugh, have you seen it?”
-
-“Stockings!” the cornet ejaculated. “There’s a fellow would wait for
-lace cuffs ere he went to fight.”
-
-Thus warned, Hugh put his bare feet into his riding-boots, and,
-fastening his jacket without the formality of donning a shirt, ran for
-the door at Griffith’s heels. Frank, after an unheeded entreaty to wait
-for him, tumbled into his shirt and breeches, and came headlong after
-out into the corridor.
-
-Below in the great hall, under the dim light of candles, men were
-jostling and shouting and pulling on coats and buckling sword-belts, as
-they passed hurriedly out by the black open door. Running blindly after
-the crowd, Hugh collided by the entrance with Captain Turner, who came
-in jauntily, albeit he was in his shirt-sleeves. “How near are the
-enemy, Captain?” Hugh cried, catching him by the arm.
-
-Turner looked down at him with a dry smile. “Not so near, Gwyeth, but
-you’ll have time to wash your face ere they come up.”
-
-Even the mocking tone could not recall Hugh to his self-composure, but
-he ran on out of the house, where he was jostled by troopers and nearly
-trampled on by horses that were being led up. Getting out of harm’s way
-at last in an angle of the front of the house, he became aware that the
-stars were few in the sky and on the horizon a light streak showed; it
-must be nearing dawn. Just then he heard the deadened sound of a horse’s
-being rapidly ridden over turf, and then a strange officer came
-galloping up to the very door. Running thither, Hugh saw him disappear
-into an inner room, whence a little later Sir William Pleydall, a bit
-excited but carefully accoutred, came forth with the announcement that
-the enemy were near by at Kineton, and the troop was to hold itself in
-readiness to march to meet them.
-
-There was sufficient time to follow Captain Turner’s advice, so Hugh and
-Frank went back to their chamber and, while their candle paled in the
-daybreak, dressed methodically. Hugh turned up his boot-tops and
-fastened his buff coat up to his chin, telling himself he should be too
-grateful to Sir William for such a stout jacket to envy Frank his
-cuirass, then, while his companion was tugging a comb through his curly
-hair, sat down on the window-seat to wait. The manor house looked out
-across a valley toward the east, where a light rift in the dun clouds
-showed till presently the sun broke through, and turned the mist in the
-lowlands to silver. “It will be a fair day,” Hugh said, half aloud;
-“’tis a Sunday, too, is it not?”
-
-“Yes,” sneered Frank. “How can so godly a man as Essex fight of a
-Sabbath?” Then he broke off speech for the serious business of strapping
-on his sword, which was long enough to threaten to trip him up. Hugh
-looked on rather enviously, for no one had yet offered him a sword, and,
-as he felt he should not ask for one, he had to content himself with
-sticking in his belt a spare pistol Captain Turner had lent him.
-
-When the two young soldiers came downstairs they found the candles were
-long since out and gray daylight was glimmering through the hall. There
-tables were spread, about which the officers of the troop, all equipped,
-sat or stood while they ate; and, as they had good appetites, Hugh,
-though he was not over-hungry, felt obliged to take bread and meat and
-try to make a hearty meal. All about him was talk of nothing but the
-battle, the numbers the Earl of Essex had in his army, the numbers the
-king could put against him, and the surety of a mighty victory. “Do not
-you be all so certain,” croaked Turner, who had seated himself to make a
-comfortable meal. The others hooted him down, so he changed the subject
-by chaffing Frank on his prodigiously long sword. The boy retorted
-saucily enough to make those about him laugh; indeed, for the most part,
-all were gay now daylight had come and the work before them was clear to
-see. There were wagers laid on the length of the battle, promises of
-high revelry on the spoils of the enemy, and above all calls for wine.
-When the glasses were filled, Sir William, rising at the head of the
-table, gave the king’s health. Hugh remembered afterward the instant’s
-tense hush that came in the talk and loud laughter, then the sudden
-uproar of fists smiting on the table, boot-heels stamping on the floor,
-and through and above all cheers and cheers that made the high-roofed
-hall reëcho. Then, as the tumult died down, the major, Bludsworth,
-cried: “Now, then, lads: To the devil with the Parliament and Essex!”
-
-After that was shouting that made the lungs ache, and glasses shattered
-on the floor, then, as the storm of curses and calls abated, one of the
-officers struck up a song against the Parliament, and some joined in,
-some laughed, and others still cried, “Down with the Parliament!”
-
-Just then a messenger, pushing in, spoke a word to Sir William, who gave
-orders for the troop to prepare itself to march, for the main guard
-would soon be under way.
-
-“Mayhap we can get sight of something from the hill here,” Frank cried.
-“Come out, Hugh, and see.”
-
-Running out into the cold of the nipping morning air they set their
-faces to the steep pitch of hillside behind the manor house. The turf
-was stiff with frost, so climbing was easy, and in a short space they
-were at the summit. Instinctively they turned their first glance to the
-west where the enemy lay. “But ’tis useless gazing,” Frank said, next
-moment, “for ’twixt here and Kineton rises a piece of high land; they
-call it Edgehill. Face back to the east, Hugh. Look, look, ’tis the
-vanguard!”
-
-Winding down the opposite slope they could now distinguish a long line
-of moving figures, horsemen upon horsemen, with the sunlight glittering
-ever the stronger on their cuirasses and helmets. Moment after moment
-the boys delayed there, till the foremost of the riders toiled up a
-lower ridge of the hill, not an eighth of a mile distant from them. The
-hum of the moving files reached them; almost they thought to distinguish
-the devices of the fluttering banners. “But the king’s standard will
-come only with the Life Guards and the foot,” Frank explained. “This
-evening ’twill be waving over all England. God and our right! God and
-King Charles!”
-
-“Yonder below marches a black cornet,” Hugh broke in. “See you, Frank?
-My father’s troop goes under such a banner.”
-
-“Say we draw down nearer to them,” the other cried, and started to
-descend the hill.
-
-“Stay, Frank,” Hugh called, “it must be mid-morning. I think we were
-best get back to our troop.”
-
-“Name of Heaven! I had near forgot,” Frank replied, and, facing about,
-started back to the manor house at full speed.
-
-Hugh followed after, slipping upon the steep hillside, and so they came
-down behind the stables, where after the tumult of the earlier morning
-was a surprising quiet. “Some must have set out already,” Frank panted,
-as he headed for the house.
-
-“I’ll fetch our horses,” Hugh shouted after him, and ran to the stable.
-Within he saw The Jade and the sorrel had already been led forth, and in
-their places, all a-lather and with drooping heads, stood the black and
-bay captured from the Oldesworths. “When were they put here?” Hugh cried
-to the hostler, and, without waiting for an answer, ran for the house;
-if the horses were there, Dick Strangwayes must be close at hand.
-
-But when he came to the house he found neither horse nor man, only off
-to the right the last of Sir William’s troop were pacing round a spur of
-the hill, and on the doorstone stood Frank with his hands tight
-clinched. “Hugh, they’ve taken our horses!” he cried shrilly.
-
-“Have you seen anything of Dick?” Hugh asked in his turn.
-
-“And Bludsworth,—the fiend come and fetch him!—he answered me: ‘The men
-that can strike the stoutest blows for the king must have the horses
-to-day.’” Frank plunged a step or two across the trampled turf, as if he
-had a mind to run after the troop. “He’d not a dared use me so, if he
-knew not my father would approve. I told you they’d cheat us of the
-battle. Never mind, I would not fight for them if I could.”
-
-As Frank’s voice trailed off into inarticulate mutterings Hugh found
-opportunity to question: “Has Dick been here? Tell me.”
-
-“Ay, ’twas he and another from Butler’s troop. Had spurred night and
-day. Their horses were spent. And Dick Strangwayes has taken my Jade.
-Plague on him! He’s too heavy for her; he’ll break her legs. My Jade—”
-
-“He has gone into the battle and I did not see him,” Hugh broke out. “He
-may be hurt again.”
-
-“I care not if he be,” Frank cried, “so he bring her back safe. She was
-the prettiest bit of horseflesh! And I was going to ride her in the
-battle.—Did I not tell you they’d not let us come? And no doubt they’ll
-beat the rebels and ’tis the last encounter and I shall not be there.
-And she was my horse, and she loved me; she almost never kicked at me.”
-Frank’s shrill voice broke suddenly. “Oh, hang it all!” he cried, and,
-dropping down on the doorstone with his head on the threshold, began
-sobbing piteously and choking out more oaths till his voice was lost for
-weeping.
-
-Hugh forgot his own bitter disappointment at not seeing Dick and having
-no chance to earn a commission in the battle, in his first alarm for
-Frank. Then alarm gave place to something akin to disgust at the boy’s
-childishness, and he half started to walk away, but he turned back.
-After all, Frank was younger than he, and he ought to be patient with
-the lad, just as Dick Strangwayes had been patient with him. So he stood
-over Frank and tried to joke him into being quiet.
-
-“But ’twas my horse,” the boy sobbed, “and there’ll never be another
-battle, and I had no part in the last.”
-
-“Well, it does not befit your cuirass to cry like that,” Hugh answered;
-and then, “Look you here, Frank, ’tis not above six miles to Kineton and
-we’ve good legs to carry us. Why should we not have a hand in the
-fighting even now?”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X
- IN THE TRAIL OF THE BATTLE
-
-
-It was long past the noon hour, as the westward bent of the sun showed,
-when the two boys panted up the northern pitch of the rough Edgehill.
-From the manor house to the field they had come at their best pace,
-running at first even up the hillsides, till sheer lack of breath made
-them somewhat moderate their speed. A couple of miles out from the
-house, as they headed aimlessly, with only a vague notion that somewhere
-to the west the battle would be joined, they came up with a body of foot
-alongside which they marched clear to the southern verge of the hill.
-Coming thither, they at last heard the rumor that, while the foot would
-be massed in the centre for the fight, the Prince with the mounted men,
-among whom served Sir William’s troop, would hold the right wing.
-Thereupon they forsook the foot soldiers and, heading to the northward,
-plunged down a steep pitch and across an open bit of ground, where they
-got entangled in a body of pikemen and were nearly ridden down by some
-straggling dragoons, and so came breathless up the last hillside. There
-upon the high ridge, whence for miles they could see the low country
-spreading away toward Kineton and right beneath them the mustering
-squadrons, they made a moment’s halt.
-
-“Below here to the right our men are,” Frank gasped, without breath
-enough to shout. “If I only had The Jade.”
-
-“’Twill be the enemy far over yonder in the plain, where I can just make
-out black things to move,” said Hugh. “There look to be a many of them.”
-
-“There’ll be fewer ere night,” Frank replied.
-
-“Sure, we’ll scarce give battle so late in the day?”
-
-“There’s time enough ’twixt now and sundown to trounce them roundly,”
-Frank answered cheerfully. “Come, let us go down and seek our people.”
-
-They had gone barely a rod along the brow of the hill, when right behind
-them, deadened till now by the yielding turf, sounded the galloping of a
-horse. Glancing over his shoulder, Hugh got sight of a rider spurring in
-their steps with no evident intention of swerving, so he caught Frank by
-the arm and jerked him to one side, none too soon, for the horse’s nose
-almost grazed the boy’s shoulder. “Look how you ride!” Hugh shouted
-angrily. The horseman never deigned to look at him, but, with his dark
-face set to the front and the ends of his scarlet sash fluttering, shot
-by and disappeared down the hillside.
-
-“Curse him!” Frank sputtered, “’twas a coward’s trick; ’twas like him.”
-
-“Like who?”
-
-“’Tis Philip Bellasis, a son of my Lord Bellasis. I pray his comb be cut
-some fine morning.”
-
-“The Lord Bellasis who is of the king’s council?” Hugh asked, as they
-tramped along the hilltop, with ears alert now for more reckless riders
-behind them.
-
-“Ay, a scurvy civilian,” Frank said, with extra swagger; “we of the army
-have no love for them nor they for us. Why, his influence came near
-losing my father his independent command. He would have lumped us in
-with my Lord Carnavon’s horse. Well, we’ll show to-day who’ll save the
-kingdom, meddling lawyers like Bellasis or soldiers like ourselves.”
-
-Then conversation ceased, for reaching a gully in the hillside they gave
-all their thoughts to descending it, and slipped and scuffled in the dry
-bed till Frank had wrenched his ankle and Hugh had a torn coat-sleeve to
-his credit. The gully ending in a small stream, they followed it down
-through a copse of bare bushes that snapped against the face, and so
-came out upon the open plain. Not an eighth of a mile distant, sitting
-ready with their backpieces gleaming and their carabines slung across
-their shoulders, they could see the ranks of horsemen. In the open
-betwixt the boys and the ordered troops messengers were spurring to and
-fro, and now and again, in small groups or man by man, stray horsemen
-straggled by. One such they came upon by the brook, as he was patching a
-broken girth, and Hugh, pausing to lend his aid, asked him what news
-there was in the field. “Why does not the battle begin at once?” Frank
-urged, and, when the man answered the troops were but waiting the word
-to fall on, he caught Hugh’s arm and bade him come forward quickly to
-seek their regiment.
-
-At that the trooper struck in: “Best keep out o’ the press, sir. You’ll
-be trampled to pieces there with small good to the king or to yourself.
-Better bear off to the northward out of harm’s way.”
-
-“But I am here solely to get in harm’s way,” Frank protested; and, when
-Hugh, taking the advice, made for a log bridge to cross the stream,
-followed grumblingly.
-
-Once over, with the intention of taking their final stand at the extreme
-right of the line of waiting horsemen, they pressed northward across the
-uneven plain. They were sliding down the bank to a shallow hollow, when
-the thud, thud of hoofs warned them to look to the westward and there,
-over a slight rise in the ground, a belated troop came at a smart trot.
-Pressing back against the bank Hugh watched the crowded columns
-approach, the bespattered breasts of the horses, their tossing heads,
-and above the waving manes the white faces of the riders. As the head of
-the column came close upon him his eyes rested on its leader, and he saw
-he was a man of middle height with reddish hair, who rode in his shirt
-with neither cuirass nor helmet. Then the troop was sweeping past,
-black, red, and gray horses straining at a trot, and men with steady
-faces and silent lips, among whom, looking closer, Hugh recognized some
-he knew.
-
-But he only gazed without speaking till the last horse had swung down
-the hollow, and Frank, who had been cheering mightily, settled his hat
-on his head again, with an excited, “A brave troop, was it not, Hugh?”
-
-“It was my troop,” Hugh answered. “Did you not note? ’Twas my father led
-them.”
-
-“Oh, ay, to be sure,” replied Frank, making for the opposite side of the
-hollow. “I scarce remembered him, and, to my thinking, he has used you
-so knavishly that he does not merit to dwell in any gentleman’s
-remembrance, and—Hark, there!”
-
-Both halted a moment as from far off on the left came the dull boom,
-boom of cannon. From far to the front an answering crash sounded.
-“They’re falling to it,” Frank cried. “Briskly, Hugh!”
-
-One last spurt that sent the blood beating to the temples and turned the
-breath hot in the throat, and they were stumbling up the little hillock
-for which they had headed. Still, before and on the left, the cannon
-were pounding, and there came, too, in long, undistinguishable shouts,
-the noise of men cheering. The withered grass of the hillside wavered
-before Hugh’s eyes with the very weariness of running, yet he found
-strength in him to pull off his hat and breath to pant out: “For a
-king!”
-
-Then, coming over the brow of the hill, he had sight of the rough plain
-stretching off to the gray west, and across it saw the long ranks of
-horsemen sweeping forward. A gleam of cuirasses and helmets, a glimpse
-of plunging horses and waving swords, a flutter of banners; they had
-charged onward, and only the echo of their shouts still lingered and was
-lost in the throb of cannon. Now first Hugh realized his throat was near
-cracked with cheering and his arm ached with waving his hat; so he
-paused breathless, with his eyes still fastened on the brown dust-cloud
-toward the west. There came a touch on his arm, and putting out his hand
-he grasped Frank’s wrist. Young Pleydall was gasping for breath with a
-choke like a half sob. “If we had only been with them!” he broke out.
-
-“My father is there,” Hugh said, half aloud. He did not tell Frank what
-he was thinking: that, after all, he would rather have a father who,
-even if he did despise and reject his son, was striking good blows over
-yonder, than an indulgent parent like Master Nathaniel Oldesworth, who
-could bear to sit idle at home.
-
-“What if your father is there?” Frank panted in retort. “It does not
-better matters for us. They’re hard at it. Listen to the muskets yonder.
-Come, let us go thither.”
-
-Hugh gave one glance to the west, where even the dust-cloud had faded in
-the distance, and to the south, where a slight swelling of the plain hid
-the sight of conflict; it was from there the tantalizing noise of firing
-came. “’Tis not in human endurance to stay here and not know how the day
-is going,” he burst out, and led the way down into the plain. They
-struck toward the brook they had crossed, and followed its course
-northwestward, almost in the track the Royalist horse had taken.
-
-“They’ve all passed out of sight,” Frank said as he pressed forward,
-half on the run. “They must have driven the rebels clean into Kineton.”
-
-“Hark to the southward!” Hugh answered.
-
-“They will only be shooting down stragglers,” Frank replied confidently.
-“The day’s ours. No living thing could stand up against such a charge.
-Was it not brave? I tell you, Hugh, war is the grandest—”
-
-There the words died away on Frank’s lips, as a few paces before them
-near the brookside he caught sight of a dark, motionless thing. “’Tis
-not—” he faltered, and made a movement as if he had half a mind to fetch
-a circuit about the place.
-
-“Come along,” Hugh said firmly, though he felt the heart contract within
-him. “If he be alive, we must help him.” Walking forward deliberately,
-he halted a step from the object,—a common trooper, he now saw, and by
-his colors one of the king’s men. He lay on his back with his hands
-clinched above his head, and the blood bubbling out through a bullet
-wound in his throat, but he still breathed in short, rattling gasps.
-Perceiving that, Hugh ran to the margin of the brook, and, dipping his
-hat full of water, splashed it over the man’s face; he remembered
-afterward what a dull, dogged face it was under the pain that was
-distorting the brows and lips. He raised the man’s head up against his
-arm. “Fetch more water, Frank,” he bade; then, as the boy turned, it
-seemed something caught and clicked in the trooper’s throat, and his
-head slipped down from Hugh’s arm. Hugh suffered him to sink to the
-ground, and was kneeling beside him, half dazed with the awesomeness of
-what had happened, when Frank came stumbling back. “What!” the younger
-lad cried; “is he—”
-
-“He is gone,” Hugh answered simply. He got up, and walking to the brook
-lay down on the brink and drank; the chill of the soggy turf beneath him
-and the cold water he gulped down seemed to wash away something of the
-horror he had just seen. He rose fairly steadied. “Shall we go forward,
-Frank?” he asked. “There’ll be more such to see.”
-
-“Yes, let us,” Frank said, rather subdued, and so, passing the body of
-the trooper, they went on down the brook.
-
-The farther they advanced, the more ill sights there were to see: horses
-that lay dead or sprawled with disabling wounds yet struggled to rise,
-men with gashed bodies or blackened faces, who were beyond aid, and
-others, bleeding with wounds, who had crawled to their feet and were
-heading for the rear. One horse, a roan, Frank persuaded Hugh, for The
-Jade’s sake, to shoot with his pistol; but after that Hugh, sparing his
-scant supply of ammunition, refused to carry on such work. But they
-tried to aid the wounded men, who came ever more frequently, and with
-them one or two of another sort, unhurt but riding too hastily to pause
-to speak. “The cowardly knaves!” Frank cried. “If I find one of our
-troop turning tail so, hang me if I do not recommend him for a
-flogging.”
-
-But just then there came a white-faced horseman, who, reining up at
-their call, gladly gave them what tidings he could, which were vague
-enough, only the king’s men had swept the rebel horse from off the
-earth, and chased the rest of the army away, and there had been great
-fighting, and a scurvy Roundhead bullet had broke his leg. Would one of
-the young gentlemen reach him a drink of water? He could not dismount.
-Hugh filled the man’s steel cap at the brook, and then he rode slowly
-away.
-
-Farther on, where the conflict had been hotter, they passed more bodies,
-and just the other side of the brook, which they leaped at a narrow
-turn, came upon one lying face down whose long hair gave him to be a
-gentleman. Hugh had bent to see if by any chance he still lived, when
-Frank thrust by him. “Do you not know that head-piece with a nick in
-it?” he cried. “’Tis Ned Griffith.”
-
-At that they had him over on his back and found he was breathing, in
-spite of a great gash in his shoulder that had sheered through the
-cuirass. Tearing off his armor, they splashed water over him till the
-young fellow revived enough to blink his eyes open, groan, and shut them
-again. “Live?” said Frank, pouring another capful of water over him. “Do
-you think a man will die who can fetch a groan like that?”
-
-Griffith’s eyes slowly opened again. “You youngsters?” he asked feebly.
-“Was it the whole troop rode over me?”
-
-Hugh laid open his coat, and, with a certain grim thankfulness that what
-he had unwillingly seen now enabled him without physical shrinking to
-help a friend, bandaged his hurt. “We must carry him to the rear,” he
-finally ordered Frank. “You take his legs, and I’ll manage his head.”
-
-They lifted up Ned Griffith, who hung limp and heavy in their hands, and
-set their faces toward the dark hill whence the king’s army had charged
-forth. The walk out into the field had gone briskly enough, but there
-seemed no end to the return journey. Again and again they had to lay the
-injured man down while they recovered breath; but though wounded
-stragglers passed them, they saw none who could aid them, so of
-necessity they lifted up their burden once more and struggled on.
-Sometimes Frank panted out a grumbling complaint, but Hugh made no
-reply, for his eyes were on the wounded man’s white face and parted
-lips, and he found himself wondering how his father was faring in the
-battle, and what might have befallen Dick Strangwayes.
-
-Of a sudden Frank, letting Griffith’s boots come to the ground abruptly,
-began shouting with all his strength to a brace of loiterers. “Men of
-our troop,” he explained to Hugh, “and not much wounded, Heaven be
-thanked for’t! They can convey Ned to a surgeon, if such a one is in the
-field, and we’ll back to see more.”
-
-Relinquishing their charge on such terms, they set their faces again to
-the field of battle. It was now drawing toward sundown, and the fire to
-the south had slackened. “Mark my words, the war is ended,” Frank
-lamented; “and we have had no part in it, only to tramp about and look
-on those others have killed.”
-
-Hugh must acknowledge to himself it had been a grim afternoon’s work, so
-with some hope of brisker adventures he followed willingly, as his
-companion headed southerly toward the clearer line of a road. “Maybe
-we’ll find our troop if we walk toward Kineton,” Frank suggested. “And
-we could ride back with them.”
-
-“Yes, they should have taken some horses from the rebels by this,” Hugh
-replied, with a nod toward a corpse with an orange sash that lay on the
-edge of the roadway. He stubbornly told himself it was only another
-monument to the Royalist fighting quality, and tried to believe he had
-nearly deadened sympathy in him and calloused his senses to the horror
-of what he must endure if he would follow this life he had chosen.
-
-They faced westward and tramped along the road, but what with ruts and
-mire it proved heavier walking than the fields. “Faith, I’m weary of
-this,” Frank grumbled. “How much farther to Kineton?”
-
-“Let’s bear off on the other side,” suggested Hugh, peering through the
-gathering twilight. “Yonder’s a bit of a hollow and it may be easier
-going.”
-
-They crossed a piece of open level, and, holding this the quickest way,
-jumped down the slight pitch at its farther edge. As they recovered
-footing, they perceived close before them in the lee of the bank two
-bodies lying motionless, one of which seemed that of an officer by its
-better clothes and of a rebel by its orange sash. It was the first
-officer of Essex’s army they had yet noted among the dead, and, with a
-sudden fear that it might be one of his own kindred, Hugh bent over the
-corpse. Finding, to his relief, that the face was strange to him, he was
-turning away, when his eyes chanced to rest upon the other body, that of
-a hulking common foot soldier. As he gazed he thought to see a slight
-tremor pass over it, so, stepping to the man as he lay on his face, he
-shook him by the shoulder.
-
-At the touch the fellow suddenly scrambled to his knees. “Don’t kill me,
-master,” he whined. “Give me quarter.”
-
-Hugh had started back a step or two and pulled out his pistol; the man
-was not even scratched, he perceived, but had feigned dead. Then he
-noted a basket-hilted sword with a leathern baldric that had been
-concealed beneath him as he lay, and he noted, too, that not only did
-the dead officer wear no sword, but his pockets had been turned inside
-out. “So that’s your trade, is it?” Hugh cried. “Robbing the dead of
-your own party, eh?”
-
-“I’ll never do so no more,” whimpered the fellow. “Don’t ’ee shoot.”
-
-The craven tone of the creature harked back to something in Hugh’s
-memory; he leaned a little forward and studied the man’s bearded,
-low-browed face, then drew back with his pistol cocked. “I remember
-you,” he said. “Are you ready to pay back the two shillings and sixpence
-you took from me on the Nottinghamshire crossroad?”
-
-“Is this the padder?” Frank struck in. “Put a bullet through him, Hugh.”
-
-“Don’t ’ee shoot me, master,” the other begged. “I did not kill ’ee
-then, and I might ha’.”
-
-“I am not going to shoot you,” Hugh replied, “but you can give me over
-that sword to pay for what you owe me. And remember, this pistol I hold
-now is in good order,” he added, for he half suspected the fellow was
-plucking up courage as he discovered it was only two lads, not a whole
-troop, had come upon him. So he stood back warily out of the plunderer’s
-reach, while Frank, who was viewing the whole proceeding happily like a
-holiday sport, took up the booty and passed it over to him. Hugh
-gathered the baldric about the sword in his left hand, a little
-hurriedly, for it was beginning to dawn on him that he and Frank had
-strayed pretty far, and where one live rebel was there might be others.
-Just then, over in the plain, he got sight of a straggling horseman or
-two, so he turned upon Frank with a quick order: “Clamber up the slope
-there and make for the road briskly.”
-
-He heard behind him the boy’s quick retreating step, but his eyes were
-still fixed on the scowling rebel, whom he thought well to cover with
-his pistol. “Sit where you are,” he commanded the man, “and offer to
-play me no slippery tricks if you value your skin.” Thus speaking, he
-backed toward the bank, which he ascended slantingly, so as to keep an
-eye on the fellow. But, chancing to look beyond him, he saw one of the
-horsemen was already heading in his direction, so he turned and fair ran
-for the roadway, where Frank was halting for him. “Run,” he called to
-the boy; “’tis a hornets’ nest here.”
-
-Without staying for farther questions, Frank took to his heels down the
-road toward Kineton, and Hugh, after one glance to the right where he
-saw no stragglers of his own party, ran after him. At each stride he
-gained on him, for Frank’s boots and cuirass encumbered the youngster;
-capture was possible, it flashed through Hugh’s head, and with it came
-the reflection that it would be discreditable to be taken in the act of
-plundering a private of foot, for others might not see the justice of
-the case as clearly as he had seen it. Then he found wit to think only
-of the hoof-beats that were now sounding on the roadway behind him,
-louder and louder, and, looking at Frank stumbling on before him, he
-thought what an ill return it would be for all Sir William’s kindness to
-let harm come to the boy. So he halted short and faced back; close
-behind him was one trooper with a yellow sash and somewhat in his rear
-came three others. How long the horse’s head looked, Hugh reflected
-dazedly, and would the man slash down at him with his sword and make
-such a gash as he had seen upon Ned Griffith? Then there was no space
-for reflection or remembrance, only the horse’s head grazed by him, he
-saw the man lean forward in his saddle, and, thrusting up his pistol
-with the muzzle aimed under the man’s upraised arm, he fired. The sword
-grazed down weakly across his shoulder, the edge slipping harmlessly
-over the stout buff; then the sword fell to the roadway, the horse
-clattered forward a pace or two, and the rider reeled headlong from the
-saddle. The horse went galloping away down the road with the stirrups
-beating against his flanks.
-
-A shout from behind brought Hugh to his senses. He ran forward, got a
-fleeting sight of the rebel trooper, who lay outstretched on his back in
-the roadway with a grayish shade gathering on his face, then came up
-with Frank and caught him by the arm. “Off the road, quick!” he panted.
-“They’ll ride us down.”
-
-They went headlong over the low embankment and struggled blindly forward
-into the field. Hugh had jammed his pistol into his belt, wondering how
-many seconds it would take him to draw his sword clear for a final
-stand, when Frank reeled up against him, crying: “My ankle! I’ve
-wrenched it again.” With that he pitched down at Hugh’s feet, and Hugh,
-clapping his hand to the hilt of the sword, stood over him and faced
-about. Then he saw the rebel horsemen had drawn rein in the roadway and
-were watching them but not following, behind him he heard horses coming,
-and Frank, suddenly scrambling to his feet, began shouting. “King’s men!
-Hurrah!”
-
-Hugh turned about in time to see a little squad of eight or ten horsemen
-with scarlet scarfs come riding out of the twilight and pull up
-alongside them. There was something familiar in the broad shoulders of
-the leader and the gruff voice in which he began: “’Tis happy for you,
-gentlemen, that we—”
-
-“Corporal Ridydale, have you forgot me?” Hugh interrupted breathlessly,
-going up to the man’s stirrup.
-
-“Forgot you, sir?” Ridydale made answer, “Lord, no, sir. Jump up behind
-me. ’Tis not a healthy place hereabouts for men of our color.—Here,
-Rodes, take t’other young gentleman up behind you.”
-
-After delaying long enough to slip his new baldric over his shoulder,
-Hugh scrambled up behind Ridydale, and the little squad headed across
-the field toward Edgehill. How had the battle gone, Hugh asked, as soon
-as he had recovered breath; and Ridydale told him the Prince and Colonel
-Gwyeth had hunted the rebels clear beyond Kineton. “The knaves banged
-our troop some deal, but we had brave plundering in the town,” the
-corporal ended. “‘How has the day gone in the rest of the field?’ I know
-not; we have done our part.”
-
-“Colonel Gwyeth had no hurt?” Hugh broke in.
-
-“No thanks to him that he hasn’t, the madman!” Ridydale answered. “He
-would fight in his shirt, for he swore these fellows were too paltry for
-a gentleman to guard against. So he laid off his armor ere he rode into
-the fight. Now that, sir, is the temper the gentlemen of your house have
-ever been of, and ’tis the only fitting temper.”
-
-It looked like the beginning of their usual disagreement, so Hugh kept
-silent, the more willingly since he found himself tired so that even
-talking required exertion. He leaned rather heavily against Ridydale,
-and watched the field, that looked gray in the deepening twilight, slip
-by them, and, when he shut his eyes, still saw the field with the
-trampled bodies of men and writhing chargers. Then, of a sudden, their
-horse pulled up. “I take it we’ll rendezvous here,” he heard the
-corporal say. “Perchance you’ll bide with us till the colonel comes,
-sir?”
-
-“No,” Hugh said hurriedly, slipping down from the horse. “Thank you,
-Ridydale. We’d have been in a bad way but for you.”
-
-Then he stumbled away with Frank across the hummocky plain, which
-darkness made all the more treacherous, and, scrambling up the hill to
-the broad summit, toiled about among the scattered troops that were
-straggling back. “I am clean spent” his companion said sorrowfully. “I
-would not be a foot soldier for all the gold in the kingdom. Where think
-you my father is, Hugh?”
-
-“We’ll try to find him,” Hugh answered, with what cheerfulness he could
-summon, and turned aside to ask a friendly-looking soldier if he knew
-where Sir William Pleydall’s troop was stationed. The man did not know,
-and, indeed, in the confusion and darkness no one seemed to know
-anything; so the two boys could only tramp up and down, Frank
-expostulating crossly and Hugh too utterly weary to respond, till at
-last they got sight of a figure that looked familiar in the dusk.
-Running thither they found it was Major Bludsworth, whereupon Frank
-nearly hugged him. “I never was so glad to see you before, sir,” he
-cried. “Where is my father, and when are we going to have anything to
-eat?”
-
-Bludsworth took Frank by the arm, and half carried him a rod or so to a
-small fire beneath a bank about which Sir William and a little knot of
-his officers were standing. “Here’s a runaway in quest of you, Sir
-William,” he announced brusquely.
-
-“Francis, you here?” Sir William asked, with some displeasure.
-
-“Prithee, do not be angry, sir,” Frank protested, “I’ve had a gallant
-day of it. And I have not had the least hurt. And Hugh here killed a
-man, sir. And has Dick Strangwayes brought back my Jade?”
-
-“The beast is unscathed,” answered Sir William, drawing Frank to him
-with a hand on his shoulder. “And another time you may as well ride in
-on her back at the start and done with.”
-
-“Master Strangwayes has come out safe, then?” Hugh’s eagerness made him
-strike in.
-
-“No hurt at all, his usual fortune,” Sir William replied, before he
-turned away to one of those beside him.
-
-Hugh had to check his questions on his tongue’s end, and wait and look
-about in the hope each instant that Dick might come tramping to the
-fire. But the minutes ran on, Frank had settled himself by the blaze,
-and Sir William had no time to heed a boy’s concerns, so Hugh must
-finally take courage and, going to Bludsworth, ask of Dick’s
-whereabouts. “Young Strangwayes?” replied the major. “Why, he has gone
-back to the house we quartered at; some one had to convey Cornet
-Griffith thither.”
-
-“Well, he’s left the road behind him,” Hugh answered stoutly, and,
-turning from the fire, faced into the black of the night.
-
-At first, what with the foot and horse soldiers and camp followers to be
-met, the gleam of the bivouac fires on either hand, and the tumult of
-the army all about him, it was brisk enough journeying. But, as he
-passed out from the circle of the encampment and the bustle around him
-subsided, he found his riding-boots felt heavy and the going was far
-slower than it had been that morning. It was dark overhead, so he
-stumbled, and once his new sword tripped him. He put his hand to the
-hilt so as to strike up the blade, and then as he trudged he fell to
-wondering what manner of man the sword had belonged to, and he thought
-on the trooper with the wound in his throat, and the many faces of dead
-men. When a branch snapped in a copse to his left he halted short with
-his heart thumping, then told himself he was a fool and tried to whistle
-as he walked. But there came on him a desire to look back over his
-shoulder, and the echo of his whistle made his blood thrill
-unpleasantly. There was a thicket he must pass through, he remembered,
-before he reached the manor house; he dreaded it long, and, when he came
-to it, clinched his hands tight and walked slowly, while the gray face
-of the trooper he had himself slain dazzled up and down before his eyes.
-Half through the thicket he broke into a run, and, with not even will
-enough left in his tired body to restrain himself, plunged heavily
-across the open to the door of the hall, where there was light. He
-stumbled against the door, which resisted, and, in a panic he could not
-comprehend, he shook it.
-
-“Gently, gently,” came a voice that calmed him. The door swung open, and
-in the candlelight that shone within he saw Dick Strangwayes, with his
-cuirass and helmet off, his coat hanging unfastened, and the same old
-half-laughing look in his eyes, while his lips kept sober.
-
-Hugh pitched in headlong and blindly griped his friend in his arms.
-“Dick, Dick,” he burst out, “I have found you. And, Dick, I—I killed a
-man to-day.”
-
-“Is that all?” Strangwayes drawled with one arm about him. “Why, I
-killed three.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
- COMRADES IN ARMS
-
-
-There were no dreams for Hugh after he had stretched himself out on a
-bench in the hall as Strangwayes bade him. He was too exhausted in body
-and spirit to question or speak; he only knew he was glad he had found
-his friend once more, and the cushion beneath his head felt soft, so he
-went dead asleep, and lost at last the remembrance of the sights of the
-day’s carnage. He had no dreams and he was loath even to have a waking;
-some one shook him again and yet again, but he only murmured drowsily,
-with a voice that seemed far off to him, till he was pulled up sitting.
-He screwed his knuckles into his eyes, turning his face from the
-candlelight, and he heard Strangwayes laugh: “Look you here, Captain
-Turner. This gentleman must have a clear conscience by the way he
-sleeps.”
-
-The thought that Turner’s sharp eyes were on him made Hugh face about
-and sit blinking at the candles. The hall where they had that morning
-eaten was quite bare now and dark, except for the two flickering candles
-and the uncertain firelight. In front of the chimney-piece Turner, all
-equipped to ride forth, was making a lunch of a biscuit and a glass of
-wine he held in his hands, and the only other occupant of the apartment
-was Dick Strangwayes, who, wrapped to the chin in his cloak, stood by
-the bench. “Awake, eh?” he smiled down at Hugh. “Good morrow, then.”
-
-“What’s the time?” Hugh asked, peering across the hall at the windows,
-which were squares of blackness.
-
-“Past two and nipping cold. Are you fit to ride back to the field with
-us?”
-
-For answer Hugh staggered to his feet, marvelling at the stiffness in
-his legs, and tried to hold himself erect. “Here, on with this,” said
-Strangwayes, throwing a cloak about him. “I judged ’twas yours, and if
-’tis not, the man who left his goods so careless deserves to lose them.
-And slip this sash over your sword-belt. It was Ned Griffith’s, but
-he’ll not need—”
-
-“He’s not dead?” Hugh broke out.
-
-“No, no; but he’ll be of little more use than a dead man for the next
-four months. Slash in the breast and his leg broke by some of our horse
-as he lay. You’ll need to look you out a new cornet, Captain Turner.”
-
-“They dropped my lieutenant, too, down by Kineton,” said Turner, putting
-by his glass. “Gwyeth’s troop and mine, there on the flank, we suffered
-for it. Do you judge those knaves will have the horses saddled ere
-daybreak?”
-
-“Is there more fighting to come?” Hugh questioned sleepily, as he tried
-to tie the scarlet sash across his chest.
-
-“Enough to flesh that maiden sword of yours,” Turner paused at the door
-to reply. “By the bye, Master Strangwayes, is it true that Captain
-Peyton was slain in the charge? He owes me five sovereign on my wager
-that neither side could call the day theirs, and if he has got himself
-killed!” Turner shrugged his shoulders and passed out.
-
-“What has brought him hither?” Hugh yawned.
-
-“Poor old lad! Eat a bit and try to wake up,” urged Strangwayes. “What
-has brought Michael Turner? Why, his love for that poor little troop he
-let get so wofully peppered in the fight. He has been ravaging the
-country for a horse-load of bread with which to fill their stomachs, ere
-the battle he is sure will come this day. And now, question for
-question, what brings you here, so far from Colonel Gwyeth?”
-
-Hugh put down on the table the piece of bread he had been eating, and
-looked across at Strangwayes, then blurted out plainly the whole story.
-He was glad to find he could tell it almost without passion now, with
-not a censuring word for Colonel Gwyeth, and even with an effort to make
-a jest of some of the happenings. He heard Strangwayes mutter something
-like an oath when he described his first meeting with the colonel, but
-there was not another sound till he told of the affair with Hardwyn;
-then Strangwayes drew in his breath between his teeth and turned toward
-the fire. Hugh concluded hurriedly and half frightened, and waited for
-an answer; then broke out, “Dick, sure you’re not going to despise me
-for it as he does?”
-
-Strangwayes came to him and put both hands on his shoulders. “No, Hugh,”
-he said, “I need all the scorn that’s at my command for that precious
-father of yours.”
-
-The jar of the opening door made them stand apart and face to the end of
-the hall, as Turner looked in to say, “Do you ride with me, gentlemen?”
-
-Outside, a chilly wind that stung the face was abroad, and the sky was
-black with clouds. Hugh paused on the threshold to blink the candlelight
-out of his eyes, then, peering into the dark, made out the dim figures
-of Turner, already in the saddle, and of two of his mounted troopers who
-held led horses, and, last of all, let his gaze rest on a half-wakened
-groom who came up with two fully equipped chargers. At sight of them
-Hugh jumped down from the doorstone, and, after one closer glance,
-cried, “Why, Dick, will you suffer me ride the bay?”
-
-“The bay?” Strangwayes answered from the black horse’s back. “Your bay,
-you young fool! Why in the name of reason did you not keep the beast
-with you, since you captured him?”
-
-Hugh settled himself in the saddle and turned the horse’s head in his
-companion’s tracks, too full of joy to heed anything, save that the bay
-that had known him in the Everscombe stables, that Peregrine Oldesworth
-would not suffer him even to stroke, was now his, all his. He put out
-one hand to stroke the warm neck, and whistled softly to see the slender
-ears erected.
-
-“Hold up, man! You’re riding me down,” came Strangwayes’ voice beside
-him, and he found he had pushed forward till they were crowding knee to
-knee.
-
-“Do you honestly mean me to keep this fellow?” Hugh asked.
-
-“If you can,” Strangwayes replied; “I’m thinking you’ll keep him on
-three legs if you do not spare talk and look to him over this rough
-ground.”
-
-Hugh laughed happily, then drew the reins tauter in his hands, and
-strained his eyes into the dark ahead lest some pitfall open to swallow
-up the bay horse from under him. The road was so short, as he traversed
-it now, that he was sorry when the fires on Edgehill twinkled in the
-distance, and, picking their way cautiously, they came to the rendezvous
-of Turner’s troop. “I am keeping by the captain, do you see?”
-Strangwayes whispered Hugh as they dismounted. “He has lost his
-lieutenant, and Sir William has promised to set me in the first
-vacancy.”
-
-Of the rest of the night Hugh only remembered that his knees were very
-warm with the fire by which he sat, and his back was cold in spite of
-his cloak. The flames crackled bravely, and Strangwayes talked nonsense,
-to which Captain Turner listened in deep and sober approbation. But
-Hugh, crowded close up to Strangwayes, said nothing, just gazed at the
-fire and closed his eyes once in a while, till at last he went
-ignominiously asleep with his head on his friend’s shoulder.
-
-Waking with neck stiff and arm cramped, he found to his delight the east
-all pale in the dawn, so, slipping the bridle of the bay horse over his
-arm, he went strolling across the encampment till he could find out
-Frank and show him his new mount. But Frank, now confident in the
-possession of The Jade, discovered many flaws in the bay, which he set
-forth in horseman-like phrases till Hugh went sauntering back again to
-Strangwayes. At Turner’s fire he found a newcomer, a brown-haired young
-officer, who had once taken him for a horse-boy, whom Strangwayes now
-made known to him under the name of George Allestree, guidon in Captain
-Butler’s dragoons, and serving as a volunteer at Edgehill. Discreetly
-ignoring their former meeting, Allestree was effusively grateful to Hugh
-for the use of the bay, which Strangwayes had lent him to ride thither,
-and altogether proved so pleasant spoken a fellow that Hugh ended by
-putting out of mind the memory of his previous conduct.
-
-With Allestree and Strangwayes Hugh passed the long day, now talking a
-bit by the ashes of last night’s fire, then rising to stretch his legs
-and look to his horse, then back to the fire again, where he ate such
-rations as were dealt to him and felt rather hungry afterward. It was a
-day of uncertainty and idleness beneath which lay a tense expectancy;
-any moment a blow might be struck for the king, yet the moments passed
-and nothing was done. About noon Turner stalked off to confer with Sir
-William, but he came back whistling and non-committal; indeed, there was
-nothing but the old story to tell: his Majesty’s army rested on Edgehill
-and my Lord Essex’s army was drawn up in the plain below, and each
-looked at the other, but neither moved to strike.
-
-They were not up in action till mid-afternoon of the next day, when
-there came word the rebels were retreating, and, right on the heels of
-that, a definite order for the horse to form in the plain. Once more
-Hugh scrambled down the slope of Edgehill, but this time his feet were
-braced in the stirrups, his sword smote against his horse’s flank, and
-all about him, in loud talk of the victory they were soon to gain, other
-mounted men were descending. Once more he had sight of ranks of horsemen
-marshalling for a charge, but now he was himself in the thick of it,
-and, when the word was passed along, waved his sword with the rest, then
-galloped forward amidst his comrades. Before him the plain swept into
-the western sky, where the clouds were shiny with the sun they hid, the
-wind came sharp in his face, and around him men shouted and horses
-plunged till his own beast, too, catching the joy of movement, reared
-up. This was war, Hugh thought, and only for a second recalled it was
-the same bloody field over which he had tramped not eight and forty
-hours ago. Then across the plain he saw a cluster of roofs, and, as they
-spurred faster, made out the windows of the cottages, and men moving in
-the street. At that the shouting in the ranks about him became a yell of
-onset, and he, too, rising up in his stirrups, screamed, “For a king, a
-king!”
-
-Of what followed nothing was quite clear. There were houses, a woman
-that ran shrieking in front of his horse, and a Roundhead soldier he saw
-bleeding upon a doorstone. He heard shots to the front, saw some of his
-side press past him in flight, and after that he was mixed in a
-confusion of horses and men of both parties. He struck wildly in with
-his sword, whereat a Royalist dragoon, swinging round in his saddle,
-cursed him volubly in German and in English as not old enough to be
-trusted with cutting tools, and crowding past the man he left him still
-cursing. Then he was wedged into a lane, where was a baggage-wagon with
-a teamster on it who tried to lash forward his four horses. One Cavalier
-trooper slashed up at the fellow where he sat, while another was cutting
-the traces. Up at the far end of the lane was a shouting, “The rebels
-are coming!” Hugh urged the bay forward to the heads of the leaders,
-and, bending from the saddle, cut the traces with his sword. Then a ruck
-of the Royalist troops was about him, and, as men caught at the freed
-horses, he judged it proper to seize one of them by the bit and hold to
-him, while the crowd forced him back down the lane, past the wagon and
-the teamster dead beneath its wheels. From the rear came shots, but
-there was no facing about in such a throng, so with the rest Hugh swept
-back at a gallop through Kineton out into the open country.
-
-The pace slackening now, he slipped his sword back into the sheath, and,
-taking time to look about him, saw some of those who rode near had been
-cut, but he himself and his two horses were without a scratch. Turning
-in the saddle to gaze back, he saw other bands of horse come straggling
-behind them. “Is the fight all over?” he asked a trooper who trotted
-beside him.
-
-“Over?” swore the fellow. “What more d’ye want?” Then he looked pretty
-sharply at Hugh, and ended by offering to lead the wagon-horse for him,
-an offer the boy refused. Next the trooper, assuring Hugh he might have
-no end of difficulties in maintaining his right in the capture, proposed
-to give him ten shillings for the beast. What more he would say Hugh
-never found out, for, as they rode at a slackened pace a little on the
-flank, a horseman from the rear came charging into them, stared, and
-cried Hugh’s name. It was Bob Saxon of Gwyeth’s troop, who, scenting a
-matter of horse-dealing, voluntarily came in, and, falling upon the
-other man, bepraised the captured horse till he clean talked the fellow
-out of the field.
-
-“Ten shillings?” Saxon repeated contemptuously to Hugh, “Lord forgive
-the knave! The beast is worth fifty. Come along with me, sir, and I’ll
-find you a market.”
-
-They made a great circuit off to the north of the field and about dusk
-fetched up in a hamlet to the rear of the army, whither Royalist troops
-were now marching from Edgehill to seek quarters. Saxon gathered some
-half score of dragoons and a petty officer or two in the street before
-the village inn, where, with loud swearing and shouting, he showed off
-to them the captured horse. There followed much chaffering and
-wrangling, with Saxon’s voice loudest, which ended in the paying of the
-money and the delivering over of the beast. “Fifty shillings, as I
-promised you, sir,” Saxon announced, as he told them into Hugh’s hand,
-with a suggestive look that made Hugh pass him back five for himself.
-
-“You’re a good piece of a gentleman, sir,” the trooper said candidly, as
-they rode out from the hamlet. “Be you never going to serve under
-Colonel Gwyeth?”
-
-Hugh winced and answered “No,” then, bidding Saxon good-bye, headed for
-the manor house, which he was not able to discover till mid-evening. It
-was a relief to find himself safe among his comrades, for he was so
-conscious of the forty-five shillings in his pocket that he felt sure
-every prowler and hanger-on of the camp must have marked them for
-plunder.
-
-From the field of Edgehill the royal army marched to Banbury, which
-yielded to them unresistingly. To Hugh this was far pleasanter marching
-than the passage through Warwickshire, for not only did he now wear a
-sword and a red sash that marked him of the king’s men, but he had his
-own horse, Bayard, as he had named him for his bay color. The animal
-contented him very well, though Frank and The Jade distanced him
-whenever they raced a piece. “Bayard is no ambler; he was built for
-serious work in the field,” Hugh replied loftily to Frank’s jeers, and
-betook himself to Dick Strangwayes, whose mere presence was comforting.
-He trailed along at Dick’s side, ate with him, and shared his bed, and,
-in return, would gladly have cleaned Dick’s boots and groomed his horse,
-the horse that had once belonged to Captain Oldesworth. He knew better,
-however, than to offer such service, so he satisfied himself with taking
-their two horses to stable, and standing over the groom who cared for
-them to see the task was done without shirking.
-
-On the night they lay at Banbury he came in from such labor and in their
-chamber found Strangwayes unbuckling his cuirass, and singing, which was
-with him a sign of either very good or very bad fortune. “What’s to do,
-Dick?” Hugh asked, lighting a candle at the fireplace.
-
-“What do you say to a lieutenancy to the front of my name again, and
-over seasoned fighting men this time, not Jacks such as I misgoverned in
-the Scots war?”
-
-“Sir William has given you the lieutenancy under Turner?”
-
-“Ay, and on the heel of that comes better: Turner’s troop rides for
-service into Northamptonshire to-morrow.”
-
-“That’s well,” Hugh answered rather sorrowfully, as he put the candle on
-the table. “Luck go with you.”
-
-“Come along and bring it to us. Ay, you’re to go. I told my uncle we
-could use you as a volunteer. You see, the troop is short one officer
-since Griffith left.”
-
-“Yes?” Hugh urged, with curiosity.
-
-“I’m promising you nothing, remember,” Strangwayes continued soberly.
-“But there’s that vacant cornetcy, and you’re a lad of a steady
-courage,—I pray you, spare blushing,—and of a discreeter head than most
-of your years. Now, first, you’re to ride with us and do all you can to
-satisfy Captain Turner.”
-
-“Dick, I cannot satisfy him,” Hugh gasped, almost bewildered by the
-coolness and breadth of Strangwayes’ plan. “Captain Turner never does
-aught but mock me; I’m near as unhappy with him as with my father.” He
-could have bit his tongue for the ease with which it let slip such a
-piece of the truth, but Strangwayes only gave him one involuntary look,
-then changed the subject hastily to the matter of the raid into
-Northamptonshire.
-
-Next day, when his Majesty and his men rode south for Oxford, Captain
-Turner, Lieutenant Strangwayes, and Volunteer Gwyeth, with some forty
-troopers, got to saddle and went cantering eastward, to their own
-pleasure and the discomfort of more than one Puritan of
-Northamptonshire. It was partisan warfare, but Turner waged it
-honorably; and Hugh, after he once got used to riding with his hand on
-his hilt through villages of hostile, scowling people, had no quarrel
-with the life.
-
-They made their first dash for a country-house where arms and powder
-were stored; there was slight resistance, a shot or two without damage,
-a door battered in, and then Hugh was detailed with five men to ransack
-a wing of the house where were the kitchen and offices. As they found
-nothing they only wearied themselves with the thorough search Hugh
-insisted on, and got laughed at for their pains by a fat kitchen wench.
-But Strangwayes and his squad captured six muskets and a keg of powder,
-though he came away grumbling. “No more work of that sort for me,” he
-confided to Hugh. “You, you rogue, were safe in the buttery, while I was
-rummaging the parlor, and the gentlewomen stood off with their skirts
-gathered round them and glowered on me as if I were a cutpurse. I’m
-thinking the time will never come that women understand the laws of
-war.”
-
-Afterward they struck into a small town where more powder was said to be
-hid. Across the narrow part of the main street the people had built a
-barricade of carts and household stuff, so Turner, after reconnoitring,
-determined on a charge. “You had best bear the colors, Gwyeth,” he said,
-as the troop fell into order outside the village. “Strangwayes must ride
-at the rear, and, in any case, his two arms are of more profit to us
-than yours.”
-
-Hugh forgave the sneer as the cornet of the troop was put into his
-hands. Like all Sir William’s cornets, it was a red flag with a golden
-ball upon it, the prettiest colors in the world, Hugh considered, except
-the black flag with the cross of gold that Colonel Gwyeth’s troop
-marched under. Settling the staff firmly against his thigh, he glanced
-up to see the folds of the flag droop in the still air, then took his
-place by Turner at the front of the troop, and, a moment later, charged
-in behind him. The stones clicked beneath the horses’ feet, the cottages
-sped by, the barricade, whence came the hateful spitting of muskets, was
-right before them. Hugh swerved for the left end, where the structure
-was lowest, and Bayard, gathering himself up, cleared it at a leap.
-Behind the barricade were men of all coats, some loading and steadily
-firing, but more already scrambling down to flee. One, crying out at
-sight of Hugh, broke away the faster; another levelled a pistol at him,
-but before he could fire Bayard’s hoofs had struck him into the kennel.
-Then the whole barricade seemed to go down as the Cavaliers, some still
-in the saddle, others dismounted to scramble the better, came pouring
-over.
-
-Thus the king’s men possessed themselves of the town and took the
-powder, which for some days to come supplied them. But there was a price
-to pay, for in the encounter they had two men wounded, one of whom died
-that night, and on the morrow before they marched was buried in an
-orchard. Hugh never forgot the look of the leafless trees, the frosty
-ground, and the silent men, who stood drawn up, with their breastpieces
-strapped in place, all ready to mount. Each tenth man sat his horse with
-the bridles of his comrades’ steeds in his hand, and there, at a little
-distance from the horses, some of the townspeople, loitering with
-curious, unsympathetic faces, peered and pointed at those about the
-grave. They buried the dead trooper without his armor, but with his
-cloak wrapped round him, and Strangwayes, standing with his helmet under
-one arm, read the burial service. For the life of him Hugh could not
-help thinking of that sermon Dick had once preached to Emry and his
-friends, and there came on him an unbecoming desire to laugh, which
-mixed with a choke in his throat so his lips moved till he was well
-assured Captain Turner must think him no better than a child.
-
-The morning sunlight was strong when they rode away from the orchard,
-and half a mile out the troopers were swearing good-humoredly at each
-other, and Strangwayes was jesting at the bravery of the town watch, a
-single countryman whom he had hauled out, roaring for mercy, from
-beneath an empty cart. Hugh laughed at the tale, and laid it to heart
-that in war no man can hold regrets long, for his turn may come next,
-and what little life may be left him is not given to be needlessly
-saddened.
-
-So he designedly carried a light heart under his buff jacket, and seized
-what enjoyment he could from the small matters of everyday work. He was
-happy when they had broiled bacon or a chicken for supper, which was not
-often, and thankful for any makeshift of a bed; he took pleasure in
-cantering Bayard at the head of the troop, and watching the red and gold
-cornet flutter and flap above him; and he liked the fierce, hard knocks
-of the skirmishes they had, in little villages and at lonely
-country-houses, here and there through the shire. But when food failed
-and there was no bed but the ground, when he was weary and sore with
-much riding, even on that one wretched day when a troop of Roundhead
-dragoons fell on them and sent them scampering with three saddles empty,
-he got his best content from Strangwayes’ friendship, which made him
-surer of himself and readier to face the world, yet humbler in his
-efforts to keep the affection of the older man.
-
-The thought that the winning of a commission in that troop meant more
-such days of service with Strangwayes caused Hugh to redouble his
-efforts to please Turner, and he succeeded so far that after the first
-skirmish the captain suffered him to carry the cornet. For the rest,
-Turner met all his honest efforts and prompt obedience with sarcasms on
-his youth and simplicity, which made Hugh wince and go on laboring
-bravely. Only one word of approbation did he get of Turner; that was on
-a pouring wet night when Hugh came in from a watch with the pickets,
-soaked to the skin, and, finding no food, lay down without a word on the
-floor of the cottage where the officers were quartered, and went sound
-asleep. Through his waking he could have sworn he heard Turner say,
-“After all, Lieutenant, there’s the right mettle in this crop-headed
-whelp.”
-
-Though when Hugh opened his eyes and saw Turner standing over him with a
-candle in his hand, the latter only said, “My faith, sir, do you ever do
-aught but sleep?”
-
-Thus with work and enjoyment of work the month of November passed, and
-meantime his Majesty with the bulk of his army had marched to London,
-and then marched back again. Afterward men said a kingdom might have
-been gained upon that journey and had been cast away, but at that time
-Turner’s troop had only rumors of marches and countermarches, till in
-the early December a definite order reached them to repair to the king’s
-headquarters at Oxford and join themselves to their regiment.
-
-It was in the mid-afternoon that they at last rode into the city, where
-the High Street was gay with bravely dressed men and sleek horses, and
-the old gray buildings seemed alive with people. So many fine troops
-were passing and re-passing that none gave special heed to the little
-muddy band out of Northamptonshire. They passed unnoticed out by the
-North Gate toward the parish of St. Giles, where quarters had been
-assigned Sir William’s regiment, and there, in the dingy stable, the
-officers parted. Hugh of necessity surrendered the cornet into Turner’s
-hands with a last regretful look at its idle folds. “You made shift not
-to lose it, did you not, sir?” the captain said with some kindness.
-“Why, you’re no more of an encumbrance to a troop of fighting men than
-most youngsters are.”
-
-Then Turner and Strangwayes walked away to report themselves to Sir
-William, while Hugh remained to see that Bayard and Dick’s Black Boy
-were well groomed. To tell the truth, he was glad to linger in the
-stable with the men among whom he had spent the last month; he wondered
-if he was to have the chance to serve with them always, and the thought
-made him nearly tremble with expectancy.
-
-He was loitering by the stable door, when he caught sight of a familiar
-blue jacket, and Frank Pleydall, in company with two lads of his own
-age, came swaggering up. “So you’re back again, are you, Hugh?” he
-cried, with a boisterous embrace. “And more freckled than ever, I swear!
-Is that heavy-heeled horse of yours still unfoundered? Nay, don’t scowl,
-I mean nothing. But tell me, is Michael Turner’s troop here or in the
-stable across the way? I want to have a look at its fighting force.”
-
-“Wherefore?” Hugh blurted out suspiciously.
-
-“Why, I’m to hold Griffith’s cornetcy in it. Such labor as I had to win
-it, Hugh. Talk to my father night and day, swear I had the strength and
-discretion of twenty, vow to run away if he gave it not to me, so in the
-end I secured it of him. Cornet Pleydall; how like you the sound? I told
-you I’d coax a commission of him.”
-
-“You will find Captain Turner a gallant man to serve under,” Hugh said,
-after a moment. “Good-bye, Frank, I’m weary now. I’ll speak with you
-to-morrow.”
-
-With that he passed out into the street and headed aimlessly, he cared
-not whither. He had not known till now how sure he had felt of that
-cornetcy. And that a mere boy like Frank should be preferred over him,
-because his kinsfolk gave him their countenance! For one instant he
-almost had it in his heart to wish himself back at Everscombe, still
-believing in his father, and still confident the world stood ready to
-receive a man kindly for his own endeavors.
-
-Too wretched to think or lay a plan for the future, he plodded up and
-down the crowded streets till it grew dusk and pitchy dark, when sheer
-weariness turned him to his quarters; at least Strangwayes was his
-friend. The thought put more life into his step and made him hurry a
-little with impatience till he had sought out the baker’s shop, in an
-upper chamber of which they were to lodge. To his disappointment Dick
-had not yet come in, so Hugh, without spirit enough to light a candle,
-sat down on a stool by the fire with his chin in his hands and waited.
-
-When he heard Strangwayes’ step outside, he endeavored to force a gay
-tone and shouted him a greeting, but now he tried to use it his voice
-broke helplessly. “There, I’ve heard it all, Hugh,” Strangwayes said,
-and made no movement to get a light; “and I’m thinking Turner takes it
-as ill as we do. He kept an assenting face to Sir William, of course,
-but he blurted out to me that the deuce was in it that a little popinjay
-like Frank must be thrust into our troop.”
-
-Hugh forced a desperate laugh that ended in a choke.
-
-“And I’ve another piece of news for you,” Strangwayes went on, sitting
-down beside him. “Now you can take it as good or bad, which you please.
-I’m not resolved yet myself. You’ll recollect Peyton was shot at
-Edgehill, and we lost many men from the regiment. Well, they’ve taken
-another troop that suffered much and used it to fill up the place. And a
-new captain has been put over it under Sir William.”
-
-“Is it you, Dick?” Hugh asked.
-
-“Nay,” Strangwayes answered, with a chuckle; “’tis a one time
-independent colonel, Alan Gwyeth.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
- FOR THE HONOR OF THE GWYETHS
-
-
-“You’re free to take it as you choose, good or ill,” Strangwayes went
-on; “but I can tell you Colonel Gwyeth is in no two minds about it.”
-
-“I am sorry for him,” Hugh answered, after an instant. “I know it does
-wring a man to lose a commission out of his very hands.”
-
-“Since I must steer to the windward of hypocrisy, I am _not_ sorry for
-him,” Strangwayes returned. “And do not you worry yourself over his
-broken spirit, Hugh; so far he has borne up stoutly. At the last report
-he was ranging about with his sword at ready, bent on scoring out all
-his wrongs upon Master Philip Bellasis.”
-
-“Philip Bellasis?” queried Hugh, struggling to recall what that name
-stood for. “What has he to do in this matter?”
-
-“The simplicity of untutored youth!” Strangwayes’ voice came pityingly.
-“Why, ’tis clear as most logic: my Lord Bellasis of the king’s council
-disapproves of these small independent troops, and has given his voice
-loudest, ’tis said, for merging Gwyeth’s horse into Sir William’s
-regiment; _ergo_, Colonel Gwyeth has taken my Lord Bellasis into his
-hatred. My Lord Bellasis is blessed with the gout; _ergo_, Colonel
-Gwyeth, not to waste so precious a commodity as hatred upon a disabled
-man, transfers all his intentions to my lords swashbuckling son Philip.
-For, granting the colonel’s temper, he must fight something now, and he
-would vastly prefer something of the name of Bellasis.”
-
-Hugh still kept his old place without offering comment, so Strangwayes,
-after a moment or two, rose and lit a candle at the hearth. He did not
-pause even to slip off his accoutrements, but, holding the light, began
-roaming about the chamber on inspection, and communicating the results
-of his researches to his companion: “We might be worse placed. Two
-flights of stairs upward from the ground, so the air should be delicate
-and wholesome. Also the room is so small the fireplace ought to heat it
-well. And for the lack of furnishings, the emptiness near cheats a man
-into believing he has space enough to stretch himself. A contented
-spirit, mark you, is an admirable necessity in a soldier.”
-
-In the end he brought up at the nearer of the two windows, which he
-opened, and, after a long look out into the night, drew in his head
-again with a soberer face. “If I risked myself a hand-breadth further
-from the casement, I think I could make out the roofs of St. John’s,” he
-said, sitting down quietly, with the one small table betwixt himself and
-Hugh. “’Tis the good old college of which I was so unworthy a son. I am
-glad we lie near it.”
-
-“Where is the rest of the regiment?” Hugh asked.
-
-“Sir William and most of his officers lodge just over the way at a
-merchant’s house; Turner and Chadwell and Seymour are here under the
-roof with us. We’ll all meet together at Sir William’s table.”
-
-Hugh started back on his stool so he nearly overset himself. “Dick,” he
-burst out, “that means that thrice a day I shall be forced face to face
-with Colonel Gwyeth.”
-
-Strangwayes nodded, and then, the sheer absurdity of the whole position
-coming over them, they both went into a fit of laughter.
-
-Hugh recovered himself with a saner feeling of self-possession. “After
-all, it’s very simple,” he said aloud; “he’ll take no note of me, I
-know, and I’ll bear me as I would to Captain Turner, or any of the older
-men.”
-
-But, in spite of his stout words, when he woke in the dark of next
-morning Hugh could not sleep again for thinking of Colonel Gwyeth, and
-wondering if he would see him at breakfast and if the colonel would
-speak to him.
-
-When he first entered the long upper chamber of the house across the way
-that served the officers for dining hall, he looked about him, half
-eager and half in dread, and despising himself for both emotions. But he
-saw no sign of Alan Gwyeth, Colonel Gwyeth, as he named him to himself,
-for all he was now a mere captain. Two of the officers of the old
-independent troop, a German, Von Holzberg, and a certain Foster, who had
-come over into the regiment with the colonel, Frank pointed out to him;
-but Hugh only glanced at the men and went on eating. He wondered if it
-had been either of them that shoved him off the steps that night at
-Shrewsbury, and he had no desire to come in contact with them.
-
-After breakfast Frank Pleydall haled him off to view the city. “You
-might spare me one hour away from your Dick Strangwayes,” the younger
-lad complained. “But I knew after you got sight of him you’d not have a
-word for me.”
-
-Hugh felt conscience-stricken, so he forced himself to be very pleasant
-to Frank, in spite of the boy’s persisting in talking of Turner’s troop
-and his new cornetcy. Before they reached the High Street of the city,
-however, they were joined by several other youngsters, one a lad from
-Magdalen, the others, boys whose fathers were serving the king, with all
-of whom Frank seemed to have a ripe acquaintance. Hugh concluded Master
-Pleydall was not suffering for companionship, and presently he
-concluded, too, it was a companionship into which he could not hope to
-enter. He had an unhappy feeling of aloofness from the amusements of
-these boys; he knew next to nothing of bowls or dice of which they
-spoke, and when one lad began to jeer another about a girl, he did not
-understand. So presently he took his leave of Frank, who was too busied
-with his comrades to take much heed of his going, and started back by
-himself to his quarters.
-
-He was walking rather slowly, to study the landmarks he had noted and
-find his way without inquiry, when some one took him a boisterous clap
-on the shoulder. Facing about with a deal of indignation in his
-movement, he found it was George Allestree, who merely stood back and
-laughed at him. “You need but two wings to make a paragon of a turkey
-cock, Hugh Gwyeth,” he said amusedly. “Are you looking for diversion?
-Come along with me. I am sick for some one to talk with.”
-
-Perhaps it was not a complimentary invitation, but Allestree followed it
-up by being so cordial and jolly that Hugh went with him out to the
-walks of Magdalen, and back into the city to dine at an ordinary. They
-had only just come out into the street again, when Hugh perceived a
-sudden surging of the foot passengers about him to the edge of the
-kennel, and such horsemen as were passing drew to the side to leave the
-way clear. Then some one raised a cry, “The king!” and others began
-cheering. Allestree caught Hugh’s sleeve and drew him up a flight of
-steps, whence, looking over the heads of the people, they could see a
-little band of mounted gentlemen come slowly pacing down the High
-Street.
-
-“Look you there, ’tis Prince Rupert,” Allestree cried loudly, to be
-heard through the cheering, and Hugh took a long look at a tall young
-man in a scarlet coat, whose whole attention was fixed upon his restless
-horse. Then he heard the cheers redouble, and Allestree had now joined
-his voice to the uproar. Right before the spot where he stood Hugh got
-sight in the midst of the horsemen of one with a pointed beard and
-slender face, who bowed his head never so slightly to those who cheered
-around him.
-
-Then the horsemen had passed by, men turned to go their way once more,
-and Allestree replaced his hat on his head. “Had you lost your voice,
-Hugh, that you could not cheer?” he asked curiously.
-
-“No,” Hugh answered, as he followed down from the steps, “I was
-thinking.”
-
-“’Tis a bad practice. What was it of?”
-
-“I was thinking his Majesty looks much as other men.”
-
-“Indeed? And what else?”
-
-“I was wondering,” Hugh said half to himself, “which had the right of
-it, you that do ever so extol him, or my grandfather who laid the blame
-of all this on him.”
-
-“Because your hair is clipped you’ve no need to wear ‘Roundhead’ in your
-heart,” Allestree answered sharply. “None but a boy or a fool would
-speak so.” Then, as Hugh looked abashed, the other moderated his tone,
-and, talking carelessly of this and that, they came at length to
-Allestree’s quarters, close outside the North Gate.
-
-There Allestree would have Hugh out to the troop stables, to show him
-Captain Butler’s gamecocks; and, in the midst of it, Butler himself
-walked into the stable. Hugh remembered his dark, low-browed face very
-well from their first encounter, but he was surprised and a little
-flattered also to find the captain knew him at the mention of his name.
-“The brave lad that saved me my old friend Strangwayes,” Butler said,
-with a bit of an Irish accent, and shook hands kindly, then lingered to
-set forth the graces of the gamecocks. “Gloucestershire birds, those,”
-he explained. “They were hatched of rebel eggs, but I held it sin to
-leave them to tempt a good Puritan brother into seeing a cockfight. So I
-just made bold to muster them into the king’s service.”
-
-“We must put them to’t soon, Captain,” said Allestree, and, when Hugh
-left them, a good hour later, they were still discussing the cocks.
-
-It was near dark when Hugh came at last to Sir William’s quarters. The
-loud talk of the men above stairs brought him at once up to the dining
-room, where he found several officers loitering. “Trust that red devil
-Gwyeth,” Lieutenant Chadwell was saying; “he ran Bellasis down, be
-sure.”
-
-“Fight, did they?” asked another.
-
-“They set out together this afternoon. Yes, they’ve crossed blades ere
-this.”
-
-“Do you know who had the better of it?” Hugh cried, thrusting himself
-into the circle.
-
-Chadwell looked up at him impatiently, then answered, “No”; and Hugh,
-staying for no more, ran out of the room.
-
-Clattering down the stairway to the outer door, he dodged by Turner,
-who, facing about on the stair, called, “Whither are you summoned in
-such haste?”
-
-“To the city. To get news of the duel,” Hugh replied, over his shoulder.
-
-“There’s no need to go that far,” Turner answered moderately; and then,
-as Hugh came stumbling back to him up the stairs, went on: “Bellasis was
-worsted, a thrust through the shoulder. Captain Gwyeth came off
-unscathed.”
-
-“I was afraid—” Hugh said, clinching his hand about the balustrade as he
-stood.
-
-“Of what?” Turner questioned dryly. “Has the gentleman been such a good
-friend—” He broke off there, and looked at Hugh. “I crave your pardon
-for that last, Master Gwyeth,” he said, without sarcasm, and walked away
-up the stairs.
-
-That night at supper it seemed marvellous to Hugh that men could speak
-or think of anything but the duel. However, there was more speech of
-fortifying the city and of the storming of Marlborough than of Captain
-Gwyeth’s affairs, so he was glad to get away to his room, where at least
-there were none to interrupt his own thoughts.
-
-Late in the evening Strangwayes joined him. “Yes, yes, you can spare
-words; I’ve heard all about that duel,” he greeted Hugh; “and the
-town’ll hear more to-morrow. Captain Gwyeth has just sent a message to
-Sir William; he passed it on to me, and I’ll do the like by you. Hang me
-if the provost did not pounce down on the captain almost ere he quit the
-field, and haled him off to the Castle. They want no duelling among the
-king’s men.”
-
-“Will they punish him?” Hugh asked breathlessly.
-
-“Much!” Strangwayes answered, with vast contempt. “He did but nick
-Bellasis, and if report be true that fellow’s injury is no loss to the
-kingdom. If he had killed him it might be otherwise, for Bellasis has
-great kindred, civilians, too, who would not scruple to bring the law on
-his slayer, but as ’tis— Why, they’ll but hold him at the Castle a few
-days to encourage those of us who are of like inclination, and then
-he’ll come abroad again.” Then something of the warmth of his tone
-abated, and he laughed to himself. “’Tis an ill wind that blows no one
-good, eh, Hugh? You can eat your daily bread in peace now; for the
-present Captain Gwyeth cannot vex you.”
-
-Indeed, now the constant expectation of meeting with Alan Gwyeth was
-removed, Hugh found it far easier to fit himself to the routine of his
-new life. At first, to be sure, it cut him every time he saw Strangwayes
-buckle on his sword and clank away to the exercise of his troop, and he
-winced at every boasting word Frank let fall of the great things he
-meant to do now he was a full-fledged cornet. But he soon found that
-even a gentleman volunteer who had failed of a commission could be of
-use, where the fortifications on the north and southeast were digging;
-so for some days he spent hours in the varied assembly of college men
-and townsfolk, who labored with pick and shovel at the trenches. It was
-inglorious work for a soldier, and it was hard work that sent him to
-quarters with blistered hands and aching back. Frank joked him a little
-on turning ditcher, some of the other men chaffed, and even Strangwayes
-raised his eyebrows with the dry question, “Is it necessary?”
-
-“If the king cannot use me in one way, I must serve him in another,
-since I am eating his bread,” Hugh replied doggedly.
-
-Whereat Strangwayes’ eyes laughed, and he prayed Hugh, if he thought
-’twould make no difference to the king, to quit the trenches for that
-afternoon and come ride with him. “Your aim is to be a soldier, is it
-not?” he asked, as they paced along the western road beyond the High
-Bridge.
-
-“Yes, if I can get me a commission; ’tis all there is for me.”
-
-“Good. I began to doubt if you had not determined to turn pioneer. Dig
-in the trenches somewhat, by all means, and learn what you can of how
-men build fortifications and how the engineers devise them. But you must
-not for that neglect your horse and your sword. That brings it to my
-mind, Hugh; you should know something of rapier play as well as the
-broadsword. There’s a Frenchman in the city shall teach it you.”
-
-Hugh stammered something, with his eyes on the pommel of his saddle.
-
-“’Twill be a favor to me if you will take these lessons of him,”
-Strangwayes put in hastily. “I knew the man in my college days; he owes
-me somewhat from them and would gladly return it thus.”
-
-So, early as next morning, Strangwayes marched Hugh over to a dingy lane
-that led from the Corn market, and up a narrow stair to a bare room,
-where he presented him to Monsieur de Sévérac, a fierce small man with
-mustaches. De Sévérac stood Hugh up with a rebated sword in his hand,
-and thrust at him, talking rapidly in a mixture of French and English,
-while Hugh vainly tried to parry the point that invariably got home upon
-his body. He came away bewildered and sore, to find the dull labor of
-the trenches, where at least he knew what was expected of him, a
-downright comfort. But little by little, as the lessons went on, he
-began to find a method beneath it all, and to get real pleasure from
-wielding the long, light rapier, so different from the broadsword to
-which he had been used. De Sévérac even admitted one day that he had a
-steady hand, and with practice might make a creditable swordsman.
-
-With a great desire to whistle, Hugh walked back to dinner, and, two
-steps at a time, ran up the stairs at Sir William’s house, a bit before
-the hour, he judged, for he found the dining room to all appearances
-empty. Then, as he stepped across the threshold, he caught sight of Von
-Holzberg, standing in one of the deep window recesses, and beside him a
-man with red hair, who at his step turned and looked at him. It was Alan
-Gwyeth. For a moment he stared steadily at Hugh, and by his face the boy
-could not tell whether his humor were good or ill; then he bowed to him
-curtly, as any one of the captains might have done, and continued his
-speech with Von Holzberg. They spoke in German, Hugh observed, in the
-instant that he halted mechanically before he turned on his heel and
-went out of the room. He had no desire to whistle now; he only knew that
-he was heavy with a great disappointment, that was none the less
-overwhelming for being utterly vague.
-
-But, in the end, he found that matters went the more smoothly, now the
-dreaded meeting was over. It grew in time a mere daily and expected
-occurrence to see Captain Gwyeth among the officers, and to receive from
-him, in the course of ordinary civility, sometimes a short bow, once or
-twice a curt good morrow. But, though Hugh repeated to himself it was
-all he had looked to receive of the man, there slowly grew in him an
-unrealized sense of resentment that hitherto had had no place in him. He
-ceased to look wistfully toward Captain Gwyeth, but made it a point to
-talk busily with Frank or Dick or others that he knew when he came in
-his father’s sight, and to return the other’s scant bows with equal
-curtness.
-
-Meantime other occupations and interests than the affairs of the mess
-room were busying him. The ground was now too hard for digging, but the
-fencing lessons still went on, as Hugh’s bruised face and aching body
-often testified. He had also come once more, at a hint of an invitation
-from Turner, to take his place in the ranks and go through whatever
-exercises the troop was put to. Try as he would, though, a little
-bitterness still came into his heart at sight of Frank, carrying the red
-and gold cornet, so he was happier when, formal drill over, he could
-ride away whither he listed on Bayard.
-
-When rapier and horse both failed of interest, Hugh had recourse to John
-Ridydale, whose quarters in a by-street he had speedily discovered. With
-small coaxing he persuaded the corporal to drill him in handling pistol
-and carabine, an exercise which involved the shooting off of an amazing
-quantity of his Majesty’s powder and ball at practice marks in the
-fields of the west suburbs. Hugh, after peppering away bravely, came
-home in great enthusiasm to Strangwayes, who laughed a little, and
-finally remarked one day, “And do but think, too, how that honest
-corporal will go singing your perfections to Captain Gwyeth.” Whereat
-Hugh grew thoughtful, and somewhat curtailed his shooting trips.
-
-After that, especially as fouler weather closed in, he exercised much in
-Turner’s troop stable, where Frank kept a wooden horse for vaulting,
-which he took great profit in seeing Hugh use. “’Tis such a pleasure to
-look on animation of a cold morning,” young Pleydall remarked one day,
-as he stood shivering in his cloak. “But do you get enjoyment of it?”
-
-Hugh, who sat in his shirt-sleeves swinging his legs on the back of the
-horse, merely laughed and drew his left hand up and down his spare,
-sinewy right arm. He had grown a little that winter, and he was
-beginning also to learn the power that was latent in each muscle. Just
-now he was thinking to himself that if it ever came again to rough and
-tumble hand-grips with Peregrine Oldesworth, such as they had had in the
-days at Everscombe, his cousin would not be quite so sure of the
-mastery.
-
-Aside from the fact that he was still an uncommissioned volunteer,
-Hugh’s only quarrel with his busy life that winter was that he saw
-little of Dick Strangwayes. His friend’s chamber and purse were at his
-disposal, but his time Strangwayes himself was not master of; not only
-did his duties in the troop require him, but he had in the city and in
-the colleges many friends to whom he gave much of himself. Hugh valued
-the more the moments he had with his comrade at their chamber, and, for
-the rest, sought himself companionship where he could. Frank, too, had
-associates of his own, for whom Hugh had no great affection, so as a
-last choice he resorted to George Allestree, who showed his friendship
-by introducing him to all the taverns and ordinaries in the city. It was
-Allestree, too, who, when he found Hugh took in great seriousness his
-intention of becoming a soldier, unearthed a fat book, “The Soldier’s
-Grammar and Accidence,” by one Gervase Markham, and told the boy he
-would get from that all the theory of war he wanted. “I’ll read it
-speedily and return it to you, George,” Hugh said gratefully.
-
-“Prithee, don’t hurry yourself,” Allestree answered quickly. “Ten years
-hence is quite soon enough for my needs.”
-
-Indeed, Hugh did not find Gervase Markham exciting reading, but, to the
-silent enjoyment of Strangwayes, he dutifully labored through his pages.
-He was hard at work on Markham one morning, with his chin on one fist
-and his elbow on the table. Only his eyes were not on the book, but
-ranging out at the casement, for it was in early February and the sky
-was blue, and Hugh was thinking how the buds would be bursting soon on
-the beeches in the park at Everscombe.
-
-“Did you note the Worcestershire parson who sat at our table last
-night?” suddenly spoke Strangwayes, who was shaving at the little mirror
-between the windows.
-
-“Frank said he was an old tutor whom Sir William held in much respect,”
-Hugh answered, bringing his gaze back to the room.
-
-“Well, he was set next Captain Gwyeth, and I was the other side, so I
-enjoyed their discourse. It seems the parson was much attracted by you.”
-Strangwayes tipped his head on one side while he scraped the razor along
-his cheek, and spoke disjointedly. “Something, either the way you thrust
-up that square chin of yours, or your pretty habit of not speaking to
-your elders unless they address you,—except in my case, for you
-constantly fail in respect to me,—well, you much pleased the gentleman,
-so he asked the captain your name. And the captain told him. ‘Your son,
-sir?’ says he, and falls to congratulating the captain on your fine
-bearing and—nay, I’ll spare you. But I’m thinking Captain Gwyeth did not
-relish his supper.” There was an instant’s pause while Strangwayes, with
-his head thrown back, shaved warily beneath his chin; then he laid down
-the razor and faced about. “Will you believe it, Hugh?” he said, in
-something between jest and seriousness, “I’m thinking if you should go
-very humbly, hat in hand, to the captain and say, ‘Sir, I bore myself
-very frowardly and peevishly toward you, but now I am ready to submit
-me,’ I’m thinking he would rate you soundly and—henceforth maintain you
-himself.”
-
-“Doubtless he will,—when I go unto him so,” Hugh said shortly.
-
-Strangwayes laughed a little, then fell to talking of indifferent
-matters, while he put on his coat and fastened his belt. “I saw Phil
-Bellasis in the city yesterday,” he ended. “Perhaps to even matters he’s
-looking for Captain Gwyeth now.”
-
-“I should think one lesson would suffice for him,” Hugh replied; and
-then, as Dick tramped away, turned his attention again to Gervase
-Markham.
-
-But reading or any serious pursuit was out of the question on those blue
-spring days in the midst of winter. There was near a week of such
-weather, in which poor Gervase was left to gather dust on the
-chimney-piece, and Monsieur de Sévérac expostulated at Hugh’s
-inattention. The boy’s heart was idling out in the open air, and his
-body must needs follow. He galloped Bayard round about the city till he
-knew the roads to weariness, and then, descending upon George Allestree,
-he dragged him out to tramp in the slushy remnants of the last snow.
-
-“We’ll even up scores now,” Allestree said one afternoon. “You’ve haled
-me through the mire, which I loathe, and now I’ll make you sup in the
-city with me, which I know you abhor.”
-
-So it was that in the evening Hugh found himself blinking sleepily in a
-brightly lighted room above a city ordinary, and roused up only at the
-click of the dice. At one of the small tables Allestree and Lieutenant
-Seymour, who had joined them, were deep in play, so Hugh got up and
-stood watching them. In spite of all urgings he did not play himself;
-the forty-five shillings he brought from Edgehill had lasted him well
-for spending money, but he had none to squander on the dice.
-
-He looked up to the door as several newcomers entered,—civilians, from
-their lack of any regimental badge. “Why, is’t not Bellasis yonder?”
-Seymour asked, dicebox in hand.
-
-“Hm,” grunted Allestree. “Throw.”
-
-Hugh glanced curiously at the men, who had placed themselves at the next
-table. One that sat on the farther side—a sallow, long-legged fellow of
-thirty—he held to be Bellasis; meeting the man’s eyes, his thoughts went
-back to the day of Edgehill, when Bellasis had nearly ridden down Frank,
-and he felt sure of the identification. Then he turned to watch
-Allestree’s play; how many throws had passed he did not know, when,
-hearing some one speak near by, he listened carelessly.
-
-“Oh, you do not know him, then?” a curt, incisive voice reached him.
-“Well, ’tis no wonder. The puppy was whelped in a gutter.”
-
-Hugh felt a hot prickling clear to the back of his neck; but, although
-his whole attention was now riveted to those behind him, he did not
-turn.
-
-“Yes, groom to a gang of common foot soldiers. A fellow of the name of
-Strangwayes took him thence in charity and employed him as body
-servant.”
-
-“I stake you ten shillings,” said Allestree, reaching well across the
-table.
-
-“I take it,” answered Seymour.
-
-Hugh leaned a little forward with his clinched hands resting on the
-table, and listened, not to them, but to Philip Bellasis.
-
-“Pshaw! how would you have it?” the scornful voice went on. “’Tis bad
-blood there. Now Alan Gwyeth—”
-
-Hugh swung round on his heel; the candles dazzled up and down before
-him, but he could make out Bellasis, resting his chin on one hand as he
-sat, and speaking straight at him: “Alan Gwyeth, you’ll remember, was
-but a broken German cutthroat, who lost his commission here for
-cowardice—”
-
-“Sit down, Hugh!” Allestree cried.
-
-Hugh could feel Allestree’s grasp tighten on his arm, but, shaking him
-off, he walked across to the table where Bellasis sat. The room was very
-still, and in the silence his voice sounded husky and low. “You spoke of
-Alan Gwyeth,” he began slowly. “When you call him a coward, I tell you
-you lie in your throat!”
-
-Then he leaned across the table and smote Bellasis on the mouth.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII
- IN THE FIELDS TOWARD OSNEY ABBEY
-
-
-It was dark in the passage outside the door, and Hugh fumbled stupidly
-to find the latch. Inside two patches of moonlight, checkered like the
-diamond panes of the windows, lay on the floor. Hugh stood staring at
-them dully a moment before he spoke, “Dick.”
-
-“Well?” came from the black corner where the bed stood; it was
-Strangwayes’ assertion that he always slept with one eye and one ear
-alert.
-
-Hugh stepped over to the bedside. “I have met with Philip Bellasis,” he
-began quickly, as if he had a lesson he knew must be repeated. “He
-slandered my father. I gave him the lie. We are to fight with rapiers
-to-morrow at twilight in the fields toward Osney Abbey.”
-
-Strangwayes was sitting upright in bed now. “You are to fight Bellasis?”
-he repeated.
-
-Hugh nodded. “Have you the time to come out to the field with me, Dick?
-George offered, but I’d rather—”
-
-“Did George Allestree suffer you enter on such a quarrel?” There was a
-sharp, ringing quality in Strangwayes’ voice Hugh had seldom heard.
-
-“Nay, ’tis no fault of George,” he answered quickly, and detailed all
-that had befallen at the ordinary.
-
-Strangwayes dropped back on his elbow. “Hugh, you fool, you babe!” he
-broke out, still with that odd quality in his voice. “That scoundrel
-trapped you deliberately; he durst not meet your father again; he tried
-to trap you, and you suffered him!”
-
-“I could do nothing else,” Hugh answered.
-
-“Well, get to bed now,” Strangwayes said in his kindest tone. “You must
-have all the rest you can before you go to spit our friend Philip.”
-
-Lying down obediently, Hugh stared at the moonlight creeping along the
-floor, and listened to the watch that paced the street below.
-Strangwayes at his side breathed uneasily and once or twice turned
-somewhat; but Hugh lay quiet till his opened eyes ached and were heavy,
-and he slept a sleep full of dreams.
-
-When he came broad awake again there was chilly daylight in the room,
-and Strangwayes was up and half dressed. “What sort of day is it?” Hugh
-asked.
-
-“A gray day,” Dick answered cheerily. “’Tis good for your work. There’ll
-be no sun to dazzle either of you.”
-
-Hugh got up, and in the midst of drawing on his clothes glanced at
-Dick’s watch, where he saw it was past their rising hour. “Is this the
-way you pamper a fighter, as if I were one of Butler’s gamecocks?” he
-asked.
-
-“You were sleeping well,” Strangwayes answered; “’twere pity to wake
-you. I’ll fetch some breakfast and we’ll eat together here.”
-
-“You can get food from the shop below; you’ve no need of your hat and
-cloak. Where are you going, Dick?”
-
-Strangwayes hesitated an instant while he drew his cloak about him, then
-replied, “I am going to your father.”
-
-“You shall not!” Hugh cried, and, crossing to the door, set his back
-against it.
-
-“Assuredly I shall,” Strangwayes answered. “The matter has gone beyond
-jest.”
-
-“He will call me a snivelling coward,” Hugh pleaded; “he will say I made
-a mash of it and then came whimpering to him.”
-
-“Let him,” Strangwayes interrupted, “’tis his quarrel and he should
-manage it himself. Why did you ever thrust in?”
-
-“I know not,” Hugh answered. “Only he is my father. And he is no coward.
-They lied about him in that. And he was not there to reply. I had to
-come in.”
-
-“Well, he can come in now,” Strangwayes retorted, and strode over to the
-door.
-
-Hugh thrust up one arm against his friend’s chest. “You will not tell
-him?” he begged. “I know you can put me aside, Dick; you’re the
-stronger. But prithee, do not use me thus. He despises me so already.
-I’d liefer Bellasis killed me twice over. You won’t speak a word to him,
-Dick?”
-
-“No, I won’t speak to him, Hugh,” Strangwayes answered soothingly.
-“Come, come, you’re foolish as a girl. Go get on your coat, and be ready
-to eat a full breakfast.” He put Hugh aside with one arm about his
-shoulders, and went out of the room.
-
-When Hugh had finished dressing he opened the casement and leaned out a
-little into the raw morning air; the chilly wind seemed to brush away
-something of the heaviness of his unrefreshing sleep. Down in the street
-below he saw men passing by, and a townswoman in a scarlet hood that
-showed bright against the muddy road and dark houses. Across the way he
-saw Major Bludsworth come leisurely down the steps from Sir William’s
-quarters, and presently he saw a trooper, lumbering briskly up the
-stairs, disappear inside the house.
-
-Just then a kick upon the door made him turn in time to see Strangwayes,
-keeping the door braced open with one foot, come sidewise through the
-narrow aperture. In one hand he held two mugs of ale and in the other a
-pasty, which Hugh had the wit to catch before it fell to the floor. “Ay,
-treat it reverently,” Dick said, “’tis mutton, and age has ever
-commanded reverence. Part of the ale has gone up my sleeve, but the rest
-is warranted of a good headiness.”
-
-After he had thrown off his cloak the two set them down at the table
-with the pasty and the ale between them, and drew out their knives.
-Strangwayes scored a line across the middle of the mutton pie. “Now each
-man falls to,” he ordered, “and he who works the greatest havoc on his
-side gets the mug that is full, while the other must content him with
-the scant measure. Now, then, charge for England and St. George!”
-
-They were well at work, Hugh eating dutifully and Dick both eating and
-setting forth an interminable tale of a fat citizen’s wife he had
-accosted in the bakeshop, when there sounded a quick stamping on the
-stairs. “I’ll wager ’tis the popinjay,” said Strangwayes, pausing with
-his knife suspended.
-
-Right on the word Frank Pleydall burst into the room. “Is it true you’re
-to fight?” he cried.
-
-“A guess near the truth,” answered Strangwayes. “Draw up and share with
-us.”
-
-“I’ve eaten breakfast. They were talking of the duel there at the table.
-So you’re to fight Bellasis, Hugh? Aren’t you afraid?”
-
-The full mug of ale suddenly went crashing and slopping to the floor.
-“If I were the Creator and had men to make,” said Strangwayes, down on
-his knees among the fragments, “I’d make men without elbows, at least
-without such elbows as mine. Come aid me, you lazy fellow.”
-
-Hugh obediently began mopping up the spilt ale, but Strangwayes did not
-stay to help him. He was speaking with Frank over by the window, and
-Hugh just caught something like, “If you don’t hold your foolish tongue,
-I’ll cuff your head off.”
-
-In any case, when Hugh rose to his feet he found Frank very subdued.
-“’Twas my father sent me hither,” he began, with a little trace of
-sullenness. “He said if you really had it in mind to fight, you were
-best slip out of the town early. The matter has got abroad, and the
-provost may send to apprehend you just for accepting the challenge.”
-
-“Then we’ll disappoint the provost,” said Strangwayes. “I’ve sent to the
-stable already to have our horses brought round. Clap into your boots,
-Hugh, but bring your shoes along. You can’t fight with a ton of leather
-about your heels.”
-
-“Is there aught I can lend you, Hugh?” asked Frank, studying his friend
-with interested eyes.
-
-“I’m well enough,” Hugh answered cheerfully. “Dick is going to let me
-use his rapier.”
-
-“Can’t I come out to the field with you?” Frank begged. “Oh, I’ll not
-speak a word, Dick, and I’ll do whatever you may tell me.”
-
-“If a second man came it would have to be Allestree,” answered
-Strangwayes. “Better go back to quarters now, Frank. Tell Sir William we
-thank him for his warning, and I have taken a day’s leave of absence.”
-
-But as Strangwayes was edging him toward the door Frank dodged by him
-and ran back to Hugh. “Good luck to you,” he said, putting his arms
-round Hugh and kissing him. “And—and God keep you.”
-
-Then he clattered out and down the stairs, and Hugh, for a moment,
-neither looked at Dick nor spoke.
-
-He was drawing on his cloak, still with his back toward Strangwayes, who
-stood by the window, when his friend struck in gayly: “In good time,
-here are the horses. Come along, now.” Thus Hugh was hurried out at the
-door, with time only for a single backward glance at the little crowded
-chamber, and barely an instant in which to ask himself, would he ever
-look upon that room again?
-
-At the foot of the first flight of stairs they met Turner, recognizable
-by his slim figure, though the corridor was too dark for them to
-distinguish his face. “Going out to the field, eh, Gwyeth?” he asked,
-thrusting out his hand. “Well, success to you, lad, good success.” He
-shook hands a second time with a strong pressure that lingered on Hugh’s
-fingers till after they were mounted and off.
-
-Under foot the mud and slush were heavy, but the horses kept up a
-tolerable pace, which Hugh, unknown to himself, was setting for them. A
-feverish desire to be moving quickly was upon him, and with it a dread
-of being silent. He laughed and chatted indifferently of whatever caught
-his eye upon the western road till he soon had Strangwayes talking back
-glibly. “We’ll dine at an alehouse called the ‘Sceptre,’” Dick rattled
-on. “I know it well of old. I used to have a score as long as my arm
-chalked on the door. There’s a very pretty bowling green behind the
-house. Which explains my long score. When the spring comes I must have
-you out thither and teach you to bowl. ’Tis good for the muscles of the
-arm, let alone the exhilaration of the spirits.”
-
-It was mid-morning when they drew rein before the much belauded
-alehouse, a low gray building, in a field somewhat apart from the
-surrounding cottages, with tall poplars in a row on either side that
-made it seem the more remote. The short-breathed host and his staid,
-gray-headed drawer had had acquaintance with Strangwayes as late as that
-winter, to judge by the warmth of their greeting. They had the horses to
-the stable at once, and the gentlemen to the big front chamber of the
-upper story, where a good fire was started, a cloth laid, and all made
-comfortable. “We’ll not dine till one o’clock,” Strangwayes ordered. “If
-you hear scuffling before then be not dismayed; we may try some sword
-practice. You understand, eh, Martin?”
-
-The sober drawer showed sparks of interest. “Be you to fight, Master
-Strangwayes?” he asked.
-
-“This gentleman is, this afternoon. Now keep a quiet tongue, Martin, as
-you always do.” He slipped a piece of money into the drawer’s hand, and
-the man departed slowly, with his gaze on Hugh.
-
-“Now make yourself at ease,” Strangwayes bade. “Or will you try a little
-rapier practice to limber your muscles?”
-
-Hugh was ready enough, so Strangwayes procured from the host a pair of
-blunted rapiers with which they fell to fencing. Hugh watched Dick’s
-sword-hand and did his best, but again and again the point slipped past
-his blade; there seemed no suppleness in his wrist nor spring in his
-body, and when he tried desperately to retort faster he laid himself
-open to his adversary. In the end, as he attempted a vigorous thrust in
-quarte, his foot slipped so he only saved himself by catching at the
-table. As he recovered himself he looked at Dick, and saw his face was
-of an appalling soberness. “You’ve a steady enough hand, Hugh,” he began
-hastily. “Only you must quicken your thrusts somewhat. No, don’t try any
-more; you’ll only spend yourself needlessly.”
-
-Hugh handed back his weapon, and made a great work of putting on his
-coat again. But presently it would out. “My father is considerable of a
-swordsman, is he not?” he began.
-
-“He has that reputation,” Strangwayes answered dryly.
-
-“Yet he did not contrive more than to wound Bellasis.”
-
-“I doubt if he put his whole skill into the business,” Strangwayes said
-quickly. “Come, Hugh, try a hand at primero with me,—unless you fear I
-worst you there.”
-
-He drew the cards from his pocket, and they sat down to the table by the
-fire. How many games they played Hugh did not heed; he dealt recklessly
-and talked and laughed his loudest; sometimes he won of Strangwayes,
-sometimes he lost, but it all mattered nothing. He was in the thick of a
-boisterous exposition of the merits of the hand he held, when some one
-knocked at the door. “Come!” Strangwayes cried eagerly, and sprang to
-his feet.
-
-The door was pushed open, and Ridydale, spattered to the thighs, walked
-in. “A letter for you, sir, from Colonel Gwyeth,” he said, crossing to
-Hugh. “The colonel lay from his quarters yesternight, and came not back
-till late this morning.”
-
-This last was spoken more to Strangwayes than to Hugh, but the boy did
-not heed. He was tearing open the letter with fingers that shook with
-impatience. It was very brief, he saw at first glance; then he read:—
-
-WORTHY SIR:
-
-For something like forty years I have contrived unaided to keep my honor
-and my reputation clear. By the grace of Heaven I hope to do so for
-forty years longer, still without a boy’s assistance. Quit at once this
-absurd quarrel you have entered on. Take yourself back to your quarters.
-I shall myself deal with Master Bellasis.
-
- Your obedient servant,
-
- ALAN GWYETH.
-
-Hugh read the paper over once more, slowly, then passed it to Dick.
-“That is what he writes me,” he said without passion, and getting up
-went to fetch a standish and paper from an open cupboard in one corner
-of the room.
-
-He placed them on the table as Strangwayes looked up from finishing the
-letter. He, too, said nothing, but his mouth was set in a hard line
-under his mustache. “I’ll write an answer,” Hugh said quietly, as he
-seated himself.
-
-“Will you not ride back to the city with me, sir?” Ridydale put in
-eagerly.
-
-Hugh was silent a moment while he adjusted his paper and pen, then
-replied: “I am not coming to the city with you. Moreover, Corporal
-Ridydale, if you ever again mention unto me one word of Captain Gwyeth,
-I’ll have no more dealings with you.”
-
-Then he turned resolutely to his task and wrote his answer, slowly, for
-he was an unhandy penman, and he wished the letter to be quite dignified
-in neatness.
-
-WORTHY SIR:
-
-When we parted at Shrewsbury perhaps you may remember I said to you that
-you had no right to lay a command upon me. Since that time you have done
-naught to get you the right; by your will I am no son of yours. Yet so
-long as I bear the name of Gwyeth it is my part to defend that name from
-any slander. Therefore I did enter on a quarrel with the one who defamed
-my family. The quarrel is now mine and I shall pursue it to the end.
-Though I have been flogged by your troopers, I have some notion of what
-becomes a gentleman of honor. Such a gentleman as my mother would wish
-me to be does not suffer another to undertake his defence.
-
- Your obedient servant,
-
- HUGH GWYETH.
-
-He chose his words deliberately; it was amazing how ready they were to
-his hand, now that he had come to the realization that Alan Gwyeth had
-used him with brutal unjustness.
-
-He folded the paper carefully. “Here, take it, Ridydale,” he ordered.
-“But remember, I’ve no quarrel with you, Corporal. You have been a good
-friend to me, and I’d still keep you so. Only never another mention of
-Captain Gwyeth.”
-
-Ridydale hesitated a moment with the letter in his hand before he broke
-out: “Tell you what, Master Hugh, I’ll send this by another messenger.
-I’m going to rest here till the fight’s over. You may want me.”
-
-“That’s well,” Strangwayes said promptly.
-
-After Ridydale had left them, Dick ordered up dinner, and they tried to
-talk over it as before. Strangwayes made out fairly, but a numb silence
-was on Hugh; in the bracing anger of a few moments before his resolution
-seemed all to have vanished and left him spiritless. He could not help
-looking to the window to see what time of day it was, and involuntarily
-he interrupted Strangwayes with a question as to how soon they should
-start for the field. “Not for a couple of hours,” the other replied.
-“’Tis a bit of a walk; we’ll take supper here afterward—”
-
-With a sudden gesture Hugh pushed by his plate and swung about with his
-head hidden against the back of his chair. For of a sudden there came
-sweeping upon him overpoweringly the realization he had been battling
-off all the morning: this was the last meal he might ever eat.
-
-He got to his feet unsteadily and walked to the door; the scrape of a
-chair told him Strangwayes had risen. “Don’t!” Hugh cried. “I want to be
-alone.”
-
-Somehow he felt his way down a flight of backstairs, and pushing open a
-side door stumbled out into the air. There was a level stretch of pashy
-bowling green down which he splashed his way. But press forward as he
-would, he knew he could not run from what he had bound himself to, so,
-where the green ended at the hedge, he flung himself down on a wet bench
-and sat with his head in his hands. In one of the bare poplars a snow
-bird was chirruping; over toward the stable he could hear a man calling
-and a horse stamp. He dropped his head on his knees and stared dumbly at
-the trodden mud between his feet. For he knew now there was nothing to
-help him, even Dick’s friendship and affection were of no avail; there
-was only himself to rely on. Once he thought of God, but the God the
-Oldesworths had taught him was distant and very stern; He would never
-take pity on a duellist, even if he cried to Him. So Hugh, with his head
-bowed down, wrestled through the struggle alone, and little by little
-forced himself to accept with a soldier’s resignation the fate that
-should take from him the joy of battle, and of friendship, and of life
-that summed up all joys.
-
-When he rose his face was quite steady, though he made no pretence to
-the cheerfulness he had kept up that morning. Walking briskly back to
-the house, he made his way to their chamber, where he found Strangwayes
-pacing up and down. Hugh went to him and put a hand on his shoulder.
-“Let’s not try to pretend about it any more, Dick,” he said simply.
-“Bellasis has handled a rapier for years where I’ve used it but weeks.
-There is no hope for me. Frankly, is there? On your honor, Dick.”
-
-“There is this hope,” Strangwayes answered, after an instant. “It may be
-he will content himself with disabling you, and then—he will force you
-to crave his pardon.”
-
-“The other way suits me better,” Hugh said quietly.
-
-“You can only do your best,” Strangwayes replied. “He may be careless.
-Be ready to use every opportunity.”
-
-“I will,” Hugh nodded, and then, sitting down by the fire, he beckoned
-his friend to sit beside him. “I take it, time’s short,” he began, “so I
-want to tell you, Dick, you’re to take Bayard and keep him, and be very
-kind to him, only I know you’ll be that.”
-
-Strangwayes reached out his arm; the two griped hands, and sat so.
-
-“Give my sword to Frank,” Hugh went on, “and give Ned Griffith back his
-red sash. Ridydale can have my spurs. Then there’s six shillings I’ve
-here; I want a trooper named Robert Saxon in Gwyeth’s company to have
-them; he’ll be sorry and drunk at once. Give my duty to Captain Turner
-and Sir William, and commend me to George Allestree.” He paused a
-moment, then resumed: “There’s a girl at Everscombe Manor, Lois Campion;
-we were playfellows then. She has not writ me since, but I’d like her to
-know that I held her in remembrance. I’d fain send my duty to my
-Grandfather Oldesworth, too, but I doubt if he’d accept of it.”
-
-“I’ll do all as you bid,” Strangwayes answered. “God! if I could but
-fight that coward for you.”
-
-After that outburst they sat side by side without speaking, while the
-quick moments slipped by, till at last Strangwayes rose unwillingly to
-his feet. “We must start now,” he said, so Hugh put on his cloak, and
-arm in arm they went out from the house.
-
-At the door Ridydale saluted them, then fell into step behind them, and
-in such order they splashed down the bowling green. Through a gap in the
-hedge they entered a field where some patches of snow still lingered in
-the hollows. Beyond they passed through a copse of naked trees, and so
-across a dry ditch entered a level piece of open ground. At the farther
-end two men stood waiting. “Faith, I had judged you meant to shirk your
-hour,” cried the taller of the two in a sharp, high voice.
-
-“Close of twilight is a rather loose appointment, Master Bellasis,”
-Strangwayes answered curtly.
-
-“And you fetched a third man, did you? Two to one—”
-
-“Maybe you would wish the city guard to come upon you with blades in
-your hands?” Strangwayes interrupted. “I have brought a sure man to
-watch the road. But if you object—”
-
-“Oh, by no means,” laughed Bellasis. “And ’tis well you brought him.
-’Twill need two of you to convey your gentleman from the field.”
-
-“In any case I shall have legs left to walk back to the field and find
-you,” Strangwayes retorted, with his nostrils drawn thin. “Strip off
-your coat, Hugh. Take your place beyond the bushes there, Ridydale.”
-
-Hugh was glad that Dick unfastened his coat for him; for a sick instant
-the control he had acquired of himself seemed slipping away. But it was
-only an instant, and then, grasping his rapier firmly, he had stood up
-stiffly in the place they bade him stand. In the distance, against the
-darkening twilight, he could see the bare trees and the towers of Osney
-Abbey; then his eyes descended to Bellasis’ keen sallow face, and then
-they dropped to the man’s bony sword-hand, and he saw nothing else.
-
-Some one said, “Now!” and the rapiers crossed, how, he scarcely knew. He
-heard the quick click of the blades, and with it came a sudden flash of
-pain in his right thigh; he thrust desperately at Bellasis’ shoulder,
-but his point went wide.
-
-“That shall quit the blow you struck me,” his adversary spoke, softly,
-as the blades clicked again.
-
-Hugh shifted his body, stiffly, for his right leg felt strangely numb,
-yet with his utmost skill he contrived to put by two thrusts; all his
-attention was riveted to the blades, but some inner consciousness was
-telling him that Bellasis was only feinting carelessly, and had not yet
-shown his strength. His very despair drove him forward in a useless
-thrust, and at that the other’s rapier seemed in his eyes, and he felt
-something warm on his left cheek.
-
-“And there’s for your father’s blow,” said Bellasis, in a low voice.
-“Get your breath now for the last bout.”
-
-There was thrust and parry for what seemed endless hours; click of
-blade, desperate effort that set Hugh, mad with his helplessness,
-panting to the point of sobbing. Then, of a sudden, as he made an
-instinctive swerve to the right, there came a rasping sound of tearing
-cloth, a deathly agony swept through his body. But he saw Bellasis
-leaning toward him with body all exposed, and, springing forward, with
-all the strength in him he thrust home the rapier.
-
-The hilt of the rapier slipped from his hand. Bellasis’ shirt and face
-showed white on the muddy ground at his feet. All the rest was blackness
-and pain. A second thrill pierced through his side. Some one’s arm was
-about him, and Dick’s voice cried, “Hugh, Hugh!” with an agony in it he
-marvelled at. He could feel Strangwayes’ fingers tearing open his shirt,
-a cloth pressing in upon his side. “Ha’ done!” he gasped out, clutching
-Dick round the neck.
-
-Right upon that, somewhere very far distant, he heard Ridydale’s voice:
-“Off with you! The guard’s upon us!”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV
- UNDER THE KING’S DISPLEASURE
-
-
-A racking agony of being borne joltingly along Hugh remembered dimly,
-but now there came a moment of fuller consciousness. He knew it was
-black all about where he lay, the ground beneath him felt wet, and his
-face was jammed into something so cold it made his cheek ache. With a
-helpless catching of the breath he tried to shift his position. “Hush,
-hush!” Strangwayes’ voice sounded right at his ear, and Strangwayes’ arm
-pressed him close.
-
-Smothering the cry of pain, Hugh listened breathlessly; somewhere far
-above him people must be moving, for he heard the snap of boughs and
-men’s voices calling, “Have you found a trace?”
-
-“Nay, they bore to the roadway, I’ll wager.”
-
-“Have ye searched the ditch?”
-
-On that, nearer and louder than before, came more trampling and
-crashing. Hugh could not hear Strangwayes breathe, but he felt
-Strangwayes’ arm draw more tensely about him, and, when he turned his
-head painfully, knew it was Strangwayes’ hand pressed down on his mouth.
-Now as he lay he could see a shred of dark sky with the outline of
-branches thick woven against it. Then the sight of the sky went blurring
-out from before his eyes, and the crackling of the bushes grew fainter
-till that and all other sound ceased for him.
-
-A sense that he had been long in a region of blankness, then once more
-he heard voices, but now they were beside him and he knew who spoke.
-“Durst you venture forth, sir?”
-
-“I dare not risk it, Corporal. Yet if we stay in this slough— You’re
-holding him as clear of the wet as you can?”
-
-“What else should I be doing, sir?” Ridydale’s voice came snappishly.
-
-“You are here, Dick?” Hugh tried to say, but it took an instant to force
-out even a weak whisper.
-
-A quick movement and Strangwayes bent over him; Hugh concluded vaguely
-that he was resting across the knees of his two friends with his head
-upon Dick’s arm. “How is it with you now, lad?” Strangwayes asked
-eagerly.
-
-“Well enough. Only my face aches,” Hugh admitted in a whisper that
-pained him.
-
-“I could have forgiven him, had he killed the lad clean and quick,”
-Strangwayes broke out; “but to hack him into pieces thus!”
-
-“Hell gnaw him for it!” Ridydale growled back.
-
-With neither wit nor strength to reason out of what or whom they spoke,
-Hugh lay quiet and unresisting in the arms of his companions. He
-wondered if their coats were wrapped about him, he felt so warm. Then,
-after a space where even wonder was blotted out, he felt his shirt
-thrust open again and the air cold on his breast. “Give me those other
-napkins,” Strangwayes’ voice sounded hard and colorless; “he is bleeding
-again.”
-
-Something like a groan burst from Ridydale. “May we not venture it now,
-sir?” he begged.
-
-“In God’s name, yes!” Strangwayes cried.
-
-Hugh felt himself lifted up, and with the movement came a throbbing pain
-through all his body, and then a deathly faintness, that left him no
-strength to cry out. Through it all he caught a glimpse of a blackness
-above him that must be the night sky, and then it was all a blackness,
-where he could not even feel Dick’s touch.
-
-For one instant of agony the light returned to him. It seemed they must
-have torn open all his wounds, and they would not spare him, even when
-at last he cried for mercy. Strangwayes’ face came out of the blur of
-light, and Strangwayes griped hold of his hand, but gave him no other
-comfort. Then the light went out, and for a space Hugh had only ugly
-dreams.
-
-It was of a morning that he opened his eyes again upon a sane and
-remembered world. Somewhere near crackled a fire, the light of which
-dazzled him so he blinked and closed his eyes once more. Gradually he
-became aware that he was warm, and lay on something soft. He felt no
-pain at all now, and he could not understand why they had so fettered
-his body with bandages. Presently he summoned energy to open his eyes a
-second time, and, with long intervals of dozing, lay staring about him:
-a small, bare room he did not recollect to have seen before; one high,
-narrow window, with a naked branch that seemed to cleave it from corner
-to corner; a dancing fire that for a long time fascinated him. After
-that he studied the blue coverlet that was flung over him, and then,
-dragging out one arm, rested it upon the coverlet, and marvelled that
-his wrist was grown so slender.
-
-Then from somewhere Strangwayes came and stood over him, just the same
-as he had ever been, only now the lower part of his face was black with
-a half-grown beard. “Do you know me, Hugh?” he asked, and for once there
-was no laughter in his eyes.
-
-“Why, of course I know you,” Hugh replied, vexed at the folly of such a
-question.
-
-Drawing up a stool, Strangwayes sat down beside him, but Hugh hardly
-noted him for still gazing at that limp arm that did not seem to belong
-to him. But presently he found that he could move it, if he took his
-time, so with infinite pains he dragged his hand up to his face, and
-felt a great welt of plaster upon one cheek. “What’s to do?” he asked
-faintly.
-
-“A beauty mark you may keep with you,” Strangwayes said, with an effort
-at his old gay tone, though his eyes were blinking fast.
-
-Hugh rested a time, then, with much patience, lifted his hand to his
-head, and gave a gasp of consternation as he drew his uncertain fingers
-across a stiff, prickly surface. “What have you done to me now?” he
-cried.
-
-“Clipped you close. Do you think a fellow that gets him a fever can be
-let play Cavalier?”
-
-“You cut my hair?” Hugh repeated. “And it was growing bravely. He’d a
-had no need to call me Roundhead any more. I would not have used you
-so.” He slipped his hand down over his eyes, and burst into a pitiful
-sort of whimpering, he knew not why.
-
-“Be silent now!” Strangwayes cried, with a sharpness that made Hugh
-quiet with pure amazement that his friend could use such a tone to him.
-But after that Strangwayes put his pillow into shape, and, covering him
-up, bade him sleep, with all his old kindness.
-
-After sleeping long and comfortably Hugh awoke to see a candle
-flickering on the table, and the small window carefully hidden over with
-a curtain. “Are you here, Dick?” he asked, and Strangwayes, rising from
-before the fire, came to the side of his pallet. “Awake again, Hugh?
-Come, don’t you think you could eat a bit?”
-
-"I know not," Hugh spoke with long pauses. “Why, perhaps I am hungry. I
-thought something was amiss.”
-
-Strangwayes laughed, for no visible reason, and, presently fetching him
-broth, fed him with slow spoonfuls. The food put enough life into Hugh
-for him to ask at length, “Where are we?”
-
-“In a back chamber of the alehouse of the ‘Sceptre.’ There, question no
-farther. Your duty now is but to eat and sleep.”
-
-For many hours Hugh obeyed that command unquestioningly, and pained
-himself only to take the merest outer observation of what went on about
-him. A small pompous man in black, who dressed his wounds and left
-ill-tasting drugs came twice to the room; the drawer, Martin, came often
-with food; and Strangwayes was there always, right at his bedside,
-whenever he chose to call upon him. For the rest, there was the
-crackling fire to watch, and the window. Once when he looked to it of a
-morning he saw it thick with white frost, and Strangwayes, coming to the
-pallet, flung a cloak over him as he lay. Hugh watched him an instant,
-then broke out irrelevantly, “Dick, have I been very ill?”
-
-“Just a bit,” Strangwayes replied, in his dryest tone.
-
-“From the duel, was it not?” Hugh pursued; then suddenly: “Tell me, how
-did it fare with Bellasis? Has he recovered before me?”
-
-“He is recovered,” Strangwayes answered, and hastened away to mend the
-fire.
-
-But four and twenty hours later Hugh attacked his friend with a new
-query: “Why does not Frank or George come to visit me now? I think I be
-strong enough.”
-
-“Wait a time longer,” Strangwayes urged; so Hugh waited and pondered
-much. For his head did not ache now whenever he tried to think, so he
-went over all he remembered of the last days, and concluded on this and
-that till he was ready to ask farther questions.
-
-The late cold that made the window white had somewhat abated, when for
-the first time Strangwayes propped Hugh up in bed with two cushions
-behind him and a cloak about his shoulders. “I want to ask you
-something,” Hugh began then, soberly, “I am quite strong, you see. Now
-tell me, Dick, did I not hurt Bellasis?”
-
-“Yes,” Strangwayes answered, setting his face grimly to the front.
-
-“Sorely?” Hugh urged. “Tell me, Dick.”
-
-“You must lie down again,” Strangwayes ordered; but as he was stretched
-on his back Hugh caught his friend’s sleeve. “You must tell me,” he
-repeated. “Dick, I did not—kill him?”
-
-In spite of all he could do Strangwayes’ face made reply, and Hugh,
-after one look, turned himself to the wall.
-
-Presently Strangwayes’ arm was slipped under his neck. “You must not
-grieve for that man,” he spoke anxiously.
-
-At that Hugh turned and put his arm round Dick as he knelt by the
-pallet. “I was not grieving,” he said simply, “only I was sorry that
-after all I could not be sorry for him.” Then, after a moment: “Tell me
-all about it. Yes, now, I pray you, Dick.”
-
-Strangwayes looked at him, then settled himself a little more
-comfortably on the floor by the pallet. “You remember the fight?”
-
-Hugh nodded. “But I cannot understand how I had the better of it.”
-
-“He gave it you,” Strangwayes answered. “He scorned you so he destroyed
-himself. He fenced as if ’twere mere play, and his last thrust was not
-clean. It took you beneath the small ribs, not a mortal thrust, and
-there his rapier stayed hampered. And while his body was undefended, as
-he strove to wrench his blade free, you ran him through the bowels. They
-carried him off the field, I hear, but he was bleeding inside, and they
-could do nothing for him. So ’twas well we came out from the hands of
-the guard, for Lord Bellasis was mad with anger, and he has great
-friends and influence with the king, so by next day the ways were laid
-and they were seeking us to answer for his death.”
-
-“And you saved me from them,” Hugh said under his breath, while he tried
-to hug Dick with one arm.
-
-“Faith, ’twas saving myself at the same time, and I near killed you in
-the effort. Jack Ridydale and I caught you up on the alarm and plunged
-into the ditch at the edge of the field—”
-
-“I remember,” Hugh interrupted.
-
-“So do I,” Strangwayes said, and tried to force a laugh. “Sure, ’twas
-wet there. By the favor of fortune the watch passed over us, and we
-fetched you to the ‘Sceptre’ and had in a close-mouthed physician. And I
-was bravely frightened, Hugh, for there was no moving you hence, and
-here we lay in the jaws of the enemy. No, no, you’re in no danger now.
-For so soon as we were safe in the alehouse good old Ridydale made for
-the stable, and the watch had not yet searched here, so the horses were
-untouched. He got him on his own steed, took your Bayard and my Black
-Boy by the bridles, and rode for the west as fast as spur could drive.
-Toward dawn he faced about and trotted home again, the horses all
-belathered and crestfallen, and, jogging along the road in such trim, he
-was seized upon by the zealous patrol and haled into the city to answer
-as to our whereabouts.”
-
-“They did not harm him?” Hugh asked anxiously.
-
-“Harm him? Nay, the old scoundrel was more than their match. He swore we
-had posted all night, made a change of horses, and headed into the
-enemy’s country to take ship out of the realm. They coaxed him and they
-bullied him for three days, but the rascal lied with such liberality and
-discretion that in the end they must release him. So the matter stands,
-for some do truly believe we have got beyond seas, and my Lord Bellasis
-has still a hope that we be somewhere in the country round about here.
-And the most of the people, Hugh, have clean forgot about us by this.”
-
-“None know where we are? That is why none of the others have come
-hither?”
-
-“No; ’tis that I wanted few to come drawing suspicions to us. Sir
-William knows, and he was pleased to approve your conduct, Hugh, and
-sent us supply of money by the trusty old drawer here. Ridydale durst
-venture to us only once, for fear of being tracked. ’Twas when he was
-new released and he had had no word how it was faring with you. So he
-came and he brought news of Captain Gwyeth.”
-
-Hugh made no reply.
-
-“If you have the strength to hear it, I’d fain ease me of it,”
-Strangwayes went on. “This is what he had done, Hugh: When he got my
-word that man had forced a fight upon you because you were your father’s
-son, and when I prayed him to meet the hacking cutthroat—Heaven forgive
-me! Bellasis is dead now. Well, you know the answer Captain Gwyeth sent
-you. Having shown his proud temper in that, he set out, not to join us
-and intercept the man upon the field, but to seek him in the city. Now
-Bellasis, like a wise man, had withdrawn himself on a suspicion of that,
-so Alan Gwyeth did but meet Bellasis’ cousin, Herbert, who drew him into
-a scuffle under the very shadow of the Castle. They were promptly put
-under arrest therefor. Then the captain found the hour of the duel
-coming on, and he laid by the heels for his folly, and then—”
-Strangwayes paused, and tried to laugh himself into a less earnest tone.
-“Well, Hugh, he prayed to see the officer of the watch, and conveyed
-unto him full information of the place and time of the duel.”
-
-“Then ’tis he that is to thank for bringing the watch upon us?”
-
-“Yes, and for making us hale you into the ditch and near rack your poor
-body to pieces. I swear the rough handling we had to give you had as
-much share in bringing on the fever as your wounds. And as you lay in
-the very heat of the fever came this fine proud message from him that
-his will was to come unto you. And I wrote back unto him so he has not
-come. But if you wish him, Hugh, I’ll—well, doubtless I can crave his
-pardon, and then he will come to you.”
-
-“I do not wish to see him,” Hugh answered coldly. “What did you write
-him, Dick?”
-
-“’Twas not just a temperate letter, I’m fearing. For your fever had run
-four days, and there seemed no change save the worst change. Oh, well,”
-Strangwayes laughed, “I wrote him that his cursed ugly pride had never
-brought anything to you but disgrace and pain, and now he had killed you
-he should leave you to me. I told him his blundering stupidity in
-sending the watch would have wrecked your honor, had they come ten
-minutes earlier, and now it had wrecked your life. And I told him he had
-been no father to you while you lived, and he should not play that part
-in your death. I said if he came hither I would bar the door in his
-face. Truth, I must have been near mad to write so uncivilly, but—I had
-been watching with you three nights, and I was worried for you, lad. So
-he did not come. And you do not wish him to?”
-
-“No, never,” Hugh said, then lay silent so long that Strangwayes,
-slipping his arm from beneath his head, had risen, when Hugh broke out,
-“Dick, you must have sent him a message the day of the duel.”
-
-“Hm,” said Strangwayes, heading for the fireplace.
-
-“You promised me—”
-
-“Only not to speak to him,” the other put in hastily. “I did not. I
-wrote him a letter there in the bakeshop, and sent it by a stray
-trooper. Dear lad, I was trained for a lawyer. How could I resist a
-quibble? You’re going to forgive me, Hugh.”
-
-“’Tis a very little fault in you, Dick,” Hugh answered. “Though if
-another had done it—”
-
-“Well, I’ll never attempt to incline Captain Gwyeth to his duty again,
-rest assured,” Strangwayes ended their talk earnestly.
-
-So, while he still had barely strength to lift his head from off the
-pillow, Hugh came to full knowledge of how his affairs stood. He was
-glad to be told the worst, not be played with like a child, yet the
-realization of the desperate state to which the word and the blow at the
-Oxford ordinary had reduced, not only his own fortunes, but those of his
-friend, made his slow convalescence doubly hard to bear. Day followed
-day, all alike, save that on some the fire was heaped high for warmth,
-while on others, more frequently as time passed, the narrow window was
-flung wide open, and a breath of spring-like air sweeping in made
-confinement all the less endurable. Then Hugh fretted miserably, till he
-looked at Dick, and thought what it must mean to a man to be pent up in
-a sick room while he had all his limbs and strength at his command. For
-Strangwayes never left him, save for a half-hour or so at night, when he
-used to slip out by the back way and tramp about the bowling green, to
-bring in with him so fine a breeziness that Hugh used to lie awake for
-his coming. At first Strangwayes did not quit the chamber even for his
-rest, but, wrapping his cloak about him, stretched himself across the
-hearth, till Hugh, with gaining strength, assured him he could fare well
-enough without constant watching, and begged him to get a room and a
-bed. After that Hugh passed long, sleepless hours of the night in
-loneliness, while through the little window he watched the varying
-shades of the sky and the stars that had so many times looked back at
-him.
-
-During the day the chief diversions were to eat, and to note how many
-minutes more he contrived to sit up than on the preceding day. In the
-intervals he and Dick played cards, till the pack was wofully thumbed,
-or chess, which Hugh found easier, for he need only lie on his back and
-look sidewise at the board. Later Dick unearthed the whole library of
-the “Sceptre,” a fat “Palmerin of England,” whose “gallant history” he
-patiently read aloud to Hugh, who did not find the story enlivening, but
-got to appreciate Dick’s sarcastic comments. Still better he liked to
-hear his friend talk, half nonsense, half truth, of the things he had
-seen and done when he served in the Low Countries and made his stay in
-Paris. “How should you like to go thither yourself?” Strangwayes asked
-abruptly one March morning, when for the second time Hugh was sitting up
-in a chair.
-
-“With you?” the boy asked quickly.
-
-“No, not with me now,” Strangwayes answered; “I cannot quit the kingdom,
-Hugh, while there’s a blow to be struck. Even though I be a volunteer—”
-
-“Dick!” Hugh cried, “you’ve lost your commission through me?”
-
-“No, no, no,” Strangwayes said hastily. “Only ’twould be awkward to come
-to the front and claim it while this duel is still remembered. Sir
-William will always keep me a place in his regiment. And when you are
-cured, ’tis my purpose to go into the North to fight. I’ll not be easily
-recognized now my beard is grown, and I’ll put another name to me. There
-in the North I may chance to do something that will bring us a pardon
-for what we had a share in.”
-
-All of which Hugh only half heeded as he sat with his head in his hands.
-For it was worse than the realization that he had killed a man to know
-that he had wrought Dick’s fortunes such a terrible shock.
-
-Strangwayes said what he could that was generous, and ended with the old
-proposition to send Hugh, so soon as he was recovered, into the Low
-Countries, where he would be safe from all pursuit. But Hugh shook his
-head. “I cannot, Dick; I’d rather be hanged here on English ground, or
-whatever else they would do to me. Why, I could not speak their queer
-language yonder. And you’ve pampered me so, I durst not venture out
-among strangers again. I’ll do as you do, change my name, and volunteer
-somewhere else.”
-
-It was at this time he made a resolution, which he had a chance to carry
-out perhaps a week later, when Ridydale paid him a cautious visit. Sir
-William’s regiment marched northward in two days, the corporal
-explained, bound to garrison Tamworth, and he had thought it well to
-come see Master Hugh ere he went, and bring him his accoutrements from
-his quarters at Oxford. Hugh watched his chance till Dick had left them
-alone, then prayed Ridydale get Bayard from Turner’s stable and sell
-him. “I have been a heavy charge unto my friends, and am like to be
-heavier,” he explained painfully. “And in any case I cannot keep the
-horse, for he is known as mine, and might draw suspicion to me. He’s a
-good beast and should fetch a fair price. Only try your best, Corporal,
-to sell him unto some one will use him kindly.”
-
-Ridydale demurred, then yielded; and before he left Oxford, brought Hugh
-five sovereigns, the purchase money. Then there was an explanation with
-Strangwayes, who was downright angry, but finally laughed at himself.
-“Only a fool would quarrel with such a remnant of a fellow as you look
-now,” he concluded.
-
-Hugh felt the term was justified the first time he dragged on his
-clothes, which seemed cut for a lad of vastly greater brawn, and,
-contriving to hobble into the adjoining chamber, got sight of himself in
-the glass. Eyes, mouth, and a raw scar sheer across his left cheek,
-seemed all that was left of his face, and his close-cut hair added to
-the unfamiliarity of his look. “Scars are good adornments for a
-soldier,” he said bravely, but he tried in vain to find a complimentary
-phrase for the painful stiffness that lingered in his thigh.
-
-By dint of stumbling about his chamber, however, the lameness wore off,
-till he could walk with some surety of not falling against the
-furniture; and then there came a night he never forgot, when Strangwayes
-helped him carefully down the stairs, and, pacing slowly across the
-bowling green, they sat down on a bench that Hugh remembered. It was a
-clear spring evening, with the stars numerous and bright, and an earthy
-smell in the soft air. Hugh felt the ground beneath his feet once more,
-and stared at the poplars that still looked bare in the nighttime, while
-his heart grew full at the thought that he was alive to enjoy the spring
-and all the deeds that were yet to do. He spoke it all out, as he leaned
-against Strangwayes, by saying: “I am well again now, Dick. When shall
-we be off to the North?”
-
-“North? Not for you at present, lad,” Strangwayes replied. “You’re no
-figure for a camp yet. So I am going to carry you to a farm called
-Ashcroft, somewhat toward Warwickshire, where dwells a distant kinswoman
-of Sir William Pleydall and of my mother. ’Tis a good, bluff widow, whom
-I shall bid keep you well hidden, and see you go to bed betimes, and do
-not run off to kill Roundheads till I give the word. When you have back
-your strength again, you shall join me in Yorkshire, and we’ll go
-a-soldiering together again.”
-
-For the next week Hugh felt he had something to look forward to, though
-expectation made the days even more tedious. With long intervals of
-rest, he furbished up his sword and spurs, and, when that interest
-failed, spent much time in devising a name to assume till his peace was
-made with his Majesty. Strangwayes had announced early that he meant to
-go by the name of Henry Ramsden, and there was an end of it; but Hugh
-had an unaccountable feeling that he did not wish to take any one of the
-common names that men he knew had borne, and bestow it on a hunted
-duellist. He finally ended by calling himself Edmund Burley, but it was
-a long process of selection, and the choice was made only on the day he
-left the “Sceptre.”
-
-They made their start about midnight, when the road was quiet, and the
-houses in the fields beyond the alehouse were all black. Two horses were
-fetched them at the side door, the drawer held a lantern half screened
-with his hand as they mounted, and the host wished them God-speed in a
-guarded, low voice. Then they paced softly into the highway and headed
-northward under the starlight. At first Hugh sat straight, and would
-gladly have talked with Dick to tell him how easy, after all, he found
-the exercise. But Dick would have no speaking till almost cock-crow,
-when they were riding through a stretch of lonely fields, and by then no
-jauntiness was left in Hugh, only dull pain and faintness, so he had no
-will to say anything except, “Thank Heaven!” when Strangwayes, fairly
-lifting him off his horse, half carried him into a dwelling-place.
-
-There he spent the day, sleeping some and for the rest lying still as he
-was bidden, till twilight came on and once more they got to saddle. A
-little fine rain was sifting down now, and the cold wet on his face
-refreshed Hugh somewhat, but even then, when they halted at last at the
-gate of a lonely farm enclosure, he was drooping over his saddle-bow. He
-noted of the house only that there was a green settle in the living
-room, the arm of which was of just the right height to rest his head
-upon, and the loud-voiced woman who had roused up to greet them held a
-guttering candle so he was assured the dripping wax must soon burn her
-fingers.
-
-After that he remembered Dick helped him to bed in a little upper
-chamber; the sheets felt good, and he shut his eyes to keep out the
-troublesome candlelight. “Rain or no, I’m going to push on for Sir
-William’s house in Worcestershire,” Dick was saying. “You’re safe here
-with Widow Flemyng, Hugh. And ere long I’ll have you with me again. God
-keep you till then, old lad!” He bent down and kissed Hugh, who hugged
-him with a sudden childish feeling that he could not let Dick go.
-
-So he turned over with his face in the pillow, broad awake now, and he
-heard Dick’s boots creaking down the stairway. He lay listening alertly
-for more, but he heard only the spatter of rain upon the window.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV
- THE LIFE OF EDMUND BURLEY
-
-
-At one end of the bench outside the garden door of Ashcroft, Widow
-Flemyng’s great black cat lay sunning himself; at the other end Hugh
-Gwyeth sat hugging one knee, while he wondered drowsily which were the
-lazier, he or the cat. In the alert blue spring weather the tips of
-green things were bursting through the soft mould of the garden; the
-birds were making a great ado in the trees; and in the field beyond the
-hedge the widow’s man, Ralph, was ploughing, and whistling as he
-ploughed. Only Master Hugh Gwyeth lingered idly on the garden bench and
-meditatively handled the flabby muscles of his arm till he grew
-impatient with himself. Three weeks and more he had been at Ashcroft,
-yet this was all the strength he had gained or was likely to gain with
-sitting still. He dragged the cat, heavy and reluctant, up from its nap,
-and was trying to coax the creature to jump over his hands, which at
-least required a little exertion, when Nancy, the serving-maid, came out
-to potter about the garden. Spying him, she called: “Don’t ’ee vex poor
-Gib, now. Better get thee into the kitchen; the mistress is at her
-baking.”
-
-Hugh laughed, and, rising leisurely, made his way down the garden to the
-rear door. Women were droll creatures, he reflected; his mother, of
-course, had always treated him with tenderness, but why these strangers
-should pamper him like a child, and concern themselves about his every
-movement, was more than he could puzzle out. From the first Nancy had
-made no end of commiserating him for the scar on his face, and even the
-widow herself, for all her sharp ways, had been melted to pity, when she
-came to examine his wardrobe. “Well, well, well! when did a woman put
-hand to these shirts?” she had cried, whereat Hugh informed her
-blushingly that ’twas his custom to have his shirts washed till they
-grew too tattered to serve even under a buff jacket, and then he threw
-them away. “You poor thriftless child!” sighed the widow, “sure, you’re
-not fit to be sent to the wars.” So she mended his shirts and stockings,
-and, when that way of showing her motherly care failed, brewed him
-ill-tasting concoctions of herbs, which Hugh swallowed courteously,
-though with inward protests against this expression of good-will. He was
-far more grateful when her kindness finally took the form of cooking him
-such food as he liked, and pressing him to eat at all times, for his
-illness had left him with an alarming appetite, which without such
-connivance could never have been decently satisfied.
-
-He halted now, as he had often done, with his elbows on the sill of the
-opened window in the long kitchen, and took a sweeping survey of the
-dressers and the fireplace and the brick oven. Just by the window stood
-a table at which the Widow Flemyng, with her sleeves tucked up and her
-broad face flushed, was rolling out pastry. “I marvel you’ve not been
-here before,” she said gruffly, as she caught sight of him; “where have
-you been all this morning now?”
-
-“Teasing the cat,” Hugh answered. “Before that I was down through the
-meadow—”
-
-The widow paused with her rolling-pin suspended. “That meadow again? And
-no doubt you wet your feet!”
-
-“On my word, good widow,” Hugh laughed, “my kinsfolk have trusted me
-abroad without a nurse for several years now.”
-
-“The more fools they!” she replied, smacking the pastry smartly once
-more.
-
-Profiting by the pause, Hugh reached one arm in at the window and helped
-himself to a strip of pie-crust, all hot and newly baked, that lay
-there; he might repress his early fondness for honey and jam, but crisp
-pastry was still too great a temptation for him to resist.
-
-“That’s a right Roundhead trick to come thieving at a poor woman’s
-window!” said the widow.
-
-“Was there never such a thing as a Cavalier thief?” Hugh suggested.
-
-“I never speak treason, sir. There do be some that say there is a
-garrison yonder at Woodstead Manor that never was known to pay for what
-it lives by, but I speak no ill of the king’s men, you’ll note.”
-
-Hugh had cause enough to note and remember the conversation a few days
-later. Of a dull gray afternoon he had taken himself to his chamber,
-dutifully to practise thrusts with his sword at a round mark on the
-wainscot, an exercise which proved tedious, so he was glad enough when a
-noise of horses stamping and men calling in the yard below gave him an
-excuse for running to the window. At the front of the cottage nothing
-was to be seen, so, flinging on his coat, he ran downstairs into the
-kitchen, whence came the sound of high talk. Bursting into the room, he
-found Nancy crouched by the fireplace, and Ralph skulking by her, while
-at the door stood Widow Flemyng, arms akimbo, in hot discourse with a
-cross-eyed trooper, who wore the king’s colors.
-
-“I tell you, it shall not be put up!” the man was blustering. “We’d
-scarce set foot in your stable when your rascal would be breaking a
-stave across Garrett’s head.”
-
-“And I tell you, you shall put up with it!” retorted the widow. “Do you
-think to come plundering decent loyal bodies, you minching thieves? Not
-a step do you stir into this house. Reach me hither the kettle, you
-white-livered Ralph.”
-
-Hugh prudently got the kettle into his own hands, then presented himself
-at the door with the query, “What’s amiss?”
-
-“Here are three rogues from Woodstead who seek to plunder the very
-horses from my plough,” replied the widow, clapping hands on the kettle.
-“Now come in if you dare, the pack of you!”
-
-But Hugh stayed her arm, while he looked out and got the situation. In
-the open space between the rear door and the stable three horses drooped
-their heads, and by them lingered two dragoons, one heavy and surly, the
-other a thin-faced fellow, who, looking sharply at Hugh, nudged his
-comrade. It seemed just an ordinary small foraging band, who were going
-beyond their authority, so Hugh stepped out and confronted the
-cross-eyed man with a stern, “What’s your warrant for this?”
-
-“King’s service, sir,” the other replied, gazing at him a little
-doubtfully.
-
-“’Tis service that will profit you little if it come to your captain’s
-ears,” Hugh answered. “There are none here but loyal people and friends
-to the king. Best take advice and go back empty-handed. ’Twill be for
-your good in the end.”
-
-Just there a hand was clapped heavily upon his collar; instinctively
-Hugh was ducking to wrest himself clear, when the cross-eyed man, too,
-caught him by the throat of his jacket, and, realizing the uselessness
-of a struggle, the boy held himself quiet. “We’ll go back to Woodstead
-right enough, sir,” spoke the thin-faced trooper, who had first seized
-him. “But you’ll go with us, Master Gwyeth.”
-
-“My name is Edmund Burley,” Hugh replied stoutly, though the heart
-seemed all at once to have gone out of his body.
-
-“Well, you’ve enough the look of the other gentleman for Lord Bellasis
-to pay ten pound for the sight of your face. You can explain to him who
-you are, sir,” scoffed the thin-faced man. “Fetch a horse from the
-stable for him, Garrett.”
-
-After that, as in an ugly dream, matters went without Hugh’s agency. He
-felt his arm ache in the hard grip of the cross-eyed man, which he had
-no hope to shake off; he heard the widow in heated expostulation with
-the thin-faced trooper, assuring him the gentleman had dwelt with her
-near six months, and could not have had a hand in the mischief they
-charged him with; he saw Nancy come out, all blubbering, to bring him
-his hat, and he said, “Why, don’t cry over it, wench,” and wondered at
-the dull tone of his voice. It seemed an interminable time, but at
-length one of the plough horses was led out, all saddled, and, mounting
-as they bade him, he rode away with them in the gray of the afternoon.
-As they passed out from the yard he heard the door of Ashcroft slam, and
-by that he knew the widow was much moved.
-
-Then, turning eastward, they trotted slowly across gray fields, a
-trooper on either side Hugh’s horse, and he went as they guided. For he
-took no heed to them, as he told himself that Dick Strangwayes was far
-away in the North, Sir William busied at Tamworth, and in Oxford there
-was not a friend to aid him. Already he seemed to feel the chill of the
-cells in the old Castle at Oxford, and to see a room full of stern men
-who bullied and frightened him; after that he thought to hear the cart
-jolting beneath him across the stony streets, while the people ran and
-pointed at him; and then he felt a rope about his throat. He tried
-helplessly to battle off such thoughts, but they still pressed upon him
-till his head was stupid with turning them over, and, listening
-uncomprehendingly to the talk of those about him, he rode in a sort of
-daze.
-
-The afternoon grew grayer and grayer, and was merging into twilight when
-they rode through a poor village, beyond which, upon a barren swell of
-highland, they came to a stockade flung around a small manor house. They
-crossed a rough bridge over a moat, and so, keeping to the left of the
-house, drew rein at length before a great stable. “Yon’s the captain,
-now,” spoke the cross-eyed man, peering into the dark of the building.
-
-“Looking to the cocks, I’ll be bound,” muttered he of the sharp face.
-
-“What dog’s mischief have you been loitering about, you knaves?” came
-from within the stable, and the voice was one Hugh remembered.
-
-“Captain Butler!” he cried, flinging himself from the saddle, and,
-stumbling through the door, near embraced the big Irishman who came to
-meet him.
-
-“Good faith, ’tis not—” Butler began.
-
-“I am Edmund Burley,” Hugh interrupted feverishly. “Sure, you remember
-me, sir?”
-
-Butler pulled him outside, where the light was clearer, and after that
-instant’s pause turned upon the troopers with a violent demand as to
-what they meant. One replied, “’Tis he who killed Master Bellasis;” but
-the captain cut him short with a volley of abuse, that they durst hale
-thither an innocent man and a friend of his, too, and followed it with
-threats of a flogging to them all and bluster and oaths, till the three
-were cowed into a frightened silence.
-
-“Well, I’ll be easy with you this time, you rogues,” Butler resumed
-after a moment, “for Master Burley is a merciful man, and I’m thinking
-would be better pleased that you went free. And, faith, he bears so
-little malice he wishes you all to drink his health.” Thus admonished,
-Hugh pulled three shillings out of his pocket and tossed them to his
-late captors before Butler led him away to the house. “Come have a drink
-with me, Burley,” he said, and added, with a chuckle, “I take it you
-need it.”
-
-“That was a narrow escape, eh, Gwyeth?” he spoke later, as Hugh was
-swallowing down a bumper of Spanish wine in the west parlor of the
-house.
-
-“Narrow as I ever wish,” Hugh replied truthfully.
-
-“I think my fellows will hold their tongues now, betwixt threats and
-bribes,” Butler went on. “But after this you’d best do as you should
-have done at the first, shelter yourself among honest soldiers, who’d
-die ere they’d let a comrade come to harm, just for spitting a paltry
-civilian.”
-
-In the end Hugh thought it best to take the advice; if he returned to
-Ashcroft there was no reason that Cavalier marauders should not stray
-thither again, and a second apprehension might not end so happily. Then,
-besides, he was glad, after his weeks of illness and dependence, to be
-once more among men, who accepted him as an equal and did not fret him
-with constant care. Holding this feeling rather ungrateful, he took
-pains to write a very civil and thankful letter to the Widow Flemyng,
-which George Allestree conveyed to her, when he rode to Ashcroft with
-one of the men to fetch away Hugh’s clothes and accoutrements.
-
-Allestree had welcomed Hugh boisterously, although he had an alarming
-habit of almost forgetting to call him Burley; the blue-eyed Irish
-volunteer, Mahone, received him with open arms; and even the lieutenant,
-Cartwright, unbent a little toward him. Before a fortnight was out Hugh
-understood, for by then he felt he could have fallen on the neck of the
-meanest scamp, just for joy at sight of a new face in the garrison.
-Woodstead lay close upon the borders of Warwickshire, where the rebels
-were up in strength, so none were allowed to venture forth far from the
-house. All day long there was nothing to do but to walk up and down the
-cramped enclosure, to converse with the troopers as to sick dogs and
-lame horses, or to watch Butler’s cocks mangle each other in fight, till
-in sheer disgust Hugh turned away. But within the house he found still
-less amusement; there was not even a Gervase Markham or a Palmerin to
-read, so he was reduced to persuading Allestree or Mahone into fencing
-with him, and, that failing, could only play at cards or watch the
-others at dice, and listen to Cartwright’s same old stories or the
-everlastingly same chatter of the younger men.
-
-Once, to be sure, there came a day of excitement, when a part of the
-troop prepared to ride away to forage in the hostile country. They set
-forth bravely in the mid-afternoon, and till they were lost in dust
-Hugh, with neither a horse to ride nor sufficient strength for the work,
-watched them wistfully from the entrance gate. Then he loitered away to
-his lonely supper with Cartwright, who cursed the luck that left him
-behind to command the garrison, and drank so deeply Hugh must call a man
-to help him to bed. Next day Butler and his men came back, noisy and
-victorious, with cartloads of grain and much miscellaneous plunder that
-the common soldiery had taken to themselves. They brought also a
-Roundhead lieutenant, half-stripped, grimy, and sullen, whom Butler
-clapped into an obscure room on a spare diet till he could find leisure
-from his more serious affairs to look to him. For the captain had laid
-hands on a considerable amount of strong waters, so for two days there
-was high carousing at Woodstead, which shocked Hugh, used though he had
-become among these comrades to the sight of hard drinking.
-
-While Butler and his officers shouted and smashed glasses below stairs,
-and the men in their turn let discipline slip, Hugh, in the hope of
-getting some tidings of his Oldesworth kindred, bribed his way in to
-speak with the Roundhead prisoner. The man was defiant at first, then
-more communicative when Hugh smuggled him in some bread and meat, but,
-being of a Northamptonshire regiment, he could give little of the
-information Hugh sought, save that he had heard of Captain Thomas
-Oldesworth and had had speech with Hugh’s other uncle, Lieutenant David
-Millington, who was in garrison with his company of foot at Newick in
-Warwickshire. For his Roundhead kinsfolk’s sake Hugh lent the lieutenant
-a coat, and, when Butler, in a shaky, white state of sobriety, packed
-him off under guard to prison at Oxford, gave five shillings to the
-corporal who had charge of the squad, and urged him to use the prisoner
-as civilly as he could. Considering the temper of the squad, however,
-and the fact that his old acquaintance, the surly Garrett, was one of
-them, Hugh decided those five shillings had probably been expended for
-nothing.
-
-Near a week later the men came back, and, in his joy at any new sight in
-his monotonous life, Hugh turned out to meet them. He counted them idly,
-as they came pacing in at the gate, till his eyes fell upon a horse that
-Garrett led, a bay horse, all saddled, which put up its head and
-whickered. “Bayard!” Hugh cried, plunging into the press, and, getting
-the horse clear, fair put his arms about its neck in the face of the
-whole garrison. “Where did you find him?” he questioned Garrett a moment
-later, sharply, to preserve his dignity.
-
-The man explained they had come home by a way that took them near
-Ashcroft, for he held there might be letters Master Burley would gladly
-pay a price for, and there they had found both a letter and the horse,
-which had been waiting him some days.
-
-Hugh paid generously, the more so as he saw the letter was directed in
-Dick’s black hand; that made the sending of Bayard no longer a mystery,
-for doubtless Dick would have him come northward now and so had sent him
-the horse. He could hardly wait to see the beast stabled before he ran
-up to the chamber he shared with Allestree, and tore open the letter
-that should summon him. Then he read:—
-
-SWEET FRIEND:
-
-It doth grieve me to bring you aught of disappointment, but patience
-perforce, lad. Sir W. hath need of ammunition and of fieldpieces, so he
-hath commissioned me, because of old acquaintance in those parts, to go
-into the Low Countries and see what may be procured. I would I could
-take you with me, but my time is short, for the ship only waits a
-prosperous wind. When my task yonder is done I shall come quietly to the
-place you know of to confer with Sir W. I will convey you a word, and if
-you will join me there we will try another bout with Fortune together.
-Till then you were best keep yourself close. There is a rumor that the
-lord you know of hath no such big voice in the king’s counsels as he
-used. Time, then, and patience may bring all right with us. Commend me
-to good Mistress Flemyng, and be assured at longest I shall send for you
-ere the end of summer.
-
- Your very loving friend,
-
- HENRY RAMSDEN.
-
-NEWCASTLE, May 20th, 1643.
-
-That night Hugh ate no supper. Sitting on the broad window-bench he
-watched the sunlight wane upon the floor, and the twilight fill in the
-chamber, and from time to time, till it was quite dark, he re-read the
-letter. In those hours he came to realize how much he had lived on the
-expectation that any day Dick might call for him, and he sickened at the
-thought of the dull, hateful days of inactivity before him, for now he
-must school himself to endure the long three months of summer with
-Butler’s crew. Below he could hear the officers singing over their wine,
-and, fearing lest Allestree might come half-drunk to urge him to the
-table and jeer at his sorry silence, he slipped out by the back way to
-the stable, where till bedtime he tried to find some comfort in petting
-Bayard.
-
-Next day life was running its old round, save that the hope which before
-had made it tolerable was gone. That week Hugh discontinued fencing; the
-weather was over-hot, and besides, what use to drill himself for action,
-when Dick had no need of him, and his present companions were content to
-idle? Instead of using the rapier, he set himself to watching Allestree
-and Mahone at dice, and at length came to take a hand himself. It was an
-ill memory to him afterward, those feverish summer mornings when,
-sitting in their shirt-sleeves, they threw and threw, sometimes with
-high words and oaths, sometimes in silence, save for Allestree’s
-half-laugh when he made a winning cast. Fortune varied, but in time
-there came a day when Hugh got up from the table, and, thrusting his
-hands into two empty pockets, slouched off with his head down. He heard
-Allestree say, “I hate a fellow who loses with ill grace,” and Mahone
-call, “Hi, Ed! Come back. Don’t give over, man, as long as you’ve a
-shirt to stake. Put up your horse now.”
-
-But Hugh shook his head. Though he had diced away every penny he
-possessed, and with it every hope of setting out by himself to seek
-other harborage than Woodstead, he would not risk his horse and sword.
-Not twenty-four hours later he had cause to rejoice at having kept his
-equipments, for at the mess table Butler announced briskly that next day
-the troop would ride a-foraying into Northamptonshire, to a little
-village called Northrope, where corn could be got in plenty. “And wine
-from a brave tavern there,” Allestree whispered Hugh; “Else the captain
-would not be so forward in this business.”
-
-But in his joy at having a hand in active service once more, the end of
-the expedition mattered nothing to Hugh. Before noon next day he had his
-buff jacket on and his sword slung over his shoulder, then fretted away
-the long hours of expectation by tramping about the enclosure, settling
-Bayard’s saddle, and listening to Allestree’s proffered bets on the
-success of the night’s work. The sun had set behind the low green hills,
-when at last Butler led half his troop forth from Woodstead, with
-Allestree to keep the rear and Mahone and Hugh to put themselves
-wherever they were bid. In spite of the gathering twilight the air was
-still heavy with the sweltering heat of the day, and the dust that was
-beaten up by the feet of the horses prickled and stung. Before the first
-mile was out Hugh had flung open his coat, and was more disturbed at
-Bayard’s sweating than at the thought of the skirmish that was to come.
-
-The night air was cooler and the stars were out thick, when at length
-the word ran through the line that Northrope lay over the next swell in
-the plain. Falling in with the squadron behind Butler, who was to sweep
-around and attack the village from the east while Allestree rode in at
-the west side, Hugh drew away noiselessly from the rest of the troop,
-and at a swift canter passed through a field into a piece of
-spicy-smelling woodland. Beyond that they rode softly along a stretch of
-sandy road, and at last halted upon the brow of a hill, beneath which
-the dark roofs of cottages could be seen. At a whispered command from
-Butler Hugh ranged himself among the corporal’s guard who were to keep
-the hill and stop whoever fled that way, while the rest of the dragoons
-fell into place behind the captain. Then the leader turned to a trooper,
-who, swinging his dragon to his shoulder, fired into the air. An
-instant, and far to the west another shot replied, Butler shouted to
-charge, and with his men at his heels galloped away down the hill.
-
-Below in the village Hugh heard the sound of clattering hoofs, of shouts
-of attack, and shriller cries. A moment later, and, as he gazed, he saw
-over to the west a reddish gleam that broadened and brightened. “They’ve
-fired the village,” muttered one trooper, and the rest grumbled
-subduedly that all within the scurvy place would be burned ere they came
-to share the plunder.
-
-The moments ran on, while the fire rose and sunk again, till Hugh judged
-the night more than half spent. Still none had fled in their direction;
-the men were restless at their useless stay, and Hugh himself had grown
-to hate this waiting, for it left him time to reflect, and to compare
-this raid with the daylight fighting he had had under Turner. For all
-the ugly sights of plunder to be seen he felt it a relief when the
-corporal gave the word to descend into the village, and gladly as the
-rest he trotted forward.
-
-Once in among the houses his comrades scattered to plunder, but Hugh,
-left alone, rode on down the street, which grew lighter with the flare
-of the burning houses. He had sight of household stuff that littered the
-roadway; in the lee of a wall he saw a man sitting with his hand pressed
-to his breast; and down toward the blaze, where was a great yelling and
-confusion, he made out against the glare the black shapes of men running
-to and fro. He saw, too, nearer at hand, a flapping sign-board before
-what seemed an inn, where a noisy crew had possession, and he halted a
-moment, while he wondered grimly if Butler were not there and if he
-should report to him. As he hesitated he heard some one shout from an
-upper window of the cottage on his right, and he let his eyes travel
-thither. The place looked dark and blank, but as he gazed the door was
-kicked open and a man came forth, holding by the arm a girl, who dragged
-back with all her slender strength. “What devil’s trade are you about?”
-Hugh called angrily. “Bring the wench hither.”
-
-The man hesitated, then unwillingly slouched nearer. As the firelight
-flared along the street Hugh saw it was his old enemy, the cross-eyed
-trooper; then his gaze dropped lower to the pallid face of the girl. At
-that Hugh sprang from his saddle with a cry, “Lois, Lois!”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI
- ROUNDHEADS AND CAVALIERS
-
-
-He had thrust the trooper aside and drawn the girl close to him. “Sure,
-you do not fear me, Lois?” he urged, for she stood with her hands to her
-face and her body braced tensely against the pressure of his arm. “I’m
-Hugh Gwyeth. You’ve not forgot—”
-
-At that she uncovered her face and stared at him with so piteous a look
-of fright that Hugh hated himself and all who had had a share in that
-night’s work. “Be off with you.” He swung round upon the cross-eyed
-trooper with some of Allestree’s favorite oaths. “The gentlewoman is kin
-to me. Get you hence and be thankful I let you go with a whole skin.”
-
-Then he looked again to Lois, and, noting now that she had no outer
-covering upon her shoulders, unstrapped his cloak from the front of his
-saddle and wrapped it about her, drawing the folds up to hide her face
-somewhat. He felt her hands clutch tremulously at his wrist, and her
-voice broke into a choking sob: “O, Hugh! In sober truth, ’tis you? You
-will take care of me?”
-
-“To be sure I will,” he said, and, slipping Bayard’s bridle over one
-arm, put the other about the girl. “Just come with me now.”
-
-They walked toward where the cottages were burning, slowly, for Lois
-staggered as she went, and Hugh, for all his brave speech, was dazed
-with the necessity of thinking what he was to do for her protection.
-Woodstead was no place to which to fetch a girl, nor was any other
-harbor open to him. He halted short in his perplexity, then turned to
-her with a sudden idea: “Look you here, Lois; would you wish me to
-convey you unto Newick, to Lieutenant Millington?”
-
-“’Tis thither I was going,” she answered faintly.
-
-“Well, you shall be safe there ere to-morrow noon,” he assured her.
-“Just a little time here, and be not afraid.”
-
-Thereupon he faced across the street to the house with the sign-board,
-where he guessed might be wine and Captain Butler. Within were lights
-and men stamping to and fro, while without at the entrance door lingered
-others, among whom Hugh caught sight of Garrett, still sober, and seized
-on him. “I want your help,” he said brusquely; “I’ll pay you for it ere
-I die. Procure some sort of white flag, and find me out a pillion for
-this gentlewoman. Put it on my horse and be ready to ride with me when I
-bid.”
-
-Leaving the man with mouth and eyes open in astonishment, he led Lois
-into the tavern. Across the corridor a trooper was sprawling, drunk,
-Hugh saw, as he thrust him aside with his foot to give the girl passage.
-Inside the common room the floor crackled with broken glass, on the
-chimney-piece two candles sputtered unevenly, and by the table, a bottle
-in one hand, a great mug in the other, stood Butler. Hugh felt Lois
-press closer to him, but he resolutely left her on a settle by the wall
-and went up to the captain. “I pray you, sir, give me a safe-conduct to
-pass through the lines with one of your dragoons,” he blurted out his
-business.
-
-Butler cursed him roundly, and Hugh, standing stiffly, heard him out
-without reply, while in his heart he prayed the ugly fit of drunkenness
-might speedily give place to the maudlin fit. A heavy stamping made him
-turn in sudden hope as Allestree reeled in from superintending the
-seizure of the tavern stores. But one look at the guidon told Hugh he
-was too far gone to aid him now, so he could only fall back beside Lois,
-and, taking hold of her hand, bid her wait a little longer and not fear.
-
-Presently, after Allestree had pitched into a chair with his head on the
-table, Hugh once more made his request to Butler, and once more was
-gruffly refused. But then, chancing to spy ink and paper on a shelf, he
-blotted off a safe-conduct, and, again presenting himself to the
-captain, begged him sign. There were refusals of varying sternness, but
-with all the obstinacy of his square chin Hugh followed the man up and
-down the chamber, pen in hand, and, holding his temper well in check for
-the girl’s sake, bore the other’s abuse and only prayed him sign. At
-last Butler, snatching the pen from his hand, splashed a great signature
-across the sheet. “Take it, in the devil’s name, you hell babe!” he
-cursed.
-
-Hugh thrust the paper inside his coat, and, running to Lois, jostled a
-way for her out to the open air. By the tavern door Garrett, holding a
-pike with a white napkin bound to it, was sitting his horse, and by him
-stood Bayard with a cushion fixed behind the saddle. Hugh helped Lois to
-her place, then, leaping up before her, rode briskly out from the
-village.
-
-Not till the sight of the fire and the noise of the shouts of the
-plunderers were quite lost to them did Hugh let Bayard’s eager trot
-subside to an amble. He turned a little to ask Lois how she fared, and
-bid her keep the cloak close about her against the damp of the early
-morning; then he called to Garrett, and, in talking with him of the road
-they must take for Newick, time enough passed for the stars to grow few
-in the sky. After that they rode a long space in silence, save for the
-soft scuff of the horses now and again as they came upon a stretch of
-sandy road. The sky grew a fainter dun color, and in the east a slit of
-pale light showed, while in the west a white shred of moon yet lingered
-on the horizon line. The morning breeze, coming damp on Hugh’s face,
-made him heavy with desire to sleep; only at a splashing sound of water
-did he rouse up with a jerk to find Bayard knee-deep in a ford and
-drinking greedily. To right and left the bushes above the stream were
-dusky, but flecks of lighter gray showed in the water where the road ran
-down to meet it. “’Twill be sunrise soon,” Hugh said, and shook himself
-awake.
-
-“Think you, presently, I might have a drink of water?” Lois asked
-hesitatingly.
-
-“Why, here and now you shall have it!” he cried, and, flinging his
-bridle to Garrett, lifted Lois from her place and led her a little
-upstream within the shadow of the bushes.
-
-As she knelt on the brink and drank slowly from her hand, Hugh had space
-to note how white her face was and how weary her every gesture. So when
-she rose he drew her back a little to the roots of an oak tree, where he
-bade her sit and rest a time. Garrett shrugged his shoulders, when the
-word was passed to him, then tied the horses and went to stretch himself
-on the bank farther down-stream. Hugh returned to Lois, and, seating
-himself beside her, persuaded her to lean against him, till her eyes
-closed and he hoped that she might sleep. He sat very still and looked
-sometimes at her brown head against his shoulder, and sometimes at the
-branches of the oak above him and the clear sky beyond that was growing
-brighter and taking on a bluish tinge. He listened to the hurry of the
-brook and the restless stamp of the horses; then, shutting his eyes, he
-seemed only to see Everscombe manor house and the sunlight upon the
-eastern terrace.
-
-“Are you asleep, too?” The words were spoken softly, but they startled
-him through all his body.
-
-“I am awake now, in any case,” he replied, and laughed a little with a
-foolish sort of satisfaction as he looked down at Lois. For the tense
-look of the night before had left her eyes, and she had again the face
-of his old comrade at Everscombe.
-
-“Your poor arm will sleep next, Hugh. I am leaning too heavily against
-it.”
-
-“I had not felt it,—if you are content.”
-
-Lois smiled slightly and tremulously, then, slipping out one hand, drew
-her fingers through the wet grass. “There has been a heavy dew,” she
-said irrelevantly, “and it has soaked my shoes,—my shoe, I mean.” She
-let her feet just show beneath her petticoat, and Hugh had sight of one
-stout shoe and the toe of a small gray stocking.
-
-“You’ve been tramping with one foot half bare?” he broke out.
-
-“Nay, nay, I have been riding. I knew it not till this morning, so I did
-not mind. I must have left that other shoe in the closet where I hid
-away.”
-
-“Tell me, Lois, how came you there at Northrope?” he asked, after an
-instant.
-
-The girl’s face lost its flash of gayety. “Why, ’tis only—” she began,
-and, pulling some blades of grass, twisted them between her fingers
-without looking at him. “Last October ’twas, Aunt Delia said perchance I
-were best now go visit my mother’s kinsfolk in Northamptonshire. And
-last week they said I had best visit her again. O me, I know not why
-they will not have me! I do not eat so much, Hugh, and I am ready to be
-of service.” She pushed aside his arm and leaned forward with her head
-upon her knee; by the movement of her shoulders he knew that she was
-crying.
-
-He realized well why she wept, and he knew, too, there was no help that
-he could offer; so he only bent forward, and, speaking her name gently,
-patted her shoulder. He heard her swallow a sob, then, with her head
-still bowed, she went on defiantly, “So there is nothing to tell, Hugh.
-A neighbor was riding to Northrope for the day, so they sent me with him
-and he left me at that cottage. They thought perhaps some carrier might
-be going to Newick, and would convey me thither; then Lieutenant
-Millington would find means to despatch me to Everscombe. That is all.”
-
-Hugh bit his nails and made no reply. If his own father rejected him,
-how could he reproach the uncles and aunts who grudged shelter to an
-orphan girl? Only she was a girl and weak, and somehow they seemed worse
-than Alan Gwyeth. He fell back on his stock piece of comfort: “You
-should ha’ been a boy, Lois, and then it had all been easy.”
-
-“But I have no wish to be a boy,” Lois said sorrowfully, as she turned
-away her face to wipe her eyes.
-
-“Perhaps ’twould not be so pleasant,” Hugh admitted, and added, with a
-thought of Frank, “Young boys are sometimes vexatious.”
-
-Lois gave a laugh that was a bit hysterical. “You have grown very
-arrogant. Prithee, now, tell me all about yourself and how you got that
-sorry scar.”
-
-Hugh hesitated, to collect himself, then set forth at great length what
-pertained to Strangwayes, and very hastily told her that his father had
-disowned him. At that her face grew so grave he hurried back to
-Strangwayes again, and forbore to tell her of the duel. So they talked
-on till a shaft of sunlight dazzled upon the brook, and the trees cast
-clean dark shadows on the pathway. “We must ride for Newick,” said Hugh,
-jumping to his feet. “You’re not so weary, Lois? Wait till the next
-village and you shall have wine to hearten you. Perchance you could eat,
-too?”
-
-“Perchance, if ’twere offered,” Lois replied demurely, as she smoothed
-her hair with her hands.
-
-“It shall be looked to, I promise you,” he answered gayly, and walked
-away. Before he had gone ten paces, however, his gayety was at an end,
-for he tucked his hands into a brace of bare pockets. He fidgeted a
-moment by the horses; then, taking his only course, walked over to the
-surly trooper. “Garrett,” he began, in a low tone, “have you money about
-you?”
-
-“Ay, sir.”
-
-“Will you lend unto me?”
-
-“You swore the giving should lie all on your side,” the other answered
-suspiciously.
-
-“I tell you I’ll pay,” Hugh said angrily; and, seizing on the two
-shillings the other reluctantly proffered, walked away with his face
-burning.
-
-It had been a petty incident, but the ill taste of it lingered with him,
-and took all pleasure from the getting to horse once more. Even the
-sight of Lois’s half-smiling face, and her droll efforts to spare her
-stockinged foot, could not restore him to his old contented mood. He led
-her in silence to where Bayard stood, and there she halted suddenly with
-eyes upon the horse. “Why, ’tis indeed the same,” she cried. “’Tis
-Peregrine’s steed they said you—”
-
-“Stole?” Hugh asked sharply. “Ay, ’tis the same.”
-
-Then he lifted her to her place, and without a word more set forward.
-
-An hour later, in the full heat of the morning sun, they rode into a
-little hamlet, where the people stared at the Royalist red sashes, and
-shouted saucy comments on the strangers. Hugh made his way scowlingly to
-the village inn, and, helping Lois dismount, led her into the common
-room, where he called on the hostess to bring wine and white bread for
-the girl. “Are you going with these ruffians of your own will,
-sweetheart?” he heard the good woman whisper Lois.
-
-He was turning away impatiently, when, just at the door, he ran upon the
-tapster. “Draw two mugs of ale for my man and me,” he ordered curtly.
-
-“Will I, sir? Who’s to pay?” retorted the other. “An you pay, ’twill be
-the first of your color—”
-
-“Will you talk?” Hugh cried, with an oath; and struck the fellow so he
-staggered. “Fetch what I bid now,” he swore. Then he turned to go back
-into the common room; and there Lois sat, not eating, but gazing at him
-with blank, dismayed face.
-
-Without staying to drink his ale, Hugh went out and loitered at Bayard’s
-head, where he kicked up spiteful little spurts of dust and would not
-stroke the horse. When Lois hobbled out at last in a pair of over-large
-shoes, he helped her to mount; she did not speak, and he only looked
-sharply at her, but said nothing. As the roofs of the village sank
-behind the hill in their rear, however, he turned in the saddle and
-addressed her almost roughly, “So you are not pleased with me?”
-
-“Sure, Hugh, I must be pleased; you have used me so kindly—”
-
-“That’s a right woman’s trick to bungle at a plain ‘no,’” he said, with
-a curt laugh; then started, for tone and laugh sounded to him as an echo
-of Allestree, whom he had left drunk at Northrope. Putting spurs to
-Bayard, he pressed on at a reckless pace, so the dust rose thick and
-white, and turned his throat dry, and sifted in between his collar and
-his neck. He was hot and weary and wretchedly angry against all the
-world, especially against Lois Campion, why, he could not tell himself.
-
-In such a mood he cantered into the shadow of the first of a straggling
-line of cottages, where a sentinel in a yellow sash, springing to the
-middle of the road, bade him pull up. “Conduct me to Lieutenant
-Millington,” Hugh ordered, showing his safe-conduct; so in a few moments
-he was riding down the street at an easy pace, with a Roundhead corporal
-walking at his bridle.
-
-They drew up without the gate of a large, half-timbered house, which set
-back from the road in a garden of red roses that dazzled drearily before
-Hugh’s eyes. “If you will accept of my aid—” he said brusquely to Lois,
-and had just swung her down from the horse’s back, when he heard the
-gate clatter open behind him. He turned about, and came face to face
-with Peregrine Oldesworth.
-
-For an instant they confronted each other without speaking, time enough
-for Hugh to take note that his cousin wore a pompous great pair of boots
-and a long sword, and had grown a scrap of dark mustache that made him
-look older than his years. Then said Peregrine, “Well, have you come to
-fetch back that stolen horse, Master Thief?”
-
-“The horse is best off with him who has the wit to keep him,” Hugh
-replied quickly. “Be assured I had not come to you beneath a white flag,
-if it had not been to bring Lois hither.”
-
-“And a brave convoy you have had, Cousin Lois,” Peregrine said, with a
-dull flush on his face. “The next time you must roam the country-side,
-pray you, seek another protector than a scape-gallows like this.”
-
-“You know well, Cornet Oldesworth,” Hugh retorted, “that I would pay it
-back to you, if you durst put that term to me in any other place.”
-
-“So you’d like to murder me as you murdered Bellasis?”
-
-“Murdered! What do you mean?” The words came faintly from Lois, and to
-Hugh’s fancy she seemed to draw a little from him.
-
-“Maybe he will set it forth to you himself,” sneered Peregrine.
-
-“I killed a man in a fair duel,” Hugh replied shortly. “I leave you to
-your cousin’s care, Lois.” With that he seized Bayard’s bridle and
-turned away, he cared not whither, only he did not wish to see the
-horror in Lois’s eyes.
-
-“Perhaps you’ll give your horse a rest here at the stable, sir?” the
-Roundhead corporal at his elbow suggested civilly. Hugh slouched down
-the road after him, and scarcely heeded Garrett beside him, chuckling,
-“Well, sir, I knew from the start you were Master Gwyeth.”
-
-“Now you’re sure of it, you’d best carry the news to Oxford,” Hugh
-replied; “I cannot buy silence.”
-
-After they were into the cool of the black stable and he had seen Bayard
-cared for, he sat down on a truss of straw and stared at the motes that
-swam in the sunlight by the open door. His eyes ached with the light and
-the dust, and his throat was all choked; he crushed the straws between
-his fingers as he sat, and in this destruction found his only ease.
-
-He roused up as a petty officer entered the stable, who prayed him, from
-Lieutenant Millington, to come back to the house and dine with the
-officers of the company. Hugh hesitated a moment, then came, rather
-sullen and defiant, and after washing the dust from his face entered the
-dining room. Millington, a heavy, slow man of near forty, greeted him
-courteously, and presented him to his brother officers, who were distant
-and suspicious. “You are of Woodstead, are you not, sir?” one asked him,
-with an implication that made Hugh guess the other held him to have come
-from a den of all iniquities.
-
-Then they conversed of matters that concerned them, while Hugh swallowed
-his dinner in silence, with an occasional pause to stare defiantly at
-Peregrine, who scowled at him from the opposite corner of the table. It
-was a relief when the meal was ended and he could rise, bent on setting
-out from the place at once; but Millington bade him step apart with him
-into an empty parlor. “’Tis an ill report we have had of you this
-winter, Hugh Gwyeth,” he began judicially, as he seated himself by the
-open window; “can you give me nothing better to bear to Everscombe?”
-
-Hugh stood erect, with a feeling that he was a culprit brought to
-sentence, and replied that he had only slain a man in a fair fight, and
-he held that no wrong.
-
-“Perhaps not;” Millington waived the question; “but I tell you, nephew,
-’tis not the part of an honest gentleman to be herding with such drunken
-libertines and cowardly bullies as those that hold Woodstead.”
-
-“Mayhap ’tis not the company I would keep of my own will,” Hugh
-admitted, “though they have been kind to me. But ’tis best I lie close
-just now.”
-
-“If you have done no wrong why need you hide yourself?” Millington
-retorted, with a flicker of a triumphant smile.
-
-“Have me a murderer and a thief, if you will,” Hugh flung back.
-
-“Nay, ’tis that I held you a lad of good parts, in spite of your running
-after these strange gods. That you have dealt so courteously by little
-Mistress Campion shows you are not all lost yet. But take heed to the
-associates you keep.”
-
-Hugh felt a guilty hotness in his face, but, bracing himself, he
-listened with respect to all his uncle had to say farther in the same
-strain, and, when he had done, he replied honestly, “I thank you, sir;
-methinks you mean all kindly.”
-
-So he took his leave, and turned away to summon Garrett; then
-remembered, and with a downcast look hesitated back to Millington. “An’t
-like you, uncle,” he faltered, “I am ashamed to ask it, but I have had
-to borrow money to provide for Lois, and I promised this fellow of mine
-reward for aiding me. And I have no money.”
-
-“Eh? How do you live, then, sir?”
-
-“I had some. I lost it at dice,” Hugh admitted shamefacedly. “On my
-honor, I never will again.”
-
-There was an instant’s pause, then Millington said more coldly, “I’ll
-pay the man,” and led the way from the house. Hugh, following behind
-like a chidden child, saw his uncle go to Garrett, who waited with the
-horses just outside the gate, and saw him fee the trooper; by the man’s
-face he guessed it was done liberally, but he knew the fact that the
-money came from another’s hand must always lower him in the fellow’s
-eyes.
-
-Dreading to meet the trooper’s curious look, he was lingering an instant
-on the garden walk, feigning to adjust his boot-tops, when he heard
-behind him some one call his name. He would not look up till there came
-a touch on his arm, and he must raise his eyes to meet Lois’s gaze. “I
-wanted to thank you, Hugh,” she said gently.
-
-“You need not.”
-
-“And I wanted to ask your pardon, if I hurt you. Truly, I will never
-believe you have done anything that is base, whatever they say. Prithee,
-forgive me, Hugh.”
-
-“I should ask you to forgive it that I was so surly,” he hesitated.
-“And—and next time I meet you, Lois, I’ll have mended my manners, so you
-need not be dismayed. Farewell now.” He looked her frankly in the eyes
-as he spoke, then bent a little and kissed her hand.
-
-He came out at the gate more briskly than he had hoped, and there, by
-the horses, found Peregrine and Lieutenant Millington in talk. “When you
-go back to Thomas Oldesworth tell him from me he should have taught you
-that a white flag protects the bearer,” he heard Millington say, and he
-noted Peregrine had fixed covetous eyes on Bayard. Indeed, as Hugh swung
-into the saddle, his cousin broke out, “You’ll pay me for that horse one
-day, sirrah.”
-
-But Hugh deliberately turned his back upon his bluster, while he bade
-his uncle a second farewell, then waved his hat to Lois, who still stood
-among the roses in the garden, and so headed his horse away from Newick.
-
-The shadows of the two horsemen showed long in the late afternoon sun,
-and lengthened and blended at last into the gray of the twilight. Frogs
-piped to them in the dusk as they threaded their way through a bit of
-bog land, and after that they went a long piece in silence under the
-wakeful stars. Hugh suffered Bayard go slowly, while he felt the
-pleasant night air upon his face and harked to the hoof-beats, muffled
-by the yielding road, till at length a light upon a distant hill showed
-where Woodstead lay. At that the horses freshened their pace, and, with
-a good flourish, they cantered in at the gate of the manor house and
-pulled up at the stables.
-
-Bayard once made comfortable, Hugh went slowly back to the house, where
-he found the officers, with their coats off and the table well stored
-with glasses, loitering in the west parlor.
-
-“So you’re back, are you, sir?” Butler greeted him. “Well, now you’ve
-had a safe-conduct and all at your disposal, is there anything else
-you’d command of me?”
-
-“Nothing, sir,” Hugh replied, as he threw off his buff coat. “I’ll not
-need your good offices, for—In short, sir, I’m wearied of hiding, and I
-want back my own name again. So ’tis in my mind to ride for Oxford
-to-morrow.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII
- THE STRANGER BY THE WAY
-
-
-“You’ve a gray day for a start and a gallows at the end,” Allestree
-spoke encouragingly, as he lounged in the doorway of the manor house.
-
-“’Twill be profitable to you, Master Gwyeth, to turn your thoughts as
-you go to composing your last good-night,” Mahone paused in lighting his
-pipe to add cheerfully.
-
-Hugh put his attention to drawing on his gauntlets and made no reply; in
-the last twelve hours there had been threats and expostulations and
-jeers enough to teach him that his only course was to be silent and keep
-to his determination.
-
-“I’ll lay you five shillings, George, he loses courage and sneaks back
-in time for dinner,” Mahone resumed.
-
-The blood shot up to Hugh’s face; he knew that was what Mahone wanted,
-and he was the angrier that he had gratified him. He turned sharp away
-and fumbled at Bayard’s headstall till he felt surer of his
-self-control, then asked stiffly: “Can you tell me if the captain is in
-the west parlor? I must take my leave of him.”
-
-“I don’t begrudge you the task,” Allestree hinted. “The captain lost his
-temper at Northrope, because the scurvy little tavern was so ill
-supplied, and he has not found it again yet. So look to yourself, Hugh.”
-
-It did not need Allestree’s warning to bring the heart down into Hugh’s
-boots; the mere inhospitality of the closely shut door of the west
-parlor and the grim tone in which Butler bade him come in were enough to
-daunt him. The captain had been writing ponderously at the table in the
-centre of the room, but at Hugh’s coming he flung down his pen, and,
-after surveying him scowlingly, burst out: “You’re still set in your
-folly, then? Well, for Dick Strangwayes’ sake I’d fain have saved you,
-in spite of your cursed sullen ways.”
-
-“I have not meant to be discourteous to you, Captain Butler,” Hugh
-protested; “I thank you for sheltering me and saving me that first time,
-I do thank you heartily. But now I think it better—”
-
-“To seek other company,” Butler retorted. “If you were a bit older, I’d
-be angry with you, sir; and if you were a small bit younger, by the
-Lord, I’d cuff some wit into you; as ’tis—Well, I’ll shake hands, if you
-wish. On my soul, ’tis pity so decent a lad should not have the sense to
-keep his head on his shoulders.” Thereupon he turned his back, and, with
-great show of being occupied, fell to his writing, so Hugh, feeling
-miserably rebuked, had no course but to go quietly from the room.
-
-Perhaps his downcast state touched Allestree a little, for he met him
-more kindly and spared farther jests while Hugh was mounting Bayard.
-“Better go to Tamworth if you are ill at ease here,” he counselled
-wisely. “But in any case God speed you and protect you for the sake of
-the innocence of you.”
-
-At this Mahone went into a fit of laughter, from which he recovered only
-in time to bawl a farewell that reached Hugh but faintly, as he rode out
-by the sentinel at the gate of Woodstead.
-
-Travelling slowly, to spare Bayard after his heavy work of the preceding
-day, he came about noon to a cross-road, where for a moment he
-hesitated: should it be north to seek Sir William’s help, or south to
-put himself into the provost’s hands and trust to his own innocence of
-ill intent to bring him clear? But he soon told himself that, if Sir
-William had had the power to aid, he would long ago have helped Dick
-Strangwayes; and, in any case, he had no will to live longer in holes
-and corners, as if he were indeed the murderer Peregrine had called him.
-Perhaps he would find friends if he went on boldly. So he jogged
-southward at an easy pace, so easy, indeed, that he gave up all idea of
-reaching Oxford that day. “And we don’t care to lie in the fields,
-Bayard,” he talked softly to the horse. “And we’ve not a penny to our
-names to hire lodgings. What say you if we swerve off to Ashcroft?
-Perhaps they’ll shelter us this night.”
-
-At heart he knew they would, yet, remembering how carelessly he had
-departed thence, he felt a little backward about presenting himself to
-the Widow Flemyng. His pace lagged more and more as he drew near the
-farm, and he might have halted short to reconsider, had not the spat of
-rain upon the white roadway warned him to look to the sky. There the
-clouds were black with storm and thunder, so, having no wish to come at
-last to Oxford all bedraggled, he spurred forward hastily and galloped
-Bayard into Ashcroft stable just as the rain began pelting down.
-
-Storm or no storm, so soon as he had delivered over the horse to Ralph’s
-care, he put his head down and ran for the house, where he pitched
-blindly in at the kitchen door. He heard a shriek from Nancy, “Preserve
-us! mistress, ’tis Master Burley come back,” and then the widow’s
-peremptory tones: “Take those boots off right where you stand, sir, else
-you’ll track mud over my new-sanded floor.”
-
-Hugh balanced uneasily on one foot as he obeyed, then asked meekly if he
-mightn’t be permitted to sit down now?
-
-“Oh, at table, is it?” questioned the widow, bustling to the nearest
-cupboard. “Hungry as ever, I take it?”
-
-“Always,” Hugh replied, and fetched a stool to the table against the
-kitchen wall, where he was presently busy with a cold capon.
-
-In the midst the widow paused at his side and laid a folded paper by his
-trencher. “’Tis well you came hither now, Master Burley,” she said.
-“This was fetched from Tamworth for you by a close-mouthed trooper three
-days agone. I was almost resolving me to get upon the old mare and ride
-to seek you at Woodstead. I am no chit of a girl to fear those saucy
-knaves.”
-
-Hugh laughed, and with frank curiosity unfolded the paper; within were
-two gold sovereigns, but not a sign of writing, though he turned the
-sheet over and over. “What does this mean?” he asked blankly.
-
-“I’ve told all I know,” replied the widow. “I did my best to learn more
-of the fellow who brought it.”
-
-Hugh finished his dinner in silence, while he turned over various
-solutions. Dick was out of the kingdom, and in any case he would never
-have sent the coins and no word; but Sir William had supplied them with
-money while they lay hid at the “Sceptre”; or perhaps Frank, with his
-well-filled pockets and his boyish fondness for mystery, had had to do
-with this. At any rate the money was there in his hands and made his
-journey easier, so much so that he felt, had he been superstitious, he
-would have hailed it as a sign that he was to go on to Oxford as he had
-started.
-
-Yet when the twilight shut in, gray with drizzling rain, there came on
-him a heavy feeling of uncertainty; his own determination, though he
-felt so sure of it, weakened a little before the memory of the
-opposition of all his friends. In such a mood he loitered into the
-cottage parlor, where, finding the Widow Flemyng sitting idle in the
-dusk, he drew up a stool and blurted out to her his true name and how
-matters stood with him. “I fear you’d not have cared to harbor me, had
-you known what a charge I lay under,” he concluded humbly.
-
-“Why, child, I suspected all along,” the good woman hastened to reply,
-and Hugh, staring dutifully at the gray rain outside the lattice,
-thought it wise not to contradict her. It gratified him, too, as she
-continued speaking, to find she did not hold him a fool for his
-resolution. Indeed, she said emphatically no worse harm could befall a
-decent lad at Oxford than at Woodstead, and in any case she was well
-assured no one would ever have the heart to hang him. “You were best
-cast yourself on the king’s mercy,” she ended. “Now had you great
-friends at court, or could get to have audience with his Majesty.”
-
-“Did you ever hear the ballad of ‘Johnny Armstrong’?” Hugh asked. “Dick
-used to sing it. There was a man sought the king for pardon and he got
-little good by it.”
-
-All the same her assurances made him more confident in himself, so he
-slept that night untroubled and woke ready for whatever the day might
-bring. Perhaps it was the widow’s continued encouragements, perhaps it
-was the good breakfast he made, or perhaps the sight of the sun
-struggling through the watery clouds, that served still farther to put
-him in high spirits. Be as that may, he took a gay farewell of Widow
-Flemyng and of Nancy, and cantered out by the pasture lane at a hopeful
-pace, as if he were eager to cover the distance to Oxford and whatever
-waited him there.
-
-The rain of the preceding day had laid the dust well, and left in the
-air a lingering fragrance of moist earth and beaten grasses that made it
-a temptation to slacken speed along the country road. In the hedges by
-the wayside the honeysuckle was still dripping with wet; Hugh pulled a
-tuft of blossoms as he passed, and crushed them slowly in his bare hand.
-How sweet and good was life in summer time, he reflected, and then he
-flung the blossoms away and, whistling persistently, thought no more,
-for his mind was all made up.
-
-At the first tavern he came to he bought him a draught of ale, bravely,
-now there was money in his pocket, then trotted on without halt till
-past noon. By that the sun had burnt away the clouds, and the still heat
-made the journey less pleasant; so, coming upon a sleepy village with a
-small neat inn, the “Bear and Ragged Staff,” Hugh thought well to rest
-the midday hours and get food for himself and his horse. The fear of
-being recognized and apprehended before he should have a chance to give
-himself up made him call for a private room, where he ate alone, except
-that the host bustled in to serve him and retail a variety of gossip.
-Oxford was near enough for the daily news to pass to the village, so
-Hugh heard a deal of authentic information of how the king was said to
-lean now to the counsels of the hot-heads and to the army, and how the
-royal troops might any day set forth to take in Bristol. He scarcely
-heeded more, for the talk of Oxford had turned his thoughts again to
-what was before him. Where should he eat his next meal, he wondered,
-with a remembrance of the grim Castle; and then, impatient at his own
-faltering, he jumped up hastily, and, paying his reckoning, went down to
-the little court of the inn, where he bade them saddle Bayard at once.
-
-The horse had been led out into the shade of an open shed, and Hugh was
-lingering by the stirrup to fee the hostler, when outside the gateway
-sounded a great clattering of hoofs, and a gentleman came spurring in
-upon a white horse, that stumbled on three legs. “Have me hither a fresh
-mount, briskly, you knaves!” he shouted, flinging a handful of loose
-coin among the stable-boys and loiterers. Then, as he put eyes on
-Bayard, he swung himself from his saddle. “This beast will serve my
-turn,” he called to the host, who had just showed himself at the door of
-the inn.
-
-“By the Lord, this beast will not serve your turn!” Hugh cried hotly,
-and, catching hold on Bayard’s bridle, flung himself before the horse in
-time to confront the stranger. “This is no post-horse, sir, but mine
-own.”
-
-The other turned sharp away with a shrug of the shoulders; they were
-broad shoulders, Hugh noted, and the rough gray coat fitted them ill.
-“Put saddle to another horse at once,” the man bade.
-
-“There is no other at hand, your Honor,” the host apologized, as he
-ventured out into the court. “All are at the smith’s. Belike in a
-half-hour, your Worship—”
-
-“Enough,” the other interrupted him, and strode back to Hugh. “What will
-you sell this beast for?” he asked curtly.
-
-“Not again for all the gold in England,” Hugh replied, tightening his
-grasp on the bridle.
-
-“My faith, sir, I’ve no intent to knock you down and steal the horse,”
-the other answered, with a short laugh.
-
-His cool tone allayed the heat of Hugh’s anger sufficiently for him to
-note the man more closely now, and he perceived he was not above three
-or four and twenty, of a tall strong build, with sharp eyes. Hugh caught
-his breath and stared frankly, while his mind jumped back to his first
-day at Oxford, when he and Allestree, standing upon the steps, had
-watched the king and his retinue ride by. The stranger had turned his
-back upon him now, and drawn over to the centre of the court, but his
-voice was loud, and Hugh could hear him bidding the hostler run out and
-procure him a farm-horse or aught that went upon four legs. With a
-sudden desperate impulse Hugh thrust forward and spoke boldly, “If it
-like you, sir, you may have my horse now.”
-
-“Your price?”
-
-“No price. I’ll lend him unto you.”
-
-“You’ve changed your tune quickly, sir,” said the man, coming back to
-Bayard’s side.
-
-“I’m thinking ’tis likely your business is of more weight than mine,
-your Highness,” Hugh answered, in a tone that sank to a whisper.
-
-“So you know me?” asked the stranger, with his foot already in the
-stirrup.
-
-“I can guess, sir.”
-
-“Spare guessing, then, for taxing the brain,” retorted the other, as he
-settled himself in the saddle. “Give me your name, though, sir; I’ll not
-forget your service.”
-
-Hugh hesitated an instant, then replied, “Hugh Gwyeth.”
-
-“I’ve heard that name. Perhaps you’re kinsman to him that killed
-Bellasis’ son?”
-
-“I—I am the man that killed him, sir.”
-
-“You? The deuce you are!” the stranger broke out; and, to Hugh’s
-amazement, he did not look horrified, but more as if he were inclined to
-laugh. “Come seek me to-morrow morning at my quarters,” he said
-abruptly, then, gathering up the reins, went out of the inn yard at a
-gallop.
-
-Hugh stood gazing blankly after him, and could not decide whether to be
-elated or dismayed, for he knew the stranger was Prince Rupert, and he
-was to have audience with him next morning. Carry his cause to the king,
-the widow had counselled him, Hugh reflected, and he tried to smile at
-the remembrance, though his heart was sober and anxious.
-
-Just there the host interrupted him; what was his pleasure now? Surely
-he would not attempt to make his journey with the lame horse? “No, let
-him rest,” Hugh ordered; “I’ll venture him in the morning. For now give
-me a chamber; I’ll lie here this night.”
-
-He was early astir next day, for, though the way to Oxford was short, he
-was not sure of his mount, and, in any case, he was burning with desire
-to present himself before the Prince and know the worst that was
-destined for him. The white horse still went lame with a strained
-fore-leg, but, sparing him as much as he could, Hugh contrived about
-eleven of the clock to pace slowly into the city. Before he entered the
-suburbs he had flung on his cloak, in spite of the heat, and pulled his
-hat low on his forehead; but still he was nervously alert to avoid the
-fixed gaze of those he met, and he dreaded any delay in the street. By
-dint of such precautions, perhaps, he came at last unchallenged to
-Christ Church, where he remembered Prince Rupert had his quarters.
-
-The groom who took his bridle eyed him sharply, and, once across the
-quadrangle and within the broad hall, a trig gentleman usher looked
-askance at his worn boots and shabby buff coat. Hugh had too much upon
-his mind, however, to trouble for his poor attire. He sat uneasily in
-the great chair to which he had been motioned, and studied the sunlight
-that fell from a long window high up toward the roof of the hall, till
-the usher came at last to bid him follow. Hugh trudged obediently up a
-great flight of stairs that creaked alarmingly, and, as he went,
-wondered why there was an emptiness where his heart ought to be, and his
-throat felt all choked up.
-
-A great door was swung open, he remembered; then he was within a long
-sunshiny chamber, with heavy table and big dark chairs, the usher had
-gone, and he was left face to face with his Highness, the Prince, and
-another youngish gentleman, who sat at opposite sides of the table with
-a jumble of papers betwixt them. “You keep your time well, Master
-Gwyeth,” spoke the Prince, and put by a paper like a map he had been
-studying.
-
-“Your Highness bade me,” Hugh stammered.
-
-“So ’twas you killed Bellasis’ son,” the other repeated, still amusedly.
-“Lay down that order, Grandison. I want you to have a look at this
-desperate duellist.”
-
-“That boy, your Highness?” drawled the man at the table.
-
-The blood came hot into Hugh’s cheeks. “I pray your Highness, hang me,
-if you will, but do not mock me,” he blurted out.
-
-“Who speaks of hanging you here, lad?” Prince Rupert answered, in so
-kindly a fashion that Hugh gazed at him in surprise. “Nay, had I my way,
-I’d give a captaincy to every man who has the goodness to take off one
-of these cursed civilians who are always holding our hands. You are of
-the army, sir?”
-
-“I hope to be, your Highness. I am only a volunteer now.”
-
-“’Tis near enough for all soldiers to aid you as a fellow-soldier.—And
-how think you, Grandison, my Lord Bellasis would take it, if this
-gentleman received a free pardon?”
-
-“He would deem himself most notably affronted,” the other answered
-soberly.
-
-Hugh made a step forward and let his words come fast: “If it be your
-Highness’s will, if ’tis in your thought to aid me, I do entreat you,
-let my case go, so far as it concerns me. But there is my friend that
-went to the field with me, for my sake, and cared for me when I was ill
-with my hurt afterward. He lost a commission because of me. If there is
-only one can be pardoned, I beseech your Highness let it be he.”
-
-“And how do they call this notable friend of yours?”
-
-“Richard Strangwayes, your Highness. He was lieutenant in the regiment
-of Sir William Pleydall.”
-
-“Pleydall? Ah, your case was brought unto our notice two months back.
-Ay, surely. Gwyeth and Strangwayes. Sir William Pleydall was urging your
-pardon through a certain Captain Gwyeth who came to me.”
-
-Hugh dropped his hand down on the back of a chair close by and griped it
-hard, while he gazed blankly at the Prince, yet scarcely saw him.
-Captain Gwyeth had been urging his pardon, he repeated over and over to
-himself, yet could not make it comprehensible. Then he realized that his
-Highness was speaking again, and he roused himself up to listen. “Two
-months back that was. Well, there is time for many matters to change in
-two months. Perchance your business can be settled for you, Master
-Gwyeth. Only you must promise to fight no more duels,” the Prince added,
-with a laugh in his sharp eyes.
-
-“I will promise, your Highness,” Hugh answered soberly.
-
-“And break it, I’ll wager. You were ready to draw your sword on a poor
-dismounted traveller yesterday. Maybe you’d like to have back that horse
-you’d not take all the gold in England for?”
-
-“If it does please your Highness,” Hugh said politely; then added
-honestly, “I should be loath to part with him.”
-
-His Highness laughed outright. “Go to my stable and call for the horse,”
-he bade. “Come hither again in a week or so, and there may be tidings
-for you. Only see you do not come to court too often, Master Gwyeth;
-’twould be a pity to spoil the honest blunt soldier you are like to be
-with a slippery courtier polish.”
-
-Then he turned again to his map in sign of dismissal, and Hugh somehow
-contrived to bow himself safely through the door. He was out in the
-green quadrangle before he got it through his head that Prince Rupert
-himself would move for his pardon to the king, and then he recollected
-he had not even said “thank you,” and he flushed hot with the
-consciousness of his own churlishness.
-
-It changed his thoughts a trifle to seek out his way to the stable and
-claim Bayard, whom he had been ready to give up for lost and was
-proportionately glad to recover. Once upon the horse’s back, he took
-himself unostentatiously through the streets to the lodgings of his
-fencing-master, de Sévérac, who received him warmly, when Hugh assured
-him he was fairly sure of pardon and sought only to have quiet harborage
-for the week. Those seven days he passed in the dingy sleeping-room
-behind the fencing-hall, where he studied the pictures in a great French
-folio, “L’Academie de l'Espee,” or entertained de Sévérac in his leisure
-moments with a full account of the duel with Bellasis. The
-fencing-master, who took a professional pride in his pupil’s success,
-entreated Hugh not to persist in saying the victory was due solely to
-Bellasis’ carelessness; ’twas just as easy to give credit to himself and
-those who taught him the use of the rapier.
-
-Thus the week dragged to an end, while Hugh counted the days
-impatiently, and heard with terror that troops were setting out for
-Bristol, for in the confusion the great men might well forget his
-business. At last the seventh day came, and, having put on a clean shirt
-and brushed his coat, he set out for Christ Church. As he went he tried
-to steel himself against possible disappointment by telling over the
-many cases of the ingratitude of kings; but at heart he knew he did not
-believe so ill of the Prince, and in the end his trust was justified. He
-had not been kept waiting many minutes in the great hall, when a trim
-officer came from above-stairs, and, asking him if he were not named
-Gwyeth, delivered to him a fair great piece of parchment all sealed up.
-“’Tis my pardon?” Hugh burst out.
-
-The other smiled, not unkindly. “The king of his clemency has been
-pleased, at his Highness’s entreaty, to grant a full pardon to those who
-had a hand in the death of Philip Bellasis,” he explained formally; then
-added, “Suffer me congratulate you, Master Gwyeth.”
-
-In a dazed fashion Hugh shook the other’s hand, then came forth from the
-hall into the open air. There he paused, and pushed his hat well back on
-his head so all could see his face, then, walking out into the South
-Street, tramped half across the city. For he need not skulk nor shrink
-now, he was a free man again; and how stoutly he meant to fight for
-Prince Rupert, since he could show his gratitude in no other way. Then
-it came over him that he were best post off at once to Tamworth and
-thank Sir William Pleydall, who had first begun the movement to relieve
-him, and thank Alan Gwyeth, who had been Sir William’s instrument. Hugh
-scowled and walked a little slower.
-
-But still all his friends lay at Tamworth, and he would speed a letter
-thence to tell Dick the good news; so in the end he made briskly for his
-quarters. Taking time first to hale out de Sévérac to a fine dinner at
-an ordinary, where they ate under the full gaze of the town, he got to
-horse, and, ere mid-afternoon, trotted forth from the city. He
-calculated he would make the “Bear and Ragged Staff” just about dusk,
-and, true enough, he rode down the village street while the red flush of
-the sunset still lingered in the west.
-
-Inside the court of the inn he saw five horses standing, stripped of
-accoutrements and already half rubbed down by the hostler and his groom.
-“Take this beast of mine in to make the half-dozen,” Hugh bade, and,
-dismounting, walked leisurely across the court to the side door. His
-eyes travelled above the door to an open lattice, and, as he gazed, like
-the flash of a face in a dream, he had sight of Dick Strangwayes.
-
-For an instant Hugh stood petrified while he took in each
-detail,—Strangwayes’ clean-shaven jaw, the sweep of mustache, the
-bandage about his forehead, even the way in which he leaned heavily at
-the window, resting one hand against the casement; then he sprang
-forward, crying, “Dick!”
-
-Right on that Strangwayes flung himself forward half out at the
-casement, and shouted, “Into the saddle and off with you, off with you!”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII
- THE CALL OUT OF KINGSFORD
-
-
-Just inside the door of the inn was a steep flight of steps; Hugh
-tripped over the first, but, almost ere his outstretched hand touched
-the floor, was on his feet again and rushing up the stairway. As he ran
-he pulled his sword clear from the scabbard; if matters were so ill Dick
-wished him thence, he would have need of it. But in the corridor
-above-stairs all was quiet, he noted in the instant in which he paused,
-holding his breath, and gazed at the closed doors along the gallery.
-“Dick!” he called again, so there came a little echo from the end of the
-corridor. Then he ran headlong for the nearest door, and, dashing it
-open with his foot, flung himself well into the centre of the chamber.
-By his very impetus he thrust out of his way a man in a blue livery
-coat, and, clearing free passage thus, pushed up to the wall and set his
-back against it. There were three blue-coated serving men in the room,
-he perceived now, and a gross, short-necked man in a fine riding-suit,
-who was deliberately bolting the entrance door. Then his eyes rested on
-Dick, who, seated well away from the window, was leaning back indolently
-in his chair and tugging at his mustache; only Dick’s white face was
-tense, Hugh saw, and he noted, too, that his friend wore no sword.
-
-It was the short-necked man who broke the instant’s expectant hush:
-“Master Hugh Gwyeth, the tall swordsman? On my soul, I be rejoiced to
-meet with you. Put down that sword. You are my prisoner.”
-
-“What knaves are these, Dick?” cried Hugh, with his sword-hand alert on
-the hilt.
-
-“Of the old Bellasis breed,” Strangwayes answered, and let his hand fall
-from his mustache with the merest gesture toward the open window, and
-just a look which bade Hugh take his chance.
-
-“Ay, we apprehend you for the foul murder of my kinsman, Philip
-Bellasis,” spoke the man by the door.
-
-“Is that all?” Hugh asked, with a sudden nervous laugh of relief. He
-clapped his sword back into the sheath and tore open his coat.
-
-“Seize his arms!” cried the short-necked man.
-
-One of the serving fellows had sprung at him, when Hugh, striving to
-throw him off, saw Dick come to his feet at a jump and hit out. Somebody
-bellowed with pain; he found his arm free, and Dick’s shoulder pressing
-against his as they stood to the wall. “Have done, have done!” Hugh
-cried. “Read you there, Dick.”
-
-He thrust the parchment into his friend’s hands, and Dick, with a
-smothered exclamation, broke the seals. An instant of silence came upon
-the room, as if all had half guessed; only the rustle of the parchment
-and the heavy movement of the fallen serving man dragging himself to his
-feet broke the quiet, till Strangwayes spoke with ominous civility,
-“Will you deign, Master Bellasis, to bestow one glance upon his
-Majesty’s seal and signature?”
-
-“You’ll not deceive me—” said the gross man with much bluster, yet he
-came hastily, and, gazing upon the paper, read with dropping jaw.
-
-“Now have you any farther business with me, Master Bellasis?”
-Strangwayes asked easily. “Speak quickly, ere I go across the corridor
-to sup with Master Gwyeth.”
-
-The other said something that was choked with inarticulateness in his
-short throat.
-
-“I am ordering my supper now,” Strangwayes finished, as he went with
-much dignity to the door; “and hark you, sir, I want my sword brought
-back to me ere supper be on the table. For I’ll be wishing to fetch it
-along with me when next I come to seek you.”
-
-Then he made Master Bellasis a very low bow, and, catching Hugh by the
-arm, brought him out into the corridor. Right across the way was a
-vacant chamber, but almost before they were inside the door Hugh’s arms
-were about Dick, and Strangwayes, with his voice half smothered in the
-roughness of the embrace, was jerking out: “Heaven forgive Bellasis his
-other sins for the good turn he did in bringing us together. But ’twould
-have been a sorry companionship, had you not come so furnished.” Thereat
-he got Hugh by the scruff of the neck and set him down hard on the
-nearest stool. “Now, you thick-witted rogue,” he ordered, “why in the
-name of reason did you not call out to me from the inn yard and say you
-had that piece of parchment inside your coat? Here I sat a good
-half-hour and schooled myself into seeing you laid by the heels along
-with me. Faith, I’ll look to find white hairs in my head to-morrow.”
-
-Hugh laughed, because the world was so good now he could do nothing
-else, then poured out his story thick and fast,—Prince Rupert at the
-“Bear and Ragged Staff,” and behind that Newick, and Woodstead, and
-Ashcroft, all huddled together. “Lord save us! We must have food to help
-down such a lump,” cried Dick, and, summoning the host thereupon,
-ordered supper to be ready in quick time.
-
-A drawer came speedily to fetch them candles, and barely had he gone
-when one of the bluecoats, bowing his way in, handed over to Strangwayes
-his sword. Dick gave him money, and bade him and his fellows go drink.
-“A pleasant company I’ve been keeping, eh, Hugh?” he asked, with a dry
-smile, as the man backed out. “How came I by it? Alas, a man cannot
-always choose. I was about my business at The Hague, like a decent
-gentleman. And that fat calf, Herbert Bellasis,—’tis a cousin to the
-whole scurvy connection,—he was there on some mischief, and recognized
-me.”
-
-Just there came supper, but across the table Strangwayes drawled on: “My
-friend Bellasis feared a young man like myself might come to harm in
-foreign parts. So he fetched me home.”
-
-“Fetched you, Dick?”
-
-“Very simply. He and his bluecoats met me of a dark night in a byway. He
-was urgent, but I refused his invitations. Then they picked me up and
-conveyed me aboard an English ship.”
-
-“I don’t believe they could,” Hugh said bluntly.
-
-“To be sure, they had knocked the senses out of me, else I had not come
-so meekly. ’Twas there I got this souse in the head; ’tis near healed
-now. But there were four bluecoats once; one of them is still at The
-Hague, cherishing a punctured lung; I gave it to him. We had a merry
-passage over, Hugh; Bellasis and I must share the cabin and eat
-together. He used to tell me over the wine—’twas ship’s beer and flat at
-that—how I ought to be hanged, and he hoped to live to see it done. And
-I used to compliment him on his mad dare-devil courage. For if at five
-and thirty he durst attack a single man when he had only four to back
-him, no doubt at seventy he would dare come on with only two to aid.
-Nay, if he lived long enough, he might yet arrive at fighting man to
-man. Methinks the length of years he had to wait discouraged him, by the
-vile temper that put him in. Every pleasure has an end, so at last we
-made the Welsh coast and posted hither, in the very nick of time, it
-seems. For, Hugh, after this last exploit of yours, I’d be loath to
-leave you fending for yourself. Man alive, where do you think you’d be
-lying now, if you hadn’t chanced to take the Prince’s fancy?”
-
-Hugh answered submissively that he didn’t know.
-
-“Neither do I,” Strangwayes retorted grimly. “Nay, nay, don’t look
-conscience-stricken now, for you found the one good chance in a hundred,
-and it has all come well. But ’tis a blessing for us that his Highness
-delights to fly about noisily in disguise, instead of plodding soberly
-about his business. It has been more of a blessing to us, perhaps, than
-to the kingdom.”
-
-“You shall not speak slurringly of Prince Rupert in my presence!” Hugh
-flared up.
-
-Strangwayes said, with a laugh, that he would make honorable amends by
-drinking his Highness’s health, on his knees, if Hugh desired; so they
-ended amicably by drinking the health together as they stood by their
-chairs, then religiously smashed their glasses, and went away to bed.
-
-The early sunrise roused them up to repeat and re-repeat all that had
-befallen in the months of their separation, a subject which lasted them
-through breakfast till they quitted the table and went down to the inn
-yard. “Why, Herbert Bellasis has taken himself and his people hence,”
-Hugh cried, after one glance into the vacant stable.
-
-“I respect wisdom in any man,” Strangwayes commented, as he loitered at
-Hugh’s side in among the stalls. “You say the Prince said something to
-you about not fighting any more? Tut, tut! ’Tis a pity.” There he broke
-off suddenly, “Why, lad, how came old Bayard back to you?”
-
-“Why should you ask?” Hugh replied wisely. “If you don’t know, I don’t.”
-
-“I’d take it kindly if you’d talk reason,” Strangwayes said
-pathetically. “What have I to do with your horse? I don’t know even who
-bought the beast, or whither he was taken from Oxford.”
-
-Hugh whistled a stave. “It must ha’ been the same who sent me the two
-sovereign from Tamworth. Maybe ’twas Sir William, or perhaps Captain
-Turner.”
-
-“Or perhaps Captain Gwyeth,” Dick said, after an instant.
-
-Hugh stared blankly a moment, then stamped his foot down on the stable
-floor. “I won’t believe it,” he cried fiercely. “I tell you, I’d fling
-away the money and turn the horse loose, if I believed it.”
-
-“Captain Gwyeth had a hand in that first movement to gain your pardon,”
-Strangwayes spoke impartially.
-
-“He was only Sir William’s instrument,” Hugh insisted, and, without
-staying to caress the horse, strode out of the stable.
-
-Strangwayes followed in silence; indeed, that instant’s jar ended
-conversation between them till they were back in their chamber, and Dick
-was busied in writing the news of his whereabouts and the outcome of the
-Bellasis affair to Sir William. “What use?” urged Hugh, wearied of
-gazing out of the window with no one to talk to. “We’ll be at Tamworth
-soon.”
-
-“Not for a little time,” Strangwayes answered, with his eyes intent on
-the sheet; “I’ve business here at Oxford.”
-
-He did not tell his companion what the business might be, but to all
-appearances it was furthered by taking a room in Oxford, by dining with
-various gentlemen and officers, and by devoting some days to a happy and
-care-free time of which Hugh enjoyed every moment. Not till the morning
-succeeding the day on which the king left the city to take possession of
-Bristol did Strangwayes make mention of the northward journey; then he
-routed Hugh early from his bed with the announcement that they would set
-out at once. “But first we must eat a meal at the ‘Sceptre,’” he
-concluded. “Fit yourself for the road, Hugh, and gallop thither to order
-dinner. If I’m not with you ere noon I’ll have been called north by the
-other way, so do you post after as fast as you can. Remember.”
-
-An hour later Hugh was gayly riding out by the western road, which he
-had last travelled with such different feelings, and, coming in the
-mid-morning to the “Sceptre,” ordered dinner grandly. Afterward he
-loitered down to the bowling green, now all short velvety grass, where
-he had inveigled Martin, the friendly drawer, into giving him a lesson
-in bowls, when Strangwayes hailed him noisily from the doorway. “My
-business is despatched,” he said smilingly, as Hugh came to meet him.
-“After all, we’d best bribe Martin here to eat the dinner for us. We
-must be off.”
-
-They went out from the “Sceptre” at a rattling pace, but the first hill
-slackened their speed so conversation was possible. Then Strangwayes
-drawled pleasantly, “I’ve no wish to deceive you into any danger, Hugh,
-so you should know I have just fought with Herbert Bellasis.”
-
-“Dick!” Hugh cried.
-
-“I was most circumspect,” Strangwayes apologized. “I waited till the
-king was well away, so I might not do it in the very teeth of him. And I
-did not hurt the fat lump, though I’d fain have done so. I only knocked
-the sword out of his fist, and then the poor knave was very ready to
-kneel down and crave my pardon, and swear never so to abuse a gentleman
-again. Don’t put on your Puritan face, Hughie. The fellow had so treated
-me I could do nothing else.”
-
-“Why did you not let me come to the field with you?” Hugh protested. “I
-take it most unkindly of you.”
-
-“I was not going to let my folly spoil your new fortunes,” Strangwayes
-answered. “I think ’twas done so quietly ’twill all blow over, since we
-have got away to Tamworth. But if not, no charge can come against you.”
-
-“Why will you always be sparing me as if I were a child?” Hugh cried,
-with an angry break in his voice.
-
-“Because some ways you are still just a long-legged, innocent bairn,”
-Dick replied, with a chuckle, whereat Hugh tried to sulk, but that was
-impossible with Dick talking fast of their comrades at Tamworth. In the
-end he must talk, too, and laugh with Dick, till he forgot the hurt to
-his dignity.
-
-By hard riding they contrived before moonrise to reach Ashcroft and
-rouse up the Widow Flemyng. She fair hugged Hugh, and said of course she
-knew he’d get his pardon; then fell to cooking their supper, while she
-talked loudly and contentedly to either of them or both. Next morning
-they set out in dubious weather, and, going a short stage out of their
-direct road, passed that night with Butler and his officers, who made
-much of Strangwayes, though they looked askance at Hugh, and were half
-loath to forgive him for not getting hanged as they had prophesied. Next
-evening brought them to Sir William Pleydall’s great house in
-Worcestershire, where his widowed daughter, Mistress Cresswell, gave
-them a hearty welcome, and, riding thence at sunrise, they came at last
-unto Tamworth.
-
-It was about four of the afternoon, hot and moist with slow rain, when
-they rode across the King’s Dyke down the narrow High Street of the
-town. At the door of a tavern Hugh caught sight of a trooper loitering,
-a shiftless fellow of Turner’s company, but he longed to jump down and
-have speech with the rascal. “Let us push on briskly, Dick,” he begged,
-and so they went at a swinging pace down the street and across the
-river, where on its height Tamworth Castle towered black against the
-gray sky. There was a shout of greeting to the petty officer of the
-watch, a scurrying of grooms in the paved south court of the castle, and
-then the word of their coming must have travelled at high speed, for
-barely had they crossed to the main door of the keep when a young
-officer ran out to meet them, and fell on Strangwayes. “Have you forgot
-me, Lieutenant?” he cried.
-
-“Sure, no, Cornet Griffith,” Dick answered heartily. “Your leg’s
-recovered?”
-
-“A matter of a limp; it does well enough in the saddle. I have back my
-commission under Captain Turner now, so we’ll serve in the same troop.
-Ay, your lieutenancy is waiting for you.”
-
-Talking boisterously, they crossed the great hall that was now a
-guardroom, and, passing into one of the lesser rooms that served the
-officers, came upon Michael Turner. It pleased Hugh more than he could
-show that the captain did not scoff at him, but gave him a half-embrace,
-saying kindly: “Faith, we’re glad to have you back, Gwyeth.” Though next
-moment he had turned away to talk with Strangwayes: “You’ve come in time
-for work, Lieutenant. They’re drawing all the men they can find westward
-unto Gloucester, where they say there will be brisk doings. Leveson’s
-and my troops are here in the castle; Gwyeth’s has gone a-raiding into
-Warwickshire; the others are all prancing into the west. We’re a scant
-hundred to defend the whole town, so we’ll gladly give you the pleasure
-of keeping the watch to-night.”
-
-Strangwayes came away laughing, and under Griffith’s guidance they went
-down a corridor to a snug parlor, where they had the good fortune to
-find Sir William, idle for the moment, and unattended save by a single
-hound. The dog made a dash to meet Dick, barking hilariously the while,
-so Hugh could only see that the baronet embraced his nephew warmly, and
-he stepped back a little to leave them to themselves. But Dick haled him
-forward, and Sir William spoke to him with a gracious sort of welcome
-that made Hugh stammer, when he tried to thank him for the effort to
-secure his pardon. “Nonsense, nonsense,” spoke Sir William; “we had no
-need to seek it, sir. You have the wit or the good fortune to be able to
-maintain yourself without our help. Your father ought to be proud of
-you.” He stopped there, then, as he turned again to Strangwayes, added
-with a certain diffidence: “I pray you, Master Gwyeth, do not forget to
-go speak to Francis; he has been in a fit of the sullens since
-yesternight.”
-
-Hugh left the room in some wonderment, and, seizing upon a serving man,
-was speedily conducted by a passageway, up a flight of stairs, and along
-a gallery to a closed door. Hugh knocked, and, getting no reply, knocked
-again, then tried the door and found it bolted within. “Frank,” he
-called, and began shaking the door. “Open to me. ’Tis Hugh Gwyeth.”
-
-There was an instant’s pause, then a slow step across the floor, and the
-grate of the bolt in the socket. “Come in, hang you!” Frank’s voice
-reached him.
-
-It was a big cheerless tower chamber, Hugh saw, with heavy scant
-furniture and windows high from the floor that now gave little light. He
-stood a moment, half expecting Frank to speak or bid him be seated, but
-the boy slouched back to the bed that stood in the farther corner, and,
-without looking at him, flung himself down upon it. “Why, what’s amiss?”
-Hugh broke out, and went to him; now he came nearer he saw Frank had
-been crying much.
-
-“Nothing,” the boy answered, and kept his face bent down as if he were
-ashamed.
-
-“Tell me,” Hugh urged, “you’ll feel the better for it. Is it anything
-because of Griffith?”
-
-“Yes, it’s that,” Frank cried, raising his head defiantly. “They have
-taken away my cornetcy, Hugh. ’Tis all along of Michael Turner. And I
-never harmed him; I had done my best. But he comes to my father; he says
-he must have a man for his troop. So my father turns his anger on me; he
-said I was a selfish, heedless child, where ’twas time I bore me as a
-young man. And then Ned Griffith comes back all cured, and they stripped
-me of my cornetcy to give it to him.” Frank dropped down with his face
-buried in the pillow. “I pray you, go away,” he choked; and, in the next
-breath, “Nay, come back, Hugh; you’ve always been my friend.”
-
-Hugh sat down obediently by the bed, scarcely knowing what to say, when
-Frank with his face still hidden suddenly broke out, “Hugh, did you look
-to have that cornetcy last winter?”
-
-Hugh hesitated: “Yes, I did hope. But I had no reason, ’twas no fault of
-yours.”
-
-“My faith, I had not taken it of you, had I known. I’d not have used a
-man as Ned has used me, as they all have used me. I have been playing
-the fool, and they all have been scoffing at me, and I did not know it.”
-
-“Sure, you must not take it so grievously, Frank,” Hugh urged. “Get up
-and wash your face and show you care not. You’ll have another commission
-soon, when they see you are in earnest.”
-
-Between coaxing and encouraging he got Frank to his feet at last, and
-even persuaded him to eat supper, which he ventured to order sent to the
-chamber. Throughout Hugh did his best to talk to the boy of any and all
-matters that had befallen him, till he roused him to a certain dull
-interest. “So you’ve had back your horse all safe?” Frank asked
-listlessly. “’Twas I procured Captain Gwyeth the name of the place where
-you were hiding. He bought the horse when ’twas sold at Oxford, and he
-wished you to have it, that time when he was working for your pardon.
-Yes, I know your father well; he is always kind to me, and does not mock
-me as the others have been doing. I used to tell him all about you, and
-then he asked me find where you were lodging. I had influence with my
-father then, so I could learn it,” he added bitterly.
-
-All thought of comforting Frank had left Hugh; he tried to listen with
-sympathy to his piteous complaints, but it was useless; so he rose, and,
-bidding him as cheery a good night as possible, and promising to come
-back in the morning, went out from the chamber. At the end of the
-gallery was a deep window-seat, where he sat down and stared out at the
-roofs of the town that huddled gray in the twilight, so intent on his
-own thoughts that he started when Dick touched his shoulder. “How did
-you leave the poor popinjay?” Strangwayes asked, with a trace of a laugh
-in his voice.
-
-“Better, I think,” Hugh replied.
-
-“Poor lad! Sir William might remember there is a mean betwixt
-over-indulgence and severity. But Frank has brought it on himself. When
-he forgot to do his duty in the troop he would be trying to cajole
-Captain Turner into good humor, just as he has always cajoled Sir
-William. And Michael Turner is not the man to coax that way. He has
-influence with Sir William, too, and so—Well, ’twill be for Frank’s good
-in the end,” Dick concluded philosophically, as he settled himself on
-the window-bench.
-
-Hugh made room for him, then went on staring at the gray sky. Suddenly
-he broke out, “Dick, it was Captain Gwyeth sent me Bayard.”
-
-“Ay?” the other answered, without surprise. “And I have it of Sir
-William, he was main urger, and drew him on to what seemed a hopeless
-attempt to gain our pardon.”
-
-Hugh scowled at his boots. “I take it I must wait on him and tell him
-‘thank you,’ when he comes back out of Warwickshire. I wish he had let
-me alone!” he cried.
-
-“You _are_ like your father,” Strangwayes said judicially, leaning back
-on the window-bench. “See to it, Hugh, you do not make the resemblance
-too complete.”
-
-“How that?” Hugh asked guiltily.
-
-“By giving way to your ugly pride, so you do what it may take months of
-repentance to undo.”
-
-Hugh made no answer, and the silence between them lasted till the
-gallery was quite dark, when, slipping off the window-seat, they tramped
-away to their comrades below.
-
-Next day Hugh gave himself up to Frank, who, truth to tell, in his
-present half-subdued state was pleasanter company than he had been at
-Oxford. He persuaded Master Pleydall to come out and view the town,
-which took them till mid-afternoon; and then they loitered back to the
-castle, with discreet turnings to avoid meeting any of the other
-officers. Frank dodged into a tavern to keep out of sight of Griffith,
-but he dragged Hugh half a mile down a blind lane to avoid a suspected
-encounter with Captain Turner. “Mayhap I was impudent and forward, so he
-got at last to ask my advice about conducting the troop, when others of
-the men were by. And I thought he meant it all in sober earnest.” Frank
-made a brave attempt at nonchalance, but his lips quivered so Hugh had
-an improper desire to chastise Michael Turner; for all his swagger and
-affectation, Frank had been too innocent and childish a lad to be
-scathed with the captain’s pitiless sarcasms.
-
-Luckily they had no more encounters with men from the garrison till they
-were nearly at the gate of the castle, and then it was only Strangwayes,
-riding forth in full armor, with some twenty men behind him, to post the
-watch about the town for the evening hours. Hugh made him a formal
-salute, which Dick returned gayly before he rode on.
-
-“Dick is right fond of you,” Frank said, with a shade of envy; and after
-that they sauntered in a moody silence, till, the sight of the stables
-cheering Frank a bit, he prayed Hugh come in and look at The Jade. “I’ve
-not seen the old lass since day before yesterday,” he explained.
-
-They were still lingering to admire the mare, when two grooms came
-hurrying a lathered horse into the stable. “Who’s been riding so hard?”
-Hugh asked carelessly.
-
-“Messenger from the troop to the south, sir.”
-
-“To the south?” Hugh repeated. “Come quickly, Frank, I must see—”
-
-He walked rapidly across the courtyard to the door of the guardroom.
-About it men were crowded, and more were pressing into the room itself;
-but at Hugh’s jostling they made him a way into the thick of them. Over
-on a bench in the corner he had sight of a man with the sleeve cut from
-his coat, who sat leaning heavily against a comrade. Another, whom Hugh
-recognized as the surgeon of the regiment, was washing a wound in his
-arm, and as he moved, Hugh got a glimpse of the face of the injured man.
-“Cowper!” he cried, and ran forward, for he knew the fellow for one of
-Captain Gwyeth’s old independent troop.
-
-Men gave him place; he heard a mutter amongst them, “The captain’s son,”
-but he did not heed; just pushed his way to the wounded man, and bent
-over him: “Cowper, what has happened? Is anything wrong with my father?
-Tell me.”
-
-“They closed in on us, sir,” the man roused up to speak. “Captain
-Oldesworth’s horse, and a company of foot beside. They took our horses
-and they slew Cornet Foster. I came through for help. They have the
-colonel blocked up in Kingsford church.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX
- THE RIDING OF ARROW WATER
-
-
-For a moment the faces of the men about him went all blurry to Hugh’s
-sight; then he was making his way fumblingly across the guardroom, and,
-thrusting out one arm before him, found the door to the inner part of
-the castle. Now that he was hurrying at a surer pace down the corridor
-within, he realized that his breath was coming in short gasps and he was
-shaking with a nervous tremor. Kingsford, Kingsford, the word kept
-singing through his head; the Oldesworths, who had so hated Alan Gwyeth,
-held him at their mercy now at Kingsford. Only to Hugh it was no longer
-Alan Gwyeth, but his father, the father whom his mother had taught him
-to respect, who had tried to win him a pardon. And he had begrudged the
-man even a grateful thought.
-
-Hugh dashed open the door of his chamber, and, kicking off his shoes,
-began tugging on his boots. He heard a step behind him, as he struggled
-with his head bent; then came Frank’s voice: “Hugh, you’ve heard? They
-have cut him off; he has cried for help; my father is taking counsel
-with the captains—”
-
-“Counsel?” cried Hugh, springing to his feet. “Why don’t they send him
-aid?” He tore his buff coat down from the wall.
-
-“Faith, ’tis a question if there is aid to send,” Frank cried, in equal
-excitement, as he made a hindering effort to help Hugh into the coat;
-“they have taken away so many of our regiment; we are scant a hundred
-men all told; they say ’tis doubtful if we can send—”
-
-“Then I’ll go to Kingsford alone. Run bid them saddle Bayard, Frank,
-quick.” With that Hugh caught up his sword, and, going full speed out of
-the chamber, drowned in the clatter of his boots the protests Frank sent
-after him.
-
-Below, in the tower room that served for conferences, Sir William would
-be with his officers, and he hoped there to learn farther news. Almost
-at the door he ran upon a man from Turner’s troop, all accoutred, who
-drew back and saluted him. “What seek you? Know you what they are
-planning?” Hugh asked excitedly.
-
-“Nay, sir; only I was bid have my horse ready, and stand at their
-service.”
-
-Hugh could guess the service. Pushing by the trooper to the door of the
-chamber, he knocked a rattling, peremptory knock, and another right upon
-it. At that the door was wrenched open, and Leveson, grim and dignified,
-had begun, “What brings you, sirrah?” when Turner’s voice interrupted:
-“Hugh Gwyeth, is it? Let him come in.”
-
-After that Hugh had a confused sight of the high-studded room, with the
-sunlight far up on the walls and the corners dusky, and of the men by
-the table, who had faced toward him. Then he found himself over by Sir
-William’s armchair, his hand resting hard upon the table, and he was
-speaking rapidly: “I am going to Kingsford, Sir William, to my father.
-If you are seeking a messenger for anything, I’ll bear it safely. For I
-am going straightway.”
-
-“Nay, I shall not suffer it, Hugh Gwyeth,” the baronet cut him short.
-“Do you understand? The roads are close beset; the trooper who brought
-us the tidings was shot in the arm and the side.”
-
-“But I know the Kingsford roads. I can make it,” Hugh protested, and
-looked from one to another of the three dubious faces. “Sure, you’ll let
-me go,” he burst out. “I must. If he be—harmed and I not there. I must
-go.” His eyes dropped to his hands that were clinching his hat fast, and
-rested there; he dared not glance again at those about him lest he find
-refusal in their looks, and he hoped they might not be gazing at him,
-for he knew his mouth was working.
-
-Then Turners voice sounded quick and decided: “Let him go, Sir William.”
-
-“Ay, he is a light rider and he knows the roads. A good messenger, after
-all,” Leveson added in a matter-of-fact tone.
-
-Hugh looked up hopefully and saw a glance exchanged between Sir William
-and his captains that meant his case was won. “We’ll not endanger you
-with a written message,” the baronet spoke at once; “for I tell you
-frankly, sir, you run a hundred chances of capture. If you do contrive
-to bring yourself through the rebel lines, bid Captain Gwyeth from me to
-hold out but two days, till Saturday, and he shall have help. ’Tis so
-you have determined, gentlemen?”
-
-“If the Lord aid us, we can recall enough troops to make the town good
-and ride for the rescue by then,” Turner answered.
-
-“That’s all your message, Gwyeth,” Sir William resumed; “and remember,
-if the rebels knew the time when relief could be looked for, ’twould aid
-them mightily, so if you be taken—”
-
-“I’ll not be taken, sir, I do assure you,” cried Hugh, with his hand on
-the latch of the door; “I’ll come through safe to Kingsford.”
-
-“Heaven grant it!” the other said, with a trace of a smile, and then
-soberly, “I can warn you, the captain will be glad at heart to see you.”
-
-Turner said something kindly, too, Hugh remembered afterward, but for
-the present it was just people speaking and wishing him God speed, and
-he was glad when he clapped on his hat outside the door and could run
-for his horse.
-
-Outside, the whole castle seemed emptied into the south court; Leveson’s
-and Turner’s men, some in coats and more in shirt-sleeves, who shouted
-questions and the tidings back and forth, and swore and scuffled at the
-jostlings of the crowd. The sun was down, but the early twilight still
-was clear between the gray walls, enough to bring out every detail of
-the swarming courtyard, and to enable Hugh to distinguish the faces of
-the men. Down in the thick of the throng he caught sight of Frank, with
-a groom holding The Jade, and he ran down from the doorway to him. At
-that, some of the men set up a cheering, under cover of which Frank,
-putting his arm round Hugh’s shoulders, said in a low tone: “I want you
-to take the mare, Hugh; she’s faster than Bayard, and she’s not been
-used these two days; and I did not know it was your cornetcy I was
-taking, and I want you to ride her. Into the saddle with you!”
-
-Without wit or time to reply, Hugh found himself on the mare’s back,
-felt her quiver beneath him, and had opened his mouth to bid the groom
-let go her head, when the shouting swarm between him and the great
-gateway was suddenly cleft apart. Up the lane Black Boy came swinging
-with Strangwayes pulling taut on the bridle so he eased up at Hugh’s
-side. “Get you down,” Dick cried without question, and, springing to the
-ground himself, began tearing off his cuirass.
-
-“What will you have? Be brisk,” Hugh shouted, coming out of his saddle.
-
-Strangwayes flung his cuirass about him, and began very deliberately
-taking in the straps to fit Hugh’s body. “Did you think you were going
-on a pleasure ride?” he asked. Frank burst into a nervous laugh, which
-others caught up, and some began cheering for the lieutenant. Hugh heard
-The Jade prancing with impatience at the sound, and he himself fairly
-squirmed under Dick’s touch. “Let me be off!” he cried.
-
-“You’ve all night before you,” Strangwayes drawled. “Hold up your arm so
-I can get at the strap.”
-
-Just then, through the clatter of The Jade’s restless hoofs and the hum
-of the eager crowd about him, Hugh heard his name called. Looking over
-his shoulder he saw Cowper, with his face the color of ashes, limp up
-between two comrades. “They said ’twas you should go to Kingsford, sir,”
-the man addressed him.
-
-“I’m to venture it,” Hugh answered. “How left you matters there,
-Cowper?”
-
-“The captain has the church and the graveyard, sir. The rebels hold the
-village and the bridge over the Arrow. I got across two mile up at the
-Blackwater ford. The river ran high, and they had set no guard. ’Twas
-breaking through the village they shot at me.”
-
-“Go tend your hurt now,” Hugh found thought to urge. “I’ll remember the
-ford, be sure. Are you done now, Dick?”
-
-“Done with that,” replied Strangwayes. “Are your pistols in order? And
-the word for the night is ‘Gloucester’; you’ll need it at the gates.”
-
-“Yes, yes,” Hugh cried, and made a dash for The Jade, who, dragging her
-groom at her head, had fretted herself a good ten feet away. A trooper
-jumped forward and caught her bit to stay her; but it was Dick, Hugh
-remembered, who held the stirrup so he could swing himself easily into
-the saddle. “God speed!” he heard Strangwayes say in the instant that
-followed. “We’ll be at your heels soon. God speed!”
-
-That was all the farewell between them; for the men stood back from The
-Jade’s head, and, with a shrill squeal, she darted forward across the
-court. Hugh heard the click of her hoofs on the cobblestones, then lost
-the sound in the cheer upon cheer that broke from those about him. His
-arms ached with the tense grip he was holding on the bridle, and then he
-found the mare had the bit in her teeth. “Go, if you will,” he cried,
-letting the reins looser. The shadow of the gateway fell upon him; he
-saw the flicker of the torch beneath it and the white faces of the men
-on guard. Then he had jammed his hat on hard, and, bending his head, was
-striving to hold The Jade straight as she tore down the slope and sped
-through the town.
-
-Houses and shops rushed by; he heard a woman shriek abuse after him for
-his mad riding; the crash of opening casements, as the townsfolk leaned
-out to see him pass; once, too, his heart gave a jump as a boy, like a
-black streak, shot across the road just clear of The Jade’s nose. Then
-the bulk of the town gate blocked his way; he saw the sentinels spring
-forth to stay him, and, contriving to check the mare an instant, he
-leaned from the saddle to say “Gloucester” to the corporal in charge.
-
-“Pass free,” came the word; the men stood from his path, and, giving
-loose rein to The Jade, he flew by them out into the twilight stretch of
-open country road.
-
-For a time it was just breathless riding, with his full weight on the
-reins to slacken the mare’s speed; for the road was all ruts, and he
-feared for her slender legs. The mud spattered up even into his eyes,
-and once, at a dip in the road, he felt his mount make a half-slip in
-the mire, which sobered her somewhat, so he could ease her down to a
-slow, careful trot that promised to carry him well through the night.
-Now he was first able to look about at the broad, dusky fields and back
-over his shoulder, where Tamworth town and castle were merged into the
-night. The first exhilaration of the setting forth went from him in the
-stillness and dark; it was steady, grim work he had before him, yet he
-felt assured he would come safely into Kingsford, and, spite of the
-gravity of it all, he found himself smiling a little at the way in
-which, at last, he was going to his father. He wondered perplexedly how
-he should greet Captain Gwyeth, and how phrase his message; a formal
-tone would perhaps be best till he was sure of his welcome. But Sir
-William had said his father would be glad at his coming; at that thought
-Hugh pricked on The Jade a little faster.
-
-Once clear of the first village beyond Tamworth he entered a stretch of
-woodland, where the black tips of the trees showed vivid against the
-starless gray sky. Below, the undergrowth was all dense darkness and
-Hugh thought it well to keep a hand on his pistol, for he was drawing
-into Puritan country where a Cavalier was fair game for an ambuscade.
-Out beyond he trotted again through fields, only blacker and lonelier
-now than those by Tamworth. Such cottages as he passed were silent and
-dark; at one farmstead he heard a dog howl, and once, in a tangled
-hollow, a bat whizzed by his head, but he saw or heard no other living
-thing. Though once, as he gazed across the fields on his left, he made
-out in the distance a gleam of light; a farm must lie yonder, and he
-pictured to himself the low cottage chamber, where the goodwife would be
-watching with a restless child. Such shelter and companionship was
-betokened by the light that he turned in the saddle to gaze at it till a
-clump of trees shut it from him.
-
-It must have been something after midnight, though under that starless
-sky he could not tell the time surely, when he clattered into a
-considerable town. An officious watchman with a bobbing torch ran from a
-byway, calling on him to stand, so Hugh clapped spurs to The Jade and
-shot through the street at such a pace that the next watchman could only
-get out of his course without trying to stay him. But after that he grew
-wary and, when the outlying houses of the next town came out of the
-black, turned off into the fields and picked his way about it. The
-round-about course saved him from interference, but it took much time;
-by a dull, unbraced feeling, that was not sleepiness nor yet quite
-weariness alone, he knew he had been many hours in the saddle, and he
-began to look to the east, in dread lest he catch the first signs of
-daybreak.
-
-Presently he must give his whole attention to The Jade, for they
-spattered into a ford where the going was treacherous. While she halted
-to drink he gazed about at the bushes and the field before him, and,
-spite of the dark, knew the place. It was home country he was drawing
-toward now, so he trotted on slowly, with his senses alert and his eyes
-peering into the dusk for the landmarks that should guide him. So it was
-that at last on his right hand he caught sight of a big leafless oak,
-beneath which he pulled up short. True enough, he remembered the way in
-which the tree stood up bare and alone with scragged common at its back;
-he could not see well for the dark, but he knew that at the farther edge
-of the open land was a belt of young oaks that hid the ford of
-Blackwater.
-
-He lingered beneath the blasted oak, time enough to look to his pistols,
-and time enough, too, for him to recall the ghostly reputation of the
-lonely tree, so his nerves were crisping as he rode by it into the
-common. But he quieted The Jade’s fretty step, and, in the action and
-the thought of what might be before him, steadied himself till, though
-his body was trembling with eagerness, his head was cool. He took the
-precaution of making the mare keep a slow trot that was half muffled in
-the turf, though he urged her as much as he dared on the uneven ground;
-for to the east, as he looked over his shoulder, the dark was beginning
-to pale. The early summer morning must be near at hand, for when he had
-crossed the open there was light enough for him to make out the break in
-the trees where the bridle path wound down to the ford.
-
-Hugh went in cautiously, with the reins taut in his left hand and his
-right on his pistol; but for all that The Jade’s feet splashed in the
-sloughs of the pathway with a loudness that startled him. He pulled up a
-moment and listened; ahead he could hear the lap, lap of swift water,
-but for the rest the wood was silent. He was about to press the mare
-forward with a touch of the spur, when, flinging up her head, she
-whickered shrilly. Right upon that, somewhere to the front by the
-water’s edge, a horse neighed.
-
-Next moment Hugh felt the lash of low boughs across his neck, as he
-pulled The Jade round with her haunches in among the bushes by the path.
-Spite of the crash of the branches, and the pounding of the blood in his
-temples that near deafened him, he caught the sound of hoof-beats on his
-left, coming down on him from the common as well as up from the river.
-At that he urged The Jade forward, straight into the bushes at the other
-side of the path, where the limbs grew so low that he bent down with his
-bare head pressed against her mane. For all the hurry and tumult, his
-ears were alert, and presently he heard their horses crashing behind him
-among the trees at the right. Then, cautiously as he could pick his way
-in the gray dimness, he turned The Jade’s head to the common. Brushing
-out through the last of the oaks he faced southward, and, as he did so,
-cast a glance behind him. Out of the shadows of the trees in his rear he
-saw the dim form of a horseman take shape, and a command, loud in the
-hush of morning, reached him: “Halt, there!”
-
-Hugh laid the spurs to The Jade’s sides and, as she ran, instinctively
-bent himself forward. Behind him he heard a shot, then the patter of
-many hoofs upon the turf, and a second shot. Right upon it he felt a
-dull shock above the shoulder blade; the ball must have rebounded from
-his cuirass. After that he was in among the trees once more; through the
-wood behind him men were crashing and shouting; and even such scant
-shelter as the oaks gave was ending, as they grew sparser and sparser,
-till he dashed into an open stretch that sloped to the Arrow. To the
-front he had a dizzy sight of more horsemen straggling from cover; there
-were two patrols closing in on him, he realized, and with that, jerking
-the mare to the right, he headed for the river.
-
-Before him he could see the slope of hillside, the dark water under the
-bank beyond, even the dusky sedge of the low opposite shore. He saw,
-too, a horseman, bursting out from the trees, halt across his path, but
-he neither stayed nor swerved, just drove the spurs into The Jade and
-braced himself for the shock. He must have struck the other horse on the
-chest; he had an instant’s sight of a trooper’s tense face and a horse’s
-sleek shoulders, then only black water was before him and men behind him
-were shouting to pull up. There came a sickening sense of being hurled
-from the earth; a great splashing noise and spray in his face. After
-that was a time of struggling to free his feet from the stirrups, to
-clear himself from the frightened mare; all this with water choking and
-strangling him and filling his ears and beating down his head. He had no
-thought nor hope nor conscious plan of action, only with all the
-strength of his body he battled clear till he found himself in
-mid-stream, with the current tugging at his legs, and his boots and
-cuirass dragging him down. Once his head went under, and he rose gasping
-to a dizzy sight of gray sky. He struck out despairingly while he tried
-in vain to kick free from his boots. The current was twisting and
-tossing him helplessly; he turned on his back a moment, and still the
-sky was rushing past above him and whirling as it went. Above the din of
-the water he heard faint shouts of men and crack of musket-shot. A base
-end for a soldier, to drown like a rat! he reflected, and at the thought
-struck out blindly. The water swept him down-stream, but he fought his
-way obliquely shoreward till of a sudden he found the tug of the current
-had abated. He could rest an instant and look to his bearings; quite
-near him lay the shore, a dark sweep of field with a hedge that ran down
-to the water, and on the farther side the hedge he saw horsemen
-following down the stream.
-
-Hugh struck out with renewed strength, till, finding the bottom beneath
-his feet at last, he splashed shoreward on the run, and, stumbling
-through the sedge and mire of the margin, panted upward into the field.
-Off to the left were the roofs of Kingsford, so far the current had
-swept him, but near at hand there was no hiding-place, nor even a tree
-to set his back against, and, with his boots heavy with water and his
-breath exhausted with the past struggle, he had no hope to run. He
-halted where he was, in the midst of the bare field, and pulled out his
-sword, just as the foremost horseman cleared the hedge at a leap. It was
-not so dark but Hugh recognized the square young figure, even before the
-man charged right upon him. “Good morrow, Cousin Peregrine,” he cried
-out, and dodged aside so the horse might not trample him. “Get down and
-fight.”
-
-As he spoke he made a cut at the horse’s flank; then Peregrine, crying
-out his name, sprang down and faced him. They were blade to blade at
-last, and at the first blow the older lad flinched, stumbling back in
-the long grass of the field, and Hugh, with eyes on his set, angry face,
-pressed after him. Horses were galloping nearer and nearer, men calling
-louder, but Hugh did not heed; for Peregrine, mistaking a feint he made,
-laid himself open, and he lunged forward at him.
-
-Then his sword-arm was caught and held fast, and he was flung backward
-into the grasp of a couple of troopers. The man who had first seized
-him, a grim corporal in a yellow sash, wrenched the sword out of his
-hand, and he heard him speak to Peregrine: “Has the knave done you hurt,
-sir?”
-
-Hugh pulled himself together, though his whole body was still a-quiver
-with the action of the last moments, and looked about him. Yellow-sashed
-troopers surrounded him, six or seven, he judged, and a few paces
-distant stood Peregrine, with his hand pressed to his right forearm. “He
-slashed me in the wrist,” young Oldesworth broke out; “I tripped, else
-he had not done it.”
-
-“You had not tripped if you had stood your ground,” Hugh flung back,
-with an involuntary effort to loosen his arms from the grasp of those
-who had seized him.
-
-“Hold your tongue, you cur!” snapped Peregrine, and might have said
-more, had there not come from across the river a prolonged hail. One ran
-down to the brink to catch the words; but Hugh had no chance to listen,
-for at Peregrine’s curt order he was hustled upon one of the troop
-horses. They tied his hands behind him, too; whereat Hugh set his teeth
-and scowled in silence. What would Peregrine do with him before he were
-done, he was wondering dumbly, when the man from the river came up with
-the report that the captain bade to convey the prisoner to Everscombe,
-and see to it that he did not escape. “I’ll see to it,” Peregrine said
-grimly, and got to his saddle, awkwardly, because of his wounded arm,
-that was already staining a rough bandage red.
-
-The morning was breaking grayly as the little squad turned westward
-through the fields, and by a hollow to the Kingsford road. As they
-descended into the highway, Hugh faced a little about in his saddle, and
-gazed down it toward the village; a rise in the land shut the spot from
-sight, but he knew that yonder Captain Gwyeth lay, awaiting the message
-that he was not to bring. The trooper who rode at his stirrup took him
-roughly by the shoulder then, and made him face round to the front. “You
-don’t go to Kingsford to-day, sir,” he jeered.
-
-Hugh had not spirit even to look at the fellow, but fixed his eyes on
-the pommel of the saddle. Trees and road he had known slipped by, he was
-aware; he heard the horses stamp upon the roadway; and he felt his wet
-clothes press against his body, and felt the strap about his wrists cut
-into the flesh. But nothing of all that mattered as his numbed wits came
-to the full realization that this was the end of the boasting confidence
-with which he had set forth, and the end of his hope of meeting with his
-father. The last fight would be fought without him, or even now Captain
-Gwyeth, ignorant of the aid that should hurry to him, might be putting
-himself into his enemies’ hands. At that, Hugh tugged hopelessly at the
-strap, and found a certain relief in the fierce smarting of his chafed
-wrists.
-
-Like an echo of his thoughts Peregrine’s voice came at his elbow: “So
-you were thinking to reach Kingsford, were you?”
-
-“I should not be riding here just for my pleasure,” Hugh replied, with a
-piteous effort to force a light tone.
-
-“’Twould be as well for you if you were less saucy,” his cousin said
-sternly. “You know me.”
-
-“I know you carry one mark of my sword on you,” Hugh answered, looking
-his tormentor in the face, “and if you’d not let your troop come aid
-you, you’d carry more.”
-
-For a moment he expected Peregrine to strike him; then the elder lad
-merely laughed exasperatingly. “You’ll not talk so high by to-night,” he
-said, “when you’re fetched out to see that dog Gwyeth hanged up in
-Everscombe Park.”
-
-“You’d best catch him before you hang him,” Hugh answered stoutly,
-though the heart within him was heavy almost beyond endurance. What
-might the Oldesworths not do if once they laid hands on Captain Gwyeth?
-A prisoner of war had no rights, Hugh was well aware, and so many
-accidents could befall. He felt his face must show something of his
-fear, and he dreaded lest Peregrine goad him into farther speech, and
-his words betray his wretchedness.
-
-But happily just there they turned in between the stone pillars of
-Everscombe Park, and Peregrine paced to the front of his squad. Hugh
-listlessly watched the well-remembered trees and turnings of the avenue,
-which were clear to see now in the breaking dawn. The roofs of the manor
-house showed in even outlines against the dull sky, all as he remembered
-it, only now the lawn beneath the terrace was scarred with hoof-prints,
-and over in the old west wing the door was open, and a musketeer paced
-up and down the flagstones before it. Heading thither, the squad drew up
-before the entrance, and Hugh, haled unceremoniously from the horse’s
-back, was jostled into the large old hall of the west wing, that seemed
-now a guardroom.
-
-“How do you like this for a home-coming, cousin?” Peregrine asked, and
-Hugh looked him in the eyes but answered nothing. His captor laughed and
-turned to his troopers. “Search him thoroughly now,” he ordered; “then
-hold him securely till Captain Oldesworth comes.—And I can tell you,
-sirrah,” he addressed Hugh once more, “you’ll relish his conversation
-even less than you relish mine.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XX
- BENEATH THE ROOF OF EVERSCOMBE
-
-
-They had searched Hugh, thoroughly and with more than necessary
-roughness, and now he was permitted to drag on his dripping clothes
-again. It was in a long, narrow room at the end of the old hall, where
-the ceiling was high and dark and the three tall windows set well up
-from the floor. A year ago it had been a closed and disused apartment,
-but now a couple of tables and some stools were placed there; Hugh noted
-the furniture in listless outer fashion as he sat wrestling on his
-sodden boots. For once his captors had taken their hands off him; one
-trooper was guarding the door and another was pacing up and down beneath
-the windows, but the corporal and the third man stood within arm’s reach
-of him. When Hugh rose to his feet the corporal made a little movement,
-and he realized they were all alert for his least suspicious action. “My
-faith, I’m not like to get away from the four of you,” Hugh broke out in
-a despairing sort of sullenness. “’Tis only that I’d fain put on my
-coat, unless you claim that along with my cuirass and buff jacket.”
-
-One bade him put on and be hanged, and Hugh, having drawn on the wet
-garment, sat down again on the stool by the table, too utterly weary and
-hopeless to note more than that the room was damp and the chill of his
-soaked clothes was striking to his marrow. With a thought of tramping
-some warmth into his body he rose again, but the corporal sharply bade
-him sit down quietly or be tied down. Hugh resumed his place on the
-stool with his shoulders against the edge of the table and one ankle
-resting on the other knee; he would gladly have swung round and rested
-his head upon the table, so worn-out and faint he felt, only he knew if
-he did his captors would think him childish and frightened.
-
-Of a sudden he heard the sentinel at the door advance a step and
-announce to the corporal: “Captain Oldesworth has just come into the
-guardroom, sir.”
-
-A queer tingling went through Hugh’s veins, and upon it followed a
-sickening faintness. Bringing both feet down to the ground, he faced
-about with his clinched hand on the table and his eyes fastened upon the
-door. He knew now why he had not been able to think, those last moments,
-why every humiliation had been scarcely heeded, in the expectation of
-this that was before him. He saw the corporal draw up stiff in salute,
-the sentinel stand back from the door, and then, clean-shaven,
-set-mouthed as ever, he saw Tom Oldesworth stride in.
-
-It had been in Hugh’s mind to stand up to meet his uncle, but at the
-last he dared not trust his knees to such a test. For the moment the old
-boyish fear of the elder man, whose raillery had cut him, whose blows
-had made him flinch, came back on him, and he could only stare at him
-dumbly.
-
-“’Tis not the place I had looked to find you, nephew,” Oldesworth
-greeted him, in a tone that though brusque was kindly enough. Only in
-the hurriedness of his bearing and the eagerness in his eyes Hugh read
-no friendly presage, so he let his gaze fall to the table and studied
-the grain of the wood, while he listened to the beating of his heart
-that vibrated through all his body.
-
-Oldesworth spoke a word aside to the corporal, and as the troopers drew
-to the farther end of the room came and set himself down opposite Hugh.
-“Now attend me, sir,” he began rapidly. “By your trappings you seem to
-have learned something of war; then you know how the case stands with
-you now we have you fast. So I trust you will not suffer any childish
-stubbornness to vex me or harm you.”
-
-Hugh watched the man’s hard face with fascinated eyes and lips
-half-opened, but found no tongue to reply.
-
-“You were riding to Kingsford,” Oldesworth continued, gazing at him
-fixedly. “You came from Tamworth, whither a messenger was posted
-yesterday. You brought an answering message. What was it?”
-
-Hugh flung back his head. “If there be a message, think you I’d be such
-a fool as to tell it?” he cried, in a voice that was so firm it made him
-glad. After all, he had no need to fear, for this was only a man like
-the rest, and he was now a man, too.
-
-“You brought a message from Sir William Pleydall,” Oldesworth repeated,
-unmoved. “He is going to send aid to this man, is he not? Why, I can
-read that in your face, Hugh. Aid is coming, then. Is it to-day?
-To-morrow? Answer me.”
-
-Hugh met his uncle’s gaze fairly, with his head held a little upward and
-his lips tight-set now. There was nothing for him to say, but he knew
-they fought the battle out betwixt them while their glances met.
-
-“So you’re stubborn, are you?” Oldesworth said, rising to his feet. “You
-young fool! Do you think you can set your will against mine?”
-
-“I think I will not tell what you ask,” Hugh replied without a tremor.
-
-Oldesworth leaned a little forward with his fist upon the table. “I have
-been waiting all my manhood to take satisfaction from Alan Gwyeth,” he
-said slowly. “Now the opportunity is given me do you think I shall
-suffer a boy’s obstinacy to hinder me? I will have that message. If
-you’ll not yield it for the asking, why—Come, come, speak. I’d be loath
-to hurt you, Hugh.”
-
-“I’d be loath to have you, sir,” Hugh replied soberly, though his whole
-inclination was to laugh; for now the worst had come he was braced to
-meet it, and quite unafraid.
-
-Captain Oldesworth’s jaws were set ominously at that. “Corporal,” he
-ordered sharply, “send a man to fetch rope and a piece of match.”
-
-With an involuntary start Hugh came to his feet, for his mind had jumped
-back to something Butler had once hinted,—that a length of burning match
-tied between the fingers was the surest way to make a dumb knave find
-his tongue.
-
-“’Tis no laughing matter, you’ll perceive,” the captain said, with a
-trace of satisfaction. “Now you’ll tell?”
-
-Hugh shook his head, not looking at his uncle but with eyes upon the
-door. He saw it pushed open, and then came in the trooper with a length
-of rope in his hand, but Hugh scarcely heeded, for behind him, with an
-eager step, walked Peregrine Oldesworth. After that it did not need the
-tramp of the men crossing from the other end of the room to set every
-fibre of Hugh’s body tense for the coming struggle. With a quick
-movement he swung about to catch up the stool he had just quitted;
-Oldesworth must have stepped round the table behind him, for he blocked
-his way now, and catching him by the shoulders made him stand, for all
-Hugh’s effort to wrench clear. “’Twill be no use fighting, my lad,” he
-said, with something oddly like pity in his face. “Do as I ask
-straightway. You’ve done all a gentleman need do. Tell me now when
-Pleydall is coming. Else you go into the hands of Cornet Oldesworth and
-his squad here. And Peregrine is keen for this work. But tell, and no
-one shall lay hand on you, nor—”
-
-“I care not if you kill me!” Hugh cried hoarsely.
-
-“Have it your way, then!” Oldesworth retorted, and, flinging him off,
-turned his back. “Tie him up, lads,” he ordered.
-
-Some one griped his collar, Hugh felt; there was a rip of cloth, and for
-a moment he had torn himself free and struck out blindly at the mass of
-them. They must have tripped him, for he felt the floor beneath his
-shoulders; but he still had hold on one of them, and he heard a shirt
-tear beneath his hands. There came a dull pain between his eyes, as if
-the bones of the forehead were bursting outward, and he made a feeble
-effort to strike up as he lay. Then the struggling was over; he could
-not even kick, for one that sat upon his legs; a man’s knee was grinding
-down on his back, and his arms were forced behind him. His face was
-pressed to the floor, and he could see nothing for a blackness before
-his eyes, but he heard Peregrines voice, cool and well-satisfied: “He’ll
-be quiet enough now. Here’s the rope.”
-
-Some one else had entered the room, Hugh realized; a slow step, a pause,
-and then a stern voice that rang loud: “Thomas Oldesworth! Bid your
-ruffians take their hands from your sister’s son.”
-
-“Father!” the captain’s voice spoke, then after an instant’s blank pause
-ran on: “You do not understand, good sir. He—”
-
-“Will you stand arguing?” There came a noise as of a staff’s being
-struck upon the floor. “Do I command in this house, son Thomas, or do
-you? You ruffianly knaves, up with you all!”
-
-They had left him free, Hugh found, and dragging one arm up to his head
-he lay panting desperately, without strength or heart to move. “Help him
-to his feet,” the stern voice spoke again. “Or have you done him serious
-hurt?”
-
-They lifted him up, with gentler handling than they had yet given him,
-and staggering a pace to the table he leaned against it. He drew his
-hand across his eyes unsteadily to rub away the black spots that danced
-before them; he had a blurry sight, then, of the troopers drawn back to
-the windows, and of the captain and Peregrine, who stood together with
-half-abashed faces, for in the doorway, leaning on his staff, was Master
-Gilbert Oldesworth. “Get you back to Kingsford and fight out your fight
-with the scoundrel who wronged your sister,” he spoke again. “At such a
-time can you find no better task than to maltreat a boy?”
-
-“If you would only pause to hear how matters stand, sir,” the captain
-urged, with a visible effort to maintain a respectful tone. “The lad
-holds the information that shall make us masters of that villain Gwyeth.
-If he will not speak, though he were twenty times my nephew, I’ll—”
-
-“If he were twenty times the meanest horseboy in the king’s camp, he
-should not be put to torture beneath my roof,” Master Oldesworth
-answered grimly. “Come here to me, Hugh Gwyeth.”
-
-Wondering dully why all the strength had gone out of his body, Hugh
-stumbled across the room and pitched up against the wall beside his
-grandfather. He noted now that his shirt was torn open, and drawing his
-coat together he tried to fasten it; his fingers shook unsteadily, and
-the buttons were hard to find. He felt his grandfather’s hand placed
-firmly on his shoulder. “I think you have mishandled this gentleman
-enough to satisfy you,” the old man spoke contemptuously. “Henceforth
-you will merely hold him as a prisoner taken in honorable war. And I
-shall myself be responsible for his custody.”
-
-“My good father,” Captain Oldesworth broke out, “I cannot suffer him to
-pass from my keeping. My responsibility to the state—”
-
-“Will you school me, Thomas?” Master Oldesworth cut him short. “I am
-neither bed-ridden nor brain-sick that you should try to dictate to me
-now. But I will advise you, sir, that there are decencies to be observed
-even in war, and there are those in authority would make you to smart if
-ever they got knowledge of this you purposed. Lift your hand against my
-grandson, and this day’s work comes to their ears.”
-
-Then the grasp on Hugh’s shoulder tightened, and submissively he walked
-at his grandfathers side out into the guardroom. Those loitering there
-drew back to make way for them, he judged by the sound of footsteps, but
-he had not spirit even to look up. By the difference of the oak planking
-of the floors he perceived they were entering the passage that led to
-the main building, when he felt a firmer grip close on his arm and heard
-the voice of the Roundhead corporal: “I crave your pardon, sir. The
-captain bade me see the prisoner safely locked up.”
-
-“No need,” Master Oldesworth spoke curtly, and then addressed Hugh: “You
-will give me your parole not to attempt an escape.”
-
-Hugh looked up helplessly into his grandfather’s stern face, and felt
-the grasp of the corporal press upon his arm. His breath came hard like
-a sob, but he managed to force out his answer: “I cannot, sir, I cannot.
-You’d better thrust me back into my uncle’s hands. I cannot promise.”
-
-He was trying to nerve himself to be dragged back to the chamber behind
-the guardroom, but though Master Oldesworth’s face grew harder, he only
-said, “Bring him along after me,” and led the way down the passage.
-
-Hugh followed unsteadily, glad of the grasp on his arm that helped to
-keep him erect. They had entered the east wing, he noted listlessly;
-then he was trudging up the long staircase and stumbling down the
-corridor. At the first window recess he saw Master Oldesworth halt and
-heard him speak less curtly: “I have indeed to thank you, mistress.”
-Raising his eyes as he passed, Hugh saw that by the window, with hands
-wrung tight together, Lois Campion was standing.
-
-Instinctively he tried to halt, but the grip on his arm never relaxed,
-and he must come on at his captor’s side, down to the end of the
-corridor. There Master Oldesworth had flung open a door into a tiny
-chamber, with one high, narrow slit of a window, bare of furniture save
-for a couple of chests and a broken chair, over which the dust lay
-thick. “Since you will have no better lodging, you shall stay here,” he
-said coldly.
-
-Dragging his way in, Hugh flung himself down on a chest with his head in
-his hands. “Could you let me have a drink of water, sir?” he asked
-faintly.
-
-“Go to my chamber and fetch the flask of Spanish wine, Lois,” Master
-Oldesworth bade, and Hugh heard the girl’s footsteps die away in the
-corridor, then heard or heeded nothing, just sat with his face hidden.
-
-A touch on the shoulder roused him at last; he took the glass of wine
-his grandfather offered him and slowly drank it down. They were alone in
-the room now, he noted as he drank, the door was drawn to, and Lois was
-gone. He set down the empty glass and leaned forward with his elbows on
-his knees. “I thank you, sir, for this, for all you have saved me from,”
-he said slowly.
-
-“You might thank me for more, if you were less self-willed.”
-
-“’Tis not from self-will, sir, I did as I have done, that I refused my
-parole,” Hugh broke out, “’tis for my father. I cannot bind myself. I
-must go to him. I—”
-
-“No more words of that man,” Master Oldesworth silenced him. “You shall
-never go to him again. A year ago I dealt not wisely with you. I gave
-you choice where you were too young to choose. For all your folly there
-are parts in you too good for me to suffer you destroy yourself. Now
-where I let you walk at your will I shall see to it that you keep the
-right path, by force, if you drive me to it. For the present I shall
-hold you in safe custody at Everscombe. Later, as you conduct yourself,
-I shall determine what course to take.”
-
-“But my father!” Hugh cried.
-
-“Captain Oldesworth will deal with Alan Gwyeth,” Master Oldesworth
-replied. “Do you forget him.”
-
-“I can never forget him, sir. Sure, I’d liefer be hanged with him than
-be saved apart from him thus. I—”
-
-The door closed jarringly behind Master Oldesworth, the key grated in
-the lock, and the bolt was shot creakingly.
-
-For a time Hugh sat staring stupidly at the door of his prison, then,
-getting slowly to his feet, he began dragging and shoving the chest
-beneath the window. His hands were still unsteady and he felt limp and
-weak, so again and again he must pause to sit down. The little room was
-close and hot; the perspiration prickled on the back of his neck, and
-stung above his eyebrows. The movement of the chest cleared a white
-space on the gray floor, and the dust that rose thick sifted into his
-mouth and nostrils till he was coughing painfully with a miserable
-feeling that it needed but little for the coughing to end in sobbing. He
-hated himself for his weakness, and, gritting his teeth, shoved the
-chest the more vigorously till at last it was in position beneath the
-window. Lifting the one chair upon it, he mounted up precariously; the
-sill of the window came level with his collar bone while the top grazed
-his forehead. He stretched up his arms and measured the length and
-breadth of the opening twice over, but he knew it was quite hopeless;
-there was no getting through that narrow window, and, had it been
-possible, he must risk a sheer fall of two stories to the flagged walk
-below. For a moment he stood blinking out at the green branches of the
-elms that swayed before his window, then he dropped to the floor again
-and sat down on the chest with his face in his hands.
-
-So he was still sitting, when the door was unlocked and one of the
-serving men of the household came in to fetch him dinner. Hugh looked
-up, and, recognizing the fellow, would have spoken, but the man only
-shook his head and backed out hastily. Hugh noted that it was no
-trooper’s rations they had sent him, but food from his grandfathers
-table; still he had no heart to eat, though he drank eagerly, till
-presently he reasoned this was weak conduct, for he must keep up
-strength if he were ever to come out of his captors’ hands, so, drawing
-the plate to him, he resolutely swallowed down a tolerable meal.
-
-Then he set himself to watch the motes dance in a sunbeam that ran well
-up toward the ceiling, but presently it went out altogether. He leaned
-back then on the chest where he sat, and perhaps had lost himself a time
-in a numb, half-waking sleep, when of a sudden he caught a distant sound
-that brought him to his feet. He could not mistake it; off to the east
-where Kingsford lay he could hear the faint crack of musketry fired in
-volleys. Hugh cried out something in a hoarse voice he did not
-recognize; then he was wrenching at the latch and hammering on the door
-with his clinched hands, while he shrieked to them to let him go. He saw
-the blood smearing out from his knuckles, but he beat on against the
-unshaken panels till the strength left him and he dropped down on the
-floor. Still, as he lay, he could hear the distant firing, and then he
-ground his face down between his hands and cried as he had never cried
-before with great sobs that seemed to tear him.
-
-Afterward there came a long time when he had not strength even to sob,
-when the slackening fire meant nothing to him, and, lying motionless and
-stupid, he realized only that the light was paling in the chamber. The
-door was pushed open, and mechanically he rolled a little out of the way
-of it. The serving man he remembered came in with supper, and at sight
-of him Hugh lifted up his head and entreated brokenly: “Tell me, what
-has happened? Have they taken my father? For the love of Heaven, tell
-me.”
-
-The man hesitated, then, as he passed to the doorway, bent down and
-whispered: “They’ve beat the Cavaliers into the church, sir, but they’ve
-not taken the captain yet. Lord bless you, don’t cry so, sir.”
-
-For the sheer nervous relief had set Hugh choking and sobbing again
-without pride or strength enough left to hold himself in check. As the
-darkness closed in, however, he grew a little calmer, though sheer
-exhaustion more than inner comfort held him quiet. His eyes were hot and
-smarting, and his throat ached, so he crept over to the chest where the
-food was placed, and laying hands on a jug of water gulped down a good
-deal and splashed some over his face. After that he stretched himself
-again upon the floor, where for pure weariness he dropped at length into
-a heavy sleep.
-
-He awoke in darkness, his blood tingling and his pulses a-jump in a
-childish momentary fear at the strangeness of the place and a something
-else he could not define. He had recollected his position and laid down
-his head again, with a little effort to place himself more comfortably
-upon the floor, when there came a second time the noise that must have
-wakened him,—a stealthy faint click of the latch, as if the door were
-being softly opened. Hugh sprang to his feet and set his back to the
-wall, in the best position for defence, if it were some enemy, if it
-were Captain Oldesworth came seeking him. The door was opening, he
-perceived, as his eyes grew accustomed to the darkness. “Who is it?” he
-asked in a guarded tone.
-
-“Hush! ’Tis I, Lois.”
-
-Hugh caught his breath in a gasp of relief. “Lois, you’ve come to free
-me?” he whispered, and, stepping softly to her, fumbled in the dark and
-found her hand.
-
-“Yes, yes. I was afraid for you. I told Master Oldesworth that Peregrine
-was bragging how the captain would serve you. He saved you that time.
-But ’tis possible the captain will lay hands on you again. I slipped
-into Master Oldesworth’s chamber and took the key. I know ’tis wicked; I
-care not. Pull off your boots and come away, quick.”
-
-Noiselessly as he could, Hugh got his boots in his hand and in his
-stockinged feet stole out of the chamber. In the corridor it was all
-black and still, just as it had been that other time when he ran from
-Everscombe, only now Lois was with him, and when the stairs creaked they
-pressed close together. Then she went forward boldly, and he, still
-half-blinded with sleep, was content to follow the guidance of her hand.
-“In here,” she whispered at length, and so led him into the east parlor,
-where the great clock still ticked, solemn and unperturbed. “Go out at
-the window,” Lois spoke softly; “I dare not open the door. There are a
-few men in the house, but they lie in the west wing and the stables. The
-bulk are at Kingsford. Northward you will find the way clear.”
-
-“I am not going northward,” Hugh answered, as he warily pushed open the
-casement. “I go to my father now.”
-
-“Hugh!” The girl’s voice came in a frightened gasp. “I had not released
-you— If you come unto them at last— They wish it not— You may be killed!
-You shall not do this thing.”
-
-Leaning from the casement Hugh dropped his boots carefully where the
-dark showed an edge of grass bordered the flagged walk; as he set
-himself astride the window ledge he spoke: “’Tis just the thing I shall
-do, Lois, and the only thing. If you be sorry for what you did, call, if
-you will, but I shall jump and run for it.”
-
-“I shall not call,” she answered. “Oh, I care not who has the right and
-wrong of the war. I cannot bear they should hurt you.”
-
-She was kneeling on the window-bench with her face close to his; he
-suddenly bent forward and kissed her. “God bless you for this, Lois,” he
-said.
-
-Then he swung himself over the window ledge, and letting his weight come
-on his hands dropped noiselessly to the walk below. He dragged on his
-boots, and taking a cautious step across the flagstones slid down the
-terrace to the lawn. Once more he glanced back, not at Everscombe manor
-house, but at the opened window of the east parlor. It was too dark more
-than to distinguish the outline of the casement, but he knew that at the
-lattice Lois was still standing to wish him God speed to his father.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI
- THE FATHERHOOD OF ALAN GWYETH
-
-
-The sky was bluish black with heavy masses of clouds, but through a rift
-in the west showed a bright star, by which Hugh guessed roughly it must
-be within two hours of dawn. Quickening his pace to a run at that, he
-came into the shelter of the park, where it was all black, and he went
-forward blindly, with one arm thrust up to guard his face. Now and again
-he had through the tree-tops a distant sight of the sky, and by it took
-his directions; but for the most part he stumbled on haphazard, though
-at a brisk pace, for the night was passing rapidly. When at length he
-crushed his way through a thicket to the edge of the brook that marked
-the bounds of the park, the bright western star had sunk out of sight
-behind the trees.
-
-Beyond the brook he hurried through a tract of woodland, where he bore
-to the southward to keep clear of the Kingsford highway and a farmstead
-that lay back from it. He came out in a cornfield, where the blades felt
-damp against his face as he forced a rustling passage through, and after
-that climbed over a wall into the open fields. There were no more houses
-to avoid before he reached the village, so with less caution he pressed
-on at a good jog-trot. For the night was waning, and Kingsford was still
-to come.
-
-An ominous pale streak showed in the east before him as he climbed the
-swell of land that cut off sight of the village. Fearing lest his figure
-show up too distinctly against the sky line, he made for a clump of
-bushes at the summit, and had just got within their shadow when he
-caught the sound of hoof-beats. Dropping flat he dragged himself in
-under the bushes, where, peering out between the leaves, he saw the
-black bulk of a horseman ride along the slope below him. A little to
-Hugh’s left he pulled up and called to another rider a challenge that
-reached the boy’s ears quite clearly, then turned and came pacing back.
-
-They had set a mounted guard about the town, then; and with that Hugh
-told himself he must slip past it and quickly, too, or the dawn would be
-upon him. But first he waited for the horseman’s return, to know what
-was the time between his passing and repassing, and while he waited he
-strained his eyes into the dark to get the lay of the land. At the foot
-of the rising ground was a hollow, he remembered, and across it, on the
-higher land, stood an irregular line of three cottages, beyond which ran
-a lane that led by the side wall of the churchyard. Very likely troops
-were lodged about the cottages now, perhaps even more patrols in the
-hollow, but all he could see was the black depths beneath him and the
-outline of the nearest cottage. Then he heard the sound of hoofs loud
-again, as once more the horseman on guard rode by below. Hugh could make
-out his form far too clearly; dawn was coming, and he durst stay no
-longer.
-
-So soon as the man had turned and paced a rod on his journey back, Hugh
-crawled from beneath the bushes and, rolling noiselessly, creeping on
-hands and knees, made his way down the hillside. He remembered afterward
-the feel of the moist grass in his hands, the look of the mottled dark
-sky and the faint stars, and how at a distant hail in the village he
-pressed flat on the cold ground. But at last he crawled across a more
-level space he judged the bridle path, and scrambled down into the depth
-of the hollow, where a chilly mist set him shivering. As he lay
-outstretched, resting his weary arms a moment, he heard up above him the
-horseman ride by.
-
-Now that he was within the lines of the patrol only caution and
-quickness were necessary. Still on hands and knees, he dragged himself
-slowly up the hillside, bearing ever to the south to get behind the
-cottages, yet not daring to venture too far, lest he come upon another
-line of guards. As he approached the first cottage he rose half erect
-and tried a short run, but the bark of a dog made him drop flat in the
-grass, where he lay trembling. Next instant, realizing that it was
-better to push on, whatever befell, he sprang up and made a dash to the
-cover of a hedge behind the second cottage. For now the protection of
-the night had nearly left him; he could see clearly the lattices of the
-cottage, the whitish line of highway beyond it, and others might see him
-as well. But as he crept forward, keeping to the shelter of the hedge,
-he looked up, and against the gray sky saw what gave him courage. Above
-the farther cottage rose the church tower, and from it stood up a staff
-on which fluttered a red flag with a splotch of gold upon it; Captain
-Gwyeth and his men still were holding out.
-
-With renewed hope Hugh worked his way past the hedge to the shelter of
-an outbuilding, not a rod from the lane that ran white beneath the lich
-wall. He could see the church clearly now, the scowling small windows,
-the close side door, and the gravestones on the slope below. There was
-little prospect of welcome, he was reckoning anxiously, as he lay
-crouched against the outbuilding, when suddenly he heard a cry: “Stand,
-there!” Off to his right in the lane he beheld a Roundhead sentinel
-halted with his piece levelled.
-
-Springing to his feet Hugh dashed across the grass plot to the lane. On
-the left he heard hoof-beats, then a cry: “Shoot him down!” A bullet
-struck the sand at his feet; he heard men running, and another shot. He
-heard, too, the crunch of crisp weeds beneath his boots as he crashed
-into the overgrown tangle beyond the lane. He felt the rough stones on
-the top of the wall, then he had flung himself clear across it, and was
-struggling up the slope among the graves. His boots were heavy and
-hampered him, and his breath seemed gone. He looked up to the dead
-windows of the church and tried to cry: “King’s men! To the rescue!” but
-what sound he could make was lost in the din behind him. A bullet struck
-on a headstone just to one side; then of a sudden came a numbing pain in
-his left arm. He staggered, stumbled blindly a pace; then the sky was
-rolled up like a gray scroll, the stars were dancing before his eyes,
-and he was down flat upon the ground. Lifting his head dizzily he had a
-dim sight of the lane below, men swarming from the cottages, and one he
-saw leap the wall and come running toward him. Hugh’s head dropped back
-on the ground; he saw the sky pale above and waited for the butt of his
-pursuer’s musket to crash down upon him, and prayed it might not be long
-to wait.
-
-They were still firing, he heard; and he heard, too, quick footsteps
-behind him and a man breathing fast. He was swung up bodily from the
-ground, and there came a voice he knew: “Your arm round my neck, so.
-Have no fear, Hugh; I’ve got you safe.”
-
-There was firing still and faint cheering; the rest darkness; but before
-it closed in on him Hugh had one blurred glimpse of a strong, blue-eyed
-face above him, and he knew it was his father who held him.
-
-The light returned to Hugh in a dim and unfamiliar place; high above
-him, as he lay on his back, he had sight of a vaulted roof full of
-shadows. His head felt heavy and dazed, so he did not care to stir or
-speak, just closed his eyes again. There had been faces about him, he
-remembered vaguely, and he felt no surprise when he heard a voice that
-was unmistakably Ridydale’s: “He’s coming round, sir.”
-
-They were pressing a wet cloth to his forehead, Hugh judged, and his
-head was aching so he tried to thrust up his arm to stop them.
-“Let—me—alone,” he forced the words out faintly, and opened his eyes. It
-was his father who was bathing his head, he saw, and remembering what
-brought him thither his mind went back to the formal message he had
-framed on the way from Tamworth. “Captain Gwyeth, Sir William Pleydall
-bade me deliver word, he will send you relief; it shall come to-morrow.”
-
-“Saxon, take that word to Lieutenant von Holzberg,” Captain Gwyeth’s
-voice came curtly. “Spread it through the troop that help is
-coming.—Spare farther speaking now, Hugh; I understand.”
-
-Hugh closed his eyes heavily and lay quiet. He felt a wet cloth tied
-round his head, and then he winced through all his body as a knife
-ripped halfway up his sleeve. “Thank Heaven, ’tis only a clean flesh
-wound,” he heard the captain say. “Nay, Jack, I’ll hold him. Do you
-bandage it.”
-
-Hugh felt himself lifted up till his head rested against the captain’s
-shoulder. Half opening his eyes he had a confused sight down the nave of
-the church, only now it seemed unfamiliar, for the pews were torn from
-their places and piled up against the great entrance door. Up and down
-by the walls men were pacing, and some lay silent on the floor of the
-choir, and some he heard groaning as they lay. Then he closed his eyes
-and clinched his teeth, for his arm was aching rarely, so the lightest
-touch made him shrink. He wondered if the bandages they were putting on
-would never end, and if he could keep on biting down all sign of pain,
-when at last Ridydale spoke: “There, sir, ’tis done the best I could. If
-we only had water to wash the hurt properly!”
-
-That suggested to Hugh that his mouth was dry, so he said under his
-breath: “I am thirsty.”
-
-“If there be a drop of water in the place, fetch it,” Captain Gwyeth
-bade; and a moment later Hugh’s head was lifted up and a cup set to his
-lips. It was brackish water, and very little at that; he swallowed it
-with one gulp, and opened his eyes to look for more. “Nay, that’s the
-last,” the captain spoke out. “’Tis an ill lodging you have taken with
-us. I would to God you were elsewhere!”
-
-With the scant power of his returning strength, Hugh tried to move clear
-of the arm that was about him. “I had hoped, this time, you would not be
-sorry to see me,” he broke out, in a voice that quavered in spite of
-himself.
-
-He heard the captain give a sharp order to Ridydale to be off, and he
-felt it was to save the dignity which had almost slipped from him. He
-put his head down on the captain’s shoulder again. “Father, you are glad
-to have me, after all,” he said softly.
-
-He felt the sudden tension of the arm that drew him closer, though when
-Captain Gwyeth spoke, his tone was of the driest: “After the trouble
-I’ve had to get hold of you, do you not think ’tis reasonable I should
-be glad?” Then he cut short all response with a hasty: “Lie you down
-here now and be quiet. You’ve been knocked just enough for you to make a
-fool of yourself if you try to talk.”
-
-Hugh grinned weakly, and suffered his father to put him down with his
-head upon a folded cloak. “I’ll send Ridydale to have an eye to you,”
-the captain said in a low tone, “and if anything happens, I’ll be near.”
-Then he rose and tramped away down the nave of the church, but Hugh,
-watching him through half-shut eyes, saw him halt to glance back.
-
-After that Hugh lay a long time in a heavy, half-waking state, where he
-listened to the slow pacing up and down of those about him who kept
-guard, and to the quicker step of men who, on other errands, hastened
-across the reëchoing church; he heard men shout orders across the aisles
-or nearer to him speak in curt monosyllables; and he heard, too, all the
-time, the labored groaning of one who must lie somewhere near. Then
-there were moments when, losing all sounds, he drifted off into an
-unknown world, where he lived over again the happenings of the last
-hours, and struggled in the water of the Arrow, and fought Oldesworth’s
-troopers, and made the last run through the churchyard under the
-Roundhead fire.
-
-It was a relief to come back to consciousness and find himself lying
-comfortably on the floor of the choir with the dark roof far above him.
-A glint of purple sunlight from a broken window wavered on the ground
-beside him, and, forcing his mind to follow one train of thought, he
-contrived at last to reason out that it must be past noon. Pulling
-himself up on his sound arm, he tried to look about the church, but the
-effort made his head ache so he was glad to lie down. But he had got
-sight of Ridydale, who stood on a bench beneath one of the tall windows
-in speech with a trooper, and after a moment’s rest he called the
-corporal by name.
-
-Ridydale stepped down, carabine in hand, and came to Hugh’s side. “Is
-there anything you’ll be wanting, sir?” he began.
-
-“Yes,” Hugh replied, “I’d take it kindly of you if you’d just tell me
-what hit me that time.”
-
-Ridydale grinned and settled himself close by on the steps of the altar
-with his carabine across his knees. “’Tis all very simple, Master Hugh,”
-he explained. “They wasted a deal of lead trying to wing you,—they’re
-clumsy marksmen, those Roundhead cowherds. Somehow, by good luck, they
-contrived to shoot you in the arm. I take it you stumbled on one of
-those sunken stones, then, for you went down and broke your head against
-another gravestone.”
-
-“Was that it?” Hugh asked, in some mortification.
-
-“And then the colonel stepped out and fetched you in. We had sight of
-you, those that were keeping the west windows, as you came down to the
-lane. ‘It’s Hugh,’ says the colonel, sharplike; ‘unbar the door.’ Soon
-as we had the barrier tore down, and we made short work of it, he out
-after you. ’Twas a most improper thing, too,” Ridydale grumbled;
-“captain of a troop to risk himself under a fire like that for a mere
-volunteer. When there were others ready enough to go out. Maybe you were
-too flustered, sir, to note what a pretty shot I had at the knave who
-followed you over the wall?”
-
-Hugh confessed he had missed that sight.
-
-“Ay, ’twas not a shot to be ashamed of,” the corporal resumed, pulling
-his mustache with much satisfaction. “’Twas brisk give and take we were
-having then, sir. The colonel had a bullet through the skirts of his
-coat ere he got you within the church. Ay, ’twas improper conduct of
-him. What would have become of us all, tell me now, had he been hurt?”
-
-“Why, just the same that will become of you now he is not hurt,” the
-captain struck in crisply as he came up. “Tell me, Hugh, did it commend
-itself to the sapience of Sir William Pleydall to say what time Saturday
-we might look for relief?”
-
-“No, sir.”
-
-“Perhaps it does not matter to him whether it gets here at sunrise or
-sunset,” the captain remarked dispassionately. “It makes a mighty deal
-of difference to us, though.” He stuck his hands in his pockets and
-stood staring up at the broken window where the sun came through. In the
-strong light Hugh noted how haggard his face looked about the eyes, and
-how three days of neglect showed in the red-gold beard. But when the
-captain turned from the window there was a laugh in his eyes. “Jack,” he
-addressed Ridydale, who was standing at attention, “what devilry do you
-suppose Tommy Oldesworth is at now that he keeps so quiet?”
-
-“Shall I try a shot to stir him up, sir?” the corporal proffered.
-
-“Not for your life, Jack. Go rest you, while they let us.”
-
-As Ridydale strode off, Captain Gwyeth, with a soberer look, set himself
-down in his place. “You ought to know, Hugh, that we’re in a bad way,”
-he spoke out in a brusque, low tone.
-
-“There’s help coming,” Hugh answered stoutly, and dragged himself up on
-one elbow so he could rest against the steps beside his father.
-
-“Ay, but it must be quick,” the captain replied, “for Oldesworth is hot
-upon us. He came hither this morning under the white flag to advise us
-surrender to his mercy ere he batter down our walls.”
-
-“Ordnance?” Hugh asked blankly.
-
-“He may bring it from Warwick. Our only hope is that he may be so long
-in the bringing it— Well, he’s bravely worried that you got in to us,
-else he’d not have offered us terms. He’s troubled about that relief;
-and, faith, I’m troubled, too. The men will hold out another twenty-four
-hours in the hope, but we’ve had neither food nor drink since yesterday
-afternoon. And we are scant thirty men now, and there are six with
-disabling wounds besides.”
-
-“Couldn’t I make one in the fighting?” Hugh ventured hesitatingly. “I
-might not be able to steady a carabine with one hand, but I could load—”
-
-“Then we could not use you long,” the captain said, with a dry laugh.
-“That’s the crowning curse of it all, Hugh; there’s not above three
-bullets left to a man.”
-
-Hugh gazed down the dismantled church, where the pews were all turned to
-sorry defences and the windows were shattered with the rebel balls. He
-noted, too, the set, weary faces of the nearest men on guard, and
-something of the hopelessness of the whole position came home to him.
-His face must have shown his thought, for the captain suddenly put a
-hand on his shoulder. “That’s why I’m sorry you are here,” he said
-briefly.
-
-“I care not for that,” Hugh choked, “but if they do not bring aid in
-time,—Peregrine said they would hang you.”
-
-“Peregrine?” the captain queried. “Tut, tut! He should be old enough by
-now to know a gentleman does not let himself be taken and hanged while
-he has weapons in his hands. Though I knew from the start ’twould be a
-fight to the death if ever I came sword to sword with the Oldesworths.”
-There was a space of silence, then he broke out: “I suppose they taught
-you I was a scoundrel, did they not?”
-
-“At the last, yes, my grandfather said it,” Hugh admitted, “but while my
-mother lived she told me only good of you.”
-
-“Then, she had forgiven me?” the captain asked in a low tone.
-
-Hugh’s eyes were not on him, but straying across the church to where the
-great Oldesworth pew had stood; even at that distance he seemed to read
-on the tablet set in the wall the name, “Ruth Gwyeth.” “She did not hold
-there was anything to forgive; she said the wrong had all been hers,” he
-broke out; “she said you were the best and noblest gentleman that ever
-lived, and far too good for her.”
-
-“Poor lass, poor lass!” the captain said under his breath; he was
-sitting with one hand shielding his eyes, Hugh noted, but of a sudden he
-looked down at the boy and spoke curtly: “So you came seeking me,
-believing all that, and then I thrust you out of doors?”
-
-Hugh nodded without looking at his father; he was conscious of a queer,
-shamed feeling, as if he had been himself at fault.
-
-“Yet you stood up before that hound Bellasis and took that hack in the
-face for me. I used you like a villain, Hugh,” the captain blurted out;
-“even Ruth could not forgive me for it. But, lad, if we come alive from
-this, I’ll strive to make you forget it.”
-
-“I am forgetting now,” Hugh said honestly. “And if you’d looked as if
-you wanted me, I’d ha’ come to you before.”
-
-“I did want you. And you waited for me to look it, did you? I’m thinking
-we’re something alike, lad.” He put his arm about the boy’s neck with a
-sudden, half rough caress. “Turner said you had as decent a courage as
-most lads and a bit more sense,” he broke out. “Faith, I believe him.
-And if we come through here you shall have a chance to show it to every
-man in the troop, yes, to the same fellows that flogged you.”
-
-Hugh edged a little nearer his father. “I’d do my best to show them; I’d
-like the chance,” he answered; then added thoughtfully, “Though, after
-all, I am not sorry for that flogging. If I’d not known some hard knocks
-already, they might have been able to frighten me yesterday.”
-
-There he stopped, unavailingly, for the captain pounced down on him and
-did not rest till he got the whole history of the last hours. Hugh put
-all the emphasis he could on Master Oldesworth and on Lois, but
-Peregrine and Thomas Oldesworth were dragged in at the captain’s
-urgence, and the captain’s face grew ominous. “’Twas not clean dealings
-on Tom Oldesworth’s part,” he said betwixt his teeth. “Well, when it
-comes to the last we’ll remember it against him.”
-
-With that he got up to go about his business, but presently strode back
-with a cushion. “Put that under your head, Hugh,” he bade, and taking up
-the cloak helped the boy wrap it round him. “You’ll find it cold here in
-the church as soon as the sun goes down,” he explained. “Try to sleep,
-though; get what strength you can against to-morrow.”
-
-After he had gone, Hugh settled himself to sleep, but it took a time,
-for his arm ached relentlessly, and his head was hot and his mouth dry.
-Moment after moment he lay staring down the dusky church, where the
-twilight was filling in, and harked to the slow step of those on guard.
-The shades had gathered dark, and his eyes were closing, when he
-realized that the man who had been groaning in the transept was quiet
-now. He guessed what that meant, and something of the ugliness of death
-came home to him. He sat up eagerly to look for some companionship, then
-felt ashamed and lay down again to listen and listen once more, and
-think on Peregrine’s threats and Thomas Oldesworth’s set, implacable
-face. When he went to sleep at last his kinsmen followed him, even
-through his dreams.
-
-Dreams, recollections, of a sudden all were blotted out. He was sitting
-up, he knew, in a place that save for two feeble flickers of light was
-pitchy black, he heard men running and shouting, and, over all and
-subduing all, he heard a crash, crash which he judged bewilderedly to be
-of cannonading. The roof must fall soon, he feared, and scrambling to
-his feet he ran forward into the darkness and tumult. Above the uproar
-he caught Captain Gwyeth’s voice, steady and distinct: “Lieutenant von
-Holzberg, your squadron to their stations at the windows. Corporal
-Ridydale, take six men and bear the wounded down into the crypt.”
-
-Following the voice, Hugh stumbled into the transept and, getting used
-to the dark, had a vague sight of his father, who, with his hands behind
-him, stood giving orders to right and left. Hugh leaned against the wall
-close by and kept his hand to his head that throbbed and beat with each
-stroke of the cannon and shake of the building. During a lull in the
-firing he caught the captain’s voice in a lower key: “You here, Hugh?”
-
-“I—I take it I was frightened up,” he stammered. “You’ll help me to a
-sword before the end?”
-
-“No need for that yet,” Captain Gwyeth answered. “They’ll not be able to
-batter in these walls for hours. And by then—” His voice took a curious
-change of tone: “You are sure, Hugh, they made no mention of what time
-Saturday the aid would come?”
-
-“No, none,” Hugh replied; “but ’twill surely come, sir. Dick promised.”
-
-“Well, well, we’ve much to hope,” said the captain, “and, faith, that’s
-all we can do now. Sit down here, Hugh,” he went on, leading him over to
-the pulpit stairs. “I’ve a notion ’twould be pleasing if I could lay
-hands on you when I want you.”
-
-Then he went back into the din and confusion of the nave, and Hugh,
-leaning his head against the balustrade, harked dazedly to the
-successive boom of cannon. Through it all he found space in his heart to
-be glad that his father had not suggested sending him down into the
-crypt with the other wounded.
-
-Out through a shattered window to the east he had sight of a strip of
-sky, uneven with clouds, and some small stars. Little by little they
-paled while he sat there, and still the guns kept up their clamor. Once,
-after the shot, came a great rattling, and a piece of stone crashed down
-from the western wall; Hugh heard a confused running in that direction,
-and the captains voice that checked it. Once again, when oddly he had
-fallen into a numb sort of doze, came another shattering crash, and
-right upon it a man screamed out in a way that made Hugh shudder and
-choke. After that he dozed no more, but rigid and upright sat listening.
-
-It was light enough to distinguish faces when at length Captain Gwyeth,
-with his brows drawn and his teeth tugging at one end of his mustache,
-came up to him. “I’ve a sling here for that arm of yours,” he said
-brusquely, beginning to fasten the bandage. “’Twould be in your way for
-any fighting purposes. And here’s a sword. You may have to use it,
-unless our friends come quickly.” Then he paused a time by Hugh, not
-speaking, but scowling upon the floor, and at last strode moodily away.
-
-The light broadened and brightened within the church; a patch of
-sunshine gleamed upon the floor, and through an east window Hugh could
-catch the rays of yellow light glinting across the sombre leaves of the
-yew tree. It was a rare, warm, August day, a strange time for a life and
-death struggle, he told himself, as he drew the sword clumsily from its
-scabbard. Then he looked to the western wall of the church, where the
-light was smiting in now at a great gap and the crumbled stones lay
-scattered across the floor. Up above he saw a broken fragment of the
-roof that hung and swayed so its motion fascinated him. Of a sudden, as
-he gazed stupidly, he became aware the cannonading had ceased, and he
-wondered that he had not marked it before. Then he heard again his
-father’s curt, quick tones, and saw the troopers quit their stations to
-gather opposite the gap in the wall.
-
-Getting to his feet, Hugh went down to join the others. At the west door
-he perceived Von Holzberg standing with six men, but he passed on into
-the nave of the church. There at the gap the men had fallen into double
-line, a battered, haggard little company, some in their breastpieces,
-some in their shirt-sleeves. There were bandaged arms and bandaged heads
-among them, Hugh noted, but the carabines were all in hand, and each had
-his sword, too, ready at his side. Captain Gwyeth was with Ridydale,
-peering out at the gap in the wall, but now he turned to his men. “As
-you see, they have made a practicable breach in our walls,” he began.
-“Now they have it in mind to storm us, and afterward knock us o’ the
-head. So it behooves you fight for your worthless skins. And in any
-case, if they destroy us, see to it a good crew of these cursed rebels
-go to hell before us.”
-
-Then he looked about till his eyes fell on Hugh, and, coming to him, he
-took him by the shoulder and brought him over to front the troop. Hugh
-faced the men he had once served, and he saw Unger on the farther end of
-the front line, and Saxon, with his head tied up, and Jeff Hardwyn, who
-looked at him and fumbled with his carabine. Somehow his eyes rested on
-Hardwyn, as the captain began speaking briskly: “I’m thinking some of
-you know this gentleman, my son. He has risked his neck twice to break
-through the lines and share this fight with us. So I set him in Cornet
-Foster’s place, and you will follow him as your officer. Cornet Gwyeth,
-you will take six men and make good the north door.”
-
-Right on that, some one, Hugh guessed it was Saxon, broke into a cheer,
-which the others took up. Under cover of the noise, Captain Gwyeth,
-still holding Hugh by the shoulder, whispered him hurriedly: “When they
-come in, and we have the last fight, try to get to me. We’ll fight it
-out back to back, if it be God’s will.”
-
-Just there Ridydale, standing by the breach in the wall, spoke: “Captain
-Gwyeth, the rebels are advancing up the hill.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII
- AFTER THE VICTORY
-
-
-In the moments while the besieged held their fire, a hush came upon the
-church. Hugh could hear the footfalls startlingly loud as he led his
-squadron briskly to the main door, but it did not seem it was himself
-who went forward. He saw the floor slip by him and heard his own tread,
-but it was in an impersonal way, as if it were another man who was to
-fight that last fight, while he stood by, unmoved and unaffected, and
-watched and passed judgment. Before him now he saw the entrance door,
-with the broken pews heaped in a stiff barricade; to the right, beneath
-the window, the ends of the barrier furnished some foothold, so he
-started to scramble up and reconnoitre. His injured arm made him
-awkward; at the first step he tottered, and was glad that one of his
-followers caught him about the body to steady him. Glancing down he saw
-that it was Hardwyn, but he felt no surprise; everything now was beyond
-wonder. “Keep hold on me, Corporal,” he said, as if Hardwyn had never
-been any but his obedient underling, and made a move to step to the next
-projection.
-
-Just there the heavy stillness of the church was broken by a jarring
-rattle of carabine fire that sent a cracking echo through the high roof.
-Looking over his shoulder Hugh saw gray smoke belch across the nave, and
-saw the ordered movement of the men as the second line, with their
-carabines raised, stepped forward to the breach. Right as he looked the
-second volley rolled out, and there came a cracked and dry-throated
-cheering from the men. “Four volleys left,” he heard Hardwyn beside him
-mutter. “Best cheer while we can.”
-
-Once more there was a lull, and Hugh, getting his sound hand on the
-window ledge, pulled himself up, balancing precariously upon the broken
-boards, and peered out. He could see the white walk that ran up to the
-porch, and on either hand the untroubled graves, but he beheld no enemy
-astir. Venturing to lean a little from the window, he saw the roadway
-beyond the church wall, the arch of the bridge, the water beneath,
-bright in the sun, and across it the slope of hillside road. There
-Hugh’s eyes rested, and then his voice came high and shrill so he
-scarcely knew it: “Hardwyn, look, look you there! What is coming?”
-
-Hardwyn was elbowing him at the window; through the crash of the fourth
-volley he heard the barrier creak under the weight of the rest of the
-little squadron as they pressed up about him. But he did not take his
-eyes from the hilltop till, black and clear against the sky, a moving
-line of horse swung into view.
-
-“Cavalry, sir,” spoke Hardwyn, imperturbably, but Hugh had already
-turned from the window. “Run to the captain, Saxon,” he cried. “Tell him
-they are coming. Relief, relief!” His voice rose to a shout that carried
-through the church, and his squadron took up the cry, and ended with a
-cheer that spread even to the fighters at the breach.
-
-Through the uproar sounded Captain Gwyeth’s voice: “If they will have
-it, out at them!”
-
-The besieged swarmed forth at the breach, and Hugh, plunging headlong
-down off the barrier, ran to join them. The stones slipped noisily
-beneath his feet, and as he stumbled over the crest of the debris he
-turned his ankle. Outside the hot blur of sunshine dazzled him; he was
-conscious of light, light all around him, and men, grappling, clubbing,
-stabbing, in a tumult that bewildered his brain. Loud amidst the shrieks
-and oaths and cries for quarter rattled the crack, crack of carabines
-and small arms, but through it all he could hear the hollow thud, thud
-of horses thundering across the bridge. Some one struck at him, and
-instinctively he defended himself, though it was hard to swing a sword
-in the press. Then, getting sight of his father’s red head, clear from
-the breach in the thick of the fight, he forced his way down to his
-side. At the foot of the fallen stones he stumbled over a man and, as he
-recovered himself, came one who tried to strike him with a clubbed
-musket. Hugh ducked, and, as he bent, saw the trampled grass beneath his
-feet, then, thrusting low, came away unscathed. Still he heard the thud,
-thud of coming horses, and now, too, he caught clearly from the
-undistinguishable shouts and yells the cry: “For a king! God and the
-king!”
-
-Hugh had one glimpse of horsemen leaping the low wall; then he was
-guarding himself from the slashes of a Roundhead trooper, and only just
-saved his head. He gave the man back an undercut, when suddenly the
-fellow cast the sword from his hand. “I yield me, sir. Quarter!” he
-cried.
-
-Hugh paused, and, glancing about him now, saw the battle was indeed
-over. Down in the road troopers in red sashes were guarding the way, and
-men of the same color were swarming up through the churchyard, but there
-was no resistance, save here and there where single conflicts were still
-contested to the end. Then Hugh spied Alan Gwyeth, picking himself up
-from the grass at the foot of the shattered wall, and he ran thither,
-just as the captain dragged to his feet the man with whom he had been
-grappling. It was Thomas Oldesworth, Hugh saw, with the dirt grimed into
-his coat and his face streaming blood; he stood unsteadily with one hand
-pressed to his side, but his lips were hard set as ever. “Take him
-within the church and look to him,” the captain bade Ridydale, and then
-there was no room for thought of the vanquished, for Captain Turner came
-riding comfortably up the slope and hailed them: “Good day to you,
-Captain Gwyeth. Is there enough of the troop left to pay us for posting
-hither to rescue you?”
-
-“Rescue be hanged!” said the captain, ungraciously, as he stood wiping
-the sweat from his forehead with his sleeve. “We could a held out three
-hours longer.”
-
-“Vour hours und more,” put in the stolid Von Holzberg, and such of the
-troop as had gathered thither murmured a resentful assent.
-
-“Well, well, I crave all your pardons for coming so inopportunely,”
-Turner answered dryly, and then: “So that lad of yours got through in
-safety? Better go look for Lieutenant Strangwayes, Master Gwyeth; I
-think he’s troubled about you. He has ridden on the trail of the rebels
-a piece.”
-
-Hugh started down the slope, but, chancing to glance back, saw Michael
-Turner had dismounted, and he and Captain Gwyeth were embracing each
-other amicably. Then he went on down the sunny hillside, and across one
-mound saw a man lying motionless on his back, and down by the wall one
-who, pulling himself up on his elbow, called for water. But Hugh could
-give him no heed, for up the white, hot roadway he saw a squadron
-coming, and at its head a black horse that he knew. He scrambled up on
-the low wall and stood staring and meaning to call, but could not find
-voice till the black horse had shot out from the bulk of the squadron,
-and Dick Strangwayes had reined up by the wall. “Hugh! And safe?” he
-asked in a low tone.
-
-Hugh came down off the wall and reached up to grasp Dick’s hand. “Safe,
-I think; I’m not sure yet. And, Dick, ’tis all well now between my
-father and me.” Then he stood a moment with his head leaning against
-Black Boy’s neck, and gazed up into Dick’s face and the dazzle of blue
-sky beyond, but found nothing he could say.
-
-“So you’re alive, old Hugh?” came Frank’s voice behind him. “Faith,
-you’re a lucky lad. Here’s your bay horse I borrowed, turn and turn
-about. You can ride him back, for we’ll have enough and to spare.”
-
-There they must break off speech, for Turner, leading his horse
-carefully, came down from the church and with him Captain Gwyeth. “Call
-the troop to saddle again, Lieutenant,” Turner ordered; “we’ll ride for
-Everscombe and entreat these people give the captain back his horses.”
-
-“I’ll ride with you,” spoke Alan Gwyeth; “I want to see the house
-again.” Then he turned to Hugh and asked in a low tone: “You say ’twas
-your grandfather took you out of Captain Oldesworth’s hands?”
-
-“Yes, sir. He sent me dinner, too, though I was not feeling hungry
-then.”
-
-The captain smiled a bit. “I’ll remember it to his credit,” he said.
-“Now keep you quiet at the church and save your hurt arm.” He walked off
-to mount upon a spare horse, and Hugh watched him till he rode away with
-Turner’s troop.
-
-As he was clambering back over the wall into the graveyard, Frank came
-panting in his trail. “Captain Turner bade me stay with you,” he
-announced; “sure, he has less liking to me as a volunteer than as an
-officer.”
-
-“Nonsense! ’Tis only that he does not wish to take you home wounded. And
-if they find The Jade at Everscombe they’ll bring her—”
-
-“Oh, I have The Jade safe already,” Frank answered cheerfully, as he
-kept step with Hugh up into the churchyard; “they found her grazing in
-the fields beyond Tamworth yesterday morning with her stirrups flapping
-loose. Dick shut his mouth then as he does on occasion, and before
-nightfall Turner’s and Leveson’s men got off to bring help. I know not
-how they’ll do without us,” he went on, “for Captain Marston’s troop was
-the only one recalled to Tamworth. But we are to make a forced march
-back to-night, if ’tis in our horses. And that reminds me, Hugh, you’re
-not fit to be trusted with a good piece of horse-flesh. The Jade has
-strained the tendons of her near foreleg, and her coat is rough as a
-last year’s stubble-field. Not but I’m glad she could serve you,” Frank
-corrected himself with tardily remembered courtesy. “And, faith, I am
-glad as Dick that you are still alive.”
-
-Up in the church, whither the wounded and prisoners were being brought,
-Hugh reported himself to Von Holzberg, who despatched him with a squad
-to forage out food in the village. The Roundheads had already stripped
-it pretty clean, but in an hour’s time Hugh secured enough for his
-father’s hungry troop, and, leaving Frank idling in the village street,
-led his men back to the church. In the shade outside several of Gwyeth’s
-troop, battered and weary, were easing themselves with grumbling that
-they had not been suffered to come share in the plunder of Everscombe.
-The word put it in Hugh’s head that now he had eaten and felt a bit like
-himself he would gladly ride to the manor house and, if he could, thank
-his grandfather for the kindness he had thought to show him. With that
-intention he passed into the church to seek Von Holzberg and get his
-permission for the journey.
-
-At first, as he came from the bright sunlight, the shadows within the
-church blinded him, but he could hear the sorry groaning of injured men,
-and presently made out that the wounded were laid in the transept before
-him. It was an ugly, pitiful sight, and knowing his helplessness to aid
-he passed on quickly into the choir, where he had caught sight of
-Ridydale. Once more the corporal was seated with his carabine on the
-altar stairs, but he now had on his grimmest look, for down in Hugh’s
-old place lay Captain Oldesworth. They must have looked to his hurts
-somewhat, for the blood had been washed from his face, and his coat was
-flung open as if his side had been bandaged; he lay quiet now, with his
-eyes closed and his lips white, but Hugh, remembering how mercilessly
-the man had dealt by him, told himself he did not pity him. Without
-heeding the captain he stepped over to Ridydale and asked him where
-Lieutenant von Holzberg might be found. “He has just passed down into
-the nave, Master Hugh,” said Ridydale relaxing his grimness a trifle.
-“Crave your pardon, sir, I should have called you Cornet Gwyeth now.”
-
-“Perhaps not yet,” Hugh answered discreetly; “Sir William Pleydall will
-have a word to say in the matter.”
-
-“Humph!” Ridydale retorted conclusively. “Hasn’t Colonel Gwyeth said you
-were his cornet? What more would you have?”
-
-Hugh laughed, and was turning away, when he perceived that Captain
-Oldesworth had opened his eyes and was watching him; he halted short and
-waited, for he would not be the first to speak. “So it’s your day now,”
-Oldesworth began, in an even tone that might be construed a dozen ways.
-
-“Fortune of war, sir,” Hugh answered coldly.
-
-“You got in, after all,” the captain pursued, with something like a
-groan. “That comes of letting a civilian meddle with military matters.
-If you had remained in my hands—” There he broke off. “I crave your
-forgiveness, sir,” he finished, with a bitterness that angered Hugh, yet
-moved him to something faintly like compassion, “I had forgot; a
-prisoner should be circumspect in speech.”
-
-It was on Hugh’s tongue to retort that Cavalier gentlemen were not wont
-to mishandle their prisoners, but he thought on Dennis Butler, and that
-speech was silenced. He merely said: “My father will not abuse you,
-sir,” and had half a mind to pass on, when Oldesworth struggled up on
-his elbow. “Tell me one thing, Hugh,” he broke out as if against his
-will, “has Peregrine been taken?”
-
-“No, sir, not here at Kingsford.”
-
-Oldesworth sank down again with his head on his arm. “He ran away,
-then,” he said in a constrained voice. “He should have come in with the
-other squadron. We need not have been so cut to pieces had the whole
-troop been there. Lieutenant Ingram came in with me; he was killed at
-the breach. And Peregrine ran away.” He paused a moment, then spoke half
-to himself, “If I come free again I’ll strip him out of his commission
-for this.”
-
-Hugh dropped on one knee beside his uncle. “I pray you, sir, take it not
-so to heart,” he urged, “mayhap ’twas not that he ran away—”
-
-“Nay, I know Peregrine,” Captain Oldesworth answered. “I would ’twere he
-had turned Cavalier and you had stayed Roundhead; you’d not have slunk
-off to save your skin.” But next moment he spoke in his bitterest tone:
-“Nay, get you hence, lad. I don’t want your pity; I’d liefer have your
-hate.” Then he turned his face to the wall, still with his mouth hard
-set, and closed his eyes.
-
-There was nothing more to be said, Hugh saw, so he came to his feet
-slowly, with a feeling that after all he was sorry for Oldesworth, in
-his pain and bitter humiliation, much though he had deserved it. He
-turned again to Ridydale and said under his breath: “Corporal, if you
-love me put on a less appalling face and use the gentleman more civilly.
-After all, he is my kinsman.”
-
-Then he walked away to seek Von Holzberg, and, getting his permission to
-ride to Everscombe, routed out Saxon to make ready Bayard and two other
-horses, while he went in search of Frank, for whom he had a feeling of
-responsibility. Not finding him at first, he was a bit worried till,
-chancing to step into one of the deserted cottages, he came upon the
-lad, curled up snugly on a settle and fast asleep. He jumped to his feet
-in a hurry as Hugh’s hand was laid on his forehead, and after a first
-bewildered stare put on a great assumption of alertness and came
-stumbling out into the roadway. “You see, we were in the saddle all
-yesternight,” he found tongue to explain, as the two boys, with Saxon in
-their wake, rode out from Kingsford. “So perhaps ’tis no great blame I
-just shut my eyes a moment. But, Hugh, I’d take it kindly if you did not
-tell Dick I went to sleep for so little. And by no means let Captain
-Turner know.”
-
-Hugh promised soberly, then, as they trotted along the highway, relapsed
-into heavy silence. But Frank still chattered on gayly, insisting on a
-rejoinder: “How does it seem to come home thus? Sure, you’re a dutiful
-lad to ride this distance to see your grandfather.”
-
-Hugh blinked at Bayard’s erect ears, and told himself in dull fashion
-that while he was at Everscombe he would see Lois again and thank her,
-but he did not hold it necessary to speak it all to Frank.
-
-A little patrol of horse guarded the park gate, but knowing Hugh they
-suffered him pass through with his companions. For all the roadway was
-cut with horse hoofs they ventured a brisk trot, and so came speedily
-out into the open, and following the track across the lawn drew up by
-the west wing. The rest of the house was silent, but here were stationed
-two sentinels of Turner’s troop, a wagon had just been brought lumbering
-to the door, and from within the long guardroom Strangwayes himself
-hailed them: “Get off your horse, and come in, Master Cornet. I’ve
-recovered my cuirass from the plunder of these crop-eared thieves, and
-I’m thinking I’ve lighted on your buff coat and sword.”
-
-Sliding off his horse, Hugh strode briskly into the big room. At one
-side a long table had been hastily set forth, at which a squad of
-Turner’s men were making a nondescript meal, but the rest of the hall
-was littered with arms and accoutrements that the troopers were still
-fetching in noisily; they must have stripped the manor house of every
-warlike furnishing. “Yes, the work is near done, and we can be off,”
-Strangwayes said low to Hugh. “Sure, I’m not the man will be sorry. Did
-you know, my lad, there’s a harder thing than storming a town, and
-that’s to keep your troop from stealing the town after you’ve taken it?
-As ’tis a sort of family matter Captain Gwyeth is loath to have this
-house plundered, so we’ve done our best. But it’s well Leveson’s thieves
-have been used in clearing the stable; our own men have held the house,
-and they are the best and most obedient in the regiment. I’ve knocked
-down one or two of them, and put three under arrest, and promised a few
-floggings, but barring that they’ve been good as lambs and not stole
-from the house more than each man can hide in his pockets. Trust them?
-I’d trust my troop anywhere, that I had my eyes on it,” he concluded
-lugubriously. “But now I’m going to risk taking one eye off them and
-leave Griffith to see the spoils loaded in the wagons, while I tie up
-your hurts again.”
-
-Accordingly, Strangwayes sent men running for water and bandages, and,
-putting Hugh on a bench against the wall, was dressing his head and arm,
-when Captain Gwyeth came in. Hugh caught sight of him as he paused an
-instant in the doorway, and at the changed expression of the man’s face
-a sudden fear struck him, for it came home to him that, though the
-captain forgave the son who had defied him, he might never forgive the
-son’s friend who had threatened to bar the door upon him. It was a new
-thought, and it checked Hugh’s first impulsive movement to rise to meet
-his father; instead he moved a bit nearer Dick. There was an instant’s
-dangerous silence, then Master Frank, nodding half-asleep at Hugh’s
-side, perceived Captain Gwyeth and ran to him. “Why, this is a lucky
-meeting,” he cried, leading the captain over to the bench. “And did I
-not tell you, sir, when once you were acquainted with Hugh, he was a
-right friendly, generous fellow for all his stubborn face?”
-
-That made Dick turn and come to his feet, stiff and respectful. “Maybe
-’twill please you look to Hugh’s hurt now, sir,” he said, with a slight
-bow.
-
-“Nay, you’ve looked to his hurts before this, Lieutenant,” the captain
-said slowly. “You’ve the right to do so now.” He hesitated, then held
-out his hand, and Strangwayes took it.
-
-Next moment Strangwayes was tying the bandage about Hugh’s arm again,
-while he talked briskly with Captain Gwyeth of the ill ride they had had
-from Tamworth, and the worse ride they were like to have back, to which
-the captain replied with a satisfied account of the good spoil of horses
-and arms they had made in compensation for those lost at the first
-overthrow of his troop. “So soon as the carts are laden, you are to quit
-the house, so Captain Turner bids,” Captain Gwyeth finished in an
-everyday tone. “We must be out of the village before sunset.”
-
-Then as Strangwayes, ending his surgery, jumped to his feet to aid
-Griffith in superintending the loading, the captain turned to Hugh: “I
-bade you stay rest at the church, but since you’ve taken your way and
-come hither you can do me service.” He dropped his voice a little,
-though they were screened well enough under the racket of the men who
-were carrying forth the captured arms: “Get you to the east wing of the
-house, where the family have withdrawn, and, if you can, procure access
-to Master Oldesworth. He denied it unto me. Tell him from me that it is
-for the sake of his daughter and his daughter’s son that I have saved
-his house from utter spoil to-day. And tell him that I will use Tom
-Oldesworth better than he deserves, and exert my influence to have him
-speedily exchanged. That’s all.”
-
-Hugh passed out through the confusion to the front of the house, where
-the carts were loading, and with a rather dubious foreboding crossed the
-terrace to the east wing. Within, the hall was cool and dark with long
-afternoon shadows; the din of the western quarter drifted hither only
-faintly, so his mind went back with a vaguely homesick feeling to the
-peaceful, humdrum days at Everscombe a year ago. It seemed like a bit of
-the old life to go to the door of the east parlor and knock and hear his
-grandfather’s voice bidding him enter.
-
-But once inside, Hugh knew a year had passed since last he faced Master
-Oldesworth there. Not only did a glance at his own buff coat and high
-boots, his sword and bandaged arm recall the change, but he could see
-his grandfather bent a little in his chair, and his head looked whiter
-even than it had looked two days before. The old man was sitting by the
-window, but at Hugh’s step he turned toward him with a cold, angry face
-that made the boy hesitate at first; then taking courage he repeated his
-father’s message respectfully. Master Oldesworth’s face relaxed a little
-at the word of Captain Oldesworth, and at that Hugh ventured to add in
-his own behalf: “And, aside from my father’s message, sir, I wished to
-come hither and thank you that you used me so kindly the other day.”
-
-“I would use you still better if your stiff-necked childishness did not
-prevent,” the old man answered sternly. “So you will yet refuse what I
-would offer and follow this man because he is your father?”
-
-“Nay, ’tis not for that now, sir,” Hugh replied happily, “’tis because
-he saved my life yesterday, and he has made me his officer. ’Tis because
-I know him to be a valiant and a kindly gentleman, though his temper is
-hot. And I must go, too, because my friends all fight for the same cause
-as he.”
-
-“So you will play your mother’s part over again,” Master Oldesworth said
-sharply, and gazed out at the window so long that Hugh made a motion to
-go, when the old man rose and bade him come to him. “You are set to go
-your own way, and ’tis a foolish way,” he began, putting his hand on the
-boy’s shoulder. “’Twas her way, too. Yet spite of all I loved her best
-of all my daughters or yet of my sons. Well, well, Hugh, I would not say
-it the first time you went, but now if God can look on a man who fights
-in so unjust a cause I pray He may keep you uncorrupted and turn your
-heart aright while there is time. Now go your way.”
-
-He turned to the window, and Hugh murmured that he thanked him from his
-heart and would strive never to shame him by his conduct.
-
-Then he passed out into the hall again, and, with his mind on what had
-just been said, was stepping slowly to the door, when from the stairway
-he heard his name called. Before he faced about he knew it was his
-sharp-tongued Aunt Delia, but the sensitive boyish dread of her was all
-gone now. He turned back briskly to learn her bidding, and as he turned
-he perceived Lois Campion standing by her at the foot of the stairs.
-“’Tis well you have come back, Hugh Gwyeth,” Mistress Oldesworth began
-in a cutting voice that might have made Hugh wince, only he told himself
-that she was Peregrine’s mother, and Peregrine was a coward and a
-runaway; she had need of words to vent her bitter sorrow. “There is one
-here maybe has claim on you, if you still hold in remembrance this
-gentlewoman,” she went on, leading Lois forward. “She has remembered you
-so well that she has forgotten her duty to her kindred and to—”
-
-“Let me go, aunt!” Lois cried in a smothered tone. She had brushed by
-Hugh and run out at the open door before he fully comprehended, and
-without a glance at Mistress Oldesworth he ran after.
-
-Out under the elms of the east terrace he overtook Lois, and catching
-her hand made her stay. “What is it? What does it mean?” he urged.
-
-“Nothing,” she answered, with her head erect and her cheeks blazing.
-“Only, I can never go under that woman’s roof again. Some things even a
-poor weak-spirited creature like a girl will not endure.”
-
-“But if you cannot stay at Everscombe,” Hugh repeated blankly, but next
-moment he was half laughing. “Faith, Lois, the time has come now; you
-shall run away with me. Come, we’ll be off at once.”
-
-The most of the troop had already ridden for Kingsford, Hugh perceived,
-as they came to the front of the house, but by the west door Dick and
-Frank, with Saxon and a trooper or two, still stayed for him. Hugh led
-Lois up to his two friends, a bit slowly, for the girl’s steps faltered
-shyly. “Dick,” he began, “this is Mistress Campion of whom I have told
-you. They have cast her out from Everscombe because she set me free from
-them yesterday, so ’tis in my mind to take her unto Tamworth.”
-
-Dick’s expressive eyebrows went up, but before Hugh had time for
-resentment, or even comprehension, he had swung round on the trooper who
-waited at Black Boy’s head: “Off to the stable with you and fetch a
-pillion. Frank, use your impudence well and bring out a cloak for
-Mistress Campion from the house. ’Tis well thought on, Hugh, for surely
-all the regiment is indebted to the gentlewoman who aided you to bear
-that message. Say, by Mistress Campion’s leave, we convey her to my
-cousin, Mistress Cresswell, in Worcestershire?”
-
-“Did I not tell you, Lois, that Dick was the best good fellow ever
-lived?” Hugh broke out.
-
-“Pshaw!” said Strangwayes. “Get to your saddle, you one-armed warrior.
-You’ll have all you can do to manage Bayard, so I shall entreat Mistress
-Campion to ride behind me.”
-
-In such order they went from Everscombe in the late afternoon, and,
-urging the horses a trifle, for Captain Turner and Captain Gwyeth had
-long since ridden forth, came into Kingsford as the sun was setting.
-Already the troops were falling into marching order in the road, and
-Strangwayes, only pausing to bid Hugh look that he did not go to sleep
-and pitch over his saddle-bow ere he reached Tamworth, trotted ahead to
-take his place in the rear of Turners men. At a word from him Frank
-followed at his side, but Lois, seated behind Dick, kept her face turned
-back to Hugh.
-
-He watched till they passed in the rear of the troop down to the bridge
-of the Arrow, then drew Bayard back to the little band that represented
-Gwyeth’s men; the troopers were all in the saddle; behind them Leveson’s
-squads were getting to horse, and the graveyard was deserted. The slope
-of the hill and the church were red in the sunset but very peaceful now;
-Hugh looked to the church tower and saw no flag was flying. Then he
-heard a voice at his elbow: “The colors, sir.”
-
-He looked down at Ridydale, stiff and soldierly, who saluted and passed
-him up the red and gold cornet of the troop.
-
-“Can you manage the flag, Hugh?” spoke Captain Gwyeth, getting leisurely
-to horse beside him. “Leave it to the corporal if your arm—”
-
-“Sure, sir, I can manage it very well indeed,” Hugh broke in, much
-alarmed; he braced the staff against his stirrup and, resting it in the
-crook of his elbow, gathered the reins into his sound hand.
-
-“Nay, none shall take it from you, Cornet Gwyeth,” the captain laughed,
-and turned to the trumpeter to sound the order to march forward.
-
-They rode slowly down the slope to the bridge. The water splashed
-beneath the archway, and the horses’ hoofs sounded hollow on the road;
-Hugh listened happily, while his thoughts sped back to the last time he
-had crossed the bridge, a friendless little runaway. On the thought he
-turned in his saddle and gazed back at the church that now showed black
-against the sunset sky. Did the mother who lay buried there, he
-wondered, know that at last he had found Alan Gwyeth? He faced slowly to
-the front again, and as he faced he met the captain’s eyes; there were
-no words between them, but each guessed something of the other’s
-thoughts. Hugh tightened his hold on Bayard’s bridle and drew close, so
-he rode knee to knee with his father.
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
- “ANOTHER BEWITCHING ROMANCE”
- —_The Times_, New York
-
- --------------
-
- THE PRIDE OF JENNICO
-
- BEING A MEMOIR OF CAPTAIN BASIL JENNICO
-
- BY
-
- AGNES and EGERTON CASTLE
-
- 16mo. Cloth. $1.50
-
- --------------
-
-“Picturesque in literary style, rich in local color, rising at times
-almost to tragic intentness, and bristling throughout with dramatic
-interest.”—_The Record_, Philadelphia.
-
-"There is a wealth of historic detail which lends an interest to the
-story apart from the romantic love affair between Captain Jennico and
-the Princess Marie Ottilie of Lausitz. The hero’s great-uncle had been
-one of those lucky English adventurers whose Catholic religion and
-Jacobite leanings had debarred him from promotion at home, and who had
-found advancement in the service of Austria, and wealth with the hand of
-a Bohemian heiress. Such chances were not uncommon with ‘Soldiers of
-Fortune’ in the times of Queen Anne and the early Georges. At his
-uncle’s death, Captain Basil Jennico became the possessor of many
-millions (reckoned by the florins of that land), besides the great
-property of Tollendahl—fertile plains as well as wild forests, and of
-the isolated frowning castle of Tollendahl with its fathom-thick walls,
-its odd pictures of half-savage dead and gone Woschutzkis, its antique
-clumsy furniture, tapestries, trophies of chase and war. He became
-master, moreover, of endless tribes of dependents, heiducks and
-foresters; females of all ages whose bare feet in summer pattered oddly
-on the floors like the tread of animals, whose high boots in winter
-clattered perpetually on the stone flags of stairs and corridors; serf
-peasants, factors, overseers, the strangest mixture of races that can be
-imagined; Slovacks, Bohemians, Poles, to labor on the glebe; Saxons or
-Austrians to rule over them and cipher out rosters and returns; Magyars
-who condescended to manage his horse-flesh and watch over his safety if
-nothing else; the travelling bands of gypsies, ever changing, but never
-failing with the dance, the song and the music, which was as
-indispensable as salt to the life of that motley population.
-
-“The story is largely historical, both German and English elements
-entering into it. The scene changes from the old castle of Tollendahl to
-an English country house and London club, always maintaining its old
-world flavor.”
-
-“The tale is gracefully told, and owing partly to this fact and to the
-novelty of the setting given to Basil Jennico’s amazing experience, it
-gains for itself a place apart.... It is an artistic production and it
-is original.”—_The York Tribune._
-
-“One of the newest and best novels of the decade.”—_The Budget_
-(Boston).
-
-“No such piece of inimitable comedy, in a literary way, has appeared for
-years.”—_The Inter-Ocean_ (Chicago).
-
- --------------
-
- THE MACMILLAN COMPANY
- 66 FIFTH AVENUE, NEW YORK
- Chicago Boston San Francisco
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
- CROWNED BY THE LONDON ACADEMY
- as one of the three most important books published during the year 1898
-
- --------------
-
-
- THE FOREST LOVERS
-
- By MAURICE HEWLETT
-
- _Author of “Earth Works out of Tuscany,” “Pan and the Young
- Shepherd,” etc._
-
- Cloth. 12mo. $1.50
-
- --------------
-
- JAMES LANE ALLEN says:
-
-“This work, for any one of several solid reasons, must be regarded as of
-very unusual interest. In the matter of style alone, it is an
-achievement, an extraordinary achievement ...; in the matter of
-interpreting nature there are passages in this book that I have never
-seen surpassed in prose fiction.”
-
- HAMILTON W. MABIE says:
-
-“The plot is boldly conceived and strongly sustained; the characters are
-vigorously drawn and are thrown into striking contrast.... It leads the
-reader far from the dusty highway; it is touched with the penetrating
-power of the imagination; it has human interest and idyllic
-loveliness.”—_Book Reviews._
-
- The New York Tribune says:
-
-“A series of adventures as original as they are romantic.... ‘The Forest
-Lovers’ is a piece of ancient arras; a thing mysteriously beautiful, a
-book that is real and at the same time radiant with poetry and art. ‘The
-Forest Lovers’ will be read with admiration and preserved with something
-more than respect.”
-
- The Outlook calls it:
-
-“A story compounded of many kinds of beauty. It has, to begin with,
-enchanting beauty of background; or rather, it moves through a beautiful
-world, the play of whose light upon it is subtle, beguiling, and
-magical.”
-
- --------------
-
- THE MACMILLAN COMPANY
- 66 FIFTH AVENUE, NEW YORK
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Transcriber’s Note
-
-Only one typographical error was detected in this volume. At 168.6, “I
-am clean [’/”], the closing quotation mark should have been a
-double-quote,
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Hugh Gwyeth, by Beulah Marie Dix
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HUGH GWYETH ***
-
-***** This file should be named 52962-0.txt or 52962-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/2/9/6/52962/
-
-Produced by KD Weeks and the Online Distributed Proofreading
-Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from
-images generously made available by The Internet
-Archive/American Libraries.)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/52962-0.zip b/old/52962-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index f42c1bf..0000000
--- a/old/52962-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52962-h.zip b/old/52962-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index d834b5a..0000000
--- a/old/52962-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52962-h/52962-h.htm b/old/52962-h/52962-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index b6a610f..0000000
--- a/old/52962-h/52962-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,14829 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
- <title>Hugh Gwyeth, A Roundhead Cavalier, by Beulah Marie Dix</title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
- body { margin-left: 8%; margin-right: 10%; }
- h1 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.4em; }
- h2 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.2em; }
- .pageno { right: 1%; font-size: x-small; background-color: inherit; color: silver;
- text-indent: 0em; text-align: right; position: absolute;
- border: thin solid silver; padding: .1em .2em; font-style: normal;
- font-variant: normal; font-weight: normal; text-decoration: none; }
- p { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; text-align: justify; }
- .sc { font-variant: small-caps; }
- .large { font-size: large; }
- .xlarge { font-size: x-large; }
- .small { font-size: small; }
- .xsmall { font-size: x-small; }
- .lg-container-b { text-align: center; }
- @media handheld { .lg-container-b { clear: both; } }
- .linegroup { display: inline-block; text-align: left; }
- @media handheld { .linegroup { display: block; margin-left: 1.5em; } }
- .linegroup .group { margin: 1em auto; }
- .linegroup .line { text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em; }
- div.linegroup > :first-child { margin-top: 0; }
- div.pbb { page-break-before: always; }
- hr.pb { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- @media handheld { hr.pb { display: none; } }
- .chapter { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .figcenter { clear: both; max-width: 100%; margin: 2em auto; text-align: center; }
- .figcenter img { max-width: 100%; height: auto; }
- .id001 { width:175px; }
- @media handheld { .id001 { margin-left:40%; width:20%; } }
- .ig001 { width:100%; }
- .table0 { margin: auto; margin-top: 2em; margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%;
- width: 90%; }
- .nf-center { text-align: center; }
- .nf-center-c0 { text-align: left; margin: 0.5em 0; }
- .nf-center-c1 { text-align: left; margin: 1em 0; }
- .c000 { margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c001 { margin-top: 4em; }
- .c002 { margin-top: 2em; }
- .c003 { page-break-before: always; margin-top: 8em; }
- .c004 { margin-top: 1em; }
- .c005 { margin-top: 8em; }
- .c006 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; margin-left: 45%; width: 10%; margin-right: 45%; }
- .c007 { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: 0.0em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c008 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c009 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; padding-right: 1em; }
- .c010 { vertical-align: top; text-align: left; padding-right: 1em; }
- .c011 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; }
- .c012 { margin-top: 2em; text-indent: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c013 { margin-right: 16.67%; text-align: right; }
- .c014 { margin-right: 5.56%; text-align: right; }
- .c015 { margin-top: 1em; text-indent: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c016 { margin-top: 1em; font-size: 95%; }
- .c017 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 2em; }
- .c018 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; margin-left: 40%; width: 20%; margin-right: 40%; }
- a:link { text-decoration: none; }
- div.tnotes { padding-left:1em;padding-right:1em;background-color:#E3E4FA;
- border:1px solid silver; margin:1em 5% 0 5%; text-align: justify; }
- div.footnotes { background-color:#E3E4FA; border: dashed 1px; margin-bottom: 5em;
- padding: 2em; }
- .epubonly {visibility: hidden; display: none; }
- @media handheld { .epubonly { visibility: visible; display: inline; } }
- .htmlonly {visibility: visible; display: inline; }
- @media handheld { .htmlonly { visibility: hidden; display: none; } }
- div.letter { font-size:90%; margin-bottom:1em; }
- .blackletter { font-family: "Old English Text MT", Gothic, serif; }
- @media handheld { .blackletter { font-family: "Century Gothic", Gothic, serif;} }
- </style>
- </head>
- <body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Hugh Gwyeth, by Beulah Marie Dix
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: Hugh Gwyeth
- A Roundhead Cavalier
-
-Author: Beulah Marie Dix
-
-Release Date: September 5, 2016 [EBook #52962]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HUGH GWYETH ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by KD Weeks and the Online Distributed Proofreading
-Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from
-images generously made available by The Internet
-Archive/American Libraries.)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<div class='tnotes'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>Transcriber’s Note:</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c000'>Please consult the <a href='#endnote'>note</a> at the end of this text for
-a discussion of any textual issues encountered in its preparation.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div><span class='xlarge'>HUGH GWYETH</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='large'>A ROUNDHEAD CAVALIER</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/logo.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <h1 class='c003'><span class='xlarge'>HUGH GWYETH</span> <br /> <span class='large'>A ROUNDHEAD CAVALIER</span></h1>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div><span class='small'>BY</span></div>
- <div class='c004'><span class='large'>BEULAH MARIE DIX</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
-<div class='nf-center c005'>
- <div><span class="blackletter">New York</span></div>
- <div>THE MACMILLAN COMPANY</div>
- <div>LONDON: MACMILLAN &amp; CO., <span class='sc'>Ltd.</span></div>
- <div>1913</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='small'><i>All rights reserved</i></span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div><span class='sc'>Copyright, 1899</span>,</div>
- <div class='c004'><span class='large'><span class='sc'>By</span> THE MACMILLAN COMPANY.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c006' />
-<p class='c007'><span class='small'>Set up and electrotyped March, 1899. Reprinted May,
-July, 1899; January, 1900; October, 1908; January, 1913.</span></p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
-<div class='nf-center c005'>
- <div><span class="blackletter">Norwood Press</span></div>
- <div><span class='small'>J. S. Cushing &amp; Co.—Berwick &amp; Smith</span></div>
- <div><span class='small'>Norwood Mass. U. S. A.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_v'>v</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CONTENTS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table class='table0' summary=''>
-<colgroup>
-<col width='14%' />
-<col width='74%' />
-<col width='11%' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'><span class='xsmall'>CHAPTER</span></td>
- <td class='c010'>&nbsp;</td>
- <td class='c011'><span class='xsmall'>PAGE</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>I.</td>
- <td class='c010'>Tidings out of the North</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_1'>1</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>II.</td>
- <td class='c010'>How One set out to seek his Fortune</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_16'>16</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>III.</td>
- <td class='c010'>The Road to Nottingham</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_34'>34</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>IV.</td>
- <td class='c010'>To Horse and Away</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_49'>49</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>V.</td>
- <td class='c010'>In and Out of the “Golden Ram”</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_66'>66</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>VI.</td>
- <td class='c010'>The End of the Journey</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_81'>81</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>VII.</td>
- <td class='c010'>How the World dealt by a Gentleman</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_95'>95</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>VIII.</td>
- <td class='c010'>The Interposition of John Ridydale</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_113'>113</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>IX.</td>
- <td class='c010'>The Way to War</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_132'>132</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>X.</td>
- <td class='c010'>In the Trail of the Battle</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_152'>152</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>XI.</td>
- <td class='c010'>Comrades in Arms</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_171'>171</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>XII.</td>
- <td class='c010'>For the Honor of the Gwyeths</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_190'>190</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>XIII.</td>
- <td class='c010'>In the Fields toward Osney Abbey</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_208'>208</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>XIV.</td>
- <td class='c010'>Under the King’s Displeasure</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_224'>224</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>XV.</td>
- <td class='c010'>The Life of Edmund Burley</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_242'>242</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>XVI.</td>
- <td class='c010'>Roundheads and Cavaliers</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_258'>258</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>XVII.</td>
- <td class='c010'>The Stranger by the Way</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_274'>274</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>XVIII.</td>
- <td class='c010'>The Call out of Kingsford</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_290'>290</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>XIX.</td>
- <td class='c010'>The Riding of Arrow Water</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_307'>307</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>XX.</td>
- <td class='c010'>Beneath the Roof of Everscombe</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_324'>324</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>XXI.</td>
- <td class='c010'>The Fatherhood of Alan Gwyeth</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_340'>340</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c009'>XXII.</td>
- <td class='c010'>After the Victory</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_358'>358</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div><span class='pageno' id='Page_1'>1</span><span class='xlarge'>HUGH GWYETH</span></div>
- <div class='c004'><span class='sc'>A Roundhead Cavalier</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER I <br /> <span class='small'>TIDINGS OUT OF THE NORTH</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Up in the tops of the tall elms that overshadowed
-the east wing of Everscombe manor house
-the ancient rooks were gravely wrangling. A
-faint morning breeze swept the green branches
-and, as the leaves stirred, the warm September
-sunlight smiting through fell in flakes of yellow
-on the dark flagstones of the terrace below. For
-a moment Hugh Gwyeth ceased to toss up and
-catch the ball in his hand, while he stood to count
-the yellow spots that shifted on the walk. Eight,
-nine,—but other thoughts so filled his head that
-there he lost count and once more took up his
-listless tramp.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Off to his left, where beyond the elms the lawn
-sloped down to the park, he could hear the calls
-of the boys at play,—his Oldesworth cousins and
-Aunt Rachel Millington’s sons. The Millingtons
-had come to Everscombe a week before out of
-Worcestershire, where the king’s men were up in
-arms and had plundered their house. Yet the
-young Millingtons were playing at ball with the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_2'>2</span>Oldesworth lads as if it were only a holiday.
-“Children!” Hugh muttered contemptuously
-and, conscious of his own newly completed sixteen
-years, threw an increased dignity into his
-step. He was a wiry lad, of a slender, youthful
-figure, but for all that he carried himself well
-and with little awkwardness. Neither was he ill-looking;
-though there was a reddish tinge to his
-close-cut hair it changed to gold when he came
-into the sunlight, and at all times there was
-in his blue eyes a steady, frank look that made
-those who liked him forget the freckles across
-the bridge of his nose and cheek bones, and the
-almost aggressive squareness of his chin.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Mouth and chin were even sullen now, as Hugh
-lingered a moment to glance up at the small diamond
-panes of the window of the east parlor.
-Within, Hugh’s grandfather, Gilbert Oldesworth,
-the master of Everscombe, his sons, Nathaniel
-and Thomas, his daughter’s husband, David Millington,
-and Roger Ingram, the lieutenant in
-Thomas Oldesworth’s troop of horse, were conferring
-with men from Warwick on the raising
-of forces, the getting of arms, and all the means
-for defending that part of the county; and Peregrine,
-the eldest of the Oldesworth lads, was
-allowed to be of their counsels. Hugh turned
-away sharply and resumed his dreary tramp up
-and down the flagged terrace. “If I had been
-Uncle Nathaniel’s son, they would have suffered
-me to be present as well as Peregrine,” he muttered,
-pausing to dig the toe of his shoe into a
-crack between the flagstones. “’Tis not just.
-I am near a man, and they might treat me—”
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_3'>3</span>He gave the ball an extra high toss and paced on
-slowly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But, call as he would upon his injured dignity,
-he could not refrain from facing about at the end
-of the walk and retracing his steps till he was
-loitering once more beneath the window of the
-east parlor. He was not listening, he told himself,
-nor was he spying; there was no harm in
-walking on the east terrace of a morning, nor in
-lingering there to play at ball. So he stood slipping
-the ball from hand to hand, but his eyes
-were fixed on the little panes of the window
-above and his thoughts were busy on what was
-happening within. Would the people of the
-hamlets round about Everscombe, the farmers
-and ploughboys, who of a Sunday sat stolidly in
-the pews of the village church at Kingsford,
-would they truly resist their sovereign? The
-Oldesworths would head them, without doubt,
-but how many others scattered through the
-county and all through wide England were of
-the like mind? And what would come of it?
-Would there be war in the land, such wars
-as Hugh had read the Greeks and Romans had
-waged, such as the great German wars in which
-his own father had borne a part? And if there
-was a war and brave deeds to do and fame to win,
-would his grandfather and his uncles let him come
-and fight too, or would they still shut him out with
-the little boys, as they had shut him out to-day?</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So he was thinking, when of a sudden the window
-at which he had been staring swung open,
-and Nathaniel Oldesworth, a mild-featured man
-of middle age, looked out upon him. Hugh
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_4'>4</span>flushed suddenly and kept his eyes on the ball
-he was still shifting from hand to hand. “You
-here, Hugh?” his uncle’s voice reached him.
-“Take yourself off to your play.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, sir,” Hugh answered, and sauntered away
-down the walk. He kept his chin up and his
-mouth was sulky, but in his boy’s heart every
-fibre of awakening manhood was quivering at
-this last insult. Go play! when every moment
-was big with events, when war was bursting on
-the land, and there was work for every man to
-do, he was bidden to content himself with a ball!</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He went slowly down the steps at the south
-end of the terrace and bearing off from the
-stables struck through the long grass toward
-the orchard. He walked with eyes on the ground,
-too deeply buried in his own resentful thoughts
-to heed whither he was going, but he realized
-when he entered the orchard, for the sunlight
-that had been all about him since he quitted the
-terrace went out; he saw the earth was no longer
-grassy but bald and brown, and he trod on a hard
-green apple that rolled under his foot.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A second small apple suddenly plumped to the
-ground before him, and a girl’s voice called,
-“Hugh, Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The boy looked up. Just above his head,
-through the branches of the great apple tree, he
-saw the face of Lois Campion, the orphan niece
-of Nathaniel Oldesworth’s wife. “Are you hunting
-for snails?” she asked, while her dark eyes
-laughed. “Prithee, give over now, like a good lad,
-and help me hence. I have sat here half the
-morning for lack of an arm to aid me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_5'>5</span>She had slipped down the branches to the fork
-of the tree so that she could rest her hands on
-Hugh’s shoulders, and as they came thus face to
-face her tone changed: “Why, Hugh, what has
-gone wrong?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nothing,” he answered shortly, swinging her
-down to the ground.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You look as though you had eaten a very
-sour apple,” said Lois. “Try these. There are
-sweet tastes in them, if you chew long enough.”
-She had seated herself at the foot of the tree
-with her head resting against the gnarled gray
-trunk.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“It’s not apples I want,” Hugh replied gruffly,
-and then the troubled look in the girl’s eyes made
-him sit down beside her with a thought of saying
-something to make amends for his surliness;
-only words did not come easily, for his mind
-could run on nothing but his own discontent.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I think I know,” Lois spoke gently and put
-her hand on his arm. “’Tis because of Cousin
-Peregrine.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh shook off her hand and dropped down
-full length on the ground with his forehead pressing
-upon his arms; he felt it would be the crowning
-humiliation of the morning if the girl should
-see the look on his face at the mere mention of
-his trouble.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For a time there was silence, except for the
-thud of a falling apple and the soft rustle of
-leaves in the light wind; it was one of Lois’s
-best comrade qualities, Hugh realized vaguely
-now, that she knew when to hold her peace. It
-was he himself that renewed the conversation,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_6'>6</span>when he felt assured that he had himself too well
-in hand to let any childish breaking be audible in
-his voice: “I wish my father had lived.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I wish my parents had, too,” Lois answered
-quietly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I did not wish it, when I spoke, because I
-loved them, I fear,” Hugh went on, digging up
-the scant blades of grass about him with one
-hand; “I do love them, but I did not think of it
-so, then. But I thought how, when a lad hath a
-father alive, things are made easy for him,—no,
-not easy; I do not mean skulking at home,—but
-he is helped to do a man’s part. Now there was
-a good friend of mine, there at Warwick school,
-Frank Pleydall; I’ve spoke of him to you. I was
-home with him once for the holidays, to a great
-house in Worcestershire, where his father, Sir
-William Pleydall, lives. And Frank had his own
-horses and dogs, and the servants did his bidding,
-and—and his father is very fond of him.” Hugh
-paused a moment, then gave words to the grievance
-nearest his heart: “And Peregrine, now,
-because he is Uncle Nathaniel’s son, he is to
-have a cornetcy in Uncle Thomas’s troop, and he
-will have a new horse,—I do not begrudge it to
-Peregrine, but they might try me and see what I
-can do.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“But, Hugh,” Lois ventured, “you are younger
-than Peregrine.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Only two years and a half,” Hugh raised himself
-on one elbow, “and do but feel the thick of
-my right arm there. And at Warwick school
-when they taught us sword-play I learnt enough
-to worst Master Peregrine, I am sure. And I
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_7'>7</span>can stick to my saddle as well as he, though I
-never have anything to ride but a plough horse.
-And I have not even that now,” he went on, with
-an effort at a laugh, “since all have been taken
-to mount Uncle Thomas’s troop. But Peregrine
-will have a horse and a sword of his own and go
-to the wars. Do you understand what ’tis I mean,
-Lois?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes,” Lois replied with a downward look and
-a quiver of the mouth. “You will think ’tis girl’s
-folly in me, but I have felt what you mean when
-I have seen Martha and Anne have new gowns,
-and I must wear my old frock still.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There was another long silence, broken this
-time by Lois. “Hugh,” she half whispered, “I
-believe we are very wicked and ungrateful to our
-kinsfolk.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I do not believe so,” the boy answered doggedly;
-“they have given us nothing but food and
-clothes, and one craves other things besides.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Lois nodded without speaking, then fetched a
-breath like a sob. “Lois!” Hugh cried in honest
-alarm; he had never seen her thus before,
-“don’t cry. I am ashamed I bore myself so unmanly
-to hurt you. Don’t cry.” He took her
-hand in his, and tried to think of something comforting
-to say.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Lois bit her lips and made not another sound
-till she could answer with only a slight tremble:
-“What you spoke of, made me feel lonely.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I am sorry I spoke so,” Hugh said contritely,
-still holding her hand. “Shall we go look for
-apples now?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The girl shook her head: “Prithee, do not put
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_8'>8</span>me off, Hugh, and do not reproach yourself; I am
-not sorry that you spoke so. You are the only
-one to whom I can talk of such things, here at
-Everscombe.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And you are the only one I have been able to
-talk to of anything that touches me nearly, these
-two years since my mother died.—Do you know,
-Lois, I sometimes think you look like her. She
-had brown hair like yours, for she was a true
-Oldesworth and dark. Now I am a Gwyeth, and
-so I come rightly by my red hair.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You shall not slander it so,” Lois interrupted.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Aunt Delia calls it red. I care not for the
-color, but I’d like to let it grow.” Hugh ran his
-fingers through his cropped hair.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Would you turn Cavalier?” Lois asked half
-seriously.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Most gentlemen wear their hair long; even
-my grandfather and Uncle Nathaniel, for all they
-hold to Parliament.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Master Thomas Oldesworth has cut his close;
-he says all soldiers do so in Germany.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“My father did not,” Hugh answered quickly.
-“And he had more experience in the German
-wars than ever Uncle Tom will have.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Tell me about him again, Hugh, if you will,”
-Lois begged.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The boy slipped down till he rested on his
-elbow once more. “There is not much I can
-tell,” he began, but his face was eager with interest
-in the old story. “I remember little of those
-times, but my mother was ever telling me of him.
-His name was Alan Gwyeth; ’tis a Welsh name,
-and he had Welsh blood in him. They put him
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_9'>9</span>to school, but he ran away to follow the wars in
-the Low Countries. Later he was here in Warwickshire
-to raise men who’d adventure for the
-German wars, and he met my mother, and they
-loved each other, so they married. My grandfather
-and Uncle Nathaniel did not like my
-father, so he left the kingdom straightway, and
-she went with him on his campaigns in Germany.
-I was born there; I think I can remember it,
-just a bit. A porcelain stove with tiles, and the
-story of Moses upon them; and a woman with
-flaxen hair who took care of me; and my father,
-I am sure I remember him, a very tall man with
-reddish hair and blue eyes, who carried me on his
-shoulder.” Hugh’s look strayed beyond the girl
-and he was silent a time. “Then it all ended
-and we came home to England. I remember the
-ship and I was sick; and then the great coach
-we rode in from Bristol; and how big Everscombe
-looked and lonesome, and my mother
-cried.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And—and your father?” Lois asked timidly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He died,” Hugh answered softly. “My mother
-never told me how, but it must have been in
-battle, for he was a very brave soldier, she said.
-And he was the tenderest and kindest man that
-ever lived, and far too good for her, she said, but
-I do not believe that. And just before she died
-she told me I must try always to be like him, a
-true-hearted gentleman and a gallant soldier.—I
-am glad I look like him, and then, sometimes,”
-Hugh’s tone grew more dubious, “but usually ’tis
-when I have done wrong, Aunt Delia says I am
-my father over again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_10'>10</span>“Aunt Delia has a sharp tongue,” said Lois
-with a sigh.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I know it well,” Hugh answered ruefully.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“But still, she has a kind heart,” the girl was
-amending charitably, when from across the orchard
-came a shrill call of “Hugh,” which ended
-in a high-pitched howl.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Lois rose and peering under her hand gazed out
-into the sunlight of the level grass beyond the
-apple trees. “’Tis Sam Oldesworth,” she said, and
-as she spoke a boy of thirteen or fourteen years
-broke headlong into the shade of the orchard.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Where have you been, Hugh?” he panted.
-“Have you my ball safe? I’ve looked everywhere
-for you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“For the ball? There ’tis,” Hugh replied.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay, not for that. There’s something up at
-the house for you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What is it?” Hugh came to his feet at a
-jump, while his thoughts sped bewilderingly to
-swords, horses, and commissions.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Guess,” replied Sam.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh turned his back and walked away toward
-the manor house at a dignified pace; it would
-not do to let a young sprig like Sam know his
-curiosity and eagerness. But Lois, having no
-such scruples, teased her cousin with questions
-till the boy, bubbling over with the importance of
-the news, admitted: “Well, the post from the
-north has come, and there is something for Hugh
-in the east parlor.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A letter?” Hugh queried with momentary
-disappointment in his tone. But though a letter
-was not as good as a commission it was something
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_11'>11</span>he had never had before in his life, so he
-quickened his step and with high expectations
-entered the east wing and passed through the
-small hall to the parlor.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The door stood open, and opposite the sunlight
-from the window, still flung wide, lay in a clear
-rectangle upon the dark floor. About the heavy
-oak table in the centre of the room, in speech
-of the news brought from the north by the
-freshly arrived letters, sat or stood in knots of
-two or three the grave-faced men of the conference.
-At the head of the table, where the
-sunlight fell upon his long white hair, sat Master
-Gilbert Oldesworth, an erect man with keen eyes
-and alert gestures, in spite of his seventy years.
-Hugh also caught sight of Peregrine and noted,
-with a certain satisfaction, that this fortunate
-cousin sat at the foot of the table and seemed to
-have small share in the business in hand. But
-next moment he had enough to do to give heed
-to his own concerns, for Nathaniel Oldesworth
-called him by name and he must enter to receive
-his letter. He felt his cheeks burn with the
-consciousness that strangers had their eyes on
-him and that he must appear to them a mere
-dishevelled, awkward schoolboy; he grew angry
-with himself for his folly, and his face burned
-even more. Scarcely daring to raise his eyes, he
-caught up the letter his uncle held out to him
-and slipped back again into the hall.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Sam pounced upon him at once. “What is
-it?” he demanded, and Lois’s eyes asked the same
-question.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh forgot the hot embarrassment and misery
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_12'>12</span>of a moment before, as he turned the letter
-in his hand. “I don’t know the writing,” he said,
-prolonging the pleasure while he examined the
-superscription; then he tore open the paper, and
-the first sight of the sheet of big sprawling black
-letters was enough. “Ah, but I do know!” he
-cried. “’Tis from Frank Pleydall, Lois.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Your school friend?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes. I have not heard from him these six
-months, since he left the school. Doctor Masham,
-the master, said the queen was a Babylonish
-woman, and when Sir William heard of that he
-came to the school in a great rage and called
-Doctor Masham a canting Puritan and a hoary-headed
-traitor,--truly, the Doctor is but little
-older and not a bit more white headed than Sir
-William himself. And he took Frank away, and—I
-was right sorry to lose him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“But you have found him again now,” said
-Lois. “Come, Sam.” She coaxed the youngster,
-still reluctant and lingering, out upon the terrace,
-and Hugh, happy in being alone, set himself
-down at once on the stairway that led from the
-hall to the upper story. It was hard to find a
-secluded place in Everscombe those days, what
-with the men from Thomas Oldesworth’s troop
-quartered in the old west wing, and the Millingtons
-and other refugee kinsfolk in the main part
-of the house. So in the fear that a noisy cousin
-or two might come to interrupt him, Hugh settled
-himself hastily and began his letter:—</p>
-
-<div class='letter'>
-
-<p class='c000'><span class='sc'>Good Hugh</span>:</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It has come to my remembrance that it is many days since
-you have had news of me, so at a venture I send this letter to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_13'>13</span>your grandfather’s house, though the roads are so beset and
-the post so delayed it is doubtful if it ever reach you. I am
-here at Nottingham with my father. He commands a notable
-troop of horse, drawn out of our own county, and many of them
-men bred on our own lands, proper stout fellows, that will make
-the rebels to skip, I promise you. My father is colonel, and some
-of my cousins and uncles and neighboring gentlemen hold commissions,
-and I think I shall prevail upon my father to bestow
-one on me, though he maintains I be over-young, which is all
-folly. The king’s standard was raised here week before last,
-and we all nigh split our throats with cheering. The town is
-full of soldiers and gentlemen from all over the kingdom, and
-many from following the wars abroad, and more coming every
-day. I have seen his Majesty the king,—God bless him! He
-rode through the street and he hath a noble face and is most
-gracious and kingly. I do not see how men can have the
-wickedness to take up arms against him. I have also seen his
-nephew, Prince Rupert, the famous German soldier, who they
-say shall have a great command in the war. My father has had
-speech with him and he commended our troop most graciously.
-It has been the most memorable time of all my life, and, best
-of all, I shall never go back to school now, but go to the wars.
-I would you might be with us, Hugh, for it is the only life for
-gentlemen of spirit. Heaven keep you well, and if this reaches
-you, write me in reply.</p>
-
-<div class='c013'>Your loving friend to serve you,</div>
-<div class='c014'><span class='sc'>Francis Pleydall</span>.</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='letter'>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Nottingham</span>, Sept. 5, 1642.</p>
-<p class='c015'>I misremembered to tell you. Among the soldiers come from
-Germany is a certain Alan Gwyeth, a man of some forty years,
-with hair reddish gold like yours. It is an odd name and I
-thought perhaps he might be some kinsman of yours. We met
-with him the day the standard was raised, and I would have
-questioned him myself, but my father said I was over-forward
-and I had to hold my peace. Did your father leave any
-brothers or cousins in Germany? This man is a notable
-soldier and has got him a colonelcy under the Prince.</p>
-
-<div class='c014'>F. P.</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh sat staring at the paper and saw the
-black letters and the words but found no meaning
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_14'>14</span>in them. Across the dim hall he could see
-through the open door the strip of greensward
-that ran across the front of Everscombe, part black
-with the shadow of the east wing and part dazzling
-bright with the noon sun. He fixed his gaze
-upon the clean line where the shade gave way to
-vivid light, till the sunny greenness blurred before
-his eyes; he felt the roughness of the paper, as he
-creased and recreased it with nervous fingers, but
-he could not think; he could only feel that something
-vast and portentous was coming into his
-life.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A noise of tramping feet and a burst of voices
-roused him. The conference ended, the men
-came slowly from the east parlor, and lingered
-speaking together, then scattered, some with
-Nathaniel Oldesworth into the main part of the
-house, some with Thomas Oldesworth out upon
-the terrace. Master Gilbert Oldesworth was not
-among them, Hugh noted, and on a sudden impulse
-he half ran across the hall and entered the
-east parlor, closing the door behind him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Master Oldesworth looked up from the paper
-over which he had been poring. “You would
-speak with me, Hugh?” he asked, with a touch
-of displeasure in his tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“If I may. ’Tis important,” Hugh stammered.
-“Will you look at this letter? No, not all, just
-this place, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh stood at his grandfather’s side, griping
-the edge of the table so he saw the blood leave
-his fingers. In the elms outside the open window
-the rooks still scolded, and over in the corner of
-the room the great clock ticked loudly, but there
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_15'>15</span>was no other sound till Hugh had counted thrice
-sixty of its noisy ticks. Then the boy drew a
-quick breath, and, dreading what he might find,
-raised his eyes to his grandfather’s face. But he
-saw no sign there for several moments, not till
-Master Oldesworth had laid down Frank Pleydall’s
-letter, and then Hugh perceived there was
-something akin to pity in the old man’s eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, Hugh, and what would you know?”
-he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“That man, Alan Gwyeth, is he—” Hugh
-felt and knew what the answer would be before
-Master Oldesworth spoke the words slowly:
-“Yes, Hugh, ’tis your father.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_16'>16</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER II <br /> <span class='small'>HOW ONE SET OUT TO SEEK HIS FORTUNE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>“You must have known at last, but I had not
-thought it would be so soon,” Master Oldesworth
-went on. “’Twas folly ever to have kept it
-from you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In a blind way Hugh had groped for a chair
-and sat down with his elbow on the table and his
-forehead pressing hard upon his hand. His face
-was toward the window and he was aware of the
-brightness flooding in through it, but he could
-see clearly only his grandfather’s thin, clean-shaven
-lips and searching eyes. “Tell me,” he
-found voice to say at last, “I want to know all.
-My father—he has been alive all these years?
-You knew?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Master Oldesworth nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You deceived me?” Hugh’s voice rose shrill
-and uncontrollable. “You knew you were deceiving
-me? You had no right, ’twas wickedness,
-’twas—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“It was your mother’s wish.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The burst of angry words was choked in
-Hugh’s throat; with a little shudder of the shoulders
-he dropped his head upon his folded arms.
-“Will you tell me wherefore, sir?” he asked in
-a dull tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_17'>17</span>“Because of the never-dying folly of woman,”
-Master Oldesworth replied, with a sudden fierce
-harshness of tone that made Hugh lift his head.
-He felt that, if the revelation of the letter had
-not made every other happening of that day
-commonplace, he would have been surprised at
-the sudden lack of control that made his grandfather’s
-sallow cheeks flush and his thin lips
-move. But in a moment Master Oldesworth
-was as calm of demeanor as before and his voice
-was quite colorless when he resumed: “Hear the
-truth at last, Hugh, and you, too, will have reason
-to curse the folly of womankind. She, your
-mother, my best-beloved daughter, was most
-wilful, even from a child. Though you have
-none of her look I have noted in you something
-of her rash temper. Her own impulse and desire
-must always be her guides, and well they guided
-her. For there came a swashbuckling captain
-of horse out of Germany, with a brisk tongue
-and an insolent bearing, for which that mad girl
-put all her love on him, worthless hackster
-though he was.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Tis my father whom you speak of so?” Hugh
-cried, with an involuntary clinching of the hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Your mother’s work again!” said Master
-Oldesworth with a flicker of a smile, that was
-half sad and half contemptuous. “She fled away
-from her father’s house to marry this swaggering
-rascal; she followed him into Germany; and
-there she found true all her kinsmen had told
-her of his worthlessness and wickedness. So
-she took her child and gladly came back to us
-again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_18'>18</span>“She never uttered word of this to me,” Hugh
-maintained doggedly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I urged her to,” Master Oldesworth continued,
-“but, with the weakness of her sex, before
-six months were out she had forgot his unworthiness
-and baseness. She remembered only that
-she loved him and she blamed herself that she
-had left him; indeed, she would have returned if
-she had been assured he would receive her back.
-But I forbade her hold communication with him
-while she dwelt beneath my roof, and he himself
-did not care to seek her out, though she long
-looked for him. When he did not come she was
-the more convinced the fault was hers, and, since
-she had robbed her son of his father, as she
-phrased it, she would at least give him a true and
-noble conception of that father to cherish. Perhaps
-she held it compensation for the wrong she
-thought she had worked Alan Gwyeth that she
-sketched him unto you a paragon of all virtues.
-And partly for that he was dead to her, and
-partly for that she would not have the shame of
-her flight, as she called her most happy deliverance,
-be known to you, she gave him out to you
-as dead. ’Twas ill done, but I suffered her to
-rule you as she would; I had ever a weak fondness
-for her.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With a sudden jarring noise Hugh thrust back
-his chair and stumbling to the window stood so
-Master Oldesworth could not see his face. His
-poor mother, his poor mother! Because he
-knew in his heart she had done ill to him with
-her weak deceptions he loved her and pitied her
-all the more, and his eyes smarted with repressed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_19'>19</span>tears that he could not see her nor tell her that it
-all mattered little, the agony this disillusionment
-was costing him; he knew she had meant it kindly
-and he thanked her for it.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He was still staring out between the elms at
-the sloping lawn, where, he remembered as if it
-had happened years back, he had played that
-very morning like a boy, when his grandfather’s
-dry tones reached him: “This man would seem
-to have roistered through life without thought of
-her. Of late I did not know myself whether he
-were dead or living, but it seems he is sailing on
-the high waves of royal favor and has found himself
-fitting comradeship among the profligates and
-traitors of King Charles’s camp.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh swept his hand across his eyes and faced
-about squarely. His father a profligate who had
-abandoned his mother! Who dared say it or
-believe it? His mother’s face as she had looked
-before she died came back to him. A true-hearted
-gentleman and a gallant soldier, like his father,—like
-his father.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And you never suspected anything of the
-truth ere this?” Master Oldesworth pursued.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Once, months back, Aunt Delia told me a
-story somewhat like this,” Hugh’s voice came low
-but so firm it surprised him, “but I held it only
-some of her spitefulness and I did not believe it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Master Oldesworth looked up with a curious
-expression. “Do you believe it now?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No,” Hugh answered honestly, then quickly
-added, “I crave your pardon, sir, but I cannot
-believe it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Have back this letter of yours,” Master Oldesworth
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_20'>20</span>said, rising, and as Hugh came up to him
-he put his hand on the boy’s shoulder. “You
-have a loyal heart, Hugh Gwyeth,” he said dryly,
-“and ’tis no shame of yours you have such a
-father.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I am not ashamed of him, sir,” Hugh replied
-stoutly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You are your mother over again,” said the
-old man, in a tone that held something of vexation
-and something of amusement, yet more of
-kindliness than he was accustomed to show his
-orphan grandson.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh was in no mood to note this, however,
-but, delaying only to take his precious letter, left
-the east parlor at a brisk step that verged upon a
-run. Once in the open air, where he was freed
-from the restraint of his grandfather’s presence,
-he leaped down the low terrace and, hallooing at
-the top of his lungs, raced full speed across the
-lawn. But when the shadow of the tall oaks on
-the border of the park fell upon him the noisiness
-of his joy somewhat abated. He rambled on
-more slowly with a happy under-consciousness of
-the dusky green of the old trees about him and
-the shimmer of the stray sunbeams; he wondered
-that the dull, familiar park seemed so joyous and
-beautiful a place.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Not till he had crossed the grassy roadway that
-led to the manor house, and plunged into the
-thicker growth of trees, did he come again to the
-power of framing connected thoughts. Little
-by little he let his pace slacken, till at length he
-flung himself down in the shade of a beech tree
-and pulling out Frank’s letter read the last sentences
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_21'>21</span>aloud. His father was alive, an officer in
-the king’s army, at Nottingham, only the width of
-two counties away. Hugh clasped his hands
-behind his head and lying back gazed up unwinkingly
-at the cloudless blue sky; in his heart
-there was no room for any feeling save that of
-pure happiness, of which the bright day seemed
-a mere reflection. For he neither remembered
-nor heeded the words his grandfather had spoken
-of Alan Gwyeth; he only knew that a few score
-miles away the tall man with reddish hair and
-blue eyes, who used to carry him upon his
-shoulder, was alive and waiting for him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The resolve formed in these hours of reflection
-he told to Lois Campion, when, late in the afternoon,
-he crashed his way out to the edge of the
-park with the briskness of one who has made up
-his mind. The girl was playing at shuttlecock
-with Martha Oldesworth, but at sight of Hugh
-she quickly laid aside her battledoor and came to
-him where he was lingering for her beneath the
-oaks. “Where have you been?” she cried.
-“We missed you at dinner, and Peregrine, who
-was honey-tongued as ever, said you were sulking.
-But I knew ’twas some witchery in that
-letter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh laughed excitedly. “Witchery? Ay,
-’twas that indeed, Lois. Can you believe it? My
-father is alive, at the king’s camp; and I have
-determined to go to him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With that he made her sit down beside him and
-told her all, so confidently and happily she dared
-not venture more than one objection: “But ’tis a
-long way to Nottingham, Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_22'>22</span>“I can walk it. Take no heed to the way, Lois,
-but think of the end.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“When shall you go?” she asked, playing absently
-with some acorns she had gathered in her
-hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“To-morrow night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“So soon?” The acorns fell neglected to the
-ground.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay, ’tis delaying over-long. I would set out
-this very night, but I suppose I should take some
-time for preparation.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And you must run from home by night?” she
-repeated sadly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Like Dick Whittington. I wonder if I have
-such good fortune as he.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“How happy your father will be to see you!”
-Lois continued.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Twill be naught but happiness for us all,”
-Hugh ran on boisterously. “Ah, must you go,
-Lois?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I must finish my game with Martha,” the girl
-answered steadily. Hugh saw, however, that she
-did not go near Martha but walked away to the
-house, and he was vexed because she did not care
-enough about his departure to stay to talk with
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was well for Hugh the day was nearly spent,
-if his plans were to be kept secret; for he longed
-to speak of them, and, now Lois would not listen,
-there was no one in whom he could safely confide.
-Moreover, Sam Oldesworth was so curious about
-the letter that it was a perilously great temptation
-to hint to him just a little, especially when
-the two boys were preparing for bed. Since the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_23'>23</span>Millingtons had come to Everscombe Sam and
-Hugh had been obliged to sleep together, an arrangement
-never acceptable to the older boy and
-this night even dangerous. Fortunately he realized
-his weakness enough to reply shortly to all
-his companion’s eager questions, however gladly
-he would have told something of his secret, till
-Sam at last grumbled himself to sleep. But Hugh
-turned on his side and for hours lay staring into
-the dark of the chamber, planning for his journey
-and sometimes wondering where he would be in
-the blackness of the next night.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In the morning, when he first woke and lay
-gazing at the familiar room, it gave him a feeling
-of surprisingly keen regret to tell himself that this
-was his last day at Everscombe. Perhaps it was
-the outward aspect of the day that made him feel
-so depressed, for a slow, drizzling rain was falling
-and the sky was thick with gray clouds.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>All the morning Hugh avoided his cousins, and
-even Lois, against whom the resentment of the
-previous afternoon still lasted, and prowled restlessly
-about the house to pay farewell visits to the
-rooms that he had known. Thus his Aunt Delia
-found him, loitering upon the garret stairs, and
-sharply bade him go about his business, so Hugh,
-his sensitive dignity a-quiver, drew back to his
-chamber, where he pretended to choose equipments
-for his journey. In reality it was a simple
-matter; he would wear his stuff jacket and
-breeches,—he owned no other suit of clothes,—and
-his one pair of stout shoes. He did not
-trouble himself about clean linen, but he took
-pains to see that his pistol was in order; it was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_24'>24</span>an old one that had belonged to Peregrine, before
-he received a case of new ones in keeping with
-his position as cornet in the Parliament’s army.
-Peregrine’s old riding boots had also fallen to
-Hugh’s share; they were a trifle too big and were
-ill patched, but there was something trooper-like
-about them that made him sorry when he realized
-that he could not take them with him. He reluctantly
-dropped them back into the wardrobe,
-and then, the sight of them reminding him he had
-yet to bid farewell to his friends the horses, he
-spattered out through the rain to the stables.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The stones of the stable yard were slippery
-and wet; at the trough in the centre three horses,
-with their coats steaming, were drinking, while
-the man at their heads, one of Tom Oldesworth’s
-newly levied troopers, joked noisily with a little
-knot of his comrades. Inside the big dark stable
-a great kicking and stamping of horses was rumblingly
-audible above the loud talk of the men at
-work. Hugh loitered into the confusion and,
-making his way through the main building,
-entered the quieter wing, where were the old
-family horses with whom he had acquaintance.
-But when he stepped through the connecting door
-he perceived that even here others were before
-him; standing with hands behind him and legs
-somewhat wide, as befitted a veteran horse-soldier,
-was Tom Oldesworth, a close-shaven, firm-mouthed
-man of thirty, in talk with his lieutenant, Roger
-Ingram. Near by stood Peregrine Oldesworth, a
-heavy-featured, dark lad, who was bearing his
-part in the conversation quite like a man. Whatever
-the matter was, they seemed too merry over
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_25'>25</span>it for any business of the troop, so Hugh thought
-it no harm to saunter over to them.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Looking for a commission, eh, Hugh?” Tom
-Oldesworth broke off his talk to ask jestingly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Not under you, sir,” Hugh retorted, rather
-sharply.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Oldesworth laughed and patted his head.
-“Never mind, my Roundhead,” he said cheerfully,
-as Hugh ducked out of his reach, “your
-turn’ll come soon. No doubt Peregrine will get
-a ball through his brains ere the winter be over,
-and then I promise you his place.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Then you think the war will last till winter?”
-questioned Ingram.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Till winter? I tell you, Roger, we’re happy
-if we have a satisfactory peace in the land two full
-years hence.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You’re out there, Captain. These gallants of
-the king’s will stand to fight here no better than
-they stood against the Scots. They’ll be beat to
-cover ere snow fall—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Pshaw!” replied Oldesworth, convincingly.
-“Look you here, Roger.” Thereupon the two
-fell to discussing the king’s resources and those
-of Parliament, and comparing the merits of commanders,
-and quoting the opinions of leaders, till
-Hugh tired of it all and strolled away.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He passed slowly down the line of stalls, caressing
-the soft muzzles of the kindly horses, and
-lingered a time to admire the big black charger
-that belonged to Captain Oldesworth. In the
-next stall stood a clean-limbed bay, which thrust
-out its head as if expecting notice; Hugh hesitated,
-then began stroking the velvety nose, when
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_26'>26</span>Peregrine swaggered up to him with a grand,
-“Don’t worry that horse of mine, Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I was not worrying him,” Hugh answered
-hotly. “But you can be sure I’ll never touch
-him again.” He turned and walked away toward
-the open door.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Oh, you can touch him now and then,” Peregrine
-replied, as he followed after him out into
-the courtyard, where the rain had somewhat
-abated. “But he’s too brave a beast for you
-youngsters to be meddling with all the time.
-You’d spoil his temper.” Then, as Hugh still
-kept a sulky silence, his cousin asked abruptly,
-“What’s amiss with you to-day?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nothing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You’ve not been friendly of late. I believe
-you are jealous that I have a commission.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I do not want your commission,” Hugh replied,
-and to show he spoke the truth he forced a
-laugh and tried to say carelessly, as he might
-have said a month before, “Tell you what I do
-want, though: a new flint for my pistol. Will
-you not give me one, Peregrine?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Are you going to shoot Cavaliers?” the elder
-boy asked, as he halted to fumble in his pockets.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Maybe.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Peregrine drew out three bits of flint, turned
-them in his hand, then gave the least perfect to
-Hugh. “I took it from my new pistol this morning,”
-he explained. “’Tis good enough for any
-service you’ll need of it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh bit his lip, but with a muttered word of
-thanks took the flint.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I was furbishing up my weapons this morning,”
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_27'>27</span>Peregrine went on. “We go on real service
-next week; we determined on it yesterday at the
-conference.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I thought Uncle Tom said the troop would
-not be in fit condition to serve for a fortnight.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Not all the troop. But Uncle Tom, and I,
-and Lieutenant Ingram, are to take some thirty
-men that are in trim and go into Staffordshire
-to see what can be done among the godly people
-thereabouts.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Good luck to you, Peregrine,” Hugh forced
-himself to say, then shook off his companion
-and, passing from the stable yard, trudged away
-through the wet grass, with the old jealous pang
-worrying him as savagely as ever. But soon he
-told himself that his father would probably give
-him a horse and good weapons too, and, being a
-colonel in the king’s army, would very likely let
-him go to the wars with him, perhaps even give
-him a commission; and, thinking still of his father,
-by the time he returned to the house he had quite
-forgotten Peregrine.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The rain had nearly ceased; there seemed even
-a prospect of a clear sunset, and with the lightening
-of the weather Hugh cast aside the heavy
-feeling of half-regretful parting which had weighed
-on him all day and grew impatient for darkness,
-when he could set out on his journey. But the
-night came slowly, as any other night, with a rift
-of watery sunset in the west and mottled yellow
-clouds, that fading gave place to the long, gray
-twilight, which deepened imperceptibly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh started early to his room, which was in
-the east wing, so he went by the staircase from
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_28'>28</span>the little hall. Halfway up, as he strode two
-steps at a time, he almost stumbled over a
-slight figure that caught at his arm. “Lois!”
-he cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The girl rose to her feet. “Why are you angry
-with me, Hugh?” she asked, and though he could
-not see her face he knew by her voice she was
-almost sobbing.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Why did you run away from me yesterday?”
-he replied, feeling foolish and without
-excuse.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No matter. I have forgot. But I wanted to
-have speech with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You waited here to bid me farewell? ’Twas
-good of you, Lois,” Hugh blurted out. “I am
-sorry I was so rough to you about yesterday.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Then we’ll part still friends?” Lois said
-eagerly. “And here is something you are to
-take with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Your five shillings?” Hugh broke out, as she
-pressed the coins into his hand. “Nay, Lois, I
-cannot.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You must; ’twill be a long journey, and you
-have little money, I know. And I shall never
-have need of such a hoard. Prithee, take it,
-Hugh, else I shall think you still are angry because
-I left you yesterday. But truly, ’twas only
-that I could not bear the thought of your going.”
-She was crying now in good earnest, and Hugh
-tried awkwardly to soothe her and whisper her
-some comfort: he wished she were a boy and
-could go with him, perhaps even now he could
-come back some time and fetch her; he never
-would forget what a good friend she had been
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_29'>29</span>to him; and much more he was saying, when
-Martha’s voice came from below in the dusk of
-the hall: “Lois.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I must go,” the girl whispered. “Farewell,
-Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Farewell, Lois.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“God keep you, dear, always.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He heard her go slowly down the stairs and
-wished she had stayed with him longer; he might
-have said more cheering things. Then he heard
-the footsteps of the two girls die away in the hall,
-and he went on to his room.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He had placed his pistol on a chair beneath his
-cloak and hat, and had just lain down in his undergarments
-and stockings beneath the coverings,
-when Sam came in full of conversation, which
-Hugh’s short replies quickly silenced. But after
-the boy had lain down Hugh remembered that
-this was the last night they would sleep together,
-and, repenting his shortness, he said gently:
-“Good night, Sam.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What’s wrong with you?” asked his cousin,
-which made Hugh feel foolish and answer curtly,
-“Nothing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then there was a long silence in the dark
-chamber, till at length Sam was breathing deep
-and evenly. He was well asleep, Hugh assured
-himself, so, slipping quietly from the bed, he
-quickly drew on his outer clothes, put on cloak
-and hat, and tucked the pistol in his belt. He
-was just taking his shoes in his hand, when Sam
-stirred and asked drowsily: “What are you doing
-now?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I saw Martha’s battledoor out o’ doors,” Hugh
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_30'>30</span>mumbled. “I must fetch it or the dew will
-spoil it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Sam gave a sleepy sigh, then buried his head in
-the pillow again, and Hugh, waiting for no more,
-stole out of the room into the darkness of the
-corridor that was so thick it seemed tangible.
-He scuffed cautiously to the stairs and with his
-hand on the railing groped his way down. As
-he went he grew more accustomed to the blackness,
-and so, treading carefully, came without
-stumbling or noise to the outer door. He worked
-back the bolt, cautiously and slowly, and with a
-nervous start at each faint creak, till at last he
-could push the door open far enough to slip
-through. The grass felt cold beneath his stockinged
-feet; the night wind came damp and chilly
-against his face. With a shiver that was not all
-from cold he drew the door to, more quickly than
-he had thought, for the metal work jarred harshly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With a feeling that the whole household must
-be aroused he ran noiselessly across the terrace,
-and, pausing only to draw on his shoes, struck
-briskly through the wet grass toward the park.
-At its outskirts he halted and, glancing back,
-took a last look at Everscombe, black and silent
-under the stars. Only in one window, that of
-his grandfather’s chamber in the main building,
-was a candle burning, and the thought of the
-habitable room in which it shone made the night
-seem darker and lonelier. Hugh looked quickly
-away, and calling up his resolution plunged in
-among the trees.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He had meant to go through to the highway by
-a footpath, but the woods were blacker than he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_31'>31</span>had thought for; again and again he missed the
-track, till at last, finding himself on the beaten
-roadway from the manor house, he decided the
-quicker course was to follow it. He had covered
-perhaps half the distance and was trudging along
-with his head bent to look to his footsteps, when
-from the thicket just before him came a voice:
-“Stand, there!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh stopped where he was, half frightened
-for the instant, then half inclined to run, when
-an erect figure stepping from beneath a neighboring
-tree barred his path. By the long cloak and
-the staff on which the man leaned Hugh guessed
-it was his grandfather, even before Master Oldesworth
-spoke again: “So you are leaving us,
-Hugh Gwyeth?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, sir,” Hugh replied defiantly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“So I had judged. You are bound for the
-near park gate?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You must bear with my company that far.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So side by side they passed down the dark
-roadway, till presently the trees thinned and the
-starlight reached them. Then Hugh glanced
-up at his companion’s face but found it fixed in
-so stern an expression that he did not care to
-look again.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You are going to your father?” Master Oldesworth
-queried after a time.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, sir,” Hugh replied. The defiance had
-gone from his tone now.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At length the dimly seen roadway ran between
-two huge dark pillars, half hidden by the trees;
-it was the park gate, Hugh saw, and beyond was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_32'>32</span>the king’s highway. Involuntarily he slackened
-his pace, and his grandfather halted too, and
-stood by one of the pillars, resting both hands
-upon the top of his staff. “Then you have the
-grace to hesitate a moment,” the old man spoke,
-“before you leave those who have sheltered you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh dared not trust his voice to reply, and
-after a moment Master Oldesworth continued
-slowly: “It is your mother over again. We
-reared her and cared for her, and she left us for
-Alan Gwyeth; and you—Have you not had a
-home here?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, sir,” Hugh answered meekly. He knew
-well that the grievances which were so true when
-he told them to Lois would be nothing in his
-grandfather’s sight.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And what has this father for whom you leave
-us done for you?” Master Oldesworth pursued.
-“You cannot answer? He broke your mother’s
-heart and deserted you—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He is my father,” Hugh replied.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Go to him, then, as your mother did before
-you. But mark you this, Hugh Gwyeth: I
-received her back when Alan Gwyeth wearied of
-her, but I shall never receive you back. Go now,
-and you go for all time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I shall never ask you to take me back.”
-Hugh tried to speak stoutly, but his voice faltered
-in an ignoble manner.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Now consider well,” his grandfather continued.
-“When you pass the gate it will be to me
-as if you had never lived. Be not rash, Hugh,”
-he went on more gently. “Come back with me
-to the house; this folly of yours shall never be
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_33'>33</span>known, and I shall look to your welfare as I
-always have. But if you choose to go to that
-place of perdition, the king’s camp, and to that
-evil man, Alan Gwyeth, I forget you are my
-daughter’s son. Now make your choice between
-that man and me.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_34'>34</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER III <br /> <span class='small'>THE ROAD TO NOTTINGHAM</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Over in the marsh beyond the dim highway
-the frogs were piping their lonesome note; the
-shrilling call of autumnal insects sounded from
-the wayside; of a sudden the waste darkness
-reëchoed with solitary noises. All came clearly
-to Hugh’s ear in the hush that followed his
-grandfather’s words, and with them something
-that was akin to fright laid hold on him. Outside
-the park gate the world looked vast and
-black; he felt himself weak in his youthfulness,
-so even the butt of his pistol for which he groped
-did not strengthen his courage. He looked to
-his grandfather and involuntarily made a step
-toward him, but Master Oldesworth still stood
-with his hands upon the top of his staff and
-watched him but made no sign. With a stinging
-sense of rebuff Hugh drew back and held
-himself quiet, while he strove to think clearly
-and so make his resolution without prejudice.
-But all the time he felt that invisible hands were
-surely haling him back to Everscombe and with
-his whole will he struggled against them. “Will
-it be ended past question when I go out at the
-gateway?” he cried, almost before his thought
-had framed the words.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_35'>35</span>He did not even wait for an assent, but as he
-spoke stepped out beyond the pillars of the gate
-into the rough highway. There he faced about suddenly.
-“Grandfather,” he cried, “I—I am grateful
-for all you have done for me. Prithee, forgive
-me.” The words died away then, for he saw Master
-Oldesworth had turned and was walking slowly
-toward Everscombe, nor did he once look back.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For an instant it was borne in on Hugh to run
-after his grandfather, to implore pardon, to beg to
-be taken back and suffered to live the old dull
-life at the manor house; then the impulse left
-him and he was more ashamed of it than of his
-previous wavering. Still he lingered by the gate,
-straining his eyes into the dusk of the park till
-long after he had lost sight of Master Oldesworth.
-Once more he became aware of the sad
-piping of frogs in the marsh, and he listened
-stupidly, while heavier and heavier he felt the
-weight of loneliness press upon him. For he
-now realized that his decision had indeed been
-irrevocable; for all time he was cut off from his
-kinsfolk and his only home.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>When at last he turned slowly from the gateway
-there was no hopefulness in his step nor
-did he lift his eyes from the ground, unless to
-glance up at the familiar trees of the park that
-he should not see again. But at length, through
-the branches before him, he beheld Charles’s Wain
-shining clear and the bright Pole Star that seemed
-to point him northward to the king and to his
-father. At that Hugh straightened his drooping
-shoulders resolutely and in good earnest set forth
-upon his journey.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_36'>36</span>The new moon had long been set, but the stars
-were bright and the way amid the trees was plain
-to follow. A pleasant freshness of the early fall
-was in the faint night breeze and yet a lurking
-chill, that made Hugh glad to draw his cloak
-closer and trudge on more briskly. It was not
-long after midnight when he reached the first
-cottage on the outskirts of the village of Kingsford;
-he had passed the cheery little timbered
-dwelling many a time, but now, muffled in the
-night, it seemed unfamiliar. As his feet crunched
-the gravel of the road before the cottage he
-heard the house dog bark within, and a sudden
-feeling of being shut out came over him. The
-dark houses, as he hurried by them, had the awesome
-blankness of sleeping faces; even in the
-woods he had not been so lonely as here in
-Kingsford, where human beings were within call.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But as he drew to the end of the straggling
-village he slackened his pace. The road, ascending
-slightly here, skirted the churchyard, where
-he could see the light streak that marked the
-pathway, and the huddled stones, blacker against
-the turf. For a moment he rested his arms upon
-the lich wall and stood gazing across the graves
-at the dense bulk of the little Norman church,
-with its side porch overshadowed by a dark yew
-tree and its square tower cleanly outlined against
-the starry sky. In the chancel of the church his
-mother lay buried. She would have approved
-what he was doing, he told himself; she would
-gladly have returned to Alan Gwyeth. With
-every fibre of his resolution newly braced he once
-more took up his march, down the gentle slope
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_37'>37</span>and across the one-arched bridge that spanned
-the river Arrow. There, with the sound of the
-hurrying water in his ears, he paused and took a
-final glance at the tower of Kingsford church, and
-as he passed on wondered vaguely if he should
-ever set eyes on it again, and when, and how.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Beyond Kingsford the road ran once more
-through woods with now and again a space of
-open land or a retired farmhouse. Hugh gave
-little heed to the country round him, however;
-he noted only that he had firm road beneath
-his feet, the cool morning wind in his face, and
-the stars overhead to light him. But the wind
-grew chilly and faint with approaching dawn;
-the stars paled; from far away across the cleared
-fields a cock crowed and another answered him.
-When Hugh entered the village next beyond
-Kingsford, the sky was fading to a dull leaden
-color and he shivered with the cold of breaking
-day. Already people were beginning to stir; he
-met laborers going afield and from roadside barns
-heard men shouting to cattle, and the bark of
-dogs. About the little inn there were some signs
-of life, so he entered and bought bread of a
-tousled-headed woman. Coming out of the house
-he saw the eastern sky was breaking into billows
-of pink, and a little later the cold yellow sun
-burst forth.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh munched his bread as he tramped along,
-and the food and the daylight heartened him
-wonderfully. When the sun got higher he slung
-his cloak over one shoulder, whistled for company,
-and almost felt it in his heart to run when
-he came to an especially even bit of road. For
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_38'>38</span>he was his own man now, out in the world, with
-his pistol at his side, his five shillings and odd
-pence in his pocket, and his face set toward
-Nottingham.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Something before noon he trudged into the
-great town of Warwick and made his way to a
-tavern he knew from his school days. That time
-was now a good four months past, so he felt entitled
-to put a bit of swagger into his gait and
-rather hoped that in his new freedom he might
-meet with some of his former schoolfellows.
-But he kept a wary eye out for his old master,
-Doctor Masham, who, he suspected, might apprehend
-him on the spot for a runaway and pack
-him off to Everscombe; so he drew a breath of
-relief when he reached the tavern in safety.
-There he bought him sixpence worth of bread
-and meat, and, too hungry to give great heed to
-the varied company in which he found himself,
-spared expense by eating in the common room.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>As his hunger abated he became aware of an exceeding
-stiffness in the muscles of his legs which
-made him almost wince when he rose again. He
-hobbled as far as the door, where a bench in
-the sun proved so tempting that he sat down to
-rest him just a moment before starting out. Not
-only did his legs ache but he found his eyelids
-heavy and his head dull, and he was possessed of
-a great desire to yawn and stretch himself. He
-finally lay down with his head on his arms and
-would have given himself up to thoughts of Nottingham,
-only an endless line of swaying trees
-and dark farmhouses kept sliding before his
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_39'>39</span>The next thing he knew some one shook him,
-and he heard the voice of one of the drawers
-saying, “Now then, master, dost mean to pay us
-for the use o’ that bench?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh blinked his eyes open and sat up stiffly;
-one or two idlers stood gazing at him with amused
-faces, but for the rest the inn porch was deserted,
-and the sunlight had climbed above the windows
-of the second story. “Why, what’s the time?”
-he cried, broad awake as he perceived that.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Mid-afternoon and long past,” said the drawer,
-whereat Hugh jumped to his feet and walked
-away, so vexed at his sluggishness that for the
-first half-mile he scarcely heeded the soreness of
-his legs.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After that his gait grew slower and more halting,
-but he set his teeth and pulled himself along,
-as if it were an enemy he held by the collar; he
-had made up his mind to sleep some six or eight
-miles out of Warwick at a hamlet that marked
-the furthest limit of his school rambles, and his
-plan should not be altered because he had foolishly
-slept away precious time. The sun set and
-left him toiling along the highway; the twilight
-darkened; and the crescent of the moon was riding
-low among the stars, when Hugh dragged his
-tired feet over the threshold of the inn for which
-he aimed. The house was about closing and
-there was little welcome for this belated traveller,
-but from sheer weariness the boy was past resenting
-uncivil usage. He ate thankfully what was
-given him, stumbled away to his chamber, and,
-almost before he had flung off his dusty clothes,
-was sound asleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_40'>40</span>When he woke the mid-morning sun was
-streaming through the window full in his face,
-but there was a sharpness in the air of the little
-chamber that made him pull the blankets up to
-his chin. The poor inn bed seemed far more
-comfortable than any he had slept upon at Everscombe;
-it took an inordinate amount of resolution
-to rise from it, and an equal courage to drag
-his shoes on to his swollen feet. But he had
-already lost the bracing early hours of the day
-and he must waste no more time in coddling himself,
-so he took the road at once, as briskly as his
-limbs would bear him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Sore and stiff as he still was from yesterday’s
-long march, he made slow progress; it was close
-on midday when, passing through the town of
-Coventry, he entered upon the old Roman road,
-the Fosse, which he was to follow. The sight of
-the straight way stretching endlessly northeast
-discouraged him at first, but after a short rest he
-pulled himself together and, hobbling on, half
-forgot the pain in his heels in the exhilaration of
-going forward. It was new country he was now
-passing through, for he was no traveller; Everscombe
-to Warwick had been his usual round, save
-for that one trip into Worcestershire with Frank
-Pleydall. Since the last year, when Peregrine
-had been up to London with his father, Hugh
-had fretted at the narrow range of his journeyings
-and felt aggrieved at having made his German
-travels so young that he could cudgel up
-only scant recollections of them. But now Peregrine
-might go to London or Staffordshire or
-whither he pleased; Hugh felt no jealousy, for he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_41'>41</span>knew it was far pleasanter to be an independent
-traveller, bound to Nottingham and a soldier
-father.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Thus, though he no longer had any wish to
-run, he contrived to jog along quite cheerily till
-mid-afternoon. Then the low-lying clouds darkened
-and a soft rain, striking chilly against Hugh’s
-face, made him glad to pull his cloak up to his
-eyes. The fields and cottages looked gray through
-the downpour, and then all he saw was the broad
-puddles of the roadway, as of necessity he bent
-his head against the storm. At each step he
-could hear the water oozing in his shoes, his
-stockings were clammy wet, and his hat brim
-flapped cold against his forehead; but as the afternoon
-waned he lost these single sensations, and
-only knew that from head to foot he was soaked
-and numb and weary. Still he plodded on, because
-he must hold out till he reached an inn,
-but it was at a heavy mechanical pace, while he
-counted the steps and wondered drearily if the
-march would never end.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Twilight was turning to night when he splashed
-at last into a considerable village and stumbled
-into the first inn to which he came. There was
-a brisk fire in the common room and but one
-other guest, so Hugh was free to slip into the
-chimney corner and dry his dripping clothes
-while he ate his supper. For civility’s sake he
-began talking to his companion, from whom he
-learned that he was now over the boundary and
-into Leicestershire. The knowledge gave him a
-childish homesick pang; Everscombe seemed to
-have fallen hopelessly far behind him and Nottingham
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_42'>42</span>was still distant the length of a county. With
-no further care to eat he thrust aside his trencher
-and dragged himself off to bed.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In his waking moments he heard the rain plashing
-softly on the thatch of the shed beneath his
-window, and with the morning light he found the
-sky still gray and the storm still beating down.
-He put out one hand to his coat, flung on the
-stool beside his pallet, and felt that it was not
-half dried from yesterday’s soaking. Then for a
-time he rested quiet again, while he wondered in
-half-shamed fashion if he might not lie by a day
-till the storm was over. But when he reckoned
-up his store of money, he saw he could not afford
-to lose so many hours; it was yet more than two
-days’ march to Nottingham, and he had not full
-three shillings to keep him on the way. He wondered
-at the speed with which money went, for
-he was new to ordering such matters; hitherto
-he had been sure of his three meals a day and
-bed at night, and looked upon stray sixpences as
-valuable only for the apples and tops into which
-they might be turned. He put that last recollection
-out of his head as speedily as possible,
-ashamed of his scarcely ended childhood, and,
-accepting the responsibilities of the manhood he
-had claimed for himself, got up and dragged on
-his damp clothes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After breakfasting he wrapped his sodden cloak
-about him and plunged resolutely out into the
-rain. The heavy mud stayed him with clogging
-his shoes, but he was now somewhat seasoned for
-the march and managed to keep up a pace that,
-though not of the fastest, was steady. So he came
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_43'>43</span>at length through the afternoon drizzle to the
-town of Leicester, which he loyally told himself
-was not the half as fine as his own old Warwick.
-But none the less he made his lodging there that
-night, and he went to bed hopefully; for the western
-clouds were showing a faint yellow streak that
-promised better weather on the morrow.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Sure enough, when morning came the rain had
-ceased to fall, and though the air was still heavy
-with mist there seemed a prospect the sun might
-yet break through. Hugh took the highway in
-gay spirits, and plodding along at a stouter pace
-than on the day before congratulated himself on
-covering such a deal of ground. But by noon he
-came to a less flattering estimate of himself; for,
-talking with an idler at a small tavern he had
-entered to buy his dinner, he discovered he was
-now following the Fosse not to Nottingham but
-to Newark. Thereat Hugh faced about to retrace
-his steps, too vexed at his own stupidity to allow
-himself to stop for dinner. His informant called
-after him some direction about a cross-way to
-the Nottingham road, which he scarcely heeded
-at the moment; but afterward, when he was out
-of the village, he remembered, and striking across
-the fields came into a narrow road full of ruts and
-great puddles.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At first Hugh splashed along recklessly, but
-presently, when a streak of sunlight crept through
-the trees and turned the puddles bright, he let
-his pace slacken and little by little brought himself
-back to a more contented mood. After all,
-he could make up by steady walking what he had
-lost, and in any case Nottingham was now less
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_44'>44</span>than two days’ journey distant. He began whistling
-for content, then stopped, as a rustling in
-the bushes ahead caught his ear. He saw the
-branches crackle outward, and two men, bursting
-through, came swinging down the roadway
-to meet him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Recovering from his first surprise, Hugh prepared
-to give them the usual traveller’s good day,
-but on second glance kept to his side of the road
-and walked more rapidly. One of the fellows
-was thick-set and well tanned, and chewed a
-straw as he trudged; the other, a younger man,
-clad like a field laborer, was taller and hulking,
-with a bearded, low-browed face. As they came
-abreast he bade Hugh a surly good even and
-on the word, almost before the boy could reply,
-gave a grip at his collar. Hugh dodged back
-and pulled out his pistol, while the thought flashed
-through his head that running was impossible in
-this mire,—and then it was not befitting his
-father’s son. Next instant the tall man sprang
-upon him and Hugh, thrusting the pistol into
-his face, pulled the trigger, then felt the weapon
-knocked out of his hand and found himself grappling
-with his big antagonist. The man’s fingers
-pressed into his throat, he knew; and he remembered
-afterward how a smooch of red flecked the
-fellow’s beard, as he dashed his fist against his
-mouth. Then he was griping the other about
-the neck, hammering up at that stained face, and
-he heard the fellow bawl, “Devil and all! Why
-don’t ’ee come in and help me, Jock?” Another
-gruff voice retorted, “If thou canst not handle a
-younker like that, thou deservest to have bloody
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_45'>45</span>teeth.” Then of a sudden Hugh found himself
-twisted over so he saw the sky above him all shot
-with black, and he felt a bursting pain in his
-forehead. Thrusting up his hands gropingly, he
-went down full length in the mud without strength
-enough in him to move, even when the tall man
-knelt over him and, with one hand on his throat,
-rifled his pockets.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Here, have back your pistol, master,” he heard
-the gruff voice say, and he dimly saw the well
-tanned man, with a grin on his face, fling the pistol
-down in the mud beside him. Then the two
-walked off at their old swinging pace, and Hugh
-dragged himself up on his elbow and lay staring
-uncomprehendingly at his bleeding knuckles.
-After a time he got painfully to his feet and in
-mechanical fashion reckoned up the damages;
-they had taken his cloak and cleaned his pockets
-of money and of everything but the creased letter
-from Frank Pleydall and a loose bit of string.
-They had left him nothing but the torn and well-muddied
-clothes he wore and the pistol, that now
-was all befouled with mire. As Hugh picked it
-up all the hot anger of the actual conflict swept
-over him again, and with some wild idea of making
-the robbers restore their plunder he staggered
-a few steps down the road. Then strength failed
-him, and dropping down by the roadside he sat
-with his aching head in his hands. The world
-was a brutal place, he reflected with dumb resentment;
-even if a man had courage enough he
-did not always have the muscle to defend his own,
-not even with a pistol to back him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It did not better matters to sit there and whimper
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_46'>46</span>so after a time he rose and, still rather dazed
-with his drubbing, went unsteadily on his way.
-At the first brook he halted to wash his wounded
-hands and cleanse the pistol, which he dried upon
-his coat as well as he could. The rest of the
-afternoon he marched slowly because of the dizziness
-in his head, and so the twilight had overtaken
-him before he reached the main road and a
-village that lay upon it.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Close by the wayside stood a tavern, where
-candles were lighted and food would be cooking,
-but Hugh only gave one wistful look and passed
-on. He made his supper of a drink of water from
-the public well, and, falling in speech there with
-some loiterers, he found he was now into the shire
-of Nottingham and not above ten miles from the
-town. His heart jumped at the news, but next
-moment he was telling himself he could not
-tramp those miles in the dark and he grew sober
-as he realized unwillingly that he must sleep in
-the open. Till mid-evening he lingered in the
-village street, then, drawing reluctantly away from
-the sight of the few candles that still shone in
-cottages, passed on to the outskirts of the hamlet.
-After a cautious reconnoissance he crept
-through a hedge into a field, where he had dimly
-made out in the darkness a stack of straw, in the
-lee of which he snuggled down. The straw
-rustled with startling loudness at his least movement,
-and the earth beneath him was so damp his
-teeth chattered in his head. The strangeness of
-the place kept him many moments awake, but he
-held his eyes shut that he might not have sight
-of the lowering sky. Little by little he forgot it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_47'>47</span>all and fell to thinking of the last time he had
-lain in the open, when he and Sam Oldesworth
-had stolen out for a frolic to lie the night in
-Everscombe Park. How Sam would have marvelled
-at this nights doings! And Lois, only
-Lois would have pitied him, like a girl.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he knew there had been a long space in
-which Lois and all other remembrances left him,
-and he found himself shivering in the midst of
-wet straw with gray morning light all around
-him. He crawled to his feet and making his
-way to the highroad slowly set forth again. He
-was keenly hungry with his twenty-four hours of
-fasting and stiff with the dampness of his lodging,
-but he cheered himself with the thought
-that before night he would be in Nottingham.
-He would have enough to eat then, and a bed
-to sleep in, and decent clothes once more; but
-he put aside these creature comforts at the
-thought that he would see his father before he
-slept again. He wondered what his father would
-say, and he planned what he would tell him,
-and how he would make light of his long walk
-and the hunger and the cold.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>His heart fairly jumped within him when at
-last, in the mid-afternoon, he saw from a hill a
-great congregation of houses and steeples, which
-he knew must be Nottingham. He started down
-the hill on the run, though his knees were smiting
-together with his long fast. He thought he could
-keep up the pace clear to the gates of the town,
-but a troublesome stone got into his shoe, so
-presently he had to pause and sit down under a
-hedge to look to it. As he was pulling on the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_48'>48</span>shoe again a man passing by bade him good
-day, and Hugh, seeing there were houses within
-call, so he need not fear a second assault, entered
-into talk with him: “Yonder’s Nottingham, is it
-not?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“O’ course,” answered the other, proportioning
-his courtesy to the state of Hugh’s jacket.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“How do you like having a king lie so near?”
-Hugh laughed for the sheer happiness that was
-in him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ill enough,” growled the other, “wi’ his swaggering
-ruffians breaking our fields and kissing
-our wenches. Praise Heaven they be gone now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Gone?” Hugh echoed blankly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, his Majesty and the whole crew of his
-rakehelly followers went packing westward three
-days back.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_49'>49</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER IV <br /> <span class='small'>TO HORSE AND AWAY</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>If Hugh Gwyeth had been a few years older
-he might perhaps have cursed his ill fortune; if
-he had been a few years younger he would assuredly
-have put his head down on his knees and
-wept; as it was, being neither man nor child, he
-blinked his eyelids rapidly and forced a weak
-grin, then asked: “There’s a road that runs west
-from Nottingham, is there not, friend? Perhaps
-then there is some cross-way from here by which
-I may reach it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The man delayed long enough to give full information
-about a path, a stile, a meadow, and an
-ancient right of way, which Hugh checked off
-mechanically. But after the man had passed on
-he still sat a time staring at the distant roofs of
-Nottingham and blinking fast.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At length he got to his feet and started down
-the hillside by the path the man had shown him,
-slowly, for all the spring had gone out of his gait
-now, and his knees felt weak and shook so that
-more than once he had to pause to rest. During
-such a halt a sickening fear seized him: suppose
-after all he should never reach his father? There
-was no danger of his dying of starvation yet, for
-he had had food as late as the previous morning;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_50'>50</span>but what if strength failed him and he fell down
-in the fields or lonely woods and slowly perished
-there? That fear still staying with him, he made
-his night’s resting-place under a hedge, almost
-within hail of a farmhouse. He lay down early
-in the twilight, too exhausted to make the day’s
-march longer, but he could not sleep for very
-hunger. In the first hours of his waking the
-dim light in the distant farmhouse gave him
-company, but after that he had only the stars.
-He lay huddled in a heap for warmth and stared
-up into the sky at Charles’s Wain and the North
-Star, that were shining clear as on the night
-when he quitted Everscombe.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He lost sight of the stars at last, slept, and
-woke in white moonlight, then slept and woke
-again, and, finding the chilly dawn breaking, rose
-and plodded painfully out into the highway.
-The farmhouse in the gray morning did not
-bear out the hospitable promise of its candle of
-the night before; so, sick with hunger though he
-was, Hugh went by it without so much as asking
-for a drink of water. But a few rods farther on,
-when he caught sight of some apple trees, he
-crawled through the hedge and helped himself,
-then hurried away guiltily and tramped the next
-quarter mile so fearful of apprehension that he
-durst not taste the plunder. When he did so he
-found that the apples were half sour and hard, so
-he could scarcely swallow a mouthful, and that
-little sickened him. When he resumed his walk
-he felt dizzier and weaker even than before.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>About eleven of the morning he passed through
-a small village, where he met people coming to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_51'>51</span>their midday meal. He loitered along slowly
-and rested a time by a well in the centre of
-the place; it was in his mind to go boldly to
-some cottage and ask for food, but he could not
-decide which house looked least inhospitable.
-While he was still debating, the shameful realization
-of what he was doing came over him; he
-jumped up and, pulling his battered felt hat over
-his face, walked away with something of his old
-dignified step. But once outside the village his
-pace slackened, as he told himself unsparingly
-that begging befitted a gentleman far better than
-stealing, and he must now do one or the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was several hours later that a third resource
-occurred to him: he might trade something for
-food, his pistol, perhaps. He examined it carefully
-and decided that, though it looked a trifle
-rusty, it might serve. In the expectation of getting
-food for it at the next town he labored on
-more hopefully, but the next village seemed never
-to come, for his knees were now fairly knocking
-together and his halts grew more frequent and
-prolonged. Once, when he had to cross a small
-stream, he found himself too unsure of foot to
-keep the stepping-stones, so he must splash into
-the water up to his knees. A branch sent his hat
-into the stream, and, without heart enough left
-even to struggle after it, he let it drift away.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The sun was nearly set when at last he came
-to scattered houses, which he judged must be
-on the outskirts of a considerable town. At
-the thought of food he stumbled forward more
-rapidly, with his pistol in his hand ready for the
-barter, but he saw no possible purchaser till he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_52'>52</span>came to a small inn. There he found a knot of
-men gathered about a side door, so, after a
-moment’s hesitation, he ventured into the courtyard.
-Country fellows they proved to be, idling
-and smoking on the inn porch; one, who took
-the deference of his comrades as a matter of
-course, had the look of a small farmer; another
-seemed a smith; the rest were of the ordinary
-breed of tavern frequenters. Hugh paused by a
-horseblock, and, looking them over, found little
-encouragement in their appearance, yet he was
-trying to frame a proper greeting with which to
-go up to them, when a tapster bustled out on
-the porch and, getting sight of him, hailed him
-roughly, “Now then, what brings you here?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh hesitated over to the porch; he had forgot
-what he had meant to say and for a moment
-no words came to him; then, realizing it was
-now or never, he managed to stammer: “I have
-a pistol here. Maybe some one of you would—wish
-to buy it.” As he spoke he held out the
-pistol, but the farmer, the great man of the crew,
-shoved it aside and, pulling fiercely at his pipe,
-wheezed out something about vagabonds and the
-stocks. The blacksmith, however, took the pistol
-carelessly, turned it over, and laughed. “How
-many men hast killed wi’ this, sirrah?” he asked
-in a big voice, and passed the pistol to his neighbor,
-who grinned and offered a ha’penny for it.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh gazed helplessly at the ring of mocking
-faces, then let his eyes drop to the ground, and
-with the blood tingling in his cheeks waited their
-pleasure. He would gladly have seized upon his
-pistol and flung away from them, but he felt too
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_53'>53</span>faint and hungry to walk a rod, and before he
-could get food he must make this sale. But at
-last, with slow sickening disappointment, he realized
-they had no notion of purchasing, but were
-making sport of him. “If you will not buy—”
-he blurted out with weak anger.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What is going on here?” a pleasantly drawling
-voice struck in.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Turning sharply Hugh almost brushed against
-a man who had approached from the direction
-of the stables, a gentleman, by his dress and
-easy bearing. “Will you not suffer me to see,
-friends?” he drawled slowly, and reaching out
-his hand took the pistol from the man who held it.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Gazing up at him hopefully Hugh saw that the
-newcomer was not above two or three and twenty
-years of age, with long dark hair and a slight
-mustache, under which Hugh fancied he saw
-his mouth twitch as he looked the pistol over.
-Then the gentleman glanced up and showed a
-pair of humorous brown eyes, which, as he surveyed
-Hugh, suddenly grew grave. “Here, I’ve
-need of a pistol,” he said, and held out a piece of
-money.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was a crown piece, Hugh saw, that would
-buy unlimited bread, and meat, too; but, as his
-fingers were closing over it, the remembrance of
-the twitch in the purchaser’s lips and the laugh
-in his eyes recurred to him, and of a sudden he
-understood that a pistol which thieves themselves
-would not deprive him of could not be worth
-even a ha’penny. He had no right to take
-money for it, he knew, and in his disappointment
-he grew angry at his own stupidity, and angry at
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_54'>54</span>the brown-haired gentleman for offering him
-charity, and angry at the other men who looked
-on and thought him a beggar and worse. “After
-all, I’ll not sell it,” he muttered sullenly. “Perhaps—’tis
-not in good condition.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Tis a serviceable weapon,” replied the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“It’s worthless,” Hugh maintained doggedly.
-“Give it back to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“But I’ve taken a fancy to it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Keep it, then,” Hugh retorted, fiercely, so his
-voice might not break, and elbowing his way
-through the group of men walked off. He could
-smell the food cooking inside the tavern, and
-hunger gnawed him so savagely that even the
-thought that he had refused charity and had not
-deceived any one into buying a worthless pistol
-could not keep a lump from gathering in his
-throat. His step wavered and he had to halt an
-instant to lean against the gate-post: out beyond
-the street looked lonely and chill in the misty
-twilight. Just then he heard the click of spurs
-upon the stones of the courtyard, and some one
-took him by the shoulder. Even before he heard
-the drawl he knew it was the young gentleman.
-“Look you here, sir, I cannot take your pistol
-as a gift.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>More than one rough speech came to Hugh’s
-lips, but he did not utter a word, only shook off
-the grasp on his shoulder and without looking up
-made a step forward. Then his knees seemed to
-give way, the ground suddenly came nearer, and,
-pride, resentment, and all, he pitched down on
-the stones at the gentleman’s feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The other bent over him quickly, and this time
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_55'>55</span>Hugh had neither strength nor will to shake him
-off. “What’s wrong with you, lad?” There
-was almost no drawl in the speakers voice,
-“Hurt? Tired? Hungry?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh nodded dumbly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, well! That’s easier remedied than a
-broken leg. Up with you, now.” Hugh found
-himself upon his feet again, and, with the young
-man’s hand beneath his elbow, stumbled obediently
-back across the courtyard and through the
-little group about the door, who made way for
-them. Within they turned up a staircase, and
-now he heard the man beside him asking:
-“You’ll not refuse to take supper with me, perchance?
-When gentlemen meet on the road—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You’ve no need to make it easy unto me,”
-Hugh gulped out brokenly. “If some one did
-not help me I doubt if I could tramp many days
-more, and—I’d liefer take help from you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Indeed, utter weariness and hunger had for the
-moment made an end of Hugh’s dignity as effectually
-as if he had cast it quite away at the inn
-gate. He suffered the stranger to lead him
-into a room and seat him in a big chair by the
-fire, where he drank what was given him and
-swallowed down some mutton broth, sparingly,
-at first, as he was told. He troubled himself
-neither to think nor to speak, but he noted that
-the dark inn chamber seemed like home, the fire
-felt warm, and the candles twinkled dazzlingly.
-He found, too, that the brown-haired gentleman
-had a kind, elder-brotherly way with him, and
-that in private life he dispensed with his drawl,
-though his voice lost none of its pleasant tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_56'>56</span>“Well, you feel almost your own man again
-now, do you not?” his host queried at last.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh essayed a smile in reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Wait an hour or so and, if soft answers still
-have power with tavern women, we’ll have a good
-supper then,—I take it you’ll be ready for it.
-And now it seems time for ceremonious introductions.
-My name is Richard Strangwayes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And my name is Hugh Gwyeth. My father
-is Colonel Alan Gwyeth of the king’s army.”
-Hugh spoke slowly as if he liked to linger over
-the words; it was the first time he had ever
-claimed his father.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And you are bound for the king’s camp?”
-asked Strangwayes, sitting down on the opposite
-side of the fireplace.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh explained very briefly that he had left
-home to join his father and had had a hard march,
-to which Strangwayes listened with sympathetic
-eyes, though when he took up the conversation
-again his tone was light. “We are headed for the
-same place, then, Master Gwyeth, for I am wearing
-out my horse to reach his Majesty’s army. I am
-going to join my uncle, Sir William Pleydall—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh felt he could have hugged the man, he
-seemed suddenly to have come so very near.
-“Why, I know Sir William,” he cried, “I was at
-school with his son. I’ve a letter from him here.”
-Pulling out Frank’s worn letter he passed it to
-Strangwayes, who stared at him an instant, then
-hastily scanned the sheet. When he handed it
-back Hugh noted a change in his manner; he
-had been kind before with the kindness of one
-stranger to another, but now he seemed to have
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_57'>57</span>taken to himself a permanent right to befriend
-Hugh. He came across the hearth and shook
-hands with the boy. “I’m right glad we chanced
-to meet, Hugh,” he said warmly. “We’ll journey
-the rest of the way together. Oh, yes, I can
-procure you a horse.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh ventured some weak objection, rather
-shamefacedly, for he knew he hoped Strangwayes
-would thrust it aside, and he felt only
-satisfaction when the young man did so. “Leave
-you to come on alone? Folly! I only lend you
-the horse; your father will settle the matter with
-me. I’ll charge him Jew’s interest, if ’twill content
-you. Do you think I mean to leave my
-cousin Frank’s comrade to fray out his clothes
-and his body along the road?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Afterwards, when they were eating supper together
-and the maid who served them had quitted
-the room, Strangwayes suddenly looked up and
-asked quizzically, “You are well assured there is
-no Spanish blood in you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh was quite sure; why had Master Strangwayes
-asked? What were Spaniards like, anyway?
-Strangwayes drawled on disjointedly for a
-quarter of an hour, while his eyes laughed in a
-provoking way: Spaniards were fierce fighters,
-and their women were pretty, and they liked gold,
-and they were proud as the devil, and they were
-very cruel, and they had a deal of dignity, and they
-grew oranges in their country. “Dream it out
-to-night, Hugh,” he advised, as they rose from
-the table; but Hugh disobeyed flagrantly, for the
-instant he was laid in a Christian bed once more
-he was sound asleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_58'>58</span>He woke in broad daylight, and, having assured
-himself that the bed was real, so Richard Strangwayes
-could not have been a dream, dozed contentedly
-again, and woke with a start to rise and
-dress with the unsettled feeling of one who has
-slept long enough to lose count of time. When
-he went downstairs he judged by the sunlight
-that flooded the courtyard that it must be near
-noon, and his guess was verified by the tapster,
-who was vastly more respectful than he had been
-on the preceding evening. Those loitering about
-the courtyard, too, eyed him curiously but no
-longer mocked him. The only relic of last
-night’s dismal scene which he found was a rusted
-pistol that lay near the post of the outer gate.
-After a hasty glance about to make sure none were
-looking, Hugh snatched it up and, hiding it
-beneath his coat, sauntered nonchalantly out of
-the courtyard. Just across the road was a sluggish
-muddy ditch, and into this he dropped the
-pistol that had once been Peregrine Oldesworth’s.
-Even as he did so he felt a quick pang of regret,
-for he realized he had trusted in the worthless
-weapon as he never could trust again in the
-truest sword or the surest musket.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A bit saddened and a bit shamed at such a
-feeling, he retraced his steps to the gateway,
-where he came face to face with Strangwayes,
-very martial indeed with his big hat and riding-boots,
-who trotted up on a long-legged white
-horse. By the bridle he led a despondent-looking
-gray, which halted with the greatest readiness,
-as Strangwayes reined in his own steed and
-addressed Hugh: “What do you think of this
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_59'>59</span>high-tempered charger? Unless appearances are
-arrant liars, he is the prettiest bit of horse-flesh
-within two league of here. His Majesty,—Heaven
-bless him and requite it to his followers!—has
-carried away every well-seeming thing
-that goes o’ four legs. Here, sirrah hostler, give
-the beasts a bite. We’ll do the like service to
-ourselves, Hugh, and then the word is, ‘To horse
-and away.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I am ready,” Hugh answered. “But I fear
-I have made you to lose time—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Time spent in horse-dealing is never lost,”
-Strangwayes replied sententiously; “especially
-when the rascal who owns the horse has likewise
-a winsome daughter. Now come to dinner.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was during this meal that a new care burdened
-Hugh. Now that he was no longer half
-starved and near desperate he had time to take
-heed to minor matters, and he was keenly aware
-of the holes in his stockings and the rents in his
-breeches and jacket. It seemed Strangwayes
-had guessed something of his thought, for, as they
-rose from the table, he spoke out with a half embarrassment:
-“Look you here, Hugh, I meant—to
-lend you money to get you fresh clothes,
-but, faith, the gray there cost a penny more than
-I thought, and, as we’ve no wish to starve again,
-methinks you must be content to let your new
-coat ride away on his back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Tis no great matter,” Hugh forced himself to
-say. “If you be willing to take the road with such
-a vagrant-looking fellow as I.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes suggested, however, that they do
-what they could, so the tapster was bribed and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_60'>60</span>the chambermaid cajoled, till out of the inn stores
-Hugh was furnished with a cap and a pair of boothose,
-and a good part of the hedge mud was
-brushed off the rest of his apparel. So when at
-last he rode out from the inn on the gray horse
-Hugh felt himself a very passable Cavalier, for his
-covered head greatly increased his self-respect,
-and the boothose in most hypocritical fashion
-concealed the torn stockings. But had he been
-quite out at elbow he felt he would have shone in
-the borrowed light of Strangwayes’ completeness,
-and would have been content with that or anything
-he might owe to his new friend.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>That night they slept within the borders of
-Staffordshire, and, sparing their horses, took the
-road late next morning beneath a lowering sky.
-They were headed for Shrewsbury, Hugh learned,
-whither the king was marching by a northern
-road; they would keep to the south, however, in
-the hope of speedily overtaking a scouting party
-led by one Butler, an old friend of Strangwayes,
-whom the reports of tavern-keepers placed less
-than four and twenty hours ahead of them. If
-the horses held out, they doubtless would come
-up with him in the course of a twelvemonth,
-Strangwayes announced dolorously, after a morning
-spent in flogging his beast along the heavy
-road. It was impossible to mend the pace, so
-they forgot it at last in talk, for after his days of
-non-intercourse Hugh was but too happy to tell
-some one his thoughts and plans; and he felt
-Strangwayes was as safe a confessor as a man
-could have. So he related his early life, much in
-detail, and the intimate reasons of his present
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_61'>61</span>quest, and all he knew of his father. At that
-Strangwayes’ dark eyebrows went up amazingly
-and came down in a twist above his nose. “Name
-of Heaven!” he ejaculated, turning in his saddle
-to face Hugh, “do you mean to tell me you are
-tracing over the kingdom after a father who has
-not set eyes on you for twelve years? What think
-you the man will say to you or do with you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh paused blankly, assailed with sudden
-queer doubts, as Strangwayes thus harked back to
-his grandfather’s hints. But next instant the
-older man laughed off his surprise and plunged
-headlong into a tale that soon ended Hugh’s discomfort.
-“Confidence for confidence, Hugh.
-Would you hear something of myself? If they
-ever put me in a chap-book they can say I was
-the unhappy third son of a worthy knight of Lincolnshire.
-They put me to school at a tender age,—pass
-over that; no doubt you can guess what it
-means. No, I did not run from school; mine has
-been a sober and industrious life, fit for all youth
-to take instruction by. When I was sixteen I
-betook myself to Oxford, for my father was too
-loyal a gentleman to trust even so poor a piece of
-goods as a third son among the Puritans of Cambridge.
-There at Oxford I improved my hours
-to best advantage and learned to play famously
-at bowls, and would have become a past master at
-tennis, had not the Scots war broke out. Sir
-William Pleydall procured me a lieutenancy—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And you have been to war once already?”
-asked Hugh, suffering the gray to slacken the
-pace to his natural amble. “Tell me of your battles,
-I pray you, Master Strangwayes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_62'>62</span>“If you’ll clip my title to Dick,” replied the
-other. “It sounds more natural. Truth to tell,
-I was in but one battle, Hugh, and that was the
-fierce and bloodless battle of Wilterswick, here in
-this same pleasant Staffordshire. You remember,
-doubtless, when the king went against the Scots,
-how loath our excellent yokels were to follow after.
-Rank Puritans, the most of the levies were, and
-worked off their warlike energies pulling down
-communion rails and hunting parsons out of their
-parishes. We had a choice lot of such spirits in
-our troop, and, to put a leaven to the whole lump,
-the captain was an Irishman, ergo, a Catholic.
-A proper black fellow he was, Dennis Butler; the
-same one at whose mess-table we may chance to
-sit to-morrow night. This Butler and I took ourselves
-to rest one wet night at Wilterswick, and,
-faith, we waked to the hunt’s up of a big stone
-crashing in at our casement and found our trusty
-followers crowding the street before the inn, clamoring
-to hang the captain for a Papist. At their
-head was a venomous, two-legged viper, Constant-In-Business
-Emry,—he was rightly named,—a
-starveling of a fellow,—I’d swear he began life a
-tailor. Butler had rated him a day or two before,
-so he was in earnest, and, truth, the rest of them
-looked it. So Denny Butler, being a gentleman
-of resources, gathered himself into his clothes and
-left by the rear door.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And you?” Hugh cried out, “I hold your
-captain went like a coward.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay, nay, we’d agreed to it; I knew they’d
-not hurt me. So I slipped on my shirt and
-breeches, and went down to speak unto them.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_63'>63</span>They threw stones and other things, and roared
-somewhat, but at last I made myself heard; then
-I talked to them like a preacher and a father, and
-tripped up Constant-In-Business Emry on a theological
-point, and demonstrated that I was a good
-Church of England man, like all my ancestors
-before me. By that they were tolerably subdued,
-so I called for a Book of Common Prayers and
-read them morning service, then down we all knelt
-in the mud of the courtyard and I prayed over
-them. You never know how hard you can pray
-till you’re put to it. By that Butler was well away,
-so I went back to my chamber and finished dressing.
-I ruined a serviceable pair of velvet breeches
-kneeling in that mud, and the lesson of that is to
-go rough clad when you go to war. And that was
-the end of my military glory, for the king struck
-a truce with the Scots, I lost my commission, and,
-as I would have no more of the university, my
-father packed me off to London to take chambers
-in the Middle Temple. He held the Puritans
-should not have a monopoly of lawyers, ‘fight the
-devil with his own weapons,’ as ’twere. But I confess
-the only court I followed was the king’s court
-and I learned far more of dancing and sonneteering
-than of the precepts of worthy Sir Edward
-Coke. Then my father,—Heaven rest him!—died,
-and left me an annuity. I have no liking
-for annuities; they encourage a man in the sordid
-practice of living within his means. I sold mine
-out of hand, and, with a droll streak of prudence,
-as rare as strange, committed a round sum to Sir
-William Pleydall to hold in trust for me, then set
-out with the rest to see the world. I went to the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_64'>64</span>Low Countries and served a time as a gentleman
-volunteer, and then to France, where I learned
-some handy tricks at fencing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You’re a great swordsman?” Hugh queried
-with bated breath. “Did you ever fight a
-duel?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“On my honor, yes,” the other replied with a
-smile. “No earlier than last April I crossed swords
-with a certain Vicomte de Saint Ambroix. The
-manner of it? Do you think of challenging any
-one, Master Hugh? Why, monsieur the vicomte
-chose to speak some scurvy untruths of Englishwomen
-in my company, so I did but go up to him
-and strike him across the mouth, saying, ‘Monsieur,
-I do myself the honor of telling you that
-you lie in your throat.’ Which was a great waste
-of words. But we fought and he was hurt somewhat
-in the shoulder. No, I have no scars, but I
-got then a piteous gaping wound in a crimson
-satin doublet of mine, which has never healed, as
-flesh and blood heals in time. That was the last
-adventure, fortunately, for here comes what shall
-abridge my story.” Strangwayes pointed before
-him where the dusky roofs of a straggling village
-showed among the wet trees.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“But how came you home, Dick?” Hugh
-coaxed.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Simply told. I heard there was work for men
-of enterprise, and I judged my loyal uncle would
-have turned my pounds and shillings into troopers
-and muskets, and would gladly give me a
-commission in exchange. So I spent what surplus
-money I had,—’tis the surest way to cheat
-thieves,—and took ship for King’s Lynn. I
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_65'>65</span>paid a swift visit to my elder brother in Lincolnshire;
-he is for the Parliament,—Heaven
-and my father’s spirit forgive him! So I mounted
-and faced me westward to the king, and here I
-am now, and here we are.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The two horses clinked across the cobbles of
-the courtyard of the village inn, a hostler ran up
-officiously, and the host himself came puffing out
-to greet the guests. “Well, friend, what news
-on the road?” cried Strangwayes, swinging out
-of his saddle. “Has a troop of Cavaliers passed
-through here?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The host gazed from one to the other, then up
-at the sky, then back at the travellers. “Be you
-king’s men?” he finally asked, with mild curiosity.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Sure, I trust we all be honest people,” Strangwayes
-answered dryly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, well, that may be as it may be; I say
-naught; only ’tis good hap for you, you lie in a
-snug haven to-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Why, what mean you? Are there hobgoblins
-farther on?” Strangwayes’ voice dropped
-to a ridiculous quaver that made Hugh smile.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Worse nor hobgoblins, master,” replied the
-host. “Have ye not heard, then? They do say
-a stout band of Puritan rogues are plundering
-the country, yonder toward the west of us.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_66'>66</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER V <br /> <span class='small'>IN AND OUT OF THE “GOLDEN RAM”</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Though the dawn of another day had broken,
-slate-colored clouds still hid the sun and a mist
-like a fine rain hung in the air; even the white
-horse and the gray, standing saddled and ready
-in the inn yard, touched noses as if they vowed the
-weather bad. Hugh slapped their flanks and
-settled their damp manes, while he waited for
-Strangwayes to pay the reckoning to the mildly
-curious host, but the process proved so long that
-at last he mounted into the saddle and ambled
-slowly out into the highway. Turning the gray
-horse’s nose to the west he paced forward, with
-his heart a-jump at the thought that yonder in
-the mist before him real danger that tested men’s
-courage might be lurking.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A gay clatter of hoofs on the uneven roadway
-made him turn just as Strangwayes came abreast
-of him. At once Hugh blurted out what was
-uppermost in his thoughts: “Do you think, Dick,
-the host spoke true? Are there enemies before
-us? What think you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I think there be two whose words are not to
-be over-trusted: a woman when she will have a
-boon of you, and a tavern-keeper when he will
-have you to tarry in his lodgings.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_67'>67</span>“Then you believe the host’s talk of Roundheads—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Mere words to frighten children. It troubles
-me not the half as much as his showing me just
-now that Butler must have borne more northward.
-Well, let the Irish rogue go hang! We’ll
-push on as we are and reach Shrewsbury,—some
-day.—Come up, you crows’ meat!” This to the
-white horse, whose nose was at its knees.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“To-day will be but as yesterday, then, without
-any danger?” asked Hugh, a thought relieved,
-yet with room for a feeling of grievous disappointment
-at being cheated of his looked-for adventure.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes’ telltale eyes laughed immoderately,
-though he kept his mouth grave: “You’ll
-have all the adventures you need, after you reach
-the king’s army. Still, as I have an honest liking
-for you, mayhap, if you’re a good lad, I’ll find you
-one ere we come thither.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then they fell to speaking of all they would
-do, when once they were enrolled among his
-Majesty’s followers, and, what with talking and
-urging on their laggard horses, they kept themselves
-employed till past noon. “We’ll bait
-here,” Strangwayes announced, as rounding a
-curve they got sight of a tiny hamlet half concealed
-beneath a hill. “Then we’ll make a long
-stage this afternoon and sleep the night well
-within the borders of Shropshire.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At that cheering thought they put the horses
-to their best pace and clattered through the village
-street quite gallantly, though there were none
-to admire them, save a flock of geese, and a foolish-looking
-girl, who seemed the whole population
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_68'>68</span>of the little place. Thus they came to the farther
-end of the hamlet, where, a bit retired from the
-neighboring cottages, stood a shabby inn, before
-which hung a sign-board bearing a faded yellow
-sheep. “Golden Ram!” Strangwayes translated
-it. “Mutton would suit me as well!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They rattled into the little inn yard, ducking
-down in their saddles to save their heads from
-the bar across the low gateway, and drew rein
-just in time to avoid riding down a flurried serving-maid.
-Strangwayes almost fell out of his
-saddle, so promptly he dismounted to reassure
-her. “You’re not harmed, my lass?” he asked
-anxiously, slipping one arm about her as if he
-expected her to faint, though, from her fine fresh
-color, that did not seem likely. Hugh had already
-seen something of his friend’s civilities to barmaids,
-so he kept to his saddle and felt rather
-foolish, when suddenly the host, a scrawny man
-with a lantern face, appeared in the doorway.
-At sight of him Strangwayes, in his turn, looked
-a bit foolish, and stepping away from the maid
-began briskly, “Well, friend, what can you give
-us to dinner?” There he paused dumfounded,
-and stared, then cried out: “Heaven keep us!
-If it be not my constant friend Emry, as busy as
-ever! Verily, ’tis a true saying that the Lord
-will not see the righteous forsaken.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Lieutenant Strangwayes was always a merry
-gentleman,” Constant-In-Business Emry replied,
-with a rather dubious countenance.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Tut, tut! You’re all mistaken, my man. I
-abominate merriment as much as I do ale.
-Which calls it to my mind I am uncommon dry
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_69'>69</span>and thirsty. Jump down, Hugh. We’ll have
-experience of a Puritan tavern.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, men must eat,” sighed Emry. “Though
-my calling may smack of the carnal taint, yet ’tis
-not all ungodly, since—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Don’t trouble yourself for that,” Strangwayes
-replied. “Faith, I never thought to surprise you
-in so honest a calling.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With that he led the way into the inn, where
-he and Hugh dined together in an upper chamber.
-The food was none of the best, Hugh privately
-thought, but Strangwayes praised it mightily to
-the maid who served them, the same they had
-encountered in the courtyard. She was a stepdaughter
-of Emry, who had married her mother,
-the now deceased hostess of the “Golden Ram,”
-so she told Strangwayes, and added much more
-touching Emry, who seemed the same old Puritan
-malcontent of Wilterswick. Soon the talk turned
-from him to gayer matters, for the girl was fresh-faced
-and black-eyed, so Strangwayes gave more
-heed to her than to his meat and drink. Hugh,
-feeling more foolish and out of place than ever,
-choked down his food quickly, then left the room,
-and, as he closed the door, heard a suppressed
-squeak: “Don’t ’ee, sir. An thou kiss me again
-I’ll scream.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh stamped downstairs and stood glowering
-out into the courtyard, where the mist was now
-dribbling down in a slow rain. He watched the
-grayish streaks it made across the black openings
-of the sheds opposite the inn porch, and athwart
-the gaping door of the stable at his right. A
-wretched chilly day it was, and—why need Dick
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_70'>70</span>Strangwayes play the fool because a wench had
-red cheeks? When he heard his friend’s step he
-did not even turn his head, and then Strangwayes
-came up alongside him, and clapping one arm
-about his shoulders said in a low tone, “Jealous
-of a tavern maid, or I’ll hang myself!” Then he
-walked off laughing and disappeared into the
-stable.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But when Strangwayes came out again some
-time later the laughter had gone from his face,
-and in its stead was a troubled, angry look that
-made Hugh forget his petty vexation and run
-down from the porch to meet him. “What has
-happened, Dick?” he begged.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Why, nothing,” replied Strangwayes, and took
-hold of his arm, so they paced up and down the
-courtyard together, “and yet everything is amiss.
-The white horse has gone lame.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Is that all?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Enough. Unless you fancy walking ten miles
-through the mud and rain to the next village. I
-do not.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You can ride my horse. That is, he’s yours,
-of course.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Or you might carry me,” Strangwayes answered
-soberly. “No, Hugh, neither you nor I
-will walk that ten miles nor the half of it, dragging
-a hobbled horse behind us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, at worst,” Hugh tried to speak cheerfully,
-“we shall but lose a few hours.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, is that all? Tell me this, Hugh: why
-did a sound horse go lame in the mere course of
-dinner?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Then it’s possible ’twas done with fore-thought?”
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_71'>71</span>Hugh cried. “Perchance they
-mean—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Hush, hush, you fire-eater!” Strangwayes interrupted
-hastily. “If ’twas the inn people lamed
-the horse they did it only to stay us here, that
-they might profit by our tarrying. Or to hinder
-us in our journey, for this knave Emry has no
-love unto me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Yet Strangwayes, Hugh took note when they
-returned to the house, was merry as ever in his
-talk with the lean-visaged Emry. He ordered a
-chamber for the night, and then, free to go and
-come as he pleased, went sauntering into every
-corner of the hostelry, from the common room to
-the sheds and stable. About twilight the journey
-ended in the kitchen, where, finding Emry’s stepdaughter
-at work, Strangwayes seated himself on
-a table and entered into ardent conversation with
-her about butter-making.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Left to himself, Hugh sat down on the settle
-and, poking the fire vigorously, watched the embers
-die down and then flare up again, while the
-light waned or reddened throughout the room.
-Bits of the smoky ceiling and black walls started
-into sudden radiance, or the fire gleam was given
-back by a copper kettle or pewter plate, and once
-the sudden blaze lit up the two who were by the
-table. Strangwayes’ face was half shadowed by
-his long hair, so only his clean-cut chin and confident
-mouth showed vividly; but the girls face,
-with drooping eyelids and sober lips that now
-were silent, was very clear to see.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh turned once more to the embers and paid
-the others no further heed, till Strangwayes came
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_72'>72</span>to his side with the noisy announcement that, the
-kitchen being a very delectable place, they would
-eat supper there. So the maid lit candles and
-fetched them food, though she kept silent, even to
-Strangwayes’ gayest nonsense. At the last she
-brought wine, as he bade, and filling a glass held
-it out to him. Hugh, glancing up, left eating to
-stare at the girl’s white face, and Strangwayes of
-a sudden caught hold of her arm. “What’s wrong
-with you, wench?” he asked abruptly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At that the wine went slopping to the floor.
-“Don’t ’ee tell, sir,” the girl murmured, under
-her breath, “father’d kill me, if he knew. But
-there be Roundhead troopers,—they come hither
-to-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A side glance from Strangwayes checked the
-exclamation that was on the tip of Hugh’s tongue.
-The girl went on softly: "Father said: ‘He is a
-swaggering child of Satan, this Papist Strangwayes.
-A shall not go out of the “Golden
-Ram” till he goes strapped to another man’s
-saddle-bow.’"</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes’ nostrils contracted, but he said
-nothing, merely whistled between his teeth. “A
-merry fellow your father is,” he broke silence at
-length; “he does not deserve to have so good a
-lass for his daughter. Here’s a half-crown to pay
-for the good wine your floor will scarce appreciate,
-and here’s a kiss for yourself. And prithee
-fetch me more drink.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>As the girl turned away, Hugh, for all his hot
-excitement, found wit enough to say softly: “For
-the host’s talk of Roundheads ’twas mere words
-to frighten children.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_73'>73</span>“My boy,” Strangwayes replied, “if you do not
-hold your tongue as to that, I’ll put you on the
-sound horse and pack you off to the next village.”
-Then his face turned cheery as ever, as the maid
-came back with the glass of wine, which he sipped
-slowly, questioning her softly meantime: “What
-hour will these people come, do you know?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“About mid-evening, I heard father say.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“How many?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Only five or six. A grand officer and some
-common men. They were here yesternight and
-before that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Are there any men in the inn save your
-worthy, busy father and his groom?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No others. But they are keeping watch of
-the inn gate and the stairs to the upper story.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes drained off the last of the wine,
-then rose. “Tell me one thing,” he asked, “is
-there any way from the upper floor into the
-stable?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Through the loft above the kitchen.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“It may chance your father and his man will
-be here in the kitchen the next hour; then, if
-you love me, lass, keep up a great clattering of
-your pans. Here, Hugh, take a brace of candles
-and off with you to bed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh went slowly into the common room,
-where sat Emry, to all appearances wrapped in
-pious meditations, and passed firmly up the stairs.
-How the little flames of the candles flickered, he
-observed, and how light and eager he felt; yet
-there was a kind of foolish trembling in his
-knees.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Scarcely within the chamber Strangwayes rejoined
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_74'>74</span>him. “Are you satisfied with this brave
-adventure, my man?” was his greeting.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh nodded. “I know you’ll bring us through
-safe, Dick.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Humph! To do that we need but to slip out
-at a window of the inn. I’ve a better plan, Hugh,
-if you’ll come in with me. We cannot bear off
-our noble white steed and our fleet gray, for to
-ride hence is the surest means to fall foul of these
-Roundheads. Then say we lurk here and, turn and
-turn about, possess ourselves of two of their horses.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“That’s your plan?” Hugh repeated amazedly.
-“Why, yes, of course I’ll follow, if you bid. But
-you must tell me what to do.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“First, here are the brace of pistols from my
-holsters,” Strangwayes answered; “you are to take
-one of them. I grieve I cannot make two of my
-rapier, but ’tis impossible. Now, note you, we go
-to bed—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What do you mean?” Hugh cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No, no, no, don’t pull off your coat yet. To
-the mind of Constant-in-the-Devil’s-Work Emry
-we take ourselves to bed, for we blow out our
-candles, save this one, which I cut down till it
-will burn not above half an hour. And I set it
-where the light will smite through the window.
-Now tread softly and follow me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Outside the chamber the corridor was very
-dark and still, so that the least creak of a board
-was appallingly loud, but there was no other
-noise, save the faint sound of a girl’s singing in
-the kitchen below. Down the corridor they
-passed what seemed immeasurable lengths, till
-Hugh’s knees ached with the slow step, step, to a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_75'>75</span>point where he felt for sheer nervousness he must
-stamp or shout or do something foolish. Then
-he heard the faint squeak of a door, as Strangwayes,
-a black figure in the dusk, swung it gently
-ajar, and he stepped cautiously into a loft, where
-a square of fainter darkness at the left showed a
-window was cut. After a moment he found it
-lighter here than in the corridor, so, groping with
-more confidence, he was presently at Strangwayes’
-heels. Right below he heard the muffled
-voice still singing words that were undistinguishable.
-“That’s a rare wench,” Strangwayes just
-breathed. “And here’s the hole into the stable
-loft. Count sixty ere you follow, or you’ll be putting
-your heels through my skull.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A long sixty it was, but Hugh counted ten
-more to be certain, then, crawling through a low
-window that bruised his head, hung an instant
-by his hands, while he wondered how far it was to
-fall. Just there Strangwayes put his arms about
-him and rolled him over into a pile of hay.
-“Not above a foot to drop, Hugh,” he whispered,
-with a suppressed chuckle, “but an inch is as bad
-as a mile in the dark. For the rest of the way I
-am sure; I used my eyes this afternoon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They quickly slid down from the hay-loft to the
-floor of the barn, and as they went Hugh found
-time, perilous though the moment was, to feel
-half shamed that Strangwayes was taking such
-care of him, as if he were a little boy. The
-lighter square of the opening guided them to the
-stable door, where Strangwayes caught Hugh’s
-arm. “Briskly now; they may be spying from
-the gate. But softly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_76'>76</span>Hugh fairly held his breath in the three quick
-paces across the corner of the courtyard till he
-found the grateful, pitchy darkness of a shed
-around him. He smelt the freshness of new litter,
-heard it rustle about his ankles, and then
-Strangwayes pulled him down beside him amidst
-trusses of straw. “You understand, Hugh,” he
-whispered, “if we stayed in the stable these
-knaves of troopers might mistake us for hay,
-when they came to feed their horses, and the
-mistake would grieve us all. Now here in the
-shed we can lie close till they leave the stable
-under guard of a man or two, and then we will
-follow the fundamental maxim of warfare and
-supply ourselves from the enemy. Unless they
-come first to rouse us in our beds. Look you,
-Hugh, yonder, that little light, is our chamber.
-There, it has gone out,” he added presently.
-“Now, when next we see a light in that room,
-we’ll know they have gone thither and discovered
-our removal, and we must be up and doing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then for a long time there was silence betwixt
-them, while Hugh thought of many things and
-felt the brave pistol under his coat. He tried to
-make out a single star in the misty night that
-was around them, and he strained his ears with
-listening for hoof-beats, till he wearied of it and
-put his head down on his arms. Presently
-Strangwayes took him in the ribs with his elbow.
-“Hugh,” he whispered in an odd, half-jesting
-voice, “have you courage?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“In truth, I was wondering,” Hugh blurted
-out. Strangwayes put his arm about him as
-they lay, and once more many moments ran by.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_77'>77</span>Then suddenly Strangwayes whispered sharply,
-“Hark!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh raised his head, and he, too, caught, far
-off upon the highway, the thud, thud of swiftly
-approaching horses, that slackened in speed but
-grew louder and louder. He felt his heart
-thump shamefully, and, reaching out his hand,
-griped Strangwayes’ coat. Then the hoofs
-sounded right upon them, and there came shouts
-of men and the clatter of horses across the inn
-yard. Through the misty darkness shone a sudden
-light, against which Hugh could see outlined
-the top of the straw-pile. He saw, too, Strangwayes,
-with his bare head uplifted, peer out
-through an armful of the loose straw he held
-up before him, and he heard him whisper: “Six
-men, Hugh. Two are officers, I judge. One
-of them has passed into the inn. The rest are
-heading into the stable.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh pulled himself up on his knees and gazed
-out. There were torches in the inn yard that
-made a half circle of light about the stable door,
-but left the rest black as ever. Men were leading
-horses into the stable, and calling and swearing
-to each other, so they could be heard even
-after the great door swallowed them up. The
-house itself was silent as before, but a moment
-later, and, even as he gazed, from the farther window
-in the upper story a faint light streamed out.
-“Curse them! They need not have gone prowling
-so soon,” Strangwayes rapped out between
-his teeth. “We must make a dash for it. They
-are only five against two.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Both were now on their feet among the straw,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_78'>78</span>and Strangwayes had made a step to the opening
-of the shed, when Hugh caught his arm. “Wait,
-wait, Dick,” he panted, the words instinctively
-saying themselves, “that’s but a small chance.
-Nay, I am not afraid; ’tis only I have a better
-way. With my ragged clothes,—I’ll slip my
-cap under my jacket,—they’ll think me a stable-boy.
-Let me go first into the stable. Perhaps
-I can get a couple of horses out into the court.
-Yes, I am going.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes gave a glance at the lighted window.
-“If you’re beset, call. God speed!” he
-whispered, and Hugh ran out from the shed.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For a moment his eyes were dazzled with the
-sudden light about him, then he blinked it away
-and went forward. He seemed scarcely to feel
-the solid ground beneath him, nor to hear his
-own step, for the pounding of the blood in his
-temples. Yet there was no fear nor any feeling
-within him, only he saw the opened door to the
-lighted stable, and he stepped in boldly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There he halted and of a sudden griped at the
-side of the door to hold himself erect. For just
-before him, saddled, bridled, and all, stood two
-horses, a black and a bay, which he had last
-caressed in the stable of Everscombe Manor.
-Beside the bay loitered a stalwart young officer,
-who at his step glanced up and showed the face
-of Peregrine Oldesworth. “Hugh!” he cried
-amazedly, and the troopers, unsaddling the
-horses at the farther end of the stable, looked up
-at the cry.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh felt his nerves tingle, but with a calmness
-that seemed no part of him he walked into
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_79'>79</span>the stable. “Good even, Cousin Peregrine,” he
-said quietly, though his voice shook a trifle.
-“May I lead out the horses to water?” His
-hands closed on the reins of the bay and the
-black.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What are you doing here?” Peregrine asked
-astonishedly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What I can,” Hugh replied, with growing
-confidence.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You’ve come down in the world, Master Runaway,”
-said Peregrine, and by his look Hugh
-knew he was not sorry that his proud cousin
-should groom his horse. That triumphant look
-strengthening him mightily, he deliberately faced
-the horses about and led them the few steps to
-the door. “I’m down, Cousin Peregrine,” he said,
-with a quick laugh, “but maybe I’ll be up in the
-saddle again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What are you about with the horses?” Peregrine
-cried, with a first realization that all was
-not well. “Halt, there!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For answer Hugh gave a cry of “Dick!” and
-jerking at the bits brought the two horses into
-the courtyard on the run. The beasts were
-plunging and wrenching at their bridles, behind
-him he heard the stamp of men rushing across
-the stable,—all in a second,—then a dark figure
-had sprung out from the shelter of the shed.
-“Look to yourself, Hugh!” Strangwayes shouted,
-and helter-skelter Hugh made a spring for the
-back of the bay horse. He got the reins in his
-hand anyhow and his leg across the saddle, then,
-griping the pommel and the horse’s mane, clung
-for his life as the frightened animal dashed for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_80'>80</span>the gate. Men were shouting and running, he
-heard the thud of another horse behind him, the
-crack of a pistol, then, as he galloped past the
-inn, a casement suddenly swung open. A bar of
-light dazzled in his eyes, and for the fraction of
-an instant he saw the face of Thomas Oldesworth,
-as he leaned out, pistol in hand. He heard the
-report of the shot, and then he flung himself forward
-in the saddle to save his head from the bar
-at the gate.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Now he was out on the highway, the bay plunging
-and leaping beneath him, and groping wildly
-he got one foot into the stirrup. Just then the
-black horse with its bareheaded rider came
-abreast of him, passed him, and Hugh galloped
-blindly at its heels. Well in the rear he heard
-the beat of other horse-hoofs, but he had both
-feet in the stirrups now and the reins in his
-hands, so he turned boldly into the fields behind
-the black horse. There was a dark wall, he
-remembered, that he jumped recklessly, and a
-stretch of rough ground, where he must hold
-his reins taut. There the black slackened pace
-somewhat and Hugh galloped up breathless.
-“We’ll give them the slip yet, will we not?” he
-cried, and then he heard Strangwayes breathing
-in quick painful gasps, and saw he sat drooping
-forward in his saddle. “Dick, Dick,” he almost
-screamed, “sure, you’re not—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay,” Strangwayes panted, “I’m hit.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_81'>81</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER VI <br /> <span class='small'>THE END OF THE JOURNEY</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>For perhaps an hour the black and the bay
-crashed at a fierce pace across the dark countryside.
-Hugh had afterwards a confused remembrance
-of thickets where he must bend his head
-to escape the swishing boughs, of a ford where
-the water flew high as the girths, of a cluster of
-cottages, black and silent in the night. Cleared
-land and highway sped by him hazily, but always
-he had the mist in his face, faint hoof-notes that
-ever grew fainter behind him, and just before him
-the black horse with the piteously slouching figure
-in the saddle. Once and again Hugh had cried
-out to him: How grievously was he hurt? Could
-not he stay to look to it? Each time the terse
-reply had come: “’Tis nothing. Ride on.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But the pursuing horses were at last no longer
-audible; moment after moment passed, and still
-no sound reached them but the echo of their own
-gallop. Slowly the black’s pace sobered to a trot,
-and Hugh rode up knee to knee with his friend.
-“Dick, ’tis not mortal? Tell me,” he entreated.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“‘Not as wide as the church door,’ as saith the
-gentleman in the play,” Strangwayes replied, but
-for all his gay tone Hugh caught in his voice a
-strained note that frightened him; “a mere pistol
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_82'>82</span>wound. That knave in the window gave’t me.
-Why did you not shoot him down?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Twas my uncle,” Hugh replied.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A sweet family you belong to, then,” Strangwayes
-muttered.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I would it had been me he shot. If he has
-killed you—” Hugh gulped out.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nonsense!” Strangwayes answered testily.
-“Ride on, and trouble me with no more such
-talk.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For another long space they rode in silence,
-Strangwayes with his head sunk on his chest and
-his left arm motionless. Hugh pressed close to
-him, lest he fall from his saddle, but he did not
-venture to trouble him with further speech. Thus
-the breaking day came upon them, as they trotted
-through a bit of wet woodland, and Hugh at last
-could see his comrade’s white face, that looked
-gray in the uncertain light, and thought to make
-out a dark splotch upon the back of his coat. At
-the farther verge of the wood, where a small brook,
-flowing across the road, broadened into a pool on
-the right, Strangwayes reined in his horse with
-two or three one-handed jerks at the bridle.
-“You’ll have to try your ’prentice hand at surgery,”
-he said, as Hugh sprang down from the
-bay; “adventures do often entail such postscripts.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Do not make a jest of it,” Hugh answered
-chokedly, and putting his arm about Strangwayes
-helped him to climb from the saddle and to seat
-himself on the brink of the pool. He still kept
-his arm about his friend, and now, feeling something
-damp against his sleeve, he looked closer
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_83'>83</span>and found the back of Strangwayes’ coat was all
-wet and warm. “’Tis here you’re wounded?” he
-cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, in the back,” the other replied, with
-a half-suppressed groan. “A brave place for a
-gentleman to take his first hurt! Draw my coat
-off, gently. Now take my knife and rip off my
-shirt. ’Twill serve for bandages.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Somehow Hugh mastered the nervous trembling
-in his fingers sufficiently to cut away the shirt,
-upon which the broad stain of red showed with
-sickening clearness. Beneath, Strangwayes’ back
-was slimy with blood, and the dark drops were oozing
-from a jagged wound in the fleshy part of the
-left shoulder. Strangwayes, who was sitting with
-his full weight thrown upon his right arm, never
-uttered sound nor winced, but Hugh sank down
-on his knees, and for a moment felt too faint to
-do more than support his friend with his arm.</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“‘O dinna ye see the red heart’s blood</div>
- <div class='line'>Run trickling down my knee,’”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes half hummed, and turned his head
-to look at Hugh. His brows were puckered with
-pain, but there was the ghost of a smile on his
-lips as he drawled, “Why, Hughie, man, methinks
-I be the one to feel sick, not you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Thereat Hugh set his teeth, and, shamed into
-strength by the other’s courage, dipped half the
-cut shirt into the brook and washed the wound,
-tenderly as he was able, then made shift to bandage
-it, as Strangwayes directed. “Well, I’m still
-wearing a shirt,” the latter said, as Hugh carefully
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_84'>84</span>helped him into his coat, “but ’tis not in
-the usual way. You must fasten my coat up to
-my chin, Hugh, and pray none note my lack
-of linen, nor the bullet-hole in the back. What
-a place to be wounded!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The rim of the sun was just showing above the
-eastern trees when they started to horse once
-more. Strangwayes, leaning heavily on Hugh,
-managed to climb into his saddle, and then he
-let his hand rest a moment on the boy’s shoulder,
-while he looked down at him. “So you are
-troubled for me?” he asked dryly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“More than I would be for any man, unless
-’twere my father.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You’re a brave lad, Hugh,” Strangwayes said
-irrelevantly. “I would fain hug you, if I would
-not topple out of my saddle if I tried. I thank
-Heaven ’twas not you got hurt by my fool’s trick
-last night.” Then he put his horse slowly forward,
-so Hugh mounted the bay and came after.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They went at a gentler pace now, by the highway
-or by short cuts through the fields, for Strangwayes
-knew this country well, he explained, from
-his old experience in the king’s army. He kept
-a little in advance, one hand on the bridle rein,
-the other arm limp, and his whole body stooping
-a trifle forward. Hugh realized with a helpless
-pang that his friend was suffering, he dared not
-think how much, nor how it might end, yet he
-was powerless to aid him. Once, when they rode
-through a village where the people were astir
-about their morning business, he begged Strangwayes
-to stop and have his wound looked to, at
-least have drink to strengthen him. But the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_85'>85</span>other shook his head, then spoke with pauses
-between phrases: “They’d not succor me for
-love, Hugh; we are not strong enough to force
-them; and for the rest, I’ve not a shilling to
-soften them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“How?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What I had was none too much to give that
-maid for the saving of our liberty, perchance our
-lives. At least, I rate my life thus high.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And that I could be angry with you for such
-a matter as fooling with her!” Hugh broke out
-penitently.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Tis for a man’s advantage to be friendly with
-all women,” Strangwayes answered in a matter-of-fact
-tone. “Had I sulked in her presence,
-like some haughty gentlemen I know of, we’d be
-tramping the road to a rebel prison now, Hugh.
-That knave Emry! I contrived to reach him a
-crack on the head with the butt of my pistol as I
-rode out, he’ll remember some days.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But after that one burst of everyday speech
-Strangwayes lapsed again into silence, with so
-slack a hold on the reins that Hugh, coming close
-alongside, ventured now and then to put hand to
-the bit and guide the black horse. Lines of pain
-were deepening in the wounded man’s brows and
-about his white lips, and once, as they descended
-a steep pitch abruptly, he only half stifled a groan.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So when they reached the next village Hugh
-took matters into his own hands by pulling up
-both horses before a wayside tavern. “What’s
-to do?” Strangwayes asked listlessly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I am going to get you drink,” Hugh answered,
-and jumping down from his horse entered the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_86'>86</span>tavern and made for the common room. There
-he found a surly tapster, and, trying hard to be
-civil and yet not abject, begged: “Can you give
-me a glass of aqua vitæ? I’ve a wounded friend
-here—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>To which the tapster simply responded:
-“Pack!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh gave back a step or two, and then, with
-the feeling that Strangwayes might be dying and
-he must do something, however desperate, pulled
-out his pistol. “I must have that aqua vitæ,” he
-said quietly. “Either you give it me or I go
-fetch it. Make up your mind.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Instead the tapster drew away to the door,
-bawling for assistance till he roused up another
-man and a maid and the hostess herself. Hugh,
-with his back to the wall and the pistol in
-his hand, felt unjustified and ashamed, but, the
-thought of Strangwayes nerving him, repeated
-his request to the hostess. She fell to rating him
-shrilly for a bullying swashbuckler to frighten a
-poor woman so, and, as the men would not check
-her and Hugh could not use his pistol for argument
-here, she was like to keep it up some time.
-Happily the maid, who had peered out at the
-window, broke in with a glowing account of the
-fine horses and the poor wounded gentleman,
-whereat the landlady, after boxing the wench’s
-ears for gaping out of doors, bounced over to the
-casement. The sight of Dick Strangwayes or of
-the horses must have softened her, for after an
-instant’s gazing she began to rate the tapster and
-bade him fetch what the young gentleman required.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_87'>87</span>When Hugh came out triumphant with the
-glass of spirits he found the rest of the inn people
-gathered about the horses, and the hostess very
-pressingly urging Strangwayes to light and rest
-at her house. She was but too glad to help a
-gentleman fallen on misfortune, she explained,
-especially when the gentleman served the king,
-bless him! His Majesty and all his men had
-passed through there and some of them had lain
-in her house only the night before.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Then we’ll soon be up with your friends,
-Dick,” Hugh urged, trying to speak cheerfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes just nodded, then drank the hostess’s
-health in the aqua vitæ, and with a flicker
-of energy bade Hugh get to his saddle. As they
-left the little knot of staring people behind them,
-he turned his face toward Hugh and, forcing his
-drawn lips into a smile, asked: “You raided
-those inn folk? You’re learning bravely, my
-Spanish Puritan.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he became silent and suffered the gallant
-pace at which he had set out to slacken. The black
-showed a tendency to veer from one side of the
-road to the other, till at last, not above two miles
-from the tavern, Strangwayes dropped the bridle
-rein into Hugh’s ready hand. “You must lead
-the horse a bit,” he said wearily. “I’ll rest me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of those last miles Hugh kept only blurred
-recollections, among which the dazzle of sunlight
-upon the firm road beneath the horses’ feet, the
-sight of men laboring in tilled fields, and the
-smell of moist woods, recurred vaguely. Through
-all the shifting changes of the wayside Strangwayes,
-as he sat bowing over the pommel of his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_88'>88</span>saddle with his pallid face hidden on his breast,
-was alone a living reality.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The long piece of woodland ended at last, and
-across the fields the roofs of a village came in
-sight. To the left horses grazing in a meadow
-whickered to the passing chargers, and then the
-riders trotted slowly in among the houses. There
-was a smith’s shop, Hugh remembered, about
-which lounged men in great boots and buff
-jackets, and before the village inn were more in
-the same attire. Hugh reined up there, scarcely
-knowing what he purposed, but before he could
-dismount a young man with long light brown hair,
-who wore a scarlet sash across his jacket, advanced
-from the inn door. “King’s men?” the stranger
-asked. “Why, what has befallen here?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes raised his chin a trifle, then his
-head sank again. “Who commands?” he asked
-faintly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Captain Dennis Butler.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Tell him, Richard Strangwayes seeks him.
-He—” There the voice trailed off inaudibly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh leaned a little from his saddle and got his
-arm about his friend. Men were hurrying forward
-curiously, but of a sudden they drew aside to make
-way for a thick-set officer with a black beard, who
-came striding through their midst. “On my soul,
-’tis Dicky Strangwayes!” he cried, halting at the
-injured man’s stirrup. “Gad, but you’re come in
-good time! We can give you a bottle of Burgundy
-to crack or a rebel throat to cut—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ah, Captain, if you’ll give me a bed, I ask
-nothing else of you,” Strangwayes gasped out, and
-pitched forward, half into Butler’s arms.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_89'>89</span>They had him off the horse and two of the
-troopers carried him into the house, so speedily
-that Hugh got only a glimpse of his friend’s deathlike
-face. He jumped down, intent on following,
-but the youngish officer with the light hair, paying
-him no heed, walked away and left him to the curious
-troopers. They asked him many questions
-touching Strangwayes and how he had been hurt,
-which Hugh, with eyes on the door by which his
-comrade had disappeared, could only answer disjointedly.
-Presently a man came out and, saying
-that Guidon Allestree had so ordered it, led the
-black and the bay off to be groomed and fed.
-Still unbidden Hugh followed into the stable yard,
-where, sitting down on the shaft of a cart, he stared
-at the inn till he knew every angle of its timbered
-roof. He realized vaguely that men passed him by,
-and one group, loafing near at hand in the shelter
-of a shed, he heard talking loudly together. Once,
-when they were complaining of the lack of liquor
-at this tavern, he was aware that one grumbled,
-“No wonder; Gwyeth’s men lay here yesternight.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Even that seemed not to be personal to Hugh,
-and he still sat staring at the blank inn windows,
-while he wondered to what room they had carried
-Strangwayes. At last he could endure the suspense
-no longer, but taking his courage in his
-hand walked into the house, where, halfway up
-the stairs, he met the light-haired man. “I pray
-you, may I not see Master Strangwayes?” Hugh
-blurted out his business at once.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The surgeon has forbidden it. They have
-but just cut out the bullet, and he is too weak to
-be worried.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_90'>90</span>“Is there—much danger?” Hugh faltered.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay, very little. A mere ugly flesh wound,
-but he has lost much blood and is near exhausted.—Come,
-come, don’t give way like that, boy,” the
-young man added, as a sob of sheer relief escaped
-Hugh. “Your master’ll be sound enough in a
-couple of weeks.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh looked up with his face aflame; because
-his clothes were ragged was no reason that the
-young officer should take him for a horse-boy.
-“Will you be so good as tell Dick I am glad he is
-recovered?” he said slowly. “And give him back
-his pistol here, and tell him since he is in the
-hands of friends I have gone about my own affairs.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So saying he went down the stairs and, without
-a single glance at the light-haired officer, passed
-out into the courtyard. He would not hang about
-the place a moment longer, he vowed, but then he
-reproached himself for deserting Strangwayes and
-had half a mind to go back, when by chance he
-caught sight of the same group of loungers he
-remembered had spoken of Colonel Gwyeth. On
-the impulse he went to them and, questioning
-them, learned that not only had Colonel Alan
-Gwyeth been that very morning at the inn, but
-he was now not above eight miles distant at
-Shrewsbury.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At that Hugh faced about and took the highway
-for the great town. It was not deserting
-Dick Strangwayes now, he told himself, for his
-father would doubtless let him have a horse and
-ride back next day to see his friend, and in any
-case he must go forward, lest his father be off to
-some other part of the country. So during the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_91'>91</span>sunny last hours of the afternoon he hurried along,
-scarcely observing the villages through which he
-passed nor the men on foot or horseback whom
-he met or overtook, in the eager hope at each
-turn of the road that he would come upon Shrewsbury
-steeples. He hardly felt sleepy from last
-night’s long watch, nor stiff with his rough ride, just
-eager and happy. When he thought of Strangwayes
-it was only to be thankful that his hurt had
-not proved mortal, and to be glad that the skirmish
-at the “Golden Ram” had happened. For
-now he could go to his father, not a raw schoolboy,
-but a young gentleman who had been under
-fire; he was just a bit sorry he had not himself
-been wounded.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But when at length he saw the last horizontal
-rays of the sun upon the clustered roofs of
-Shrewsbury, his happy mood seemed to end. It
-was all too good to be true; once before he had
-thought himself almost in his fathers arms and
-he had been deceived. He hardly dared ask a
-countryman if the king were lodging in the town
-yonder, and, finding it true, could not walk forward
-fast enough, lest before he came up his
-Majesty should move away.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Walk fast as he would, twilight was deepening
-when he entered the town, but hordes of people—gaping
-country folk, sober burghers, swaggering
-troopers, gayly dressed gentlemen—made
-the dusky streets lively as by day. Among them
-all Hugh forced a path, jostled and pushed, and
-pushing in his turn. He began inquiring of
-those he met if Colonel Alan Gwyeth lodged in
-the town, and some had not heard the name, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_92'>92</span>some knew such an officer was with the king but
-knew not where he lay. At last he chanced upon
-a foot soldier who directed him for Alan Gwyeth’s
-lodgings to the west gate of the town. Thither
-Hugh tramped to search the neighborhood for the
-house and get cursed for disturbing people, but
-still he persisted in his search, though there would
-creep in upon him a hopeless feeling that it had
-all been delusion from the first and he never would
-find his father.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In the end he got a direction that took him
-out a quarter-mile beyond the west gate to an
-old timbered house that sat close upon the road;
-knocking and making his usual inquiry of a curt
-servant, he found that Colonel Alan Gwyeth
-lodged there. Almost unable to believe it, Hugh
-repeated the words blankly after the servant, then
-stood staring at him without speaking till the door
-was nearly shut in his face. He stayed it with
-one hand, while he asked to see the colonel.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He is hence with other gentlemen this evening;
-I know not when he will return,” was the
-short reply before the door was closed in good
-earnest.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh still stood on the steps, trying to comprehend
-that it was all true; in a few hours his
-father, the tall reddish-haired man, would be
-walking up to that very door. He would see
-him, at last. He went slowly down to the road,
-and then paused; if he walked away his father
-might come, for the evening was already half
-spent. He decided it would be better to wait
-there, so he went up the steps again and sat
-down.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_93'>93</span>At first he had no lack of company; horsemen
-went swinging by, and groups of men, some
-staidly, some boisterously with shouts and songs,
-passed in the road below him. Hugh listened
-with ears alert and as each dark form drew near
-asked himself if that might be the one. Gradually
-as the evening wore on passers-by became
-less frequent and Hugh wearied of starting at
-each new step. He became aware, too, that he
-was stiff with sitting in one position and the
-night was cold enough to make his clothes of
-small protection. He looked up at the sharp
-stars and counted them and picked out those he
-knew. Then he changed his position once more,
-and fell to thinking how good a hot meal would
-taste; he had not eaten food since the supper of
-the night before. And he was tired, too; he
-leaned his head against the railing of the stairs,
-and, just closing his eyes, saw the trees and fields
-of the night ride go by, and saw Strangwayes’
-white face, and saw the face of the tall man who
-used to carry him on his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A great noise of talking made him rouse up,
-wondering dazedly if he had slept. Somebody
-was shouting out a drinking song, and others,
-with voices crisp in the chilly air, were disputing
-together. A torch seemed to glare in his very
-face, and a man, the first of several stumbling up
-the steps, nearly fell over him, and swore at him,
-then dragged him to his feet with a rough, “What
-are you doing here, sirrah?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Rubbing the dazzle of the light out of his eyes,
-Hugh saw five or six men about him on the steps,
-two with torches, who seemed mere troopers, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_94'>94</span>the others finely dressed. “Is—Colonel Gwyeth
-here?” he faltered, with a half hope that the meeting
-might be deferred a bit longer.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Here, Alan, this gentleman has commands for
-you,” some one called, and laughed.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At that another man came briskly up from the
-street and, shoving the others aside, pushed under
-the light of the torches. A man of short forty
-years, and but little above middle height, Hugh
-perceived, in a velvet suit with a plumed hat and a
-cloak wrapped up to his chin. Beneath the torchlight
-his long hair and close-trimmed beard seemed
-the color of gold, and he had blue eyes that looked
-angry and his face was flushed. “What’s to do
-here?” he asked curtly, and a trick of the tone
-set Hugh’s memory struggling for something that
-had long been past. “What do you want of me,
-you knave?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh looked up at the flushed, impatient face,
-and, stammering to find words, wished it were all
-over and these men gone, and he were alone with
-this stranger; then he hesitated desperately,
-“Colonel Gwyeth, if it like you, I am your son.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Somebody laughed foolishly, and another began,
-“’Tis a wise child—” but Alan Gwyeth looked
-Hugh over and then, turning on his heel with a
-curt “The devil you are!” walked through the
-open door into the house. The others tramped
-noisily after him; some one gave Hugh a hasty
-shove that sent him pitching to the foot of the
-steps, and as he recovered himself he heard the
-house-door slammed.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_95'>95</span>
- <h2 class='c017'>CHAPTER VII <br /> <span class='small'>HOW THE WORLD DEALT BY A GENTLEMAN</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>He could get only a broken sleep, because of a
-door that was always slamming; sometimes men
-were laughing, too, but the crash of the closing
-door was louder still, so loud Hugh woke at last.
-“It was all a bad dream,” he said in his thoughts,
-with a lightening of the heart that made him feel
-like his old self. But next moment his hand
-touched the damp boards of the doorway in which
-he was crouched and found them real; across the
-roadway the dim houses, with the mist that comes
-before day hanging over them, were real; and so
-was the blank sky. Then all that had happened
-last night was true: there was a lad named Hugh
-Gwyeth, whose father would have none of him,
-who had not a friend to turn to, nor a penny to
-his name, nor, except for this cold doorway whither
-he had crawled, a place to lay his head. Hugh
-sat up and, as if it were another man’s concern,
-checked it all off dispassionately.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Just then a drunken trooper came reeling down
-the empty street, and Hugh found himself making
-nice calculations as to whether the man’s zig-zag
-progress would plunge him into a muddy
-puddle just opposite the doorway, or bring him
-safely by on the far side. When the fellow
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_96'>96</span>staggered past unsplashed Hugh lost interest in
-him, and began counting the windows of the
-opposite houses, that were slowly lighting up with
-the dawn. Presently a man on a red horse came
-clicking down the narrow way, then two men
-helping a comrade home, then a little squad of
-foot soldiers under a brisk officer; and after that
-townsmen and stray troopers came in greater
-numbers, the doors and windows opened, and the
-day began.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>All the long morning Hugh tramped the streets
-of Shrewsbury, aimlessly, for he had nowhere to
-go. Everscombe was not to be thought of; even
-if he had been at the very gates of the manor
-house, even if his grandfather had found it in
-his heart to relent, the affair at the “Golden
-Ram” would have made forgiveness impossible
-to his kinsfolk. Neither could he go back to
-Strangwayes, who had lent him a horse for which
-his father was to pay; at least the bay would
-compensate for that, but he had no right to ask
-farther kindness which he could never return.
-And then Strangwayes’ new friends had shown
-him out of doors; perhaps Dick would not care
-to have him come back.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With such broken reflections Hugh loitered
-through the town, and now and again, in gazing
-at the swarming men and brave horses that filled
-the streets, tried to forget his miserable plight.
-About noon he stood many minutes in a gutter
-and listlessly watched a great body of horse
-march by. He heard some one say the king was
-going northward on an expedition, and he asked
-himself if Colonel Gwyeth went too, and was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_97'>97</span>troubled an instant till he realized that he had
-now no call to follow.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he let all that pass, and thought only
-that the autumn air was chilly and he was hungry,
-so that though he pulled his belt a notch tighter
-it availed nothing. A man must eat, and out in
-the world food came only by work, he realized;
-and with that he fell to wondering if there were
-any labor to which he might turn his hand. A
-small knowledge of Latin, small skill with a sword,
-and the ability to back a horse,—that summed
-up his accomplishments. Hugh told them over
-with a feeling that either he had not been equipped
-for such a fortune as this, or he had struck out for
-himself long before his education was completed.
-But if he could ride and handle a sword he might
-turn trooper, so, coming in sight of a smith’s shop
-and men, one of whom looked a petty officer,
-lounging about it, he ventured up shyly and, as
-the fellows were in good humor, questioned them
-tentatively, if they might not perhaps care to
-enroll him among them. They only laughed at
-him, and the petty officer bade him run home and
-grow. With his hopes a bit dashed Hugh walked
-away, but, strengthened by having a purpose,
-tramped the town all the afternoon in search
-of employment among the horse soldiery. But
-those he applied to either lost their tempers and
-swore at him, or laughed and chaffed him; and
-the foot soldiers, to whom he finally offered
-himself, were even more contemptuous. “You?
-’Twould need another fellow to bear your musket,”
-the last man he questioned answered him gruffly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>That night Hugh slept in the sheltered corner
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_98'>98</span>of an alley, and two officers, tramping through at
-midnight with a torchbearer, stumbled over him.
-One kicked him, the other, glancing at him, flung
-him a penny before he passed on. When the coin
-fell beside him Hugh did not move, but after the
-torch had blinked out of sight he groped his hand
-along the damp ground, shaking with nervousness
-that he did not find the penny, and, as his fingers
-closed on it, almost sobbed with relief. He sought
-out a bakehouse at once, and sitting on some
-dingy steps opposite waited the hungry hours
-till morning broke, the shop opened, and bursting
-in headlong he could buy his bread. It went
-very quickly, leaving him hungrier than ever, but
-he got no more till next morning, when a gentleman
-paid him twopence for holding his horse.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He had now given over tramping the town, for
-he knew it was useless; he had sought employment
-in every troop in Shrewsbury, and everywhere
-he had been rebuffed. So the most of the
-day he sat on a doorstep and, idly watching the
-street and the sky, tried to forget what life had
-looked like four days ago. When he was ordered
-off the step he loitered slowly out by the western
-gate, and, finding him a snug corner in the lee
-of a shed opposite a wayside alehouse, lay down
-for the night. He was beginning now to get a
-realization of what had befallen, as a man who
-has been stunned recovers consciousness with a
-sense of pain, and he had a feeling that if he
-could have cried a long time it would have eased
-him, but the hard manhood that had been thrust
-upon him would not suffer that nor anything
-which might relieve him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_99'>99</span>Toward morning a noise of loud singing woke
-him. He tried to sleep again, but the singing
-worried him and besides he felt cold and cramped.
-He rose at last to stretch himself, and stepping
-out into the road saw, sprawled across the doorstone
-of the alehouse, a big dark figure that was
-yelling lustily at the sky. “Have you come at
-last?” the fellow cried, “I said to myself,—maybe
-you heard me,—‘Bob, if thou keepst it up time
-enough some mother’s son will come.’ Look ’ee
-here, lad, you’re to do me a kindness. I am quite
-sober, mark you, sober as parson himself, but
-somewhat is amiss with my legs. An you’ll aid
-me to the stable you’ll do his Majesty a great
-service.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There might be a ha’penny at the end of it,
-so Hugh suffered the trooper, as he judged the
-man to be, to lean on him, and they set out
-unsteadily. What with keeping his charge erect
-and looking to the rough highway lest they both
-go down, he paid little heed to the landmarks,
-though once, at a half-articulate order from his
-companion, he swerved over to the left and, keeping
-a dark house on one hand, walked toward a
-dim light. They were just near enough for Hugh
-to perceive it shone from an isolated low building,
-when an armed man challenged them, but at a
-thick reply from the trooper let them go stumbling
-on. The familiar stamp of horses was now
-audible, the light shone clearer, and at last Hugh
-guided his shambling comrade in at the open
-door of a stable. On either hand the uncertain
-light of a brace of lanterns showed rows of dim
-stanchions and tethered horses, before it merged
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_100'>100</span>away into the dark lofts and vast roof. In the
-centre of the stable the lanterns flung a clear
-circle of yellow light, and there four fully armed
-carabineers, seated on kegs or sprawling on the
-floor, were playing at dice. The sound of footsteps
-made them look up, and one half swore,
-while another started as if to sweep up dice and
-boxes. “Does this man belong to you?” Hugh
-asked desperately, for his companion, with his
-florid face suddenly turned melancholy, was leaning
-against the doorpost and blinked at the
-light, but said nothing.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, he belongs to us,” replied one with a
-beard, who seemed the leader of the party, “the
-more sorrow to us.” He threw his dice deliberately:
-“Seven-tray-cinque.—Pitch him down on
-the hay yonder.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nick, how can you use a comrade so?” maundered
-the prodigal, as Hugh helped him across
-the stable and suffered him to roll over on a heap
-of hay.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Be thankful you get no worse. If old Jack
-Ridydale had not shogged off with the troop to
-Chester, you’d get the devil for this; he’s the man
-could give it you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Hardwyn has mind to make himself such
-another,” said one of the younger and less assured
-men.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Jeff Hardwyn is a cursed better soldier than
-ever thou’lt be,” Nick replied concisely, and the
-play went on.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>None took heed of Hugh, so, after a moment’s
-hesitation, he sat down on the loose hay, where
-his drunken friend had fallen sound asleep. He
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_101'>101</span>had no call to linger, but the hay was far softer
-than the ground of the streets, so he sat there
-and listened to the gruff talk of the men and the
-click of the dice. At length he stretched himself
-out, and, watching the dim lanterns flicker,
-he, too, went to sleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of a sudden he was wakened by some one’s
-pitching him roughly off the hay. There was
-dull morning light in the stable now, men were
-feeding and grooming horses, and right over him
-stood a shock-headed fellow, with more of the
-peasant than the trooper still visible in him, who
-demanded, “What beest thou here for?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Twas no harm,” Hugh answered, getting up
-stiffly; he had meant to walk away, but in the
-stable there was at least a roof over him, and he
-hesitated. “I can feed your horse for you,” he
-ventured.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Then run fetch a bucket of water,” the other
-commanded. Hugh caught up the bucket, and,
-hurrying out into the chill of the morning, found
-between the stable and the big house a well where
-he drew the water, as he was bidden. After that
-he fetched more water, brought fodder, rubbed
-down a horse,—it was marvellous the amount of
-work that could be found for an extra pair of
-hands to do. But, weary and faint though he
-was, Hugh labored on bravely, with a special
-effort to satisfy Jonas Unger, the trooper who
-had first roused him, in which he succeeded so
-well that when at last the men tramped away to
-breakfast Unger permitted him to follow along.
-Crossing an open space betwixt the great house
-and the stables, they came out through a hedge-gap
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_102'>102</span>upon a byway and scattered cottages where
-the carabineers were quartered. Hugh slunk into
-the common room of one of these cottages at the
-heels of Unger and the man called Nick Cowper,
-and there, sitting at table, with white lips and
-heavy eyes, found the roisterer he had helped
-home the night before. Bob Saxon, as his mates
-called the fellow, was past much talk this morning,
-and the others were in tolerably good temper,
-so Hugh was suffered to take a share of their
-rations, which he ate on the doorstone. The
-food was coarse, but there was almost enough to
-satisfy him, so, in the hope of earning more, when
-the men went back to the stables he followed
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After a time a curt officer entered the stable,
-and, ordering the little troop to horse, led it away
-to be exercised. Hugh cleaned out a stall and
-had some speech with other ragged hangers-on
-who made refuge in the stable, but, liking the
-company little, soon held his peace and gave heed
-only to his work. About noon the troop returned
-with the horses all sweaty, and a deal of unharnessing
-and rubbing down to be done. Hugh came
-forward to take his share and was removing the
-saddle from Saxon’s horse, when he thought to
-hear mention of a name that made his hands shake
-at their task. Pausing to look up, he saw it was
-a sunburned man with a twist of mustache who
-was speaking: “Ay, ’twas one of the colonel’s
-men brought the tidings. The king has surely
-taken in Chester.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Good news, in truth, Corporal Hardwyn!” replied
-Cowper, whom the man addressed. “And
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_103'>103</span>we tied here to hammer wit into dunder-pated raw
-levies! Ay, ’twas like Colonel Gwyeth to serve
-us such a trick.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh heard no more for the rush of blood to
-his temples; still he could not believe his bad fortune
-had served him such a cruel turn, so, when
-he had put Saxon’s horse into its stall, he went up
-to Cowper and asked point-blank: “An’t like you,
-who commands this troop?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What is that to you, sirrah?” asked Cowper.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Is it—Alan Gwyeth?” Hugh persisted.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, hang you!” replied the man, and boxed
-his ears for asking.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Even as he reeled back with his face tingling,
-Hugh found room in his heart to be thankful that
-he had told no one his name. These knaves must
-never know it was their commander’s son whom
-they had the right to knock about. Perhaps the
-dignity of his family required that he should leave
-the place at once, he reflected dolefully, as he
-groomed Cowper’s horse; but, after all, it was better
-to drudge for his father’s troopers than to beg
-in Shrewsbury streets.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So Hugh stayed on at the troop stables, where
-he groomed horses, and cleaned stalls, and fetched
-and carried with all the strength and readiness
-necessary to please a score of rough masters.
-From day’s end to day’s end it was hard, hateful
-labor with no sign of release. Once, to be sure,
-at the news that the king had returned from Chester,
-something that was half hope and half dread
-awoke in him, for there was a chance that at any
-hour Colonel Gwyeth might come to the stables.
-But soon he learned that his father had gone
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_104'>104</span>foraying to the eastward, so even that small hope
-vanished, and life meant only to work with all his
-strength, sleep on the hay, share the troopers’ rations,
-and through all endure such abuse and brutality
-as they might choose to inflict upon him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was not long before Hugh dropped his old
-methods of classification and grouped men in two
-great divisions: those who struck at you for the
-fun of seeing you dodge, and those who struck to
-hurt you. Of the former class was Bob Saxon,
-who had a certain good nature about him, though
-his horseplay was apt to be rough. He had been
-to the wars in Germany, Hugh gathered from the
-big stories the fellow told, and for that reason
-Hugh felt drawn toward him; at least, Saxon
-knew the land where he had been born, and he
-knew Colonel Gwyeth. “There’s a man would
-take a trot through hell, if he had the word,” he
-once said admiringly of the colonel, whereat Hugh
-felt a feeble thrill of pride, and held his chin
-higher, till Cowper happened along and set him
-to cleaning his boots. Hugh considered there
-was nothing good to be said for Nick Cowper;
-he had an unconscious knack of setting tasks that
-peculiarly unbefitted a gentleman, while at all
-times he was brutal with the fierce roughness of
-a seasoned campaigner, who struck to hurt. To
-be sure, no malice seemed behind his brutality;
-it was merely his way of reducing command to
-terms of the senses, but that gave small remedy
-to Hugh’s skin or to his wounded dignity, when
-Cowper sent him stumbling about his work with
-his lip cut or his nose bleeding.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But Hugh was to learn there were rougher
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_105'>105</span>dealers even than Cowper, when he came into conflict
-with Jeff Hardwyn, the corporal. He was
-one who seldom lifted his hand against any man,
-but when he ordered the troopers obeyed; and
-Hugh, with a feeling that he must not get the
-fellow’s ill-will, jumped to do his bidding and
-called him “sir.” But, for all these poor defences,
-he at last fell under the corporal’s displeasure, by
-such trivial happenings that even looking back he
-did not understand how it had come to pass.
-There had been a day of heavy rains that turned
-the roads to mud, in the midst of which Unger
-sent Hugh tramping through Shrewsbury in quest
-of a man he was not able to find. When the boy
-returned late in the afternoon, drenched and tired,
-he discovered the whole errand had been a mere
-hoax for the diversion of Unger and Saxon and
-the half-dozen others who were loafing in the dry
-stable. “Next time, pray you take a fair day to
-be witty,” Hugh said, trying not to show temper,
-and was starting out to forage hungrily for dinner
-when Hardwyn bade him stop and tighten a buckle
-on his saddle girth. Pulling off his coat, Hugh
-turned to the job, which he found harder than he
-thought, so he did it hastily, then ran out to seek
-his dinner, and, for his late coming, got none at all.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But when he splashed wearily back to the stable
-he suddenly forgot all the petty misadventures of
-the luckless day, for over by the stalls Hardwyn
-was standing with his brows drawn together ominously.
-“Can you not tighten a buckle better
-than that?” he asked, and tapped the saddle at
-his feet with the toe of his boot.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I did it as well as I knew, sir,” Hugh replied.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_106'>106</span>“Well, I’ll learn you to do it better next time,”
-said Hardwyn without temper, and crossing the
-stable picked up a heavy horsewhip.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh thought that the heart had gone out of
-his body, so weak and empty of strength did he
-feel. He had been whipped many times, at school
-and at Everscombe, but he knew this would be different,
-and he was half afraid, yet he did not run.
-Indeed, when Hardwyn took him by the neck of
-his shirt, he looked up and said quietly, “I am
-not going to run away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No, I’ll wager you’re not,” Hardwyn answered,
-and brought the whip stinging down across his
-back.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh heard his shirt rip in the grasp on his
-neck, and he felt a foolish concern over it; he saw
-the loose spears of hay scattered on the dingy
-floor at his feet; and he wondered why, since he
-had not meant to struggle, he had twisted up one
-arm and griped Hardwyn’s wrist that held him.
-He knew that he was counting the blows, eleven
-so far, but he durst not open his lips lest in spite
-of himself he cry out. Were the cuts of the whip
-bringing blood, he wondered? He did not hear
-the strokes, but he counted them by feeling; at
-first each had seemed distinct and left a lingering
-smart, but now his whole back was wincing and
-quivering. He heard Hardwyn draw a deep
-breath and for a second hoped he might stop, but
-there came another slash of the whip. Then, of
-a sudden, it was borne in on him that Hardwyn
-meant to flog him till he cried. Hugh set his
-teeth tight on his lip and only thought, “I will not,
-I will not,” and felt the whip-cuts, nothing more,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_107'>107</span>till the floor seemed blurry and came nearer, and
-his shirt ripped again. Then he heard Saxon’s
-voice: “Don’t kill the lad, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Curse his stubbornness!” Hardwyn panted
-out, and then there were other blows of which Hugh
-kept no count. He only knew that at the last he
-found himself free to reel over against the boards
-of a stall, and, without glancing at the other men
-around them, he looked up into Hardwyn’s flushed
-face a long minute. Then, still keeping hold on
-the stall, he made a step toward the door, but
-Hardwyn picked up the saddle and flung it down
-before him. “Mend that aright now,” he ordered,
-“and, harkee, if ever you bungle another piece of
-work like that, I’ll flay you alive.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Without a word Hugh took up the saddle and
-tightened the buckle. His fingers shook, he
-noted, and once, when he put his hand to his
-mouth, he felt his lip was bleeding where he had
-bitten it. But he had not cried or spoken, nor
-would he; when the saddle was put to rights he
-flung it over its peg, and, still keeping silence,
-walked out of the stable toward the highway.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So long as he was in sight of the men he
-walked with tolerable erectness, but he knew it
-could not last long and he must get away from
-every one, so he struck across the road into the
-fields. There he turned eastward on a course
-that would finally bring him round Shrewsbury
-to the main highway. For eastward lay the village
-where he had left Strangwayes; Dick would
-protect him, he knew, and yet he knew he was
-not going to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>As well walk eastward as another way, though,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_108'>108</span>but he ached from head to foot and his back
-throbbed painfully; so at last, on a bleak hilltop,
-he sat down to rest, and watched the twilight
-close in. A little below him he could see the
-dim roofs of Shrewsbury and the purpling sky
-above. The western star came out first, and, as
-the night darkened, many more showed till he
-lost count of them and turned his eyes to the
-lights of the town. As he gazed thither he
-caught, clear and vibrant on the still air, the note
-of a bell. On the instant the foolish old tale of
-Dick Whittington came back to him: “Turn
-again, turn again.” Then he remembered how
-Lois and he had spoke together the day before
-he set out from Everscombe; and, when he had
-hoped for Whittington’s fortune, she had answered
-that his father would be glad to see him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of a sudden Hugh found himself lying face
-down in the wet grass of the hillside with his fingers
-digging into the turf. If he were only dead, now
-while he still possessed some shred of self-respect!
-He could not go on living, a mere horse-boy,
-everybody’s drudge, with his highest hope to be
-some day a swaggering private trooper, and then
-to be knocked on the head in a petty skirmish.
-It was so piteously different from the soldierly
-life he had planned, but he did not ask for that
-now, only not to be bullied and flogged any
-more.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then that mood passed, and he knew only that
-he was cold in his torn shirt and his back was
-sore so he was loath to move. But the cold at
-last forced him to his feet and set him pacing up
-and down the wet grass; he still loved life enough
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_109'>109</span>to exert himself to keep it. Then he began to
-realize that, after all, he had acted like a child.
-Was this life so much less endurable than that
-at Everscombe? Was it worse to earn his living
-of a gang of brutal troopers than be dependent
-on grudging relatives? If he did get more blows,
-a man must not whimper for that, and he was
-now a man. Neither must a man go crying to
-his friends; rather the thing that best befitted a
-gentleman was to accept the life he had taken up
-and go on bravely.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So, in the early hours of the morning, Hugh
-Gwyeth faced westward and tramped back to the
-stables. Reaching there about dawn, he walked
-in as usual, and taking up a bucket, went to draw
-water. He had a curious sense of not feeling
-ashamed nor abashed, as he thought to feel when
-facing the men once more, but rather proud of
-himself and of more dignity than ever. He had
-no hope, however, of being a hero in the sight
-of the troopers. Some of them chaffed him over
-his beating and his slinking back again. “You
-wanted more of the same, did you?” Hardwyn
-asked dryly, whereat the others laughed. Saxon
-chaffed him too; but later, when Hugh came to
-the cottage for breakfast, he asked him roughly
-if the whip had drawn blood, and then he helped
-the boy to wash off his hurt back.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>By next day every one had forgotten that Hardwyn
-had flogged him, and life went on in its old
-course. Only Hugh took it now as an accepted
-thing; there was no escape, so he would make
-the best of it, do as he was bidden, dodge what
-blows he could, and, what he could not dodge,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_110'>110</span>bear without flinching. He even contrived, so
-long as he could busy himself about the horses,
-to find a sort of negative pleasure in the life.
-To groom and feed and water the great, friendly
-animals did not seem menial, but this made only
-a part of the day’s routine, and Hugh’s pride
-could not yet stoop willingly to cleaning boots
-and fetching beer. The last was the most humiliating
-employment of all; though he might reconcile
-himself to slipping into an obscure corner
-and cleaning the boots of a man who was older
-than he and a better soldier, he felt that to tramp
-a quarter-mile on the highway with a brace of jugs
-and fetch bad beer from an alehouse for a crew
-of peasant troopers could never befit a gentleman.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Late of an October afternoon he was trudging
-back to the stable from such an errand, when he
-met a gay company of horsemen and, to save being
-trampled on, halted at one side of the road
-till they should pass. By chance he glanced up
-and among the riders saw one very young gentleman
-with yellow curls, who wore a fine blue
-velvet suit and a big hat, and bestrode a dainty
-roan mare. Hugh caught his breath and looked
-again, then dodged headlong back from the road,
-in behind a cottage out of sight. Halting there
-a moment he instinctively looked himself over,—ragged
-shirt with the sleeves rolled up to the
-shoulders, ragged breeches stained with mud,
-half-worn boothose, and shoes that were falling
-to pieces. He wondered if Frank Pleydall, in
-his fine clothes, on his good horse, had recognized
-him, and he thought it unlikely. With a
-foolish dread of a second encounter he made his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_111'>111</span>way back to the stable through the fields; the
-going was rough, and he now perceived much of
-the beer had slopped out of the jugs. “I shall
-be flogged for that,” he told himself, and, with
-something that was not jealousy but hurt him
-keenly, he wondered if Frank Pleydall knew what
-a happy lad he was.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But, much as he expected it, Hugh did not get
-a flogging; for when he came into the stable yard
-he found strange horses standing there, and two
-or three troopers he did not know, and his own
-acquaintances looked energetic and on good behavior,
-so much perturbed they did not even rate
-him about the beer. “The colonel is back from
-the eastward,” Unger explained, “and Corporal
-Ridydale is on our shoulders again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He’ll send you packing,” Cowper spoke cheerfully
-to Hugh.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Just then Saxon, riding in, called to Hugh to
-groom his well-bespattered horse, so the boy, eager
-though he was to hear more, must walk away with
-the beast to the open floor of the stable, where he
-fell to work. It darkened and lanterns were lit;
-one was hung from a stanchion, and just beneath
-Hugh saw a stranger standing, a tall, thickset man
-of middle age with a heavy beard, who seemed to
-have an eye for all the business of the stable, and
-at whose word men moved to obey, even more
-readily than they did for Hardwyn. He must be
-John Ridydale, Hugh decided, so he got Saxon’s
-horse betwixt them, and, working briskly, hoped
-he might not be noticed. But presently Ridydale
-stopped giving orders, and Hugh, getting uneasy
-at his silence and looking sidewise at the man,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_112'>112</span>found he was gazing at him with his brows drawn
-together. Hugh feigned to be very busy with
-the horse, but the currycomb moved unsteadily
-in his hand, while he waited, and wondered if
-Ridydale would kick him out of the stable at once
-or let him stay long enough to get his supper.
-Then he heard a heavy step and, looking up and
-finding the corporal beside him, drew back a pace
-warily; but the other griped him by the shoulder
-with a sharp, “What’s your name, lad?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What else?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nothing else, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh had his arm half raised to shield his head,
-but Ridydale did not strike at him, only said with
-something strangely like kindliness, “Come outside
-here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There were horses at the trough by the door,
-Hugh noted, and through the stable yard a twilight
-mist, in which the cottage lights looked
-blurry, was shutting down. They had drawn
-away from any stray troopers, and now, right by
-the hedge, Ridydale, with his grasp still on Hugh’s
-shoulder, halted him and asked, “The rest of the
-name mightn’t be Gwyeth, perhaps, master?”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_113'>113</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER VIII <br /> <span class='small'>THE INTERPOSITION OF JOHN RIDYDALE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>It shamed Hugh afterward to remember how
-overwhelmingly, at that first dim prospect of relief,
-the realization of his friendlessness and degradation
-came over him, till not even sufficient
-spirit was left in him to make his usual evasions.
-“Yes, I am Hugh Gwyeth,” he answered simply;
-“I am the colonel’s son.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he felt the sharp sting of twigs across his
-face, as he pressed his head upon his folded arms
-against the yielding hedge, and his breath came
-stranglingly for a great lump that had gathered in
-his throat and was near choking him. Ridydale
-was patting him on the shoulder, he knew, and
-he heard him say: “Come, come, master, don’t
-go play the woman now. ’Tis all well, I tell you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At that Hugh lifted his head from his arms.
-“Did my father send you to seek me?” he asked,
-eagerly, as the griping feeling in his throat would
-let him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Ridydale hesitated a moment. “I’ll wager he’ll
-be glad enough that I have found you, sir,” he said
-at length. “For now, get you over to the cottage
-where the light shows yonder and bide till I come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“But Saxon’s horse,”—Hugh’s long drill in
-stable duty made him protest.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_114'>114</span>“Hang the horse and Bob Saxon, too!” growled
-Ridydale, with an expletive or so. “A pretty trade
-for your father’s son to turn a hand to!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Still muttering, he strode back to the stable,
-while Hugh obediently made his way, by the
-hedge-gap and the well-trodden path, to the
-farthest of the cluster of cottages that quartered
-the troop. By virtue of his coming from Corporal
-Ridydale he was suffered to enter the low-studded
-living room and sit down on a stool in
-the chimney corner. It was a poor smoky room,
-but with the fire and candle it was warmer and
-brighter than the stable, and there was a home-likeness
-about the children sprawling on the
-hearth, the woman cooking pottage at the fire,
-even about her stolid peasant husband, that made
-Hugh content to sit in a kind of open-eyed drowse
-and watch them. In these hours of negative comfort
-the whole burden of responsibility seemed
-slipped from him, and he neither thought nor
-vexed himself with anticipation, only waited for
-Ridydale.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>All save the cottager’s wife had packed to bed
-in the loft before the corporal returned. Hugh
-heard him outside, rating some unknown trooper
-with bullying volubility, and then he came in,
-grumbling about the mismanagement of Hardwyn,
-who in his absence had got the men out of
-all conceit of obedience. By the time they sat
-down to supper he had almost calmed himself,
-however, and was kindly spoken to the woman
-who attended them and brusquely civil to Hugh,
-who after his vagabond period felt ill at ease,
-even at so poor a board. Ridydale noted all that,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_115'>115</span>and apparently he had made inquiries too, for
-when they were left alone at table he spoke out,
-half angrily and half sorrowfully, “So you’ve
-been drudging in the stables ever since that
-night, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“There was nothing else to do,” Hugh answered,
-and took another piece of bread, with a comfortable
-sense that he could have all he wanted.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Twas hard to think at first it could be the
-colonel’s son,” Ridydale went on, “though I was
-on the watch for you. I heard of that blockhead
-Rodes,—he who bore the colonel’s torch that
-night—how you came unto him. Rodes told it
-for a jest the colonel’s comrades would put upon
-him, but I that had been with him nigh twenty
-years, I had a shrewd doubt there might be some
-truth lay at the bottom of it. So I took it on
-myself to make search, so soon as we returned to
-Shrewsbury. Lord save me, sir, when I used to
-see you, there where we were in Lower Saxony,
-such a well-favored little rascal, I never thought
-to come upon you currying horses for your
-father’s men.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You were in Germany?” Hugh asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Where the colonel has been I have been,
-these twenty years. I went as his man when he
-first crossed to the Low Countries—a proper
-young soldier he was! Then I was back with
-him in Warwickshire, seventeen years agone; it
-seems longer.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Then—you knew my mother?” Hugh asked,
-pushing aside his trencher.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, Mistress Ruth Oldesworth, and a gallant-spirited
-young gentlewoman she was. To leave
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_116'>116</span>her knave kinsfolk so, for love o’ the colonel!
-And she was that kind spoken to all of us that
-followed him. Faith, a man could nigh forgive
-her, even for deserting the colonel so.”
-Hugh broke out.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh rumpled the hair back from his forehead,
-while he strove to grasp the significance of this
-new information. He realized that these last
-weeks there had been in his heart an unphrased
-feeling that his father was cruel, and his mother
-must have suffered much, just as he was suffering.
-Once he had held both parents something
-nobler than human creatures; and latterly his
-mother had seemed more than ever a saint, and
-his father an utter wretch; but now, what was he
-to think?
-Ridydale
-spoke presently.
-Hugh replied, and snuffed the candle
-with his fingers a moment, then broke out:
-Ridydale thoughtfully eyed the fire smouldering
-on the hearth, and tousled his beard with one
-hand.he began at length. “They were both very
-young and high-tempered, and he would have his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_117'>117</span>pleasure. He was stubborn, though I grudge to
-say it of him, and she was not over-patient.
-There was words betwixt them, and that same
-day our troop was sent foraying southward and
-he did not even take leave of her. But he faced
-the troop about ere the sennight were over and
-brought us home at a gallop. And when he
-came to quarters she had taken you and gone for
-England. He never said word of it, even to me,
-save, ‘She might ha’ left me the lad; he was as
-much mine as hers.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Then—he did have some care for me once?”
-Hugh asked; he was keeping his face turned
-toward the fire, away from his companion.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh smiled at the fire, rather tremulously;
-it was dawning upon him that Ridydale, for all
-his formal respect and kindness, was disappointed
-that he did not bear out the promises of his babyhood,
-and he had a doleful feeling that in the
-same way Colonel Gwyeth, too, would always be
-disappointed in him.
-Ridydale
-began again, “and joined ourselves unto King
-Gustavus. For the colonel would not make a
-start to follow his lady; perhaps ’twas stubbornness,
-but he had no word of her since she quitted
-Germany, and he was too proud to go a-begging
-to her, so we just stayed on in the Swedish army.
-Once—’twas the year we fought at Wolfenbüttel—there
-came a gentleman volunteer from England
-with tidings out of Warwickshire, and so we
-learned that she was dead.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_118'>118</span>Hugh blinked at the fire and made no answer.
-Ridydale mused aloud.
-Then, as Hugh still kept silent, Ridydale suggested
-they get to bed, and led the way up the
-steep ladder to the loft. There were two pallets
-in Ridydale’s rough chamber, and Hugh wondered
-impersonally, as he lay down on one, what trooper
-the corporal had violently dispossessed of his
-quarters to make room for him. At the foot of
-the pallet, in the sloping roof, was a small window,
-through which Hugh found, after the candle was
-out, he could see five bright stars and a patch of
-purple-black sky. He lay staring at the stars and
-saw no meaning in them, for thinking busily to
-himself and trying to comprehend that his parents
-had been neither all good nor utterly depraved,
-but just frail everyday human creatures, whom he
-must love and bear with for their humanness.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Next morning he awoke of his own accord, without
-being kicked, and, finding the room empty
-and a sunbeam coming through the little window,
-rose up and went briskly below stairs. Late
-though he was, the woman gave him all the breakfast
-he wanted, and then force of habit took him
-over to the stable.Saxon
-greeted him, and the other men merely pestered
-him with questions but gave him no blows.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With a feeling that it was not yet time to proclaim
-his identity to all, Hugh answered evasively,
-and then, because it was irksome to be idle, he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_119'>119</span>watered one of the horses, and, as Unger had bidden
-him the day before, began patching up a headstall.
-He was sitting on a keg, fumbling with a
-refractory buckle, when Ridydale bore down upon
-him with a fierce,
-Arguing that if he were still a stable-boy Ridydale
-had the right to command him, and if he
-were a gentleman Ridydale’s friendliness had
-given him the right to make requests, Hugh laid
-aside the headstall and went meekly back to the
-cottage, where till dinner time he lounged ingloriously
-on the doorstone. After the noon meal
-Ridydale, very sullen and wrathful, beckoned him
-outside and rated him, respectfully but severely.
-“’Tis not becoming a gentleman like you to fetch
-and carry for those dogs of troopers,” he explained.
-It was so ludicrously like the view of what befitted
-a gentleman which up to a fortnight ago he
-himself had held that Hugh could not help smiling.
-“Methinks ’tis not what a gentleman does but
-how he does it makes the disgrace,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Ridydale shook his head and looked dubious,
-then, coming apparently to a better temper, changed
-the subject by offering to lend Hugh money with
-which to buy fresh clothes. “The colonel will be
-here to-night,” he concluded, “and I’ve a plan to
-wait a good-natured moment and tell him of you.
-I’m thinking he’ll ask to see you, and you should
-not come before him in such rags as these.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But Hugh had had enough of borrowing on
-the chance of Colonel Gwyeth’s making repayment,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_120'>120</span>and he refused the loan; if the colonel
-chose to provide for him, he reasoned to himself,
-he need wear his rags but few hours longer; and
-if the colonel rebuffed him again he would liefer
-have rags than whole clothes and a debt to so
-short-pursed a man as a corporal of carabineers.
-Ridydale fairly let slip his self-control at the boy’s
-obstinate refusal. “If ’twere not for your red
-hair and your trick of setting your lips together,
-I’d doubt if you were a Gwyeth,” he broke out at
-last, and marched away to the stables in some
-temper.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Whereat Hugh felt angry, then grew thoughtful,
-and, reflecting that the man, for all his
-arbitrary ways, had treated him with real kindness,
-wondered if he might not have somewhat
-tempered his refusal. So, when he next saw
-Ridydale, at supper, he tried to talk him into
-good humor by questioning him of his father,
-which much mollified the corporal, and then of
-the troop, and finally of the progress of the war.
-It seemed Colonel Gwyeth’s force had shared
-with Sir William Pleydall’s troop some brisk
-skirmishing about Worcester; Hugh wondered if
-Frank had had the good fortune to be present,
-and sought to get news of the Pleydalls from
-Ridydale, who, when he learned Hugh had acquaintance
-with such gentlemen, looked a trifle
-more favorably upon him. The boy was sorely
-tempted to tell him the story of Dick Strangwayes
-and the skirmish at the “Golden Ram,” but,
-after all, that was a kind of self-glorification that
-would become Bob Saxon better than Hugh
-Gwyeth. So he held his peace, and was thankful
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_121'>121</span>that he had got Ridydale into a mood where, if
-he still esteemed him rather a weak-spirited fellow,
-he did not utterly despise him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But early as next morning it was Hugh’s ill
-luck to destroy whatever good impression he had
-made. Having risen late, he had fetched a bucket
-of water up to the chamber, and, stripped to the
-waist, was bathing himself with much splashing,
-when Ridydale unexpectedly came in. “The
-colonel has granted to speak with me ere noon,”
-the corporal announced his business at once, “so
-you shall speedily—” There he paused, looking
-sharply at Hugh, who stood sidewise toward
-him, then strode over to the boy. “How got
-you those fresh scars on your back?” he demanded.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No matter,” answered Hugh, facing hastily
-toward the speaker.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Ridydale took him unceremoniously by the
-shoulders, and turned him round. “’Twas done
-with a whip!” he burst out. “What means this?
-Have you been flogged?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes,” Hugh replied. “Now have the goodness
-to take your hands off me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Was it done here at the stables?” Ridydale
-persisted. “Answer me, master.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Do you look for me to turn tale-bearer?”
-Hugh retorted.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I look to cut some combs for this,” Ridydale
-stormed. “Though you lack in spirit you bear
-your father’s name, and for that they that misuse
-you shall answer—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I pray you, let it all go,” Hugh interrupted.
-“I have suffered no harm—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_122'>122</span>Ridydale stamped his foot down on the floor.
-“Harm, quotha! Why, you might be a brat out
-of the kennel for all the shame you take from it.
-Tell me, what can befall a man of gentle birth
-that’s worse harm than to be banged by a pack of
-knaves?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh busied himself in pulling on his shirt,
-and made no reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, ’tis time the colonel took you in hand,”
-Ridydale blustered. “You need to be taught
-what befits a gentleman.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he went noisily out of the room, and
-Hugh heard him clatter down the ladder from
-the loft. Looking out at the little window he
-saw Ridydale head for the stables, and he hoped
-the man might not make inquiries there or bring
-any one into disgrace for what had befallen.
-Then, as he turned back to finish dressing, a new
-alarm seized Hugh: what if the corporal, in his
-irritation, should refrain from speaking for him
-to Colonel Gwyeth? But next moment he had
-quite accepted the thought; indeed, he seemed
-all along to have half suspected some miscarriage
-would destroy his faint hope of the last few hours.
-It would only be of a piece with all that happened
-to him since he set out from Everscombe.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So, on the whole, he was surprised when about
-an hour later the cottager’s wife knocked at his
-door with the news that a trooper was below,
-come to take him before the colonel. No, he
-was not excited, Hugh told himself, for he cared
-not what the issue might be; he had twice gone
-so eagerly to meet his father, and each time
-been so bitterly disappointed, that now, whatever
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_123'>123</span>good fortune might be before him, it could awake
-in him no fresh anticipation. Yet, for all that,
-he came down the ladder rather briskly, and,
-when he found himself actually setting forth to
-Colonel Gwyeth’s quarters, felt a thrill of something
-like apprehension.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The bit of walk up the byway and along the
-main road to the great house, the back of which
-Hugh knew so well from his stable days, ended
-all too soon. Still repeating to himself that he
-did not care, he was not frightened, Hugh followed
-the trooper through the doorway; and then
-the door had closed, he was left alone in a dim
-back room, and suddenly he realized that in sober
-truth he was near to trembling with nervous dread.
-He was afraid of that flushed, red-haired man who
-had publicly rejected him; he was afraid of his
-roughness and more afraid of his tenderness, and
-if it had not been for shame at running away so
-ignominiously he would have bolted out of the
-house. Since that was not to be thought of he
-sat down on the window-seat and studied the
-dead leaves and withered flower-stalks of a strip
-of garden outside. Then he looked about the
-room and counted the oak panels in the walls
-and the diamond panes in the windows, but after
-all his eyes strayed to the door opposite, by which
-his guide had left him, and he found himself
-listening to the subdued hum of men’s voices
-that sounded within. Once a single voice rose
-choked and impatient, and immediately after feet
-scurried down the passage outside the entrance
-door. Getting up, Hugh tried hard to stare out
-at the window, but soon found himself facing the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_124'>124</span>door and listening. All within was quiet now;
-indeed, there was not a sound nor a warning when
-at length the door was flung open and Ridydale
-himself beckoned him to come in. “Don’t be
-afeard, sir,” he said under his breath as Hugh
-passed him, and even in the midst of his own
-agitation Hugh noted that the corporal’s face was
-anxious and his manner subdued.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No prompting, Corporal Ridydale,” interrupted
-a stern voice that Hugh remembered. “Come
-hither, sirrah.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh halted where he was, a few paces from
-the door, and looked toward the fireplace. Before
-the hearth Colonel Gwyeth was standing with his
-hands behind him; the set of his lips could not
-be judged because of his thick beard, but his
-brows were contracted so his eyes looked black
-beneath them. “So this is my son,” he began
-more quietly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh bowed his head without speaking; for
-the moment he dared not trust his voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Come, come, hold up your head, man,” the
-colonel broke out impatiently; and then, with a
-visible effort to maintain his quieter tone, “Why
-have you not come to me ere this?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I did not court a second rejection, sir,” Hugh
-answered, with a steady voice, though his hands
-were crushing his cap into a little wad.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“There was no need of a first rejection, as you
-call it. You could have spared us both all this
-shame had you chosen a proper time and place
-to seek me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I had come some miles and I was eager to
-see you,” Hugh answered slowly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_125'>125</span>“Had they used you ill at Everscombe that
-you ran away?” the colonel broke in.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“N-no, sir,” Hugh must admit in simple justice.
-“My grandfather always used me rather kindly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Gilbert Oldesworth?” Colonel Gwyeth turned
-impatiently from the fireplace. “’Twas of him, I
-doubt not, you had your good Roundhead doctrine.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I—do not understand, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The doctrine of giving your cheek unto the
-smiter. That cut on your face, now, was that,
-too, given you by one of my grooms?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh felt the blood sting in his cheeks; he
-looked at his father but made no answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Perchance, sir—” Ridydale ventured in a subdued
-voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Be quiet, John.—I have heard the whole history
-of your last fortnight, Hugh Gwyeth, your
-honorable associates, your gentle bearing, all you
-have done to uphold the credit of your house.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“On my soul, sir, you do the lad wrong,” Ridydale
-struck in rashly. “Though his way be not
-your way, he is but young and—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Hold your tongue, John Ridydale!” the colonel
-cried, banging his fist down on the table beside
-him. “And for you, sirrah Hugh, if you
-have aught to say for yourself, say it out now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I know not why I should defend myself, sir.”
-Now they would hark to him at last, Hugh was
-amazed to find how hot and thick his words
-came. “I know not what I have done shameful,
-unless it becomes a gentleman better to starve
-than to work for his bread.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You have only done this much, that you have
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_126'>126</span>bitterly disappointed me,” Colonel Gwyeth answered
-sharply. “For my gallant young gentleman
-I had thought on, those crop-eared kinsmen
-of mine have sent me a snivelling young Roundhead—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“For my hair, that is not my fault,” Hugh
-blurted out, “and for snivelling, you have no
-right to put that word to me. You may ask any
-one—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Colonel Gwyeth swept back one arm with an
-impatient movement that sent some loose papers
-from the table crackling to the floor. “Can you
-not understand now what you have done?” he
-cried. “When you ran away from your school
-you looked for me to make a soldier of you, did
-you not? Tell me now, how can I set over my
-troopers a fellow their whips have lashed?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For the moment Hugh found no words; the
-full significance of his father’s speech, the totally
-new view of his weeks of discipline, dismayed
-him beyond reply. With it all came a
-feeling that he was bitterly sorry that the matter
-had gone amiss; in time he might have
-come to like the red-haired man, who was disappointed
-in him, and the red-haired man might
-have come to like him. Even yet it was possible
-he might win the colonel’s favor, if he could show
-his mettle, if he were only given a chance! Then
-he heard Ridydale venture, “An’t like you, sir—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Enough, Jack,” the colonel replied, with a
-poor assumption of a casual tone. “I want you
-now to take Master Hugh here and get him fitting
-clothes and a steady horse. By to-morrow
-night I shall have procured a pass—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_127'>127</span>“What mean you to do with me?” Hugh cried
-out, making a step toward his father.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I am going to despatch you back to your
-kinsfolk at Everscombe.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There was an instant of silence; then, “You
-hold me so mean-spirited a fellow that you will
-not keep me with you?” Hugh asked slowly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Your ways suit your Puritan kindred better
-than they suit me,” Gwyeth answered, fumbling
-among the papers on the table. “’Tis too late
-now for me to mend what they have marred. So
-I shall furnish you with a horse and clothes—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I did not come out of Warwickshire to beg a
-new coat and a nag of you.” As he spoke, Hugh
-half turned away to the door and he perceived
-now that Ridydale was violently signing to him
-to be quiet and stay where he was. He did not
-heed, but, stepping to the door, laid his hand on
-the latch. “And I shall not go back to Everscombe,
-sir,” he finished his speech deliberately.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Tut, tut! You are too old for such childishness,”
-answered the colonel, with exasperating
-contempt.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I will not go to Everscombe,” Hugh repeated.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Do you turn saucy, you young crop-head?”
-replied Colonel Gwyeth, letting slip his assumption
-of calmness. “You will do as I bid you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You have no right to say ‘do this’ unto me,”
-Hugh flung back. “And I want nothing of you,—nothing
-that you have offered me. I had rather
-get my head broke in a troop stable twenty times
-over. But I’ll leave your stable. And I’ll never
-trouble you more, sir, with coming unto you,
-unless you choose to send for me again.” All
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_128'>128</span>this he said fast, but without raising his voice,
-and throughout he kept his eyes fixed on the
-colonel, who stood with his clinched hand resting
-on the table, and a black look on his face. But
-Hugh gave him no time to answer, just said,
-“Good morrow, sir,” with much dignity, set his
-cap on his head, and walked out of the room.
-He took great pains to close the door carefully
-behind him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Once outside upon the highway, he became
-aware that his face was burning hot and every
-fibre of his body seemed braced as for actual
-battle. Heading blindly toward Shrewsbury he
-tramped along fiercely, while he went over and
-over the incidents of the last half-hour. If any
-man but his own father had dared speak so contemptuously
-and so untruly of him! No, if it
-had been another than his father, it would not
-have mattered. But that Colonel Gwyeth, of all
-men, should hold him such a miserable fellow,
-and give him no chance to prove himself better!</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Just then he heard behind him Ridydale’s
-voice: “Master Hugh! Stay a moment, sir.”
-The corporal had plainly run from the house,
-but, so soon as Hugh halted, he sobered his
-pace and came up at a more dignified gait.
-“On my soul, sir, I meant not to put all awry,”
-he broke out at once.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Did you bear the tale of that flogging unto
-him?” Hugh asked hotly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay. But not as you think, sir, on my honor.”
-Ridydale strode at Hugh’s side while he poured
-out the story: “I had taken me to the stables
-and dragged the truth from the knaves there.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_129'>129</span>Well, I’ll settle that score with Jeff Hardwyn.
-I was hot with it all when I came to the
-colonel, and he bespeaks me very careless and
-cool, if ’twas his son indeed, belike in time, and
-so on. I might ha’ known ’twas but the way of
-him and he would yet make it right, but I blurted
-out he’d best move quickly for his son’s sake, not
-leave him to be buffeted by every cullion in his
-stables. Well, he got the whole story of me then,
-sir, and off he goes into one of his fine Gwyeth
-rages, and packs off Rodes after you, and rates
-every one in the house on whom he can put
-hands until you come. And I left him in such
-another rage. Why in Heaven’s name did you
-go about to defy him so, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Because he drove me to it,” Hugh retorted,
-and pressed on with his face set to the front.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, no one is driving you now that you keep
-such a pace. Whither are you going, an’t like
-you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Shrewsbury. To seek in all the troop stables
-till I find those who will employ me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay, nay, lad, come back with me, if you have
-it in heart to forgive me. On my soul, I meant
-not so to dash your fortunes. By the Lord, I’ve
-a liking for you, sir, in spite of your meek bearing.
-And I doubt not your father would see
-there was some good in you, in time. Only come
-back, and mayhap he—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Before I’d beg of Colonel Gwyeth now, I’d go
-carry a musket for a common foot soldier,” Hugh
-answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, you’ve not your father’s spirit,” Ridydale
-jerked out impatiently.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_130'>130</span>Hugh turned on him: “I trust I’ve not. I
-trust I’ll never live to cast off a son of my own.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At that Ridydale stared blankly, then stopped
-short and burst out laughing. “By the Lord,
-you are the colonel over again, sir, whether it like
-you or not! My faith, and he does not realize it
-even now, no more than I did. Why, there’s
-mettle in you, sir, after all. Now come back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But Hugh very plainly showed his whole intent
-was turned to Shrewsbury, so at length Ridydale
-abruptly yielded. “I’ll come along with
-you,” he offered. “Very like I can find employment
-for you there, sir. If you care to trust
-unto me—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, and I thank you too,” Hugh answered,
-touched for the moment, till he remembered that
-Ridydale cared for him only as he would have
-cared for a dog, had it borne the name of Gwyeth.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After that they trudged on in silence, past the
-huddled, outlying houses, through the west gate
-of Shrewsbury, and so into the crowd and confusion
-of the garrison streets. It was somewhat
-past noon, Hugh judged by the position of the
-sun, and then the sun was shut out, as they turned
-into a narrow byway where the mud was deep in
-the shadow of the tall houses. “This has not
-much the look of a troop stable,” Hugh suggested,
-as Ridydale halted and knocked at the dark rear
-door of what seemed a considerable mansion.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But Ridydale was speaking a word aside to the
-serving man who opened, and paid no heed.
-Presently he stepped in, bidding Hugh follow,
-and then, leaving him alone in a dingy anteroom,
-he walked away with the servant. Seating himself
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_131'>131</span>on a bench by the wall Hugh tried to run
-over the morning’s events, and then to put them
-by and think only of what was before him: stable-boy,
-trooper one day, perhaps. Only it was not
-a good thing to hope forward to, so he drummed
-his finger-tips on the bench and wondered why
-Ridydale delayed.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Just then there came a quick, light step outside
-the inner door. “Where is he?” a shrill voice cried.
-The door was kicked open, and there plunged in
-headlong a slim figure in blue. “Hugh, you scoundrel!
-Where have you been? Why did you not
-seek me out at first? Hang me if I be not glad
-to see you, old lad.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Frankie Pleydall!” was all Hugh could get
-out for the arms about his neck that were near to
-strangling him.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_132'>132</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER IX <br /> <span class='small'>THE WAY TO WAR</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>“That was friendly conduct of you!” Frank
-Pleydall, having ended his last hot tirade, suffered
-himself to fall back once more with his shoulders
-against one arm of his big chair and his legs hanging
-over the other. “I take it, had not that tall
-corporal of yours come hither and opened up the
-matter to us, you’d have gone sweat in a stable,
-eh? On your honor, Hugh, did you enjoy the
-life?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Would you?” Hugh retorted, and then, as
-he looked at Frank’s curls and fair skin, the
-impossibility of his going through such experience
-came home to him. He shrugged his shoulders
-and, turning to the mirror, went on dragging the
-comb through his rebellious hair, rather slowly,
-for to be cleanly and freshly clad was an unwonted
-sensation, to enjoy which he was willing to dally
-a trifle in dressing. From time to time he paused
-to glance at Frank, who lounged and chatted, just
-as he had done in the old days at school, or to
-look about the dark room, with great bed and
-heavy furniture, that recalled to him his grandfather’s
-chamber at Everscombe. After all, he
-still felt at home in well-ordered life; “outcast”
-was not stamped upon him for all time. In
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_133'>133</span>Frank’s stockings and shirt, which was rather
-scant for him, and a certain Cornet Griffith’s gray
-breeches, and another officer’s half-worn shoes,
-swept up in the general levy Frank had made on
-the nearest wardrobes, he thought himself for a
-moment the same young gentleman who had left
-Everscombe a month before. Then, chancing to
-meet the blue eyes that looked back at him out
-of the mirror, he realized this was not the face
-he used to know; this face was thin, so the jaws
-seemed squarer, and there was a firmer set to
-the lips, and a new depth to the eyes. A slight
-cut on one cheek and a bruise above one eye
-he noted, too, without great resentment against
-those who had given them; such marks would
-pass quickly, he knew, but the endurance and
-obedience he had acquired with them would
-remain.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I should think it would pleasure you to study
-that well-favored face,” Frank chuckled lazily.
-“When you’re done, sir, get on your coat, and
-I’ll take you to my father.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh pulled on Cornet Griffith’s gray jacket,
-which was somewhat too large for him, and stood
-turning back the long sleeves. “What a tall
-fellow you seem!” his comrade broke out, bringing
-his feet down to the floor and sitting forward
-in his chair. “On my conscience, I could swear
-you were more than six months elder than I.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“So could I,” Hugh answered thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, for all that you are not to treat me like
-a boy as the other men do; you’re nothing but
-a lad yourself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh laughed, and put his hand down on
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_134'>134</span>Frank’s shoulder. “We’ll be good comrades as
-we ever have been,” he said. “I shall never forget
-how kindly you have used me this day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Oh, hang all that!” Frank put in hastily.
-“You’d do the like for me. And ’tis pleasure
-for me to have you with me. You can share my
-chamber,—there’s space enough for one to be
-lonesome,—and we’ll go to the wars together,
-eh?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The realization of part of the boyish plan he
-had brought with him from Everscombe pleased
-Hugh gravely, but he had been too often disappointed
-to clutch eagerly at any hope, so he
-only said, “I’d like it right well,—if your father
-wish me to stay.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“If I wish it, he will,” Frank answered confidently,
-and so they went arm in arm down the
-stairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Large as the house was, Sir William and the
-officers of his troop contrived to fill it only too
-full, Hugh concluded, after Frank had haled
-him, to his great embarrassment, into several
-rooms, and presented him formally to all the men
-on whom he could lay hands. Of the number he
-best remembered a dry-spoken Captain Turner,
-who told him, with an implication that made
-Hugh’s face redden, that he ought in justice to
-notify the rebels that he had joined the king. He
-remembered, too, a long-legged Cornet Griffith,
-whose boyish face at sight of him took on such a
-rueful look that Hugh suspected the loan of the
-gray clothes had been a forced one. He ventured
-a private expostulation to Frank, who merely
-laughed: “Oh, Ned Griffith is a cousin of mine,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_135'>135</span>so he ought to be glad to lend me his goods.—And
-here I have found my father out at last.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With that he dragged Hugh by the sleeve into
-a retired parlor, where Sir William Pleydall, a
-stout florid man of near sixty, was sitting at a
-table dictating to a secretary. “Here is Hugh
-Gwyeth, sir, of whom Colonel Gwyeth’s corporal
-told you,” Frank announced. “You’ll entertain
-him as a gentleman volunteer, will you not,
-sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Will you be silent, Francis, till I have done
-with this piece of work?” Sir William burst out.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Frank knelt down on a chair with his elbows
-on the table and his chin in his hands, so the
-candlelight fell across his girlishly fair face. “I
-am right sorry, sir,” he began winningly, “I did
-not mark you were busied. I had thought—you
-would gladly aid a friend of mine. Have I
-offended you greatly, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No, Frank,” Sir William answered hastily, and,
-putting by the papers he held, motioned Hugh to
-come over to him. “I remember you very well,
-sir,” he began. “You were home with Frank one
-Michaelmas time. So you ran away from that
-school? ’Twas very well done of you. That
-man Masham is a cozening, foul-mouthed knave
-of a crop-headed Puritan.” Sir William’s face
-flushed and Frank made haste to change the subject.
-“You promised me Hugh should stay with
-me, sir, you’ll recollect.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“If he care to,” Sir William made answer. “You
-look sober enough, Master Gwyeth, to keep my
-lad in proper behavior.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I would gladly serve you, Sir William, in any
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_136'>136</span>way I could,” Hugh said earnestly. “I think I
-could fight—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Sir William began laughing. “Call yourself a
-gentleman volunteer, if ’tis any satisfaction to
-you,” he said, and seemed about to end the conversation;
-but, after a second glance at Hugh,
-asked abruptly in a lower tone, “Between ourselves,
-sir, what vice was there in you wherefore
-your father would not entertain you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I did not chance to please him,” Hugh answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“But you are his only son, are you not?” asked
-Sir William, looking, not at Hugh, but at Frank,
-who was still kneeling by the table.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, Sir William,” Hugh replied, with his eyes
-suddenly lowered.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The baronet was silent a moment, then, “Stay
-with us as long as you please, my lad,” he said in
-a kinder tone than he had yet used, and with that,
-abruptly taking up his papers, turned again to his
-secretary.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh came out in silence from the little parlor,
-and for a time, while he enjoyed the realization
-that he had not lost a boy’s capacity for feeling
-happy and hopeful, could make no reply to Frank’s
-brisk chatter. But, before the evening was over,
-he made amends to Master Pleydall, for, snugly
-settled in a window-seat with his friend, he
-recounted to him not only the distinctions he
-hoped to win in the war, but all that had befallen
-him in the last six months. Frank, hugging
-his knees in his excitement, wished audibly
-he had been with Hugh to run away; two days
-without food seemed so slight a thing when told.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_137'>137</span>But Strangwayes’ share in events surprised him
-enough to make him leave clasping his knees and
-sit up straight: “Met my Cousin Dick? What
-good fortune for you! He used to be a gay kindly
-fellow, the best liked of all my father’s nephews.
-What manner of man is he grown now?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh’s eager account made Frank look dubious.
-“Very like when he comes again you’ll not
-wish to be my comrade any more,” he suggested
-jealously.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You’re somewhat of a fool, Frank,” Hugh
-answered candidly. “Tell me now, have you had
-news of Dick of late?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, he’s still with Butler’s troop; we only
-learned that on coming out of Worcestershire
-two days back. He is but just recovered from
-his wound and fever—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Do you think, Frank,” Hugh interrupted,
-“to-morrow we might walk over to the village
-and see him?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I take it you’ll not,” Frank retorted. “Where
-have you kept yourself from the news? To-morrow
-we march southward to flay the skin off
-that old fox, the rebel Earl of Essex. We’ll make
-short work of him, and then—” he trailed off
-into an exact exposition of the way the war would
-go, which ended only at bedtime.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Next day, as Frank had promised, in a keen,
-clear weather that made the throngs of troop-horses
-prance and gave a vividness to every bright
-coat and sword-hilt, the southward march began.
-Hugh, riding forth bravely with Frank, Captain
-Turner, and others of Sir William’s officers, felt
-he could have shouted for mere pleasure in the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_138'>138</span>sight of the plunging horses, the troops of men,
-and the throngs of friendly townsfolk that lined
-the streets of Shrewsbury. In every fibre of
-him was a bracing sensation, not only from the
-crisp air and the sunlight, but from the mere feeling
-of the horse moving beneath him and the
-ordered motion all about him of men and beasts.
-Now first it came over him that, even if he might
-not serve with his father, he was glad that he was
-one of his Majesty’s great marching army, bound
-to fight for the king.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At the east gate, by which all must pass, horses
-and men were wedged thickly, so presently Hugh
-found himself forced to one side of the gateway,
-where his progress was checked. An ammunition
-wagon had broken down and blocked the way
-ahead, the word ran through the crowd, whereat
-some men swore, and others, laughing, took the
-delay merrily. While they were waiting thus,
-an officer with one trooper attending rode headlong
-into the thick of them and there stuck fast.
-“You’ll need slacken pace, sir, you’ll find,” Turner
-called to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’ve no wish to show my steed’s quality,” replied
-the other. “But I’d fain be with a troop
-of mine that’s somewhere ahead on the road ’twixt
-here and Staffordshire.” He impatiently thrust
-back the flapping brim of his felt hat, and Hugh
-was made sure of what he had guessed by the
-voice, that it was Colonel Gwyeth himself.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At first he felt a kind of trembling, which was
-foolish, he told himself; for he no longer feared
-the man. So he did not even try to urge his
-horse forward, but suffered the beast to keep his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_139'>139</span>stand, while he gazed fixedly at the colonel. All
-through the press ran a swaying motion, which
-soon forced Colonel Gwyeth, still in loud speech
-with Turner, knee to knee with Hugh, and at the
-touch he faced toward him. Hugh felt a thrill
-go through him, but he looked his father squarely
-in the eyes and, lifting his hat a trifle, said, “Good
-morrow, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“In the name of the fiend!” Gwyeth broke
-out; he had to turn in his saddle to say it, for
-the movement in the throng had now brought
-him level with the nose of Hugh’s horse. “Well,
-sir, you seem fully able to fend for yourself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So he was swept away, and next instant Ridydale
-following him was up alongside. “’Tis all
-well, Master Hugh?” he asked in a low tone as
-he brushed by.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, thanks to you,” Hugh replied, and then
-Ridydale was forced away, so he lost him in the
-ruck of horsemen. After that he gave heed only
-to edging his own beast forward till they were out
-upon the highway, where they found the road so
-nearly choked with the riders of their troop, which
-they presently overtook, that a swift pace was still
-out of the question. This was somewhat of a
-relief to Hugh, for the borrowed sorrel which he
-bestrode was of no great speed, and made him
-think sadly of the bay horse he had ridden on the
-headlong dash from the “Golden Ram.” Frank,
-however, who was capitally mounted on his roan
-mare, The Jade, so named for her wretched temper,
-lamented all the morning that he had not
-space sufficient to show his steed’s fine paces.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>About noon, as they passed through the village
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_140'>140</span>where Hugh had met with Butler’s troop, he
-coaxed Frank out of the ranks and, with an eager
-hope of seeing Dick Strangwayes again, headed
-for the inn. But the place was filled with thirsty
-troopers, so the tapsters were too busy to pay
-much heed to the boys till Frank tried bribery.
-Then they learned that the day before Butler’s
-dragoons had started southward to capture some
-arms at a Puritan country-seat; and, though he
-looked scarce fit to ride, the gentleman who had
-lain ill at the house had gone with them. “Well,
-Cousin Dick must be a hardy fellow,” said Frank,
-as the two boys got to horse again. “Though, to
-be sure, all the gentlemen of our family are.” He
-flung out his chest as full as possible while he
-spoke, and presently got his hat tilted over one
-ear at a swaggering angle.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Thus the march went on, by south and east,
-over ground Hugh had already once ridden at a
-time that now seemed immeasurable years behind
-him. He had let his life at Shrewsbury and his
-father’s rejection of him slip backward in his
-memory, till now he found himself living heartily
-in the present. Existence meant not to worry at
-what was past, but to sleep in an inn bed or on a
-cottage floor, whatever quarters fell to the troop,
-to eat what fare Sir William’s officers could procure,
-and through all, wet or dry, to ride on
-whither the king led.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Very early in the march they entered the hamlet
-of the “Golden Ram,” where Hugh, as he held
-it to be his duty, sought out Sir William and laid
-before him the story of Emry’s treachery. The
-baronet, after some moments of explosive swearing,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_141'>141</span>sent men to apprehend the fellow, and bade
-Hugh go to guide them. But when they came to
-the inn they found that at their approach Constant-In-Business
-Emry had discreetly removed, and
-there was left only the red-cheeked maid with the
-black eyes, who joked and flirted with the troopers
-while she drew them ale. At first she did not
-recognize Hugh, and, when she did, seemed to
-take little interest in him; but, as the men tramped
-out, she ran after him, and catching his arm asked
-him in a whisper how the dark gentleman fared,
-and if he had been hurt in the scuffle. The
-news of Dick’s illness made her half sniffle, which
-touched Hugh so that, having no money to give
-her, he tried his friend’s tactics and kissed her.
-Whereat the wench, after a feint at boxing his
-ears, darted back to the door of the common
-room, where she paused, laughing shrilly. “Ride
-away, my lad,” she called after him. “It takes
-more than jack-boots and spurs to make a man.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh went back to his horse in some mortification;
-it might be well enough for Dick Strangwayes
-to be on good terms with all women, but
-he had no will to meddle farther in such matters.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Yet, scarcely a week later, he found himself
-seated at a table in a stuffy chamber, trying by
-the flicker of a guttering candle to blot out a
-letter to a girl. For the army was now among
-the Warwickshire fields, and the sight of home
-country brought back to Hugh’s thoughts Everscombe
-and the good friend he had left there. So,
-while Frank jeered from the bed about his sweetheart,
-and urged him to put out the candle and lie
-down, Hugh, sitting in his shirt-sleeves, painfully
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_142'>142</span>scrawled some ill-spelt lines to Lois Campion.
-Much had happened that would only make her
-miserable to know, so he spoke little of his father,
-only told her he was well and happy, and, as Colonel
-Gwyeth could offer him no place in his troop, was
-serving with Sir William Pleydall. He sent his
-duty to his grandfather, too, and his obedient
-faithful services to her.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Just there Frank sat up in bed, and, throwing a
-boot at the candle, contrived to overturn the ink-bottle.
-Shutting his lips, Hugh mopped up the
-stuff, then, still without speaking, began to undress.
-“Now you’ve lost your temper, Master
-Roundhead,” Frank teased; but Hugh held his
-tongue till he had blown out the candle and
-stretched himself in the bed, then said only,
-“Good night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He was almost asleep when Frank began
-shaking him. “Hugh, prithee, good Hugh,”
-he coaxed, “are you truly angry? Pray you,
-forgive me, Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Don’t I always?” Hugh answered, half waked.
-“Go to sleep, Frank.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So they began next morning on as good terms
-as ever, and before night had barely avoided two of
-those quarrels which Frank made a daily incident
-to friendship. But by the following sunrise even
-Frank was too busied with other matters for such
-diversion. “The rumor’s abroad that we’re to
-bang old Essex soon,” he broke out, as he and
-Hugh rode a little before Sir William’s troop
-along the stony Warwickshire road.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“We’ve been going to ever since we left
-Shrewsbury,” Hugh replied. “I hope—Perhaps
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_143'>143</span>if I did somewhat in battle some one would bestow
-a commission on me; I’d like not to tax
-your hospitality longer.” Then he repented of
-the last as an ungracious speech.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But Frank, without heeding, ran on: “I hope I
-shall get a share in this work, and I will, if I lose
-my head for it. You’ll understand, Hugh, my
-father let me have no share in the fighting in
-Worcestershire; they left me at home when they
-went out to Powick Bridge. On my honor,
-Hugh, I wish sometimes one or two of my sisters
-had been boys. ’Tis a fine thing, no doubt, to be
-sole heir to a great property, but a man would
-like a little liberty now and again, not to be ever
-kept close and out of harm like a girl. Now I’ll
-lay you any amount of money my father will
-strive to keep me from this battle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh did not look properly sympathetic, so
-Frank added pettishly: “And he’ll rate you no
-higher than me, so if you are to have a hand in
-the fighting and get you a commission, you must
-look to yourself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>None the less Hugh cherished a suspicion that
-if a battle took place under his very nose he
-would be aware of it, and in that hope he went
-trustingly to sleep next night. Sir William’s
-troop was quartered about a small manor house,
-some three miles to the west of Edgcott, where
-the king lay. Hugh noted the place merely as
-one that gave comfortable harborage, for he and
-Frank were assigned a chamber to themselves,
-where they went promptly and wearily to bed.
-But barely asleep, as it seemed, a troublesome
-dream disturbed Hugh; he thought himself back
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_144'>144</span>in the Shrewsbury stables, where the horses had
-all turned restless and stamped unceasingly in
-their stalls. Then of a sudden he sat up in
-bed, broad awake, just in time to see the door
-kicked open, and Griffith, with his coat in one
-hand and a candle in the other, stumble in. “Up
-with you, youngsters!” he cried. “Essex is
-coming.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Essex?” Frank whimpered sleepily. “We’ll
-kill him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Leave us the candle, Cornet Griffith,” Hugh
-cried, springing up and beginning to fling on his
-clothes. “How near are the enemy?” His teeth
-were chattering with the cold of the room and a
-nervous something that made his fingers shake.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The Lord knows!” Griffith replied, struggling
-into his coat. “The word to get under arms has
-but just come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Where is my other stocking?” Frank put in
-piteously from his side of the bed. “Hugh, have
-you seen it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Stockings!” the cornet ejaculated. “There’s
-a fellow would wait for lace cuffs ere he went to
-fight.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Thus warned, Hugh put his bare feet into his
-riding-boots, and, fastening his jacket without the
-formality of donning a shirt, ran for the door at
-Griffith’s heels. Frank, after an unheeded entreaty
-to wait for him, tumbled into his shirt and
-breeches, and came headlong after out into the
-corridor.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Below in the great hall, under the dim light of
-candles, men were jostling and shouting and pulling
-on coats and buckling sword-belts, as they
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_145'>145</span>passed hurriedly out by the black open door.
-Running blindly after the crowd, Hugh collided
-by the entrance with Captain Turner, who came
-in jauntily, albeit he was in his shirt-sleeves.
-“How near are the enemy, Captain?” Hugh cried,
-catching him by the arm.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Turner looked down at him with a dry smile.
-“Not so near, Gwyeth, but you’ll have time to
-wash your face ere they come up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Even the mocking tone could not recall Hugh
-to his self-composure, but he ran on out of the
-house, where he was jostled by troopers and
-nearly trampled on by horses that were being led
-up. Getting out of harm’s way at last in an angle
-of the front of the house, he became aware that
-the stars were few in the sky and on the horizon
-a light streak showed; it must be nearing dawn.
-Just then he heard the deadened sound of a
-horse’s being rapidly ridden over turf, and then a
-strange officer came galloping up to the very door.
-Running thither, Hugh saw him disappear into
-an inner room, whence a little later Sir William
-Pleydall, a bit excited but carefully accoutred,
-came forth with the announcement that the enemy
-were near by at Kineton, and the troop was to
-hold itself in readiness to march to meet them.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There was sufficient time to follow Captain
-Turner’s advice, so Hugh and Frank went back
-to their chamber and, while their candle paled in
-the daybreak, dressed methodically. Hugh turned
-up his boot-tops and fastened his buff coat up
-to his chin, telling himself he should be too
-grateful to Sir William for such a stout jacket to
-envy Frank his cuirass, then, while his companion
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_146'>146</span>was tugging a comb through his curly hair, sat
-down on the window-seat to wait. The manor
-house looked out across a valley toward the east,
-where a light rift in the dun clouds showed till
-presently the sun broke through, and turned the
-mist in the lowlands to silver. “It will be a fair
-day,” Hugh said, half aloud; “’tis a Sunday, too,
-is it not?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes,” sneered Frank. “How can so godly a
-man as Essex fight of a Sabbath?” Then he
-broke off speech for the serious business of strapping
-on his sword, which was long enough to
-threaten to trip him up. Hugh looked on rather
-enviously, for no one had yet offered him a sword,
-and, as he felt he should not ask for one, he had
-to content himself with sticking in his belt a
-spare pistol Captain Turner had lent him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>When the two young soldiers came downstairs
-they found the candles were long since out and
-gray daylight was glimmering through the hall.
-There tables were spread, about which the officers
-of the troop, all equipped, sat or stood while
-they ate; and, as they had good appetites, Hugh,
-though he was not over-hungry, felt obliged to
-take bread and meat and try to make a hearty
-meal. All about him was talk of nothing but the
-battle, the numbers the Earl of Essex had in his
-army, the numbers the king could put against
-him, and the surety of a mighty victory. “Do
-not you be all so certain,” croaked Turner, who
-had seated himself to make a comfortable meal.
-The others hooted him down, so he changed the
-subject by chaffing Frank on his prodigiously
-long sword. The boy retorted saucily enough to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_147'>147</span>make those about him laugh; indeed, for the
-most part, all were gay now daylight had come
-and the work before them was clear to see.
-There were wagers laid on the length of the
-battle, promises of high revelry on the spoils of
-the enemy, and above all calls for wine. When
-the glasses were filled, Sir William, rising at the
-head of the table, gave the king’s health. Hugh
-remembered afterward the instant’s tense hush
-that came in the talk and loud laughter, then the
-sudden uproar of fists smiting on the table, boot-heels
-stamping on the floor, and through and
-above all cheers and cheers that made the high-roofed
-hall reëcho. Then, as the tumult died down,
-the major, Bludsworth, cried: “Now, then, lads:
-To the devil with the Parliament and Essex!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After that was shouting that made the lungs
-ache, and glasses shattered on the floor, then, as
-the storm of curses and calls abated, one of the
-officers struck up a song against the Parliament,
-and some joined in, some laughed, and
-others still cried, “Down with the Parliament!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Just then a messenger, pushing in, spoke a
-word to Sir William, who gave orders for the
-troop to prepare itself to march, for the main
-guard would soon be under way.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Mayhap we can get sight of something from
-the hill here,” Frank cried. “Come out, Hugh,
-and see.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Running out into the cold of the nipping morning
-air they set their faces to the steep pitch of
-hillside behind the manor house. The turf was
-stiff with frost, so climbing was easy, and in a
-short space they were at the summit. Instinctively
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_148'>148</span>they turned their first glance to the west
-where the enemy lay. “But ’tis useless gazing,”
-Frank said, next moment, “for ’twixt here and
-Kineton rises a piece of high land; they call it
-Edgehill. Face back to the east, Hugh. Look,
-look, ’tis the vanguard!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Winding down the opposite slope they could
-now distinguish a long line of moving figures,
-horsemen upon horsemen, with the sunlight glittering
-ever the stronger on their cuirasses and
-helmets. Moment after moment the boys delayed
-there, till the foremost of the riders toiled up a
-lower ridge of the hill, not an eighth of a mile
-distant from them. The hum of the moving
-files reached them; almost they thought to distinguish
-the devices of the fluttering banners.
-“But the king’s standard will come only with
-the Life Guards and the foot,” Frank explained.
-“This evening ’twill be waving over all England.
-God and our right! God and King Charles!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yonder below marches a black cornet,” Hugh
-broke in. “See you, Frank? My father’s troop
-goes under such a banner.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Say we draw down nearer to them,” the other
-cried, and started to descend the hill.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Stay, Frank,” Hugh called, “it must be mid-morning.
-I think we were best get back to our
-troop.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Name of Heaven! I had near forgot,” Frank
-replied, and, facing about, started back to the
-manor house at full speed.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh followed after, slipping upon the steep
-hillside, and so they came down behind the stables,
-where after the tumult of the earlier morning was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_149'>149</span>a surprising quiet. “Some must have set out
-already,” Frank panted, as he headed for the
-house.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’ll fetch our horses,” Hugh shouted after him,
-and ran to the stable. Within he saw The Jade
-and the sorrel had already been led forth, and
-in their places, all a-lather and with drooping
-heads, stood the black and bay captured from
-the Oldesworths. “When were they put here?”
-Hugh cried to the hostler, and, without waiting
-for an answer, ran for the house; if the horses
-were there, Dick Strangwayes must be close at
-hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But when he came to the house he found neither
-horse nor man, only off to the right the last of
-Sir William’s troop were pacing round a spur of
-the hill, and on the doorstone stood Frank with
-his hands tight clinched. “Hugh, they’ve taken
-our horses!” he cried shrilly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Have you seen anything of Dick?” Hugh
-asked in his turn.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And Bludsworth,—the fiend come and fetch
-him!—he answered me: ‘The men that can
-strike the stoutest blows for the king must have
-the horses to-day.’” Frank plunged a step or
-two across the trampled turf, as if he had a mind
-to run after the troop. “He’d not a dared use
-me so, if he knew not my father would approve.
-I told you they’d cheat us of the battle. Never
-mind, I would not fight for them if I could.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>As Frank’s voice trailed off into inarticulate
-mutterings Hugh found opportunity to question:
-“Has Dick been here? Tell me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, ’twas he and another from Butler’s troop.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_150'>150</span>Had spurred night and day. Their horses were
-spent. And Dick Strangwayes has taken my
-Jade. Plague on him! He’s too heavy for her;
-he’ll break her legs. My Jade—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He has gone into the battle and I did not
-see him,” Hugh broke out. “He may be hurt
-again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I care not if he be,” Frank cried, “so he
-bring her back safe. She was the prettiest bit
-of horseflesh! And I was going to ride her in
-the battle.—Did I not tell you they’d not let us
-come? And no doubt they’ll beat the rebels and
-’tis the last encounter and I shall not be there.
-And she was my horse, and she loved me; she
-almost never kicked at me.” Frank’s shrill voice
-broke suddenly. “Oh, hang it all!” he cried,
-and, dropping down on the doorstone with his
-head on the threshold, began sobbing piteously
-and choking out more oaths till his voice was lost
-for weeping.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh forgot his own bitter disappointment at
-not seeing Dick and having no chance to earn a
-commission in the battle, in his first alarm for
-Frank. Then alarm gave place to something
-akin to disgust at the boy’s childishness, and he
-half started to walk away, but he turned back.
-After all, Frank was younger than he, and he
-ought to be patient with the lad, just as Dick
-Strangwayes had been patient with him. So he
-stood over Frank and tried to joke him into being
-quiet.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“But ’twas my horse,” the boy sobbed, “and
-there’ll never be another battle, and I had no
-part in the last.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_151'>151</span>“Well, it does not befit your cuirass to cry
-like that,” Hugh answered; and then, “Look you
-here, Frank, ’tis not above six miles to Kineton
-and we’ve good legs to carry us. Why should
-we not have a hand in the fighting even now?”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_152'>152</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER X <br /> <span class='small'>IN THE TRAIL OF THE BATTLE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>It was long past the noon hour, as the westward
-bent of the sun showed, when the two boys
-panted up the northern pitch of the rough Edgehill.
-From the manor house to the field they
-had come at their best pace, running at first
-even up the hillsides, till sheer lack of breath
-made them somewhat moderate their speed. A
-couple of miles out from the house, as they
-headed aimlessly, with only a vague notion that
-somewhere to the west the battle would be joined,
-they came up with a body of foot alongside which
-they marched clear to the southern verge of the
-hill. Coming thither, they at last heard the
-rumor that, while the foot would be massed in
-the centre for the fight, the Prince with the
-mounted men, among whom served Sir William’s
-troop, would hold the right wing. Thereupon
-they forsook the foot soldiers and, heading to the
-northward, plunged down a steep pitch and across
-an open bit of ground, where they got entangled
-in a body of pikemen and were nearly ridden
-down by some straggling dragoons, and so came
-breathless up the last hillside. There upon the
-high ridge, whence for miles they could see the
-low country spreading away toward Kineton and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_153'>153</span>right beneath them the mustering squadrons, they
-made a moment’s halt.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Below here to the right our men are,” Frank
-gasped, without breath enough to shout. “If I
-only had The Jade.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Twill be the enemy far over yonder in the
-plain, where I can just make out black things to
-move,” said Hugh. “There look to be a many
-of them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“There’ll be fewer ere night,” Frank replied.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Sure, we’ll scarce give battle so late in the
-day?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“There’s time enough ’twixt now and sundown
-to trounce them roundly,” Frank answered
-cheerfully. “Come, let us go down and seek our
-people.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They had gone barely a rod along the brow of
-the hill, when right behind them, deadened till
-now by the yielding turf, sounded the galloping
-of a horse. Glancing over his shoulder, Hugh
-got sight of a rider spurring in their steps with no
-evident intention of swerving, so he caught Frank
-by the arm and jerked him to one side, none too
-soon, for the horse’s nose almost grazed the
-boy’s shoulder. “Look how you ride!” Hugh
-shouted angrily. The horseman never deigned
-to look at him, but, with his dark face set to the
-front and the ends of his scarlet sash fluttering,
-shot by and disappeared down the hillside.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Curse him!” Frank sputtered, “’twas a
-coward’s trick; ’twas like him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Like who?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Tis Philip Bellasis, a son of my Lord Bellasis.
-I pray his comb be cut some fine morning.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_154'>154</span>“The Lord Bellasis who is of the king’s council?”
-Hugh asked, as they tramped along the
-hilltop, with ears alert now for more reckless
-riders behind them.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, a scurvy civilian,” Frank said, with extra
-swagger; “we of the army have no love for
-them nor they for us. Why, his influence came
-near losing my father his independent command.
-He would have lumped us in with my Lord Carnavon’s
-horse. Well, we’ll show to-day who’ll
-save the kingdom, meddling lawyers like Bellasis
-or soldiers like ourselves.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then conversation ceased, for reaching a gully
-in the hillside they gave all their thoughts to
-descending it, and slipped and scuffled in the dry
-bed till Frank had wrenched his ankle and Hugh
-had a torn coat-sleeve to his credit. The gully
-ending in a small stream, they followed it down
-through a copse of bare bushes that snapped
-against the face, and so came out upon the open
-plain. Not an eighth of a mile distant, sitting
-ready with their backpieces gleaming and their
-carabines slung across their shoulders, they could
-see the ranks of horsemen. In the open betwixt
-the boys and the ordered troops messengers were
-spurring to and fro, and now and again, in small
-groups or man by man, stray horsemen straggled
-by. One such they came upon by the brook, as
-he was patching a broken girth, and Hugh, pausing
-to lend his aid, asked him what news there
-was in the field. “Why does not the battle begin
-at once?” Frank urged, and, when the man
-answered the troops were but waiting the word
-to fall on, he caught Hugh’s arm and bade
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_155'>155</span>him come forward quickly to seek their regiment.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At that the trooper struck in: “Best keep out
-o’ the press, sir. You’ll be trampled to pieces
-there with small good to the king or to yourself.
-Better bear off to the northward out of harm’s
-way.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“But I am here solely to get in harm’s way,”
-Frank protested; and, when Hugh, taking the
-advice, made for a log bridge to cross the stream,
-followed grumblingly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Once over, with the intention of taking their
-final stand at the extreme right of the line of
-waiting horsemen, they pressed northward across
-the uneven plain. They were sliding down the
-bank to a shallow hollow, when the thud, thud of
-hoofs warned them to look to the westward and
-there, over a slight rise in the ground, a belated
-troop came at a smart trot. Pressing back against
-the bank Hugh watched the crowded columns
-approach, the bespattered breasts of the horses,
-their tossing heads, and above the waving manes
-the white faces of the riders. As the head of the
-column came close upon him his eyes rested on
-its leader, and he saw he was a man of middle
-height with reddish hair, who rode in his shirt
-with neither cuirass nor helmet. Then the troop
-was sweeping past, black, red, and gray horses
-straining at a trot, and men with steady faces and
-silent lips, among whom, looking closer, Hugh
-recognized some he knew.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But he only gazed without speaking till the
-last horse had swung down the hollow, and
-Frank, who had been cheering mightily, settled
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_156'>156</span>his hat on his head again, with an excited, “A
-brave troop, was it not, Hugh?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“It was my troop,” Hugh answered. “Did
-you not note? ’Twas my father led them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Oh, ay, to be sure,” replied Frank, making
-for the opposite side of the hollow. “I scarce
-remembered him, and, to my thinking, he has
-used you so knavishly that he does not merit
-to dwell in any gentleman’s remembrance, and—Hark,
-there!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Both halted a moment as from far off on
-the left came the dull boom, boom of cannon.
-From far to the front an answering crash
-sounded. “They’re falling to it,” Frank cried.
-“Briskly, Hugh!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>One last spurt that sent the blood beating to
-the temples and turned the breath hot in the
-throat, and they were stumbling up the little hillock
-for which they had headed. Still, before and
-on the left, the cannon were pounding, and there
-came, too, in long, undistinguishable shouts, the
-noise of men cheering. The withered grass of
-the hillside wavered before Hugh’s eyes with the
-very weariness of running, yet he found strength
-in him to pull off his hat and breath to pant out:
-“For a king!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then, coming over the brow of the hill, he
-had sight of the rough plain stretching off to
-the gray west, and across it saw the long ranks
-of horsemen sweeping forward. A gleam of cuirasses
-and helmets, a glimpse of plunging horses
-and waving swords, a flutter of banners; they
-had charged onward, and only the echo of their
-shouts still lingered and was lost in the throb
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_157'>157</span>of cannon. Now first Hugh realized his throat
-was near cracked with cheering and his arm
-ached with waving his hat; so he paused breathless,
-with his eyes still fastened on the brown
-dust-cloud toward the west. There came a
-touch on his arm, and putting out his hand
-he grasped Frank’s wrist. Young Pleydall was
-gasping for breath with a choke like a half sob.
-“If we had only been with them!” he broke out.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“My father is there,” Hugh said, half aloud.
-He did not tell Frank what he was thinking:
-that, after all, he would rather have a father who,
-even if he did despise and reject his son, was
-striking good blows over yonder, than an indulgent
-parent like Master Nathaniel Oldesworth,
-who could bear to sit idle at home.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What if your father is there?” Frank panted
-in retort. “It does not better matters for us.
-They’re hard at it. Listen to the muskets yonder.
-Come, let us go thither.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh gave one glance to the west, where even
-the dust-cloud had faded in the distance, and
-to the south, where a slight swelling of the plain
-hid the sight of conflict; it was from there the
-tantalizing noise of firing came. “’Tis not in
-human endurance to stay here and not know
-how the day is going,” he burst out, and led the
-way down into the plain. They struck toward
-the brook they had crossed, and followed its
-course northwestward, almost in the track the
-Royalist horse had taken.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“They’ve all passed out of sight,” Frank said
-as he pressed forward, half on the run. “They
-must have driven the rebels clean into Kineton.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_158'>158</span>“Hark to the southward!” Hugh answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“They will only be shooting down stragglers,”
-Frank replied confidently. “The day’s ours.
-No living thing could stand up against such
-a charge. Was it not brave? I tell you, Hugh,
-war is the grandest—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There the words died away on Frank’s lips,
-as a few paces before them near the brookside
-he caught sight of a dark, motionless thing.
-“’Tis not—” he faltered, and made a movement
-as if he had half a mind to fetch a circuit about
-the place.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Come along,” Hugh said firmly, though he
-felt the heart contract within him. “If he be
-alive, we must help him.” Walking forward deliberately,
-he halted a step from the object,—a
-common trooper, he now saw, and by his colors
-one of the king’s men. He lay on his back
-with his hands clinched above his head, and
-the blood bubbling out through a bullet wound
-in his throat, but he still breathed in short,
-rattling gasps. Perceiving that, Hugh ran to the
-margin of the brook, and, dipping his hat full of
-water, splashed it over the man’s face; he remembered
-afterward what a dull, dogged face
-it was under the pain that was distorting the
-brows and lips. He raised the man’s head up
-against his arm. “Fetch more water, Frank,”
-he bade; then, as the boy turned, it seemed
-something caught and clicked in the trooper’s
-throat, and his head slipped down from Hugh’s
-arm. Hugh suffered him to sink to the ground,
-and was kneeling beside him, half dazed with
-the awesomeness of what had happened, when
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_159'>159</span>Frank came stumbling back. “What!” the
-younger lad cried; “is he—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He is gone,” Hugh answered simply. He
-got up, and walking to the brook lay down on
-the brink and drank; the chill of the soggy turf
-beneath him and the cold water he gulped down
-seemed to wash away something of the horror he
-had just seen. He rose fairly steadied. “Shall
-we go forward, Frank?” he asked. “There’ll be
-more such to see.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, let us,” Frank said, rather subdued, and
-so, passing the body of the trooper, they went on
-down the brook.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The farther they advanced, the more ill sights
-there were to see: horses that lay dead or
-sprawled with disabling wounds yet struggled to
-rise, men with gashed bodies or blackened faces,
-who were beyond aid, and others, bleeding with
-wounds, who had crawled to their feet and were
-heading for the rear. One horse, a roan, Frank
-persuaded Hugh, for The Jade’s sake, to shoot
-with his pistol; but after that Hugh, sparing his
-scant supply of ammunition, refused to carry on
-such work. But they tried to aid the wounded
-men, who came ever more frequently, and with
-them one or two of another sort, unhurt but riding
-too hastily to pause to speak. “The cowardly
-knaves!” Frank cried. “If I find one of our troop
-turning tail so, hang me if I do not recommend
-him for a flogging.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But just then there came a white-faced horseman,
-who, reining up at their call, gladly gave
-them what tidings he could, which were vague
-enough, only the king’s men had swept the rebel
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_160'>160</span>horse from off the earth, and chased the rest of
-the army away, and there had been great fighting,
-and a scurvy Roundhead bullet had broke his
-leg. Would one of the young gentlemen reach
-him a drink of water? He could not dismount.
-Hugh filled the man’s steel cap at the brook, and
-then he rode slowly away.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Farther on, where the conflict had been hotter,
-they passed more bodies, and just the other side
-of the brook, which they leaped at a narrow turn,
-came upon one lying face down whose long hair
-gave him to be a gentleman. Hugh had bent to
-see if by any chance he still lived, when Frank
-thrust by him. “Do you not know that head-piece
-with a nick in it?” he cried. “’Tis Ned
-Griffith.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At that they had him over on his back and
-found he was breathing, in spite of a great gash
-in his shoulder that had sheered through the
-cuirass. Tearing off his armor, they splashed
-water over him till the young fellow revived
-enough to blink his eyes open, groan, and shut
-them again. “Live?” said Frank, pouring another
-capful of water over him. “Do you think a man
-will die who can fetch a groan like that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Griffith’s eyes slowly opened again. “You
-youngsters?” he asked feebly. “Was it the
-whole troop rode over me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh laid open his coat, and, with a certain
-grim thankfulness that what he had unwillingly
-seen now enabled him without physical shrinking
-to help a friend, bandaged his hurt. “We must
-carry him to the rear,” he finally ordered Frank.
-“You take his legs, and I’ll manage his head.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_161'>161</span>They lifted up Ned Griffith, who hung limp
-and heavy in their hands, and set their faces
-toward the dark hill whence the king’s army had
-charged forth. The walk out into the field had
-gone briskly enough, but there seemed no end to
-the return journey. Again and again they had
-to lay the injured man down while they recovered
-breath; but though wounded stragglers
-passed them, they saw none who could aid them,
-so of necessity they lifted up their burden once
-more and struggled on. Sometimes Frank panted
-out a grumbling complaint, but Hugh made no
-reply, for his eyes were on the wounded man’s
-white face and parted lips, and he found himself
-wondering how his father was faring in the battle,
-and what might have befallen Dick Strangwayes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of a sudden Frank, letting Griffith’s boots
-come to the ground abruptly, began shouting
-with all his strength to a brace of loiterers.
-“Men of our troop,” he explained to Hugh, “and
-not much wounded, Heaven be thanked for’t!
-They can convey Ned to a surgeon, if such a one
-is in the field, and we’ll back to see more.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Relinquishing their charge on such terms, they
-set their faces again to the field of battle. It was
-now drawing toward sundown, and the fire to
-the south had slackened. “Mark my words, the
-war is ended,” Frank lamented; “and we have had
-no part in it, only to tramp about and look on
-those others have killed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh must acknowledge to himself it had been
-a grim afternoon’s work, so with some hope of
-brisker adventures he followed willingly, as his
-companion headed southerly toward the clearer
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_162'>162</span>line of a road. “Maybe we’ll find our troop if we
-walk toward Kineton,” Frank suggested. “And
-we could ride back with them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, they should have taken some horses
-from the rebels by this,” Hugh replied, with a nod
-toward a corpse with an orange sash that lay on
-the edge of the roadway. He stubbornly told
-himself it was only another monument to the
-Royalist fighting quality, and tried to believe he
-had nearly deadened sympathy in him and calloused
-his senses to the horror of what he must
-endure if he would follow this life he had chosen.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They faced westward and tramped along the
-road, but what with ruts and mire it proved
-heavier walking than the fields. “Faith, I’m
-weary of this,” Frank grumbled. “How much
-farther to Kineton?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Let’s bear off on the other side,” suggested
-Hugh, peering through the gathering twilight.
-“Yonder’s a bit of a hollow and it may be easier
-going.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They crossed a piece of open level, and, holding
-this the quickest way, jumped down the slight
-pitch at its farther edge. As they recovered
-footing, they perceived close before them in the
-lee of the bank two bodies lying motionless, one
-of which seemed that of an officer by its better
-clothes and of a rebel by its orange sash. It was
-the first officer of Essex’s army they had yet noted
-among the dead, and, with a sudden fear that it
-might be one of his own kindred, Hugh bent
-over the corpse. Finding, to his relief, that the
-face was strange to him, he was turning away,
-when his eyes chanced to rest upon the other
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_163'>163</span>body, that of a hulking common foot soldier. As
-he gazed he thought to see a slight tremor pass
-over it, so, stepping to the man as he lay on his
-face, he shook him by the shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At the touch the fellow suddenly scrambled to
-his knees. “Don’t kill me, master,” he whined.
-“Give me quarter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh had started back a step or two and
-pulled out his pistol; the man was not even
-scratched, he perceived, but had feigned dead.
-Then he noted a basket-hilted sword with a
-leathern baldric that had been concealed beneath
-him as he lay, and he noted, too, that not only
-did the dead officer wear no sword, but his
-pockets had been turned inside out. “So that’s
-your trade, is it?” Hugh cried. “Robbing the
-dead of your own party, eh?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’ll never do so no more,” whimpered the fellow.
-“Don’t ’ee shoot.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The craven tone of the creature harked back
-to something in Hugh’s memory; he leaned a
-little forward and studied the man’s bearded,
-low-browed face, then drew back with his pistol
-cocked. “I remember you,” he said. “Are you
-ready to pay back the two shillings and sixpence
-you took from me on the Nottinghamshire crossroad?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Is this the padder?” Frank struck in. “Put
-a bullet through him, Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Don’t ’ee shoot me, master,” the other begged.
-“I did not kill ’ee then, and I might ha’.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I am not going to shoot you,” Hugh replied,
-“but you can give me over that sword to pay for
-what you owe me. And remember, this pistol I
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_164'>164</span>hold now is in good order,” he added, for he half
-suspected the fellow was plucking up courage as
-he discovered it was only two lads, not a whole
-troop, had come upon him. So he stood back
-warily out of the plunderer’s reach, while Frank,
-who was viewing the whole proceeding happily
-like a holiday sport, took up the booty and passed
-it over to him. Hugh gathered the baldric about
-the sword in his left hand, a little hurriedly, for it
-was beginning to dawn on him that he and Frank
-had strayed pretty far, and where one live rebel
-was there might be others. Just then, over in the
-plain, he got sight of a straggling horseman or
-two, so he turned upon Frank with a quick order:
-“Clamber up the slope there and make for the
-road briskly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He heard behind him the boy’s quick retreating
-step, but his eyes were still fixed on the
-scowling rebel, whom he thought well to cover
-with his pistol. “Sit where you are,” he commanded
-the man, “and offer to play me no
-slippery tricks if you value your skin.” Thus
-speaking, he backed toward the bank, which he
-ascended slantingly, so as to keep an eye on the
-fellow. But, chancing to look beyond him, he
-saw one of the horsemen was already heading
-in his direction, so he turned and fair ran for
-the roadway, where Frank was halting for him.
-“Run,” he called to the boy; “’tis a hornets’ nest
-here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Without staying for farther questions, Frank
-took to his heels down the road toward Kineton,
-and Hugh, after one glance to the right where he
-saw no stragglers of his own party, ran after him.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_165'>165</span>At each stride he gained on him, for Frank’s
-boots and cuirass encumbered the youngster;
-capture was possible, it flashed through Hugh’s
-head, and with it came the reflection that it would
-be discreditable to be taken in the act of plundering
-a private of foot, for others might not see the
-justice of the case as clearly as he had seen it.
-Then he found wit to think only of the hoof-beats
-that were now sounding on the roadway behind
-him, louder and louder, and, looking at Frank
-stumbling on before him, he thought what an ill
-return it would be for all Sir William’s kindness
-to let harm come to the boy. So he halted
-short and faced back; close behind him was one
-trooper with a yellow sash and somewhat in his
-rear came three others. How long the horse’s
-head looked, Hugh reflected dazedly, and would
-the man slash down at him with his sword and
-make such a gash as he had seen upon Ned
-Griffith? Then there was no space for reflection
-or remembrance, only the horse’s head
-grazed by him, he saw the man lean forward in
-his saddle, and, thrusting up his pistol with the
-muzzle aimed under the man’s upraised arm, he
-fired. The sword grazed down weakly across
-his shoulder, the edge slipping harmlessly over
-the stout buff; then the sword fell to the roadway,
-the horse clattered forward a pace or two,
-and the rider reeled headlong from the saddle.
-The horse went galloping away down the road
-with the stirrups beating against his flanks.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A shout from behind brought Hugh to his
-senses. He ran forward, got a fleeting sight of
-the rebel trooper, who lay outstretched on his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_166'>166</span>back in the roadway with a grayish shade gathering
-on his face, then came up with Frank and
-caught him by the arm. “Off the road, quick!”
-he panted. “They’ll ride us down.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They went headlong over the low embankment
-and struggled blindly forward into the field.
-Hugh had jammed his pistol into his belt, wondering
-how many seconds it would take him to
-draw his sword clear for a final stand, when
-Frank reeled up against him, crying: “My ankle!
-I’ve wrenched it again.” With that he pitched
-down at Hugh’s feet, and Hugh, clapping his
-hand to the hilt of the sword, stood over him and
-faced about. Then he saw the rebel horsemen
-had drawn rein in the roadway and were watching
-them but not following, behind him he heard
-horses coming, and Frank, suddenly scrambling to
-his feet, began shouting. “King’s men! Hurrah!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh turned about in time to see a little squad
-of eight or ten horsemen with scarlet scarfs come
-riding out of the twilight and pull up alongside
-them. There was something familiar in the broad
-shoulders of the leader and the gruff voice in
-which he began: “’Tis happy for you, gentlemen,
-that we—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Corporal Ridydale, have you forgot me?”
-Hugh interrupted breathlessly, going up to the
-man’s stirrup.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Forgot you, sir?” Ridydale made answer,
-“Lord, no, sir. Jump up behind me. ’Tis not
-a healthy place hereabouts for men of our color.—Here,
-Rodes, take t’other young gentleman up
-behind you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After delaying long enough to slip his new
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_167'>167</span>baldric over his shoulder, Hugh scrambled up
-behind Ridydale, and the little squad headed
-across the field toward Edgehill. How had the
-battle gone, Hugh asked, as soon as he had
-recovered breath; and Ridydale told him the
-Prince and Colonel Gwyeth had hunted the
-rebels clear beyond Kineton. “The knaves
-banged our troop some deal, but we had brave
-plundering in the town,” the corporal ended.
-“‘How has the day gone in the rest of the field?’
-I know not; we have done our part.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Colonel Gwyeth had no hurt?” Hugh broke in.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No thanks to him that he hasn’t, the madman!”
-Ridydale answered. “He would fight in his
-shirt, for he swore these fellows were too paltry
-for a gentleman to guard against. So he laid off
-his armor ere he rode into the fight. Now that,
-sir, is the temper the gentlemen of your house
-have ever been of, and ’tis the only fitting temper.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It looked like the beginning of their usual
-disagreement, so Hugh kept silent, the more
-willingly since he found himself tired so that
-even talking required exertion. He leaned rather
-heavily against Ridydale, and watched the field,
-that looked gray in the deepening twilight, slip
-by them, and, when he shut his eyes, still saw the
-field with the trampled bodies of men and writhing
-chargers. Then, of a sudden, their horse
-pulled up. “I take it we’ll rendezvous here,” he
-heard the corporal say. “Perchance you’ll bide
-with us till the colonel comes, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No,” Hugh said hurriedly, slipping down from
-the horse. “Thank you, Ridydale. We’d have
-been in a bad way but for you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_168'>168</span>Then he stumbled away with Frank across the
-hummocky plain, which darkness made all the
-more treacherous, and, scrambling up the hill to
-the broad summit, toiled about among the scattered
-troops that were straggling back. “I am
-clean <a id='corr168.6'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='spent,’'>spent”</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_168.6'><ins class='correction' title='spent,’'>spent”</ins></a></span> his companion said sorrowfully. “I
-would not be a foot soldier for all the gold in the
-kingdom. Where think you my father is, Hugh?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“We’ll try to find him,” Hugh answered, with
-what cheerfulness he could summon, and turned
-aside to ask a friendly-looking soldier if he knew
-where Sir William Pleydall’s troop was stationed.
-The man did not know, and, indeed, in the confusion
-and darkness no one seemed to know anything;
-so the two boys could only tramp up and
-down, Frank expostulating crossly and Hugh too
-utterly weary to respond, till at last they got sight
-of a figure that looked familiar in the dusk. Running
-thither they found it was Major Bludsworth,
-whereupon Frank nearly hugged him. “I never
-was so glad to see you before, sir,” he cried.
-“Where is my father, and when are we going to
-have anything to eat?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Bludsworth took Frank by the arm, and half
-carried him a rod or so to a small fire beneath a
-bank about which Sir William and a little knot of
-his officers were standing. “Here’s a runaway
-in quest of you, Sir William,” he announced
-brusquely.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Francis, you here?” Sir William asked, with
-some displeasure.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Prithee, do not be angry, sir,” Frank protested,
-“I’ve had a gallant day of it. And I have
-not had the least hurt. And Hugh here killed a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_169'>169</span>man, sir. And has Dick Strangwayes brought
-back my Jade?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The beast is unscathed,” answered Sir William,
-drawing Frank to him with a hand on his shoulder.
-“And another time you may as well ride in on her
-back at the start and done with.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Master Strangwayes has come out safe, then?”
-Hugh’s eagerness made him strike in.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No hurt at all, his usual fortune,” Sir William
-replied, before he turned away to one of those
-beside him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh had to check his questions on his tongue’s
-end, and wait and look about in the hope each instant
-that Dick might come tramping to the fire.
-But the minutes ran on, Frank had settled himself
-by the blaze, and Sir William had no time to heed
-a boy’s concerns, so Hugh must finally take courage
-and, going to Bludsworth, ask of Dick’s whereabouts.
-“Young Strangwayes?” replied the major.
-“Why, he has gone back to the house we quartered
-at; some one had to convey Cornet Griffith thither.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, he’s left the road behind him,” Hugh
-answered stoutly, and, turning from the fire, faced
-into the black of the night.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At first, what with the foot and horse soldiers
-and camp followers to be met, the gleam of the
-bivouac fires on either hand, and the tumult of
-the army all about him, it was brisk enough journeying.
-But, as he passed out from the circle of
-the encampment and the bustle around him subsided,
-he found his riding-boots felt heavy and the
-going was far slower than it had been that morning.
-It was dark overhead, so he stumbled, and
-once his new sword tripped him. He put his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_170'>170</span>hand to the hilt so as to strike up the blade,
-and then as he trudged he fell to wondering what
-manner of man the sword had belonged to, and
-he thought on the trooper with the wound in his
-throat, and the many faces of dead men. When
-a branch snapped in a copse to his left he halted
-short with his heart thumping, then told himself
-he was a fool and tried to whistle as he walked.
-But there came on him a desire to look back over
-his shoulder, and the echo of his whistle made his
-blood thrill unpleasantly. There was a thicket
-he must pass through, he remembered, before he
-reached the manor house; he dreaded it long,
-and, when he came to it, clinched his hands tight
-and walked slowly, while the gray face of the
-trooper he had himself slain dazzled up and
-down before his eyes. Half through the thicket
-he broke into a run, and, with not even will
-enough left in his tired body to restrain himself,
-plunged heavily across the open to the door
-of the hall, where there was light. He stumbled
-against the door, which resisted, and, in a panic he
-could not comprehend, he shook it.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Gently, gently,” came a voice that calmed him.
-The door swung open, and in the candlelight that
-shone within he saw Dick Strangwayes, with
-his cuirass and helmet off, his coat hanging unfastened,
-and the same old half-laughing look in
-his eyes, while his lips kept sober.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh pitched in headlong and blindly griped
-his friend in his arms. “Dick, Dick,” he burst
-out, “I have found you. And, Dick, I—I killed
-a man to-day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Is that all?” Strangwayes drawled with one
-arm about him. “Why, I killed three.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_171'>171</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER XI <br /> <span class='small'>COMRADES IN ARMS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>There were no dreams for Hugh after he had
-stretched himself out on a bench in the hall as
-Strangwayes bade him. He was too exhausted
-in body and spirit to question or speak; he
-only knew he was glad he had found his friend
-once more, and the cushion beneath his head felt
-soft, so he went dead asleep, and lost at last
-the remembrance of the sights of the day’s carnage.
-He had no dreams and he was loath
-even to have a waking; some one shook him again
-and yet again, but he only murmured drowsily,
-with a voice that seemed far off to him, till he
-was pulled up sitting. He screwed his knuckles
-into his eyes, turning his face from the candlelight,
-and he heard Strangwayes laugh: “Look
-you here, Captain Turner. This gentleman must
-have a clear conscience by the way he sleeps.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The thought that Turner’s sharp eyes were on
-him made Hugh face about and sit blinking at
-the candles. The hall where they had that morning
-eaten was quite bare now and dark, except
-for the two flickering candles and the uncertain
-firelight. In front of the chimney-piece Turner,
-all equipped to ride forth, was making a lunch of
-a biscuit and a glass of wine he held in his hands,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_172'>172</span>and the only other occupant of the apartment
-was Dick Strangwayes, who, wrapped to the chin
-in his cloak, stood by the bench. “Awake, eh?”
-he smiled down at Hugh. “Good morrow, then.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What’s the time?” Hugh asked, peering across
-the hall at the windows, which were squares of
-blackness.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Past two and nipping cold. Are you fit to
-ride back to the field with us?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For answer Hugh staggered to his feet, marvelling
-at the stiffness in his legs, and tried to
-hold himself erect. “Here, on with this,” said
-Strangwayes, throwing a cloak about him. “I
-judged ’twas yours, and if ’tis not, the man who
-left his goods so careless deserves to lose them.
-And slip this sash over your sword-belt. It was
-Ned Griffith’s, but he’ll not need—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He’s not dead?” Hugh broke out.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No, no; but he’ll be of little more use than a
-dead man for the next four months. Slash in
-the breast and his leg broke by some of our horse
-as he lay. You’ll need to look you out a new
-cornet, Captain Turner.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“They dropped my lieutenant, too, down by
-Kineton,” said Turner, putting by his glass.
-“Gwyeth’s troop and mine, there on the flank,
-we suffered for it. Do you judge those knaves
-will have the horses saddled ere daybreak?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Is there more fighting to come?” Hugh questioned
-sleepily, as he tried to tie the scarlet sash
-across his chest.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Enough to flesh that maiden sword of yours,”
-Turner paused at the door to reply. “By the
-bye, Master Strangwayes, is it true that Captain
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_173'>173</span>Peyton was slain in the charge? He owes me
-five sovereign on my wager that neither side
-could call the day theirs, and if he has got himself
-killed!” Turner shrugged his shoulders and
-passed out.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What has brought him hither?” Hugh
-yawned.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Poor old lad! Eat a bit and try to wake up,”
-urged Strangwayes. “What has brought Michael
-Turner? Why, his love for that poor little troop
-he let get so wofully peppered in the fight. He
-has been ravaging the country for a horse-load
-of bread with which to fill their stomachs, ere the
-battle he is sure will come this day. And now,
-question for question, what brings you here, so
-far from Colonel Gwyeth?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh put down on the table the piece of bread
-he had been eating, and looked across at Strangwayes,
-then blurted out plainly the whole story.
-He was glad to find he could tell it almost without
-passion now, with not a censuring word for
-Colonel Gwyeth, and even with an effort to make
-a jest of some of the happenings. He heard
-Strangwayes mutter something like an oath when
-he described his first meeting with the colonel,
-but there was not another sound till he told of
-the affair with Hardwyn; then Strangwayes drew
-in his breath between his teeth and turned toward
-the fire. Hugh concluded hurriedly and half
-frightened, and waited for an answer; then broke
-out, “Dick, sure you’re not going to despise me
-for it as he does?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes came to him and put both hands
-on his shoulders. “No, Hugh,” he said, “I need
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_174'>174</span>all the scorn that’s at my command for that precious
-father of yours.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The jar of the opening door made them stand
-apart and face to the end of the hall, as Turner
-looked in to say, “Do you ride with me, gentlemen?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Outside, a chilly wind that stung the face was
-abroad, and the sky was black with clouds. Hugh
-paused on the threshold to blink the candlelight
-out of his eyes, then, peering into the dark, made
-out the dim figures of Turner, already in the saddle,
-and of two of his mounted troopers who held
-led horses, and, last of all, let his gaze rest on a
-half-wakened groom who came up with two fully
-equipped chargers. At sight of them Hugh
-jumped down from the doorstone, and, after one
-closer glance, cried, “Why, Dick, will you suffer
-me ride the bay?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The bay?” Strangwayes answered from the
-black horse’s back. “Your bay, you young fool!
-Why in the name of reason did you not keep the
-beast with you, since you captured him?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh settled himself in the saddle and turned
-the horse’s head in his companion’s tracks, too
-full of joy to heed anything, save that the bay
-that had known him in the Everscombe stables,
-that Peregrine Oldesworth would not suffer him
-even to stroke, was now his, all his. He put out
-one hand to stroke the warm neck, and whistled
-softly to see the slender ears erected.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Hold up, man! You’re riding me down,”
-came Strangwayes’ voice beside him, and he
-found he had pushed forward till they were
-crowding knee to knee.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_175'>175</span>“Do you honestly mean me to keep this fellow?”
-Hugh asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“If you can,” Strangwayes replied; “I’m thinking
-you’ll keep him on three legs if you do not
-spare talk and look to him over this rough
-ground.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh laughed happily, then drew the reins
-tauter in his hands, and strained his eyes into the
-dark ahead lest some pitfall open to swallow up
-the bay horse from under him. The road was so
-short, as he traversed it now, that he was sorry
-when the fires on Edgehill twinkled in the distance,
-and, picking their way cautiously, they
-came to the rendezvous of Turner’s troop. “I
-am keeping by the captain, do you see?” Strangwayes
-whispered Hugh as they dismounted. “He
-has lost his lieutenant, and Sir William has promised
-to set me in the first vacancy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of the rest of the night Hugh only remembered
-that his knees were very warm with the fire by
-which he sat, and his back was cold in spite of
-his cloak. The flames crackled bravely, and
-Strangwayes talked nonsense, to which Captain
-Turner listened in deep and sober approbation.
-But Hugh, crowded close up to Strangwayes, said
-nothing, just gazed at the fire and closed his eyes
-once in a while, till at last he went ignominiously
-asleep with his head on his friend’s shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Waking with neck stiff and arm cramped, he
-found to his delight the east all pale in the dawn,
-so, slipping the bridle of the bay horse over his
-arm, he went strolling across the encampment till
-he could find out Frank and show him his new
-mount. But Frank, now confident in the possession
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_176'>176</span>of The Jade, discovered many flaws in the
-bay, which he set forth in horseman-like phrases
-till Hugh went sauntering back again to Strangwayes.
-At Turner’s fire he found a newcomer, a
-brown-haired young officer, who had once taken
-him for a horse-boy, whom Strangwayes now
-made known to him under the name of George
-Allestree, guidon in Captain Butler’s dragoons,
-and serving as a volunteer at Edgehill. Discreetly
-ignoring their former meeting, Allestree
-was effusively grateful to Hugh for the use of the
-bay, which Strangwayes had lent him to ride
-thither, and altogether proved so pleasant spoken
-a fellow that Hugh ended by putting out of mind
-the memory of his previous conduct.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With Allestree and Strangwayes Hugh passed
-the long day, now talking a bit by the ashes of
-last night’s fire, then rising to stretch his legs
-and look to his horse, then back to the fire again,
-where he ate such rations as were dealt to him
-and felt rather hungry afterward. It was a day
-of uncertainty and idleness beneath which lay a
-tense expectancy; any moment a blow might be
-struck for the king, yet the moments passed and
-nothing was done. About noon Turner stalked
-off to confer with Sir William, but he came back
-whistling and non-committal; indeed, there was
-nothing but the old story to tell: his Majesty’s
-army rested on Edgehill and my Lord Essex’s
-army was drawn up in the plain below, and each
-looked at the other, but neither moved to strike.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They were not up in action till mid-afternoon of
-the next day, when there came word the rebels
-were retreating, and, right on the heels of that, a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_177'>177</span>definite order for the horse to form in the plain.
-Once more Hugh scrambled down the slope of
-Edgehill, but this time his feet were braced in the
-stirrups, his sword smote against his horse’s flank,
-and all about him, in loud talk of the victory they
-were soon to gain, other mounted men were descending.
-Once more he had sight of ranks of
-horsemen marshalling for a charge, but now he was
-himself in the thick of it, and, when the word was
-passed along, waved his sword with the rest, then
-galloped forward amidst his comrades. Before him
-the plain swept into the western sky, where the
-clouds were shiny with the sun they hid, the wind
-came sharp in his face, and around him men shouted
-and horses plunged till his own beast, too, catching
-the joy of movement, reared up. This was
-war, Hugh thought, and only for a second recalled
-it was the same bloody field over which he had
-tramped not eight and forty hours ago. Then
-across the plain he saw a cluster of roofs, and,
-as they spurred faster, made out the windows of
-the cottages, and men moving in the street. At
-that the shouting in the ranks about him became
-a yell of onset, and he, too, rising up in his stirrups,
-screamed, “For a king, a king!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of what followed nothing was quite clear.
-There were houses, a woman that ran shrieking
-in front of his horse, and a Roundhead soldier he
-saw bleeding upon a doorstone. He heard shots
-to the front, saw some of his side press past him
-in flight, and after that he was mixed in a confusion
-of horses and men of both parties. He
-struck wildly in with his sword, whereat a Royalist
-dragoon, swinging round in his saddle, cursed him
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_178'>178</span>volubly in German and in English as not old
-enough to be trusted with cutting tools, and crowding
-past the man he left him still cursing. Then
-he was wedged into a lane, where was a baggage-wagon
-with a teamster on it who tried to lash
-forward his four horses. One Cavalier trooper
-slashed up at the fellow where he sat, while another
-was cutting the traces. Up at the far end
-of the lane was a shouting, “The rebels are
-coming!” Hugh urged the bay forward to the
-heads of the leaders, and, bending from the saddle,
-cut the traces with his sword. Then a ruck of
-the Royalist troops was about him, and, as men
-caught at the freed horses, he judged it proper to
-seize one of them by the bit and hold to him,
-while the crowd forced him back down the lane,
-past the wagon and the teamster dead beneath
-its wheels. From the rear came shots, but there
-was no facing about in such a throng, so with the
-rest Hugh swept back at a gallop through Kineton
-out into the open country.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The pace slackening now, he slipped his sword
-back into the sheath, and, taking time to look
-about him, saw some of those who rode near had
-been cut, but he himself and his two horses were
-without a scratch. Turning in the saddle to gaze
-back, he saw other bands of horse come straggling
-behind them. “Is the fight all over?” he
-asked a trooper who trotted beside him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Over?” swore the fellow. “What more d’ye
-want?” Then he looked pretty sharply at Hugh,
-and ended by offering to lead the wagon-horse for
-him, an offer the boy refused. Next the trooper,
-assuring Hugh he might have no end of difficulties
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_179'>179</span>in maintaining his right in the capture, proposed
-to give him ten shillings for the beast.
-What more he would say Hugh never found out,
-for, as they rode at a slackened pace a little on
-the flank, a horseman from the rear came charging
-into them, stared, and cried Hugh’s name. It
-was Bob Saxon of Gwyeth’s troop, who, scenting
-a matter of horse-dealing, voluntarily came in, and,
-falling upon the other man, bepraised the captured
-horse till he clean talked the fellow out of
-the field.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ten shillings?” Saxon repeated contemptuously
-to Hugh, “Lord forgive the knave! The
-beast is worth fifty. Come along with me, sir,
-and I’ll find you a market.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They made a great circuit off to the north of
-the field and about dusk fetched up in a hamlet
-to the rear of the army, whither Royalist troops
-were now marching from Edgehill to seek quarters.
-Saxon gathered some half score of dragoons
-and a petty officer or two in the street before the
-village inn, where, with loud swearing and shouting,
-he showed off to them the captured horse.
-There followed much chaffering and wrangling,
-with Saxon’s voice loudest, which ended in the
-paying of the money and the delivering over of
-the beast. “Fifty shillings, as I promised you,
-sir,” Saxon announced, as he told them into
-Hugh’s hand, with a suggestive look that made
-Hugh pass him back five for himself.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You’re a good piece of a gentleman, sir,” the
-trooper said candidly, as they rode out from the
-hamlet. “Be you never going to serve under
-Colonel Gwyeth?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_180'>180</span>Hugh winced and answered “No,” then, bidding
-Saxon good-bye, headed for the manor house,
-which he was not able to discover till mid-evening.
-It was a relief to find himself safe among
-his comrades, for he was so conscious of the forty-five
-shillings in his pocket that he felt sure every
-prowler and hanger-on of the camp must have
-marked them for plunder.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>From the field of Edgehill the royal army
-marched to Banbury, which yielded to them unresistingly.
-To Hugh this was far pleasanter
-marching than the passage through Warwickshire,
-for not only did he now wear a sword and
-a red sash that marked him of the king’s men, but
-he had his own horse, Bayard, as he had named
-him for his bay color. The animal contented
-him very well, though Frank and The Jade
-distanced him whenever they raced a piece.
-“Bayard is no ambler; he was built for serious
-work in the field,” Hugh replied loftily to Frank’s
-jeers, and betook himself to Dick Strangwayes,
-whose mere presence was comforting. He trailed
-along at Dick’s side, ate with him, and shared
-his bed, and, in return, would gladly have cleaned
-Dick’s boots and groomed his horse, the horse
-that had once belonged to Captain Oldesworth.
-He knew better, however, than to offer such service,
-so he satisfied himself with taking their two
-horses to stable, and standing over the groom
-who cared for them to see the task was done without
-shirking.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>On the night they lay at Banbury he came in
-from such labor and in their chamber found
-Strangwayes unbuckling his cuirass, and singing,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_181'>181</span>which was with him a sign of either very good or
-very bad fortune. “What’s to do, Dick?” Hugh
-asked, lighting a candle at the fireplace.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What do you say to a lieutenancy to the front
-of my name again, and over seasoned fighting
-men this time, not Jacks such as I misgoverned
-in the Scots war?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Sir William has given you the lieutenancy
-under Turner?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, and on the heel of that comes better:
-Turner’s troop rides for service into Northamptonshire
-to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“That’s well,” Hugh answered rather sorrowfully,
-as he put the candle on the table. “Luck go
-with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Come along and bring it to us. Ay, you’re
-to go. I told my uncle we could use you as a
-volunteer. You see, the troop is short one officer
-since Griffith left.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes?” Hugh urged, with curiosity.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’m promising you nothing, remember,” Strangwayes
-continued soberly. “But there’s that vacant
-cornetcy, and you’re a lad of a steady courage,—I
-pray you, spare blushing,—and of a discreeter
-head than most of your years. Now, first, you’re
-to ride with us and do all you can to satisfy Captain
-Turner.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Dick, I cannot satisfy him,” Hugh gasped,
-almost bewildered by the coolness and breadth of
-Strangwayes’ plan. “Captain Turner never does
-aught but mock me; I’m near as unhappy with
-him as with my father.” He could have bit his
-tongue for the ease with which it let slip such
-a piece of the truth, but Strangwayes only gave
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_182'>182</span>him one involuntary look, then changed the subject
-hastily to the matter of the raid into Northamptonshire.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Next day, when his Majesty and his men rode
-south for Oxford, Captain Turner, Lieutenant
-Strangwayes, and Volunteer Gwyeth, with some
-forty troopers, got to saddle and went cantering
-eastward, to their own pleasure and the discomfort
-of more than one Puritan of Northamptonshire.
-It was partisan warfare, but Turner waged
-it honorably; and Hugh, after he once got used
-to riding with his hand on his hilt through villages
-of hostile, scowling people, had no quarrel with
-the life.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They made their first dash for a country-house
-where arms and powder were stored; there was
-slight resistance, a shot or two without damage, a
-door battered in, and then Hugh was detailed
-with five men to ransack a wing of the house
-where were the kitchen and offices. As they
-found nothing they only wearied themselves with
-the thorough search Hugh insisted on, and got
-laughed at for their pains by a fat kitchen wench.
-But Strangwayes and his squad captured six muskets
-and a keg of powder, though he came away
-grumbling. “No more work of that sort for
-me,” he confided to Hugh. “You, you rogue,
-were safe in the buttery, while I was rummaging
-the parlor, and the gentlewomen stood off with
-their skirts gathered round them and glowered
-on me as if I were a cutpurse. I’m thinking the
-time will never come that women understand the
-laws of war.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Afterward they struck into a small town where
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_183'>183</span>more powder was said to be hid. Across the narrow
-part of the main street the people had built
-a barricade of carts and household stuff, so Turner,
-after reconnoitring, determined on a charge.
-“You had best bear the colors, Gwyeth,” he said,
-as the troop fell into order outside the village.
-“Strangwayes must ride at the rear, and, in any
-case, his two arms are of more profit to us than
-yours.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh forgave the sneer as the cornet of the
-troop was put into his hands. Like all Sir
-William’s cornets, it was a red flag with a golden
-ball upon it, the prettiest colors in the world,
-Hugh considered, except the black flag with the
-cross of gold that Colonel Gwyeth’s troop marched
-under. Settling the staff firmly against his thigh,
-he glanced up to see the folds of the flag droop
-in the still air, then took his place by Turner at
-the front of the troop, and, a moment later, charged
-in behind him. The stones clicked beneath the
-horses’ feet, the cottages sped by, the barricade,
-whence came the hateful spitting of muskets, was
-right before them. Hugh swerved for the left
-end, where the structure was lowest, and Bayard,
-gathering himself up, cleared it at a leap. Behind
-the barricade were men of all coats, some loading
-and steadily firing, but more already scrambling
-down to flee. One, crying out at sight of Hugh,
-broke away the faster; another levelled a pistol at
-him, but before he could fire Bayard’s hoofs had
-struck him into the kennel. Then the whole
-barricade seemed to go down as the Cavaliers,
-some still in the saddle, others dismounted to
-scramble the better, came pouring over.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_184'>184</span>Thus the king’s men possessed themselves of
-the town and took the powder, which for some
-days to come supplied them. But there was a
-price to pay, for in the encounter they had two
-men wounded, one of whom died that night, and
-on the morrow before they marched was buried
-in an orchard. Hugh never forgot the look of
-the leafless trees, the frosty ground, and the silent
-men, who stood drawn up, with their breastpieces
-strapped in place, all ready to mount. Each tenth
-man sat his horse with the bridles of his comrades’
-steeds in his hand, and there, at a little
-distance from the horses, some of the townspeople,
-loitering with curious, unsympathetic
-faces, peered and pointed at those about the
-grave. They buried the dead trooper without
-his armor, but with his cloak wrapped round him,
-and Strangwayes, standing with his helmet under
-one arm, read the burial service. For the life of
-him Hugh could not help thinking of that sermon
-Dick had once preached to Emry and his friends,
-and there came on him an unbecoming desire to
-laugh, which mixed with a choke in his throat so
-his lips moved till he was well assured Captain
-Turner must think him no better than a child.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The morning sunlight was strong when they
-rode away from the orchard, and half a mile out
-the troopers were swearing good-humoredly at
-each other, and Strangwayes was jesting at the
-bravery of the town watch, a single countryman
-whom he had hauled out, roaring for mercy, from
-beneath an empty cart. Hugh laughed at the
-tale, and laid it to heart that in war no man can
-hold regrets long, for his turn may come next,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_185'>185</span>and what little life may be left him is not given
-to be needlessly saddened.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So he designedly carried a light heart under
-his buff jacket, and seized what enjoyment he
-could from the small matters of everyday work.
-He was happy when they had broiled bacon or a
-chicken for supper, which was not often, and
-thankful for any makeshift of a bed; he took
-pleasure in cantering Bayard at the head of the
-troop, and watching the red and gold cornet
-flutter and flap above him; and he liked the
-fierce, hard knocks of the skirmishes they had,
-in little villages and at lonely country-houses,
-here and there through the shire. But when
-food failed and there was no bed but the ground,
-when he was weary and sore with much riding,
-even on that one wretched day when a troop of
-Roundhead dragoons fell on them and sent them
-scampering with three saddles empty, he got his
-best content from Strangwayes’ friendship, which
-made him surer of himself and readier to face
-the world, yet humbler in his efforts to keep the
-affection of the older man.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The thought that the winning of a commission
-in that troop meant more such days of service
-with Strangwayes caused Hugh to redouble his
-efforts to please Turner, and he succeeded so far
-that after the first skirmish the captain suffered
-him to carry the cornet. For the rest, Turner
-met all his honest efforts and prompt obedience
-with sarcasms on his youth and simplicity, which
-made Hugh wince and go on laboring bravely.
-Only one word of approbation did he get of
-Turner; that was on a pouring wet night when
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_186'>186</span>Hugh came in from a watch with the pickets,
-soaked to the skin, and, finding no food, lay down
-without a word on the floor of the cottage where
-the officers were quartered, and went sound asleep.
-Through his waking he could have sworn he
-heard Turner say, “After all, Lieutenant, there’s
-the right mettle in this crop-headed whelp.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Though when Hugh opened his eyes and saw
-Turner standing over him with a candle in his
-hand, the latter only said, “My faith, sir, do you
-ever do aught but sleep?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Thus with work and enjoyment of work the
-month of November passed, and meantime his
-Majesty with the bulk of his army had marched
-to London, and then marched back again. Afterward
-men said a kingdom might have been
-gained upon that journey and had been cast away,
-but at that time Turner’s troop had only rumors
-of marches and countermarches, till in the early
-December a definite order reached them to repair
-to the king’s headquarters at Oxford and join
-themselves to their regiment.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was in the mid-afternoon that they at last
-rode into the city, where the High Street was gay
-with bravely dressed men and sleek horses, and
-the old gray buildings seemed alive with people.
-So many fine troops were passing and re-passing
-that none gave special heed to the little muddy
-band out of Northamptonshire. They passed unnoticed
-out by the North Gate toward the parish
-of St. Giles, where quarters had been assigned
-Sir William’s regiment, and there, in the dingy
-stable, the officers parted. Hugh of necessity
-surrendered the cornet into Turner’s hands with
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_187'>187</span>a last regretful look at its idle folds. “You made
-shift not to lose it, did you not, sir?” the captain
-said with some kindness. “Why, you’re no more
-of an encumbrance to a troop of fighting men
-than most youngsters are.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then Turner and Strangwayes walked away to
-report themselves to Sir William, while Hugh
-remained to see that Bayard and Dick’s Black
-Boy were well groomed. To tell the truth, he
-was glad to linger in the stable with the men
-among whom he had spent the last month; he
-wondered if he was to have the chance to serve
-with them always, and the thought made him
-nearly tremble with expectancy.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He was loitering by the stable door, when he
-caught sight of a familiar blue jacket, and Frank
-Pleydall, in company with two lads of his own
-age, came swaggering up. “So you’re back
-again, are you, Hugh?” he cried, with a boisterous
-embrace. “And more freckled than ever, I
-swear! Is that heavy-heeled horse of yours still
-unfoundered? Nay, don’t scowl, I mean nothing.
-But tell me, is Michael Turner’s troop here or in
-the stable across the way? I want to have a
-look at its fighting force.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Wherefore?” Hugh blurted out suspiciously.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Why, I’m to hold Griffith’s cornetcy in it.
-Such labor as I had to win it, Hugh. Talk to
-my father night and day, swear I had the strength
-and discretion of twenty, vow to run away if he
-gave it not to me, so in the end I secured it of
-him. Cornet Pleydall; how like you the sound?
-I told you I’d coax a commission of him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You will find Captain Turner a gallant man
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_188'>188</span>to serve under,” Hugh said, after a moment.
-“Good-bye, Frank, I’m weary now. I’ll speak
-with you to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With that he passed out into the street and
-headed aimlessly, he cared not whither. He had
-not known till now how sure he had felt of that
-cornetcy. And that a mere boy like Frank should
-be preferred over him, because his kinsfolk gave
-him their countenance! For one instant he
-almost had it in his heart to wish himself back at
-Everscombe, still believing in his father, and still
-confident the world stood ready to receive a man
-kindly for his own endeavors.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Too wretched to think or lay a plan for the
-future, he plodded up and down the crowded
-streets till it grew dusk and pitchy dark, when
-sheer weariness turned him to his quarters; at
-least Strangwayes was his friend. The thought
-put more life into his step and made him hurry a
-little with impatience till he had sought out the
-baker’s shop, in an upper chamber of which they
-were to lodge. To his disappointment Dick had
-not yet come in, so Hugh, without spirit enough
-to light a candle, sat down on a stool by the fire
-with his chin in his hands and waited.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>When he heard Strangwayes’ step outside,
-he endeavored to force a gay tone and shouted
-him a greeting, but now he tried to use it his
-voice broke helplessly. “There, I’ve heard it
-all, Hugh,” Strangwayes said, and made no movement
-to get a light; “and I’m thinking Turner
-takes it as ill as we do. He kept an assenting
-face to Sir William, of course, but he blurted
-out to me that the deuce was in it that a little
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_189'>189</span>popinjay like Frank must be thrust into our
-troop.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh forced a desperate laugh that ended in
-a choke.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And I’ve another piece of news for you,”
-Strangwayes went on, sitting down beside him.
-“Now you can take it as good or bad, which
-you please. I’m not resolved yet myself. You’ll
-recollect Peyton was shot at Edgehill, and we
-lost many men from the regiment. Well, they’ve
-taken another troop that suffered much and used
-it to fill up the place. And a new captain has
-been put over it under Sir William.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Is it you, Dick?” Hugh asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay,” Strangwayes answered, with a chuckle;
-“’tis a one time independent colonel, Alan
-Gwyeth.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_190'>190</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER XII <br /> <span class='small'>FOR THE HONOR OF THE GWYETHS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>“You’re free to take it as you choose, good
-or ill,” Strangwayes went on; “but I can tell
-you Colonel Gwyeth is in no two minds about
-it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I am sorry for him,” Hugh answered, after
-an instant. “I know it does wring a man to
-lose a commission out of his very hands.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Since I must steer to the windward of hypocrisy,
-I am <em>not</em> sorry for him,” Strangwayes returned.
-“And do not you worry yourself over
-his broken spirit, Hugh; so far he has borne
-up stoutly. At the last report he was ranging
-about with his sword at ready, bent on scoring
-out all his wrongs upon Master Philip Bellasis.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Philip Bellasis?” queried Hugh, struggling
-to recall what that name stood for. “What has
-he to do in this matter?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The simplicity of untutored youth!” Strangwayes’
-voice came pityingly. “Why, ’tis clear
-as most logic: my Lord Bellasis of the king’s
-council disapproves of these small independent
-troops, and has given his voice loudest, ’tis said,
-for merging Gwyeth’s horse into Sir William’s
-regiment; <em>ergo</em>, Colonel Gwyeth has taken my
-Lord Bellasis into his hatred. My Lord Bellasis
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_191'>191</span>is blessed with the gout; <em>ergo</em>, Colonel
-Gwyeth, not to waste so precious a commodity
-as hatred upon a disabled man, transfers all his
-intentions to my lords swashbuckling son Philip.
-For, granting the colonel’s temper, he must fight
-something now, and he would vastly prefer something
-of the name of Bellasis.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh still kept his old place without offering
-comment, so Strangwayes, after a moment or
-two, rose and lit a candle at the hearth. He
-did not pause even to slip off his accoutrements,
-but, holding the light, began roaming about the
-chamber on inspection, and communicating the
-results of his researches to his companion: “We
-might be worse placed. Two flights of stairs
-upward from the ground, so the air should be
-delicate and wholesome. Also the room is so
-small the fireplace ought to heat it well. And
-for the lack of furnishings, the emptiness near
-cheats a man into believing he has space enough
-to stretch himself. A contented spirit, mark you,
-is an admirable necessity in a soldier.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In the end he brought up at the nearer of the
-two windows, which he opened, and, after a long
-look out into the night, drew in his head again
-with a soberer face. “If I risked myself a hand-breadth
-further from the casement, I think I
-could make out the roofs of St. John’s,” he said,
-sitting down quietly, with the one small table
-betwixt himself and Hugh. “’Tis the good old
-college of which I was so unworthy a son. I am
-glad we lie near it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Where is the rest of the regiment?” Hugh
-asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_192'>192</span>“Sir William and most of his officers lodge
-just over the way at a merchant’s house; Turner
-and Chadwell and Seymour are here under the
-roof with us. We’ll all meet together at Sir
-William’s table.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh started back on his stool so he nearly
-overset himself. “Dick,” he burst out, “that
-means that thrice a day I shall be forced face to
-face with Colonel Gwyeth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes nodded, and then, the sheer absurdity
-of the whole position coming over them,
-they both went into a fit of laughter.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh recovered himself with a saner feeling of
-self-possession. “After all, it’s very simple,” he
-said aloud; “he’ll take no note of me, I know,
-and I’ll bear me as I would to Captain Turner,
-or any of the older men.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But, in spite of his stout words, when he woke
-in the dark of next morning Hugh could not
-sleep again for thinking of Colonel Gwyeth, and
-wondering if he would see him at breakfast and
-if the colonel would speak to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>When he first entered the long upper chamber
-of the house across the way that served the officers
-for dining hall, he looked about him, half
-eager and half in dread, and despising himself for
-both emotions. But he saw no sign of Alan
-Gwyeth, Colonel Gwyeth, as he named him to
-himself, for all he was now a mere captain. Two
-of the officers of the old independent troop, a
-German, Von Holzberg, and a certain Foster, who
-had come over into the regiment with the colonel,
-Frank pointed out to him; but Hugh only glanced
-at the men and went on eating. He wondered if
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_193'>193</span>it had been either of them that shoved him off
-the steps that night at Shrewsbury, and he had
-no desire to come in contact with them.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After breakfast Frank Pleydall haled him off to
-view the city. “You might spare me one hour
-away from your Dick Strangwayes,” the younger
-lad complained. “But I knew after you got sight
-of him you’d not have a word for me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh felt conscience-stricken, so he forced
-himself to be very pleasant to Frank, in spite of
-the boy’s persisting in talking of Turner’s troop
-and his new cornetcy. Before they reached the
-High Street of the city, however, they were joined
-by several other youngsters, one a lad from Magdalen,
-the others, boys whose fathers were serving
-the king, with all of whom Frank seemed to have
-a ripe acquaintance. Hugh concluded Master
-Pleydall was not suffering for companionship, and
-presently he concluded, too, it was a companionship
-into which he could not hope to enter. He
-had an unhappy feeling of aloofness from the
-amusements of these boys; he knew next to
-nothing of bowls or dice of which they spoke,
-and when one lad began to jeer another about a
-girl, he did not understand. So presently he
-took his leave of Frank, who was too busied with
-his comrades to take much heed of his going, and
-started back by himself to his quarters.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He was walking rather slowly, to study the
-landmarks he had noted and find his way without
-inquiry, when some one took him a boisterous
-clap on the shoulder. Facing about with a deal
-of indignation in his movement, he found it was
-George Allestree, who merely stood back and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_194'>194</span>laughed at him. “You need but two wings to
-make a paragon of a turkey cock, Hugh Gwyeth,”
-he said amusedly. “Are you looking for diversion?
-Come along with me. I am sick for some
-one to talk with.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Perhaps it was not a complimentary invitation,
-but Allestree followed it up by being so cordial
-and jolly that Hugh went with him out to the
-walks of Magdalen, and back into the city
-to dine at an ordinary. They had only just
-come out into the street again, when Hugh perceived
-a sudden surging of the foot passengers
-about him to the edge of the kennel, and such
-horsemen as were passing drew to the side to
-leave the way clear. Then some one raised a
-cry, “The king!” and others began cheering.
-Allestree caught Hugh’s sleeve and drew him up
-a flight of steps, whence, looking over the heads of
-the people, they could see a little band of mounted
-gentlemen come slowly pacing down the High
-Street.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Look you there, ’tis Prince Rupert,” Allestree
-cried loudly, to be heard through the cheering,
-and Hugh took a long look at a tall young
-man in a scarlet coat, whose whole attention was
-fixed upon his restless horse. Then he heard the
-cheers redouble, and Allestree had now joined his
-voice to the uproar. Right before the spot where
-he stood Hugh got sight in the midst of the
-horsemen of one with a pointed beard and slender
-face, who bowed his head never so slightly to
-those who cheered around him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then the horsemen had passed by, men
-turned to go their way once more, and Allestree
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_195'>195</span>replaced his hat on his head. “Had you lost
-your voice, Hugh, that you could not cheer?” he
-asked curiously.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No,” Hugh answered, as he followed down
-from the steps, “I was thinking.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Tis a bad practice. What was it of?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I was thinking his Majesty looks much as
-other men.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Indeed? And what else?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I was wondering,” Hugh said half to himself,
-“which had the right of it, you that do ever so
-extol him, or my grandfather who laid the blame
-of all this on him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Because your hair is clipped you’ve no need
-to wear ‘Roundhead’ in your heart,” Allestree
-answered sharply. “None but a boy or a fool
-would speak so.” Then, as Hugh looked abashed,
-the other moderated his tone, and, talking carelessly
-of this and that, they came at length to
-Allestree’s quarters, close outside the North Gate.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There Allestree would have Hugh out to the
-troop stables, to show him Captain Butler’s gamecocks;
-and, in the midst of it, Butler himself
-walked into the stable. Hugh remembered his
-dark, low-browed face very well from their first
-encounter, but he was surprised and a little flattered
-also to find the captain knew him at the
-mention of his name. “The brave lad that saved
-me my old friend Strangwayes,” Butler said,
-with a bit of an Irish accent, and shook hands
-kindly, then lingered to set forth the graces of the
-gamecocks. “Gloucestershire birds, those,” he
-explained. “They were hatched of rebel eggs,
-but I held it sin to leave them to tempt a good
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_196'>196</span>Puritan brother into seeing a cockfight. So I
-just made bold to muster them into the king’s
-service.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“We must put them to’t soon, Captain,” said
-Allestree, and, when Hugh left them, a good hour
-later, they were still discussing the cocks.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was near dark when Hugh came at last to
-Sir William’s quarters. The loud talk of the
-men above stairs brought him at once up to the
-dining room, where he found several officers loitering.
-“Trust that red devil Gwyeth,” Lieutenant
-Chadwell was saying; “he ran Bellasis down, be
-sure.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Fight, did they?” asked another.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“They set out together this afternoon. Yes,
-they’ve crossed blades ere this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Do you know who had the better of it?”
-Hugh cried, thrusting himself into the circle.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Chadwell looked up at him impatiently, then
-answered, “No”; and Hugh, staying for no more,
-ran out of the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Clattering down the stairway to the outer door,
-he dodged by Turner, who, facing about on the
-stair, called, “Whither are you summoned in such
-haste?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“To the city. To get news of the duel,”
-Hugh replied, over his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“There’s no need to go that far,” Turner answered
-moderately; and then, as Hugh came
-stumbling back to him up the stairs, went on:
-“Bellasis was worsted, a thrust through the
-shoulder. Captain Gwyeth came off unscathed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I was afraid—” Hugh said, clinching his
-hand about the balustrade as he stood.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_197'>197</span>“Of what?” Turner questioned dryly. “Has the
-gentleman been such a good friend—” He broke
-off there, and looked at Hugh. “I crave your
-pardon for that last, Master Gwyeth,” he said,
-without sarcasm, and walked away up the stairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>That night at supper it seemed marvellous to
-Hugh that men could speak or think of anything
-but the duel. However, there was more speech
-of fortifying the city and of the storming of Marlborough
-than of Captain Gwyeth’s affairs, so he
-was glad to get away to his room, where at least
-there were none to interrupt his own thoughts.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Late in the evening Strangwayes joined him.
-“Yes, yes, you can spare words; I’ve heard all
-about that duel,” he greeted Hugh; “and the
-town’ll hear more to-morrow. Captain Gwyeth
-has just sent a message to Sir William; he passed
-it on to me, and I’ll do the like by you. Hang me
-if the provost did not pounce down on the captain
-almost ere he quit the field, and haled him off to
-the Castle. They want no duelling among the
-king’s men.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Will they punish him?” Hugh asked breathlessly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Much!” Strangwayes answered, with vast contempt.
-“He did but nick Bellasis, and if report
-be true that fellow’s injury is no loss to the kingdom.
-If he had killed him it might be otherwise,
-for Bellasis has great kindred, civilians, too, who
-would not scruple to bring the law on his slayer,
-but as ’tis— Why, they’ll but hold him at the
-Castle a few days to encourage those of us who
-are of like inclination, and then he’ll come abroad
-again.” Then something of the warmth of his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_198'>198</span>tone abated, and he laughed to himself. “’Tis an
-ill wind that blows no one good, eh, Hugh? You
-can eat your daily bread in peace now; for the
-present Captain Gwyeth cannot vex you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Indeed, now the constant expectation of meeting
-with Alan Gwyeth was removed, Hugh found
-it far easier to fit himself to the routine of his
-new life. At first, to be sure, it cut him every
-time he saw Strangwayes buckle on his sword
-and clank away to the exercise of his troop, and
-he winced at every boasting word Frank let fall
-of the great things he meant to do now he was a
-full-fledged cornet. But he soon found that even
-a gentleman volunteer who had failed of a commission
-could be of use, where the fortifications
-on the north and southeast were digging; so for
-some days he spent hours in the varied assembly
-of college men and townsfolk, who labored with
-pick and shovel at the trenches. It was inglorious
-work for a soldier, and it was hard work that
-sent him to quarters with blistered hands and
-aching back. Frank joked him a little on turning
-ditcher, some of the other men chaffed, and
-even Strangwayes raised his eyebrows with the
-dry question, “Is it necessary?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“If the king cannot use me in one way, I must
-serve him in another, since I am eating his bread,”
-Hugh replied doggedly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Whereat Strangwayes’ eyes laughed, and he
-prayed Hugh, if he thought ’twould make no difference
-to the king, to quit the trenches for that
-afternoon and come ride with him. “Your aim
-is to be a soldier, is it not?” he asked, as they
-paced along the western road beyond the High
-Bridge.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_199'>199</span>“Yes, if I can get me a commission; ’tis all
-there is for me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Good. I began to doubt if you had not determined
-to turn pioneer. Dig in the trenches
-somewhat, by all means, and learn what you can
-of how men build fortifications and how the
-engineers devise them. But you must not for
-that neglect your horse and your sword. That
-brings it to my mind, Hugh; you should know
-something of rapier play as well as the broadsword.
-There’s a Frenchman in the city shall
-teach it you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh stammered something, with his eyes on
-the pommel of his saddle.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Twill be a favor to me if you will take these
-lessons of him,” Strangwayes put in hastily. “I
-knew the man in my college days; he owes me
-somewhat from them and would gladly return it
-thus.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So, early as next morning, Strangwayes marched
-Hugh over to a dingy lane that led from the Corn
-market, and up a narrow stair to a bare room,
-where he presented him to Monsieur de Sévérac, a
-fierce small man with mustaches. De Sévérac
-stood Hugh up with a rebated sword in his hand,
-and thrust at him, talking rapidly in a mixture of
-French and English, while Hugh vainly tried to
-parry the point that invariably got home upon his
-body. He came away bewildered and sore, to
-find the dull labor of the trenches, where at least
-he knew what was expected of him, a downright
-comfort. But little by little, as the lessons went
-on, he began to find a method beneath it all, and
-to get real pleasure from wielding the long, light
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_200'>200</span>rapier, so different from the broadsword to which
-he had been used. De Sévérac even admitted
-one day that he had a steady hand, and with
-practice might make a creditable swordsman.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With a great desire to whistle, Hugh walked
-back to dinner, and, two steps at a time, ran up
-the stairs at Sir William’s house, a bit before the
-hour, he judged, for he found the dining room to
-all appearances empty. Then, as he stepped
-across the threshold, he caught sight of Von Holzberg,
-standing in one of the deep window recesses,
-and beside him a man with red hair, who at
-his step turned and looked at him. It was Alan
-Gwyeth. For a moment he stared steadily at
-Hugh, and by his face the boy could not tell
-whether his humor were good or ill; then he
-bowed to him curtly, as any one of the captains
-might have done, and continued his speech with
-Von Holzberg. They spoke in German, Hugh
-observed, in the instant that he halted mechanically
-before he turned on his heel and went out of
-the room. He had no desire to whistle now; he
-only knew that he was heavy with a great disappointment,
-that was none the less overwhelming
-for being utterly vague.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But, in the end, he found that matters went the
-more smoothly, now the dreaded meeting was over.
-It grew in time a mere daily and expected occurrence
-to see Captain Gwyeth among the officers,
-and to receive from him, in the course of ordinary
-civility, sometimes a short bow, once or twice a
-curt good morrow. But, though Hugh repeated
-to himself it was all he had looked to receive of
-the man, there slowly grew in him an unrealized
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_201'>201</span>sense of resentment that hitherto had had no
-place in him. He ceased to look wistfully toward
-Captain Gwyeth, but made it a point to talk
-busily with Frank or Dick or others that he
-knew when he came in his father’s sight, and to
-return the other’s scant bows with equal curtness.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Meantime other occupations and interests than
-the affairs of the mess room were busying him.
-The ground was now too hard for digging, but
-the fencing lessons still went on, as Hugh’s bruised
-face and aching body often testified. He had also
-come once more, at a hint of an invitation from
-Turner, to take his place in the ranks and go
-through whatever exercises the troop was put to.
-Try as he would, though, a little bitterness still
-came into his heart at sight of Frank, carrying the
-red and gold cornet, so he was happier when,
-formal drill over, he could ride away whither he
-listed on Bayard.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>When rapier and horse both failed of interest,
-Hugh had recourse to John Ridydale, whose
-quarters in a by-street he had speedily discovered.
-With small coaxing he persuaded the corporal to
-drill him in handling pistol and carabine, an exercise
-which involved the shooting off of an amazing
-quantity of his Majesty’s powder and ball at
-practice marks in the fields of the west suburbs.
-Hugh, after peppering away bravely, came home
-in great enthusiasm to Strangwayes, who laughed
-a little, and finally remarked one day, “And do
-but think, too, how that honest corporal will go
-singing your perfections to Captain Gwyeth.”
-Whereat Hugh grew thoughtful, and somewhat
-curtailed his shooting trips.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_202'>202</span>After that, especially as fouler weather closed
-in, he exercised much in Turner’s troop stable,
-where Frank kept a wooden horse for vaulting,
-which he took great profit in seeing Hugh use.
-“’Tis such a pleasure to look on animation of a
-cold morning,” young Pleydall remarked one day,
-as he stood shivering in his cloak. “But do you
-get enjoyment of it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh, who sat in his shirt-sleeves swinging his
-legs on the back of the horse, merely laughed and
-drew his left hand up and down his spare, sinewy
-right arm. He had grown a little that winter,
-and he was beginning also to learn the power that
-was latent in each muscle. Just now he was
-thinking to himself that if it ever came again to
-rough and tumble hand-grips with Peregrine
-Oldesworth, such as they had had in the days
-at Everscombe, his cousin would not be quite so
-sure of the mastery.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Aside from the fact that he was still an uncommissioned
-volunteer, Hugh’s only quarrel with
-his busy life that winter was that he saw little of
-Dick Strangwayes. His friend’s chamber and
-purse were at his disposal, but his time Strangwayes
-himself was not master of; not only did his
-duties in the troop require him, but he had in the
-city and in the colleges many friends to whom he
-gave much of himself. Hugh valued the more
-the moments he had with his comrade at their
-chamber, and, for the rest, sought himself companionship
-where he could. Frank, too, had
-associates of his own, for whom Hugh had no
-great affection, so as a last choice he resorted to
-George Allestree, who showed his friendship by
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_203'>203</span>introducing him to all the taverns and ordinaries
-in the city. It was Allestree, too, who, when he
-found Hugh took in great seriousness his intention
-of becoming a soldier, unearthed a fat book,
-“The Soldier’s Grammar and Accidence,” by one
-Gervase Markham, and told the boy he would
-get from that all the theory of war he wanted.
-“I’ll read it speedily and return it to you, George,”
-Hugh said gratefully.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Prithee, don’t hurry yourself,” Allestree answered
-quickly. “Ten years hence is quite soon
-enough for my needs.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Indeed, Hugh did not find Gervase Markham
-exciting reading, but, to the silent enjoyment of
-Strangwayes, he dutifully labored through his
-pages. He was hard at work on Markham one
-morning, with his chin on one fist and his elbow
-on the table. Only his eyes were not on the
-book, but ranging out at the casement, for it was
-in early February and the sky was blue, and Hugh
-was thinking how the buds would be bursting
-soon on the beeches in the park at Everscombe.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Did you note the Worcestershire parson who
-sat at our table last night?” suddenly spoke
-Strangwayes, who was shaving at the little mirror
-between the windows.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Frank said he was an old tutor whom Sir
-William held in much respect,” Hugh answered,
-bringing his gaze back to the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, he was set next Captain Gwyeth, and
-I was the other side, so I enjoyed their discourse.
-It seems the parson was much attracted by you.”
-Strangwayes tipped his head on one side while
-he scraped the razor along his cheek, and spoke
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_204'>204</span>disjointedly. “Something, either the way you
-thrust up that square chin of yours, or your pretty
-habit of not speaking to your elders unless they
-address you,—except in my case, for you constantly
-fail in respect to me,—well, you much
-pleased the gentleman, so he asked the captain
-your name. And the captain told him. ‘Your
-son, sir?’ says he, and falls to congratulating the
-captain on your fine bearing and—nay, I’ll spare
-you. But I’m thinking Captain Gwyeth did not
-relish his supper.” There was an instant’s pause
-while Strangwayes, with his head thrown back,
-shaved warily beneath his chin; then he laid down
-the razor and faced about. “Will you believe it,
-Hugh?” he said, in something between jest and
-seriousness, “I’m thinking if you should go very
-humbly, hat in hand, to the captain and say, ‘Sir,
-I bore myself very frowardly and peevishly toward
-you, but now I am ready to submit me,’ I’m thinking
-he would rate you soundly and—henceforth
-maintain you himself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Doubtless he will,—when I go unto him so,”
-Hugh said shortly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes laughed a little, then fell to talking
-of indifferent matters, while he put on his
-coat and fastened his belt. “I saw Phil Bellasis
-in the city yesterday,” he ended. “Perhaps to
-even matters he’s looking for Captain Gwyeth
-now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I should think one lesson would suffice for
-him,” Hugh replied; and then, as Dick tramped
-away, turned his attention again to Gervase
-Markham.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But reading or any serious pursuit was out of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_205'>205</span>the question on those blue spring days in the
-midst of winter. There was near a week of such
-weather, in which poor Gervase was left to gather
-dust on the chimney-piece, and Monsieur de Sévérac
-expostulated at Hugh’s inattention. The boy’s
-heart was idling out in the open air, and his body
-must needs follow. He galloped Bayard round
-about the city till he knew the roads to weariness,
-and then, descending upon George Allestree, he
-dragged him out to tramp in the slushy remnants
-of the last snow.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“We’ll even up scores now,” Allestree said one
-afternoon. “You’ve haled me through the mire,
-which I loathe, and now I’ll make you sup in the
-city with me, which I know you abhor.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So it was that in the evening Hugh found himself
-blinking sleepily in a brightly lighted room
-above a city ordinary, and roused up only at the
-click of the dice. At one of the small tables
-Allestree and Lieutenant Seymour, who had
-joined them, were deep in play, so Hugh got up
-and stood watching them. In spite of all urgings
-he did not play himself; the forty-five shillings
-he brought from Edgehill had lasted him well for
-spending money, but he had none to squander on
-the dice.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He looked up to the door as several newcomers
-entered,—civilians, from their lack of
-any regimental badge. “Why, is’t not Bellasis
-yonder?” Seymour asked, dicebox in hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Hm,” grunted Allestree. “Throw.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh glanced curiously at the men, who had
-placed themselves at the next table. One that
-sat on the farther side—a sallow, long-legged
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_206'>206</span>fellow of thirty—he held to be Bellasis; meeting
-the man’s eyes, his thoughts went back to the
-day of Edgehill, when Bellasis had nearly ridden
-down Frank, and he felt sure of the identification.
-Then he turned to watch Allestree’s play;
-how many throws had passed he did not know,
-when, hearing some one speak near by, he listened
-carelessly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Oh, you do not know him, then?” a curt,
-incisive voice reached him. “Well, ’tis no wonder.
-The puppy was whelped in a gutter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh felt a hot prickling clear to the back
-of his neck; but, although his whole attention
-was now riveted to those behind him, he did not
-turn.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, groom to a gang of common foot soldiers.
-A fellow of the name of Strangwayes
-took him thence in charity and employed him
-as body servant.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I stake you ten shillings,” said Allestree,
-reaching well across the table.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I take it,” answered Seymour.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh leaned a little forward with his clinched
-hands resting on the table, and listened, not to
-them, but to Philip Bellasis.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Pshaw! how would you have it?” the scornful
-voice went on. “’Tis bad blood there. Now
-Alan Gwyeth—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh swung round on his heel; the candles
-dazzled up and down before him, but he could
-make out Bellasis, resting his chin on one hand
-as he sat, and speaking straight at him: “Alan
-Gwyeth, you’ll remember, was but a broken German
-cutthroat, who lost his commission here for
-cowardice—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_207'>207</span>“Sit down, Hugh!” Allestree cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh could feel Allestree’s grasp tighten on
-his arm, but, shaking him off, he walked across
-to the table where Bellasis sat. The room was
-very still, and in the silence his voice sounded
-husky and low. “You spoke of Alan Gwyeth,”
-he began slowly. “When you call him a coward,
-I tell you you lie in your throat!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he leaned across the table and smote
-Bellasis on the mouth.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_208'>208</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER XIII <br /> <span class='small'>IN THE FIELDS TOWARD OSNEY ABBEY</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>It was dark in the passage outside the door,
-and Hugh fumbled stupidly to find the latch.
-Inside two patches of moonlight, checkered like
-the diamond panes of the windows, lay on the
-floor. Hugh stood staring at them dully a moment
-before he spoke, “Dick.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well?” came from the black corner where
-the bed stood; it was Strangwayes’ assertion
-that he always slept with one eye and one ear
-alert.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh stepped over to the bedside. “I have
-met with Philip Bellasis,” he began quickly, as
-if he had a lesson he knew must be repeated.
-“He slandered my father. I gave him the lie.
-We are to fight with rapiers to-morrow at twilight
-in the fields toward Osney Abbey.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes was sitting upright in bed now.
-“You are to fight Bellasis?” he repeated.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh nodded. “Have you the time to come
-out to the field with me, Dick? George offered,
-but I’d rather—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Did George Allestree suffer you enter on
-such a quarrel?” There was a sharp, ringing
-quality in Strangwayes’ voice Hugh had seldom
-heard.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_209'>209</span>“Nay, ’tis no fault of George,” he answered
-quickly, and detailed all that had befallen at the
-ordinary.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes dropped back on his elbow.
-“Hugh, you fool, you babe!” he broke out,
-still with that odd quality in his voice. “That
-scoundrel trapped you deliberately; he durst not
-meet your father again; he tried to trap you, and
-you suffered him!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I could do nothing else,” Hugh answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, get to bed now,” Strangwayes said in
-his kindest tone. “You must have all the rest
-you can before you go to spit our friend
-Philip.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Lying down obediently, Hugh stared at the
-moonlight creeping along the floor, and listened
-to the watch that paced the street below. Strangwayes
-at his side breathed uneasily and once or
-twice turned somewhat; but Hugh lay quiet till
-his opened eyes ached and were heavy, and he
-slept a sleep full of dreams.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>When he came broad awake again there was
-chilly daylight in the room, and Strangwayes was
-up and half dressed. “What sort of day is it?”
-Hugh asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A gray day,” Dick answered cheerily. “’Tis
-good for your work. There’ll be no sun to dazzle
-either of you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh got up, and in the midst of drawing on
-his clothes glanced at Dick’s watch, where he saw
-it was past their rising hour. “Is this the way
-you pamper a fighter, as if I were one of Butler’s
-gamecocks?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You were sleeping well,” Strangwayes answered;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_210'>210</span>“’twere pity to wake you. I’ll fetch some
-breakfast and we’ll eat together here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You can get food from the shop below; you’ve
-no need of your hat and cloak. Where are you
-going, Dick?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes hesitated an instant while he
-drew his cloak about him, then replied, “I am
-going to your father.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You shall not!” Hugh cried, and, crossing to
-the door, set his back against it.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Assuredly I shall,” Strangwayes answered.
-“The matter has gone beyond jest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He will call me a snivelling coward,” Hugh
-pleaded; “he will say I made a mash of it and
-then came whimpering to him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Let him,” Strangwayes interrupted, “’tis his
-quarrel and he should manage it himself. Why
-did you ever thrust in?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I know not,” Hugh answered. “Only he is my
-father. And he is no coward. They lied about
-him in that. And he was not there to reply. I
-had to come in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, he can come in now,” Strangwayes retorted,
-and strode over to the door.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh thrust up one arm against his friend’s
-chest. “You will not tell him?” he begged. “I
-know you can put me aside, Dick; you’re the
-stronger. But prithee, do not use me thus. He
-despises me so already. I’d liefer Bellasis killed
-me twice over. You won’t speak a word to him,
-Dick?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No, I won’t speak to him, Hugh,” Strangwayes
-answered soothingly. “Come, come, you’re
-foolish as a girl. Go get on your coat, and be
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_211'>211</span>ready to eat a full breakfast.” He put Hugh
-aside with one arm about his shoulders, and went
-out of the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>When Hugh had finished dressing he opened
-the casement and leaned out a little into the raw
-morning air; the chilly wind seemed to brush
-away something of the heaviness of his unrefreshing
-sleep. Down in the street below he saw men
-passing by, and a townswoman in a scarlet hood
-that showed bright against the muddy road and
-dark houses. Across the way he saw Major
-Bludsworth come leisurely down the steps from
-Sir William’s quarters, and presently he saw a
-trooper, lumbering briskly up the stairs, disappear
-inside the house.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Just then a kick upon the door made him turn
-in time to see Strangwayes, keeping the door
-braced open with one foot, come sidewise through
-the narrow aperture. In one hand he held two
-mugs of ale and in the other a pasty, which Hugh
-had the wit to catch before it fell to the floor.
-“Ay, treat it reverently,” Dick said, “’tis mutton,
-and age has ever commanded reverence. Part of
-the ale has gone up my sleeve, but the rest is
-warranted of a good headiness.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After he had thrown off his cloak the two set
-them down at the table with the pasty and the
-ale between them, and drew out their knives.
-Strangwayes scored a line across the middle of
-the mutton pie. “Now each man falls to,” he
-ordered, “and he who works the greatest havoc
-on his side gets the mug that is full, while the
-other must content him with the scant measure.
-Now, then, charge for England and St. George!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_212'>212</span>They were well at work, Hugh eating dutifully
-and Dick both eating and setting forth an interminable
-tale of a fat citizen’s wife he had accosted
-in the bakeshop, when there sounded a quick
-stamping on the stairs. “I’ll wager ’tis the popinjay,”
-said Strangwayes, pausing with his knife
-suspended.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Right on the word Frank Pleydall burst into
-the room. “Is it true you’re to fight?” he cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A guess near the truth,” answered Strangwayes.
-“Draw up and share with us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’ve eaten breakfast. They were talking of
-the duel there at the table. So you’re to fight
-Bellasis, Hugh? Aren’t you afraid?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The full mug of ale suddenly went crashing
-and slopping to the floor. “If I were the Creator
-and had men to make,” said Strangwayes, down
-on his knees among the fragments, “I’d make
-men without elbows, at least without such elbows
-as mine. Come aid me, you lazy fellow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh obediently began mopping up the spilt
-ale, but Strangwayes did not stay to help him.
-He was speaking with Frank over by the window,
-and Hugh just caught something like, “If you
-don’t hold your foolish tongue, I’ll cuff your head
-off.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In any case, when Hugh rose to his feet he
-found Frank very subdued. “’Twas my father
-sent me hither,” he began, with a little trace of
-sullenness. “He said if you really had it in mind
-to fight, you were best slip out of the town early.
-The matter has got abroad, and the provost may
-send to apprehend you just for accepting the
-challenge.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_213'>213</span>“Then we’ll disappoint the provost,” said
-Strangwayes. “I’ve sent to the stable already to
-have our horses brought round. Clap into your
-boots, Hugh, but bring your shoes along. You
-can’t fight with a ton of leather about your heels.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Is there aught I can lend you, Hugh?” asked
-Frank, studying his friend with interested eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’m well enough,” Hugh answered cheerfully.
-“Dick is going to let me use his rapier.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Can’t I come out to the field with you?”
-Frank begged. “Oh, I’ll not speak a word, Dick,
-and I’ll do whatever you may tell me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“If a second man came it would have to be
-Allestree,” answered Strangwayes. “Better go
-back to quarters now, Frank. Tell Sir William
-we thank him for his warning, and I have taken a
-day’s leave of absence.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But as Strangwayes was edging him toward
-the door Frank dodged by him and ran back to
-Hugh. “Good luck to you,” he said, putting his
-arms round Hugh and kissing him. “And—and
-God keep you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he clattered out and down the stairs, and
-Hugh, for a moment, neither looked at Dick nor
-spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He was drawing on his cloak, still with his back
-toward Strangwayes, who stood by the window,
-when his friend struck in gayly: “In good time,
-here are the horses. Come along, now.” Thus
-Hugh was hurried out at the door, with time only
-for a single backward glance at the little crowded
-chamber, and barely an instant in which to ask
-himself, would he ever look upon that room
-again?</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_214'>214</span>At the foot of the first flight of stairs they met
-Turner, recognizable by his slim figure, though
-the corridor was too dark for them to distinguish
-his face. “Going out to the field, eh, Gwyeth?”
-he asked, thrusting out his hand. “Well, success
-to you, lad, good success.” He shook hands a
-second time with a strong pressure that lingered
-on Hugh’s fingers till after they were mounted
-and off.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Under foot the mud and slush were heavy, but
-the horses kept up a tolerable pace, which Hugh,
-unknown to himself, was setting for them. A
-feverish desire to be moving quickly was upon him,
-and with it a dread of being silent. He laughed
-and chatted indifferently of whatever caught his
-eye upon the western road till he soon had Strangwayes
-talking back glibly. “We’ll dine at an alehouse
-called the ‘Sceptre,’” Dick rattled on.
-“I know it well of old. I used to have a score as
-long as my arm chalked on the door. There’s a
-very pretty bowling green behind the house.
-Which explains my long score. When the spring
-comes I must have you out thither and teach you
-to bowl. ’Tis good for the muscles of the arm, let
-alone the exhilaration of the spirits.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was mid-morning when they drew rein before
-the much belauded alehouse, a low gray building,
-in a field somewhat apart from the surrounding
-cottages, with tall poplars in a row on either side
-that made it seem the more remote. The short-breathed
-host and his staid, gray-headed drawer
-had had acquaintance with Strangwayes as late
-as that winter, to judge by the warmth of their
-greeting. They had the horses to the stable at
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_215'>215</span>once, and the gentlemen to the big front chamber
-of the upper story, where a good fire was started,
-a cloth laid, and all made comfortable. “We’ll
-not dine till one o’clock,” Strangwayes ordered.
-“If you hear scuffling before then be not dismayed;
-we may try some sword practice. You
-understand, eh, Martin?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The sober drawer showed sparks of interest.
-“Be you to fight, Master Strangwayes?” he
-asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“This gentleman is, this afternoon. Now keep
-a quiet tongue, Martin, as you always do.” He
-slipped a piece of money into the drawer’s hand,
-and the man departed slowly, with his gaze on
-Hugh.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Now make yourself at ease,” Strangwayes
-bade. “Or will you try a little rapier practice to
-limber your muscles?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh was ready enough, so Strangwayes procured
-from the host a pair of blunted rapiers with
-which they fell to fencing. Hugh watched Dick’s
-sword-hand and did his best, but again and again
-the point slipped past his blade; there seemed no
-suppleness in his wrist nor spring in his body, and
-when he tried desperately to retort faster he laid
-himself open to his adversary. In the end, as he
-attempted a vigorous thrust in quarte, his foot
-slipped so he only saved himself by catching at
-the table. As he recovered himself he looked at
-Dick, and saw his face was of an appalling
-soberness. “You’ve a steady enough hand, Hugh,”
-he began hastily. “Only you must quicken your
-thrusts somewhat. No, don’t try any more; you’ll
-only spend yourself needlessly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_216'>216</span>Hugh handed back his weapon, and made a
-great work of putting on his coat again. But
-presently it would out. “My father is considerable
-of a swordsman, is he not?” he
-began.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He has that reputation,” Strangwayes answered
-dryly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yet he did not contrive more than to wound
-Bellasis.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I doubt if he put his whole skill into the business,”
-Strangwayes said quickly. “Come, Hugh,
-try a hand at primero with me,—unless you fear
-I worst you there.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He drew the cards from his pocket, and they
-sat down to the table by the fire. How many
-games they played Hugh did not heed; he dealt
-recklessly and talked and laughed his loudest;
-sometimes he won of Strangwayes, sometimes he
-lost, but it all mattered nothing. He was in the
-thick of a boisterous exposition of the merits of
-the hand he held, when some one knocked at the
-door. “Come!” Strangwayes cried eagerly, and
-sprang to his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The door was pushed open, and Ridydale,
-spattered to the thighs, walked in. “A letter
-for you, sir, from Colonel Gwyeth,” he said, crossing
-to Hugh. “The colonel lay from his quarters
-yesternight, and came not back till late this
-morning.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This last was spoken more to Strangwayes
-than to Hugh, but the boy did not heed. He
-was tearing open the letter with fingers that
-shook with impatience. It was very brief, he
-saw at first glance; then he read:—</p>
-
-<div><span class='pageno' id='Page_217'>217</span></div>
-<div class='letter'>
-
-<p class='c000'><span class='sc'>Worthy Sir</span>:</p>
-<p class='c007'>For something like forty years I have contrived unaided to
-keep my honor and my reputation clear. By the grace of
-Heaven I hope to do so for forty years longer, still without a
-boy’s assistance. Quit at once this absurd quarrel you have
-entered on. Take yourself back to your quarters. I shall myself
-deal with Master Bellasis.</p>
-<div class='c013'>Your obedient servant,</div>
-<div class='c014'><span class='sc'>Alan Gwyeth</span>.</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh read the paper over once more, slowly,
-then passed it to Dick. “That is what he writes
-me,” he said without passion, and getting up went
-to fetch a standish and paper from an open cupboard
-in one corner of the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He placed them on the table as Strangwayes
-looked up from finishing the letter. He, too, said
-nothing, but his mouth was set in a hard line
-under his mustache. “I’ll write an answer,”
-Hugh said quietly, as he seated himself.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Will you not ride back to the city with me,
-sir?” Ridydale put in eagerly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh was silent a moment while he adjusted
-his paper and pen, then replied: “I am not coming
-to the city with you. Moreover, Corporal
-Ridydale, if you ever again mention unto me one
-word of Captain Gwyeth, I’ll have no more dealings
-with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he turned resolutely to his task and
-wrote his answer, slowly, for he was an unhandy
-penman, and he wished the letter to be quite
-dignified in neatness.</p>
-
-<div class='letter'>
-
-<p class='c000'><span class='sc'>Worthy Sir</span>:</p>
-<p class='c007'>When we parted at Shrewsbury perhaps you may remember
-I said to you that you had no right to lay a command upon
-me. Since that time you have done naught to get you the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_218'>218</span>right; by your will I am no son of yours. Yet so long as I
-bear the name of Gwyeth it is my part to defend that name
-from any slander. Therefore I did enter on a quarrel with
-the one who defamed my family. The quarrel is now mine
-and I shall pursue it to the end. Though I have been flogged
-by your troopers, I have some notion of what becomes a gentleman
-of honor. Such a gentleman as my mother would wish
-me to be does not suffer another to undertake his defence.</p>
-
-<div class='c013'>Your obedient servant,</div>
-<div class='c014'><span class='sc'>Hugh Gwyeth</span>.</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>He chose his words deliberately; it was amazing
-how ready they were to his hand, now that he
-had come to the realization that Alan Gwyeth
-had used him with brutal unjustness.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He folded the paper carefully. “Here, take
-it, Ridydale,” he ordered. “But remember, I’ve
-no quarrel with you, Corporal. You have been a
-good friend to me, and I’d still keep you so.
-Only never another mention of Captain Gwyeth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Ridydale hesitated a moment with the letter in
-his hand before he broke out: “Tell you what,
-Master Hugh, I’ll send this by another messenger.
-I’m going to rest here till the fight’s
-over. You may want me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“That’s well,” Strangwayes said promptly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After Ridydale had left them, Dick ordered up
-dinner, and they tried to talk over it as before.
-Strangwayes made out fairly, but a numb silence
-was on Hugh; in the bracing anger of a few
-moments before his resolution seemed all to have
-vanished and left him spiritless. He could not
-help looking to the window to see what time
-of day it was, and involuntarily he interrupted
-Strangwayes with a question as to how soon they
-should start for the field. “Not for a couple of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_219'>219</span>hours,” the other replied. “’Tis a bit of a walk;
-we’ll take supper here afterward—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With a sudden gesture Hugh pushed by his
-plate and swung about with his head hidden
-against the back of his chair. For of a sudden
-there came sweeping upon him overpoweringly
-the realization he had been battling off all the
-morning: this was the last meal he might ever
-eat.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He got to his feet unsteadily and walked to the
-door; the scrape of a chair told him Strangwayes
-had risen. “Don’t!” Hugh cried. “I want to
-be alone.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Somehow he felt his way down a flight of
-backstairs, and pushing open a side door stumbled
-out into the air. There was a level stretch
-of pashy bowling green down which he splashed
-his way. But press forward as he would, he
-knew he could not run from what he had bound
-himself to, so, where the green ended at the hedge,
-he flung himself down on a wet bench and sat
-with his head in his hands. In one of the bare
-poplars a snow bird was chirruping; over toward
-the stable he could hear a man calling and a
-horse stamp. He dropped his head on his knees
-and stared dumbly at the trodden mud between
-his feet. For he knew now there was nothing to
-help him, even Dick’s friendship and affection
-were of no avail; there was only himself to rely
-on. Once he thought of God, but the God the
-Oldesworths had taught him was distant and
-very stern; He would never take pity on a duellist,
-even if he cried to Him. So Hugh, with his
-head bowed down, wrestled through the struggle
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_220'>220</span>alone, and little by little forced himself to accept
-with a soldier’s resignation the fate that should
-take from him the joy of battle, and of friendship,
-and of life that summed up all joys.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>When he rose his face was quite steady, though
-he made no pretence to the cheerfulness he had
-kept up that morning. Walking briskly back to
-the house, he made his way to their chamber,
-where he found Strangwayes pacing up and
-down. Hugh went to him and put a hand on
-his shoulder. “Let’s not try to pretend about
-it any more, Dick,” he said simply. “Bellasis has
-handled a rapier for years where I’ve used it but
-weeks. There is no hope for me. Frankly, is
-there? On your honor, Dick.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“There is this hope,” Strangwayes answered,
-after an instant. “It may be he will content
-himself with disabling you, and then—he will
-force you to crave his pardon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The other way suits me better,” Hugh said
-quietly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You can only do your best,” Strangwayes replied.
-“He may be careless. Be ready to use
-every opportunity.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I will,” Hugh nodded, and then, sitting down
-by the fire, he beckoned his friend to sit beside
-him. “I take it, time’s short,” he began, “so I
-want to tell you, Dick, you’re to take Bayard and
-keep him, and be very kind to him, only I know
-you’ll be that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes reached out his arm; the two
-griped hands, and sat so.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Give my sword to Frank,” Hugh went on,
-“and give Ned Griffith back his red sash. Ridydale
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_221'>221</span>can have my spurs. Then there’s six shillings
-I’ve here; I want a trooper named Robert
-Saxon in Gwyeth’s company to have them; he’ll
-be sorry and drunk at once. Give my duty to
-Captain Turner and Sir William, and commend
-me to George Allestree.” He paused a moment,
-then resumed: “There’s a girl at Everscombe
-Manor, Lois Campion; we were playfellows then.
-She has not writ me since, but I’d like her to
-know that I held her in remembrance. I’d fain
-send my duty to my Grandfather Oldesworth, too,
-but I doubt if he’d accept of it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’ll do all as you bid,” Strangwayes answered.
-“God! if I could but fight that coward for you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After that outburst they sat side by side without
-speaking, while the quick moments slipped
-by, till at last Strangwayes rose unwillingly to his
-feet. “We must start now,” he said, so Hugh
-put on his cloak, and arm in arm they went out
-from the house.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At the door Ridydale saluted them, then fell
-into step behind them, and in such order they
-splashed down the bowling green. Through a
-gap in the hedge they entered a field where some
-patches of snow still lingered in the hollows.
-Beyond they passed through a copse of naked
-trees, and so across a dry ditch entered a level
-piece of open ground. At the farther end two
-men stood waiting. “Faith, I had judged you
-meant to shirk your hour,” cried the taller of the
-two in a sharp, high voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Close of twilight is a rather loose appointment,
-Master Bellasis,” Strangwayes answered
-curtly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_222'>222</span>“And you fetched a third man, did you? Two
-to one—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Maybe you would wish the city guard to come
-upon you with blades in your hands?” Strangwayes
-interrupted. “I have brought a sure man
-to watch the road. But if you object—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Oh, by no means,” laughed Bellasis. “And
-’tis well you brought him. ’Twill need two of
-you to convey your gentleman from the field.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“In any case I shall have legs left to walk back
-to the field and find you,” Strangwayes retorted,
-with his nostrils drawn thin. “Strip off your
-coat, Hugh. Take your place beyond the bushes
-there, Ridydale.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh was glad that Dick unfastened his coat
-for him; for a sick instant the control he had
-acquired of himself seemed slipping away. But
-it was only an instant, and then, grasping his
-rapier firmly, he had stood up stiffly in the place
-they bade him stand. In the distance, against
-the darkening twilight, he could see the bare
-trees and the towers of Osney Abbey; then his
-eyes descended to Bellasis’ keen sallow face, and
-then they dropped to the man’s bony sword-hand,
-and he saw nothing else.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Some one said, “Now!” and the rapiers crossed,
-how, he scarcely knew. He heard the quick click
-of the blades, and with it came a sudden flash of
-pain in his right thigh; he thrust desperately at
-Bellasis’ shoulder, but his point went wide.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“That shall quit the blow you struck me,” his
-adversary spoke, softly, as the blades clicked again.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh shifted his body, stiffly, for his right leg
-felt strangely numb, yet with his utmost skill he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_223'>223</span>contrived to put by two thrusts; all his attention
-was riveted to the blades, but some inner consciousness
-was telling him that Bellasis was only
-feinting carelessly, and had not yet shown his
-strength. His very despair drove him forward in
-a useless thrust, and at that the other’s rapier
-seemed in his eyes, and he felt something warm
-on his left cheek.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And there’s for your father’s blow,” said
-Bellasis, in a low voice. “Get your breath now
-for the last bout.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There was thrust and parry for what seemed
-endless hours; click of blade, desperate effort
-that set Hugh, mad with his helplessness, panting
-to the point of sobbing. Then, of a sudden,
-as he made an instinctive swerve to the right,
-there came a rasping sound of tearing cloth, a
-deathly agony swept through his body. But he
-saw Bellasis leaning toward him with body all
-exposed, and, springing forward, with all the
-strength in him he thrust home the rapier.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The hilt of the rapier slipped from his hand.
-Bellasis’ shirt and face showed white on the
-muddy ground at his feet. All the rest was
-blackness and pain. A second thrill pierced
-through his side. Some one’s arm was about him,
-and Dick’s voice cried, “Hugh, Hugh!” with an
-agony in it he marvelled at. He could feel
-Strangwayes’ fingers tearing open his shirt, a
-cloth pressing in upon his side. “Ha’ done!” he
-gasped out, clutching Dick round the neck.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Right upon that, somewhere very far distant,
-he heard Ridydale’s voice: “Off with you! The
-guard’s upon us!”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_224'>224</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER XIV <br /> <span class='small'>UNDER THE KING’S DISPLEASURE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>A racking agony of being borne joltingly
-along Hugh remembered dimly, but now there
-came a moment of fuller consciousness. He
-knew it was black all about where he lay, the
-ground beneath him felt wet, and his face was
-jammed into something so cold it made his cheek
-ache. With a helpless catching of the breath he
-tried to shift his position. “Hush, hush!” Strangwayes’
-voice sounded right at his ear, and Strangwayes’
-arm pressed him close.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Smothering the cry of pain, Hugh listened
-breathlessly; somewhere far above him people
-must be moving, for he heard the snap of boughs
-and men’s voices calling, “Have you found a
-trace?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay, they bore to the roadway, I’ll wager.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Have ye searched the ditch?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>On that, nearer and louder than before, came
-more trampling and crashing. Hugh could not
-hear Strangwayes breathe, but he felt Strangwayes’
-arm draw more tensely about him, and, when he
-turned his head painfully, knew it was Strangwayes’
-hand pressed down on his mouth. Now
-as he lay he could see a shred of dark sky with
-the outline of branches thick woven against it.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_225'>225</span>Then the sight of the sky went blurring out from
-before his eyes, and the crackling of the bushes
-grew fainter till that and all other sound ceased
-for him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A sense that he had been long in a region of
-blankness, then once more he heard voices, but
-now they were beside him and he knew who
-spoke. “Durst you venture forth, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I dare not risk it, Corporal. Yet if we stay
-in this slough— You’re holding him as clear of
-the wet as you can?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What else should I be doing, sir?” Ridydale’s
-voice came snappishly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You are here, Dick?” Hugh tried to say, but
-it took an instant to force out even a weak
-whisper.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A quick movement and Strangwayes bent over
-him; Hugh concluded vaguely that he was resting
-across the knees of his two friends with his
-head upon Dick’s arm. “How is it with you
-now, lad?” Strangwayes asked eagerly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well enough. Only my face aches,” Hugh
-admitted in a whisper that pained him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I could have forgiven him, had he killed the
-lad clean and quick,” Strangwayes broke out;
-“but to hack him into pieces thus!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Hell gnaw him for it!” Ridydale growled
-back.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With neither wit nor strength to reason out of
-what or whom they spoke, Hugh lay quiet and
-unresisting in the arms of his companions. He
-wondered if their coats were wrapped about him,
-he felt so warm. Then, after a space where even
-wonder was blotted out, he felt his shirt thrust
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_226'>226</span>open again and the air cold on his breast. “Give
-me those other napkins,” Strangwayes’ voice
-sounded hard and colorless; “he is bleeding
-again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Something like a groan burst from Ridydale.
-“May we not venture it now, sir?” he begged.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“In God’s name, yes!” Strangwayes cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh felt himself lifted up, and with the movement
-came a throbbing pain through all his body,
-and then a deathly faintness, that left him
-no strength to cry out. Through it all he
-caught a glimpse of a blackness above him that
-must be the night sky, and then it was all a blackness,
-where he could not even feel Dick’s touch.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For one instant of agony the light returned to
-him. It seemed they must have torn open all
-his wounds, and they would not spare him, even
-when at last he cried for mercy. Strangwayes’
-face came out of the blur of light, and Strangwayes
-griped hold of his hand, but gave him no
-other comfort. Then the light went out, and for
-a space Hugh had only ugly dreams.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was of a morning that he opened his eyes
-again upon a sane and remembered world.
-Somewhere near crackled a fire, the light of
-which dazzled him so he blinked and closed his
-eyes once more. Gradually he became aware
-that he was warm, and lay on something soft.
-He felt no pain at all now, and he could not understand
-why they had so fettered his body with
-bandages. Presently he summoned energy to
-open his eyes a second time, and, with long intervals
-of dozing, lay staring about him: a small,
-bare room he did not recollect to have seen before;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_227'>227</span>one high, narrow window, with a naked
-branch that seemed to cleave it from corner to
-corner; a dancing fire that for a long time fascinated
-him. After that he studied the blue coverlet
-that was flung over him, and then, dragging
-out one arm, rested it upon the coverlet, and marvelled
-that his wrist was grown so slender.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then from somewhere Strangwayes came and
-stood over him, just the same as he had ever
-been, only now the lower part of his face was
-black with a half-grown beard. “Do you know
-me, Hugh?” he asked, and for once there was
-no laughter in his eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Why, of course I know you,” Hugh replied,
-vexed at the folly of such a question.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Drawing up a stool, Strangwayes sat down
-beside him, but Hugh hardly noted him for still
-gazing at that limp arm that did not seem to belong
-to him. But presently he found that he could
-move it, if he took his time, so with infinite pains
-he dragged his hand up to his face, and felt a
-great welt of plaster upon one cheek. “What’s
-to do?” he asked faintly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A beauty mark you may keep with you,”
-Strangwayes said, with an effort at his old gay
-tone, though his eyes were blinking fast.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh rested a time, then, with much patience,
-lifted his hand to his head, and gave a gasp of
-consternation as he drew his uncertain fingers
-across a stiff, prickly surface. “What have you
-done to me now?” he cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Clipped you close. Do you think a fellow
-that gets him a fever can be let play Cavalier?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You cut my hair?” Hugh repeated. “And it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_228'>228</span>was growing bravely. He’d a had no need to
-call me Roundhead any more. I would not have
-used you so.” He slipped his hand down over
-his eyes, and burst into a pitiful sort of whimpering,
-he knew not why.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Be silent now!” Strangwayes cried, with a
-sharpness that made Hugh quiet with pure
-amazement that his friend could use such a tone
-to him. But after that Strangwayes put his pillow
-into shape, and, covering him up, bade him sleep,
-with all his old kindness.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After sleeping long and comfortably Hugh
-awoke to see a candle flickering on the table,
-and the small window carefully hidden over with
-a curtain. “Are you here, Dick?” he asked,
-and Strangwayes, rising from before the fire,
-came to the side of his pallet. “Awake again,
-Hugh? Come, don’t you think you could eat a
-bit?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>"I know not," Hugh spoke with long pauses.
-“Why, perhaps I am hungry. I thought something
-was amiss.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes laughed, for no visible reason,
-and, presently fetching him broth, fed him with
-slow spoonfuls. The food put enough life into
-Hugh for him to ask at length, “Where are
-we?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“In a back chamber of the alehouse of the
-‘Sceptre.’ There, question no farther. Your
-duty now is but to eat and sleep.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For many hours Hugh obeyed that command
-unquestioningly, and pained himself only to take
-the merest outer observation of what went on
-about him. A small pompous man in black,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_229'>229</span>who dressed his wounds and left ill-tasting drugs
-came twice to the room; the drawer, Martin,
-came often with food; and Strangwayes was
-there always, right at his bedside, whenever he
-chose to call upon him. For the rest, there was
-the crackling fire to watch, and the window.
-Once when he looked to it of a morning he
-saw it thick with white frost, and Strangwayes,
-coming to the pallet, flung a cloak over him
-as he lay. Hugh watched him an instant, then
-broke out irrelevantly, “Dick, have I been very
-ill?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Just a bit,” Strangwayes replied, in his dryest
-tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“From the duel, was it not?” Hugh pursued;
-then suddenly: “Tell me, how did it fare with
-Bellasis? Has he recovered before me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He is recovered,” Strangwayes answered, and
-hastened away to mend the fire.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But four and twenty hours later Hugh attacked
-his friend with a new query: “Why does not
-Frank or George come to visit me now? I think
-I be strong enough.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Wait a time longer,” Strangwayes urged; so
-Hugh waited and pondered much. For his head
-did not ache now whenever he tried to think, so
-he went over all he remembered of the last days,
-and concluded on this and that till he was ready
-to ask farther questions.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The late cold that made the window white had
-somewhat abated, when for the first time Strangwayes
-propped Hugh up in bed with two cushions
-behind him and a cloak about his shoulders.
-“I want to ask you something,” Hugh began
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_230'>230</span>then, soberly, “I am quite strong, you see. Now
-tell me, Dick, did I not hurt Bellasis?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes,” Strangwayes answered, setting his face
-grimly to the front.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Sorely?” Hugh urged. “Tell me, Dick.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You must lie down again,” Strangwayes ordered;
-but as he was stretched on his back Hugh
-caught his friend’s sleeve. “You must tell me,”
-he repeated. “Dick, I did not—kill him?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In spite of all he could do Strangwayes’ face
-made reply, and Hugh, after one look, turned
-himself to the wall.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Presently Strangwayes’ arm was slipped under
-his neck. “You must not grieve for that man,”
-he spoke anxiously.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At that Hugh turned and put his arm round
-Dick as he knelt by the pallet. “I was not grieving,”
-he said simply, “only I was sorry that after
-all I could not be sorry for him.” Then, after
-a moment: “Tell me all about it. Yes, now, I
-pray you, Dick.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes looked at him, then settled himself
-a little more comfortably on the floor by the
-pallet. “You remember the fight?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh nodded. “But I cannot understand
-how I had the better of it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He gave it you,” Strangwayes answered. “He
-scorned you so he destroyed himself. He fenced
-as if ’twere mere play, and his last thrust was not
-clean. It took you beneath the small ribs, not a
-mortal thrust, and there his rapier stayed hampered.
-And while his body was undefended, as
-he strove to wrench his blade free, you ran him
-through the bowels. They carried him off the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_231'>231</span>field, I hear, but he was bleeding inside, and they
-could do nothing for him. So ’twas well we came
-out from the hands of the guard, for Lord Bellasis
-was mad with anger, and he has great friends
-and influence with the king, so by next day the
-ways were laid and they were seeking us to
-answer for his death.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And you saved me from them,” Hugh said
-under his breath, while he tried to hug Dick with
-one arm.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Faith, ’twas saving myself at the same time,
-and I near killed you in the effort. Jack Ridydale
-and I caught you up on the alarm and
-plunged into the ditch at the edge of the field—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I remember,” Hugh interrupted.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“So do I,” Strangwayes said, and tried to force
-a laugh. “Sure, ’twas wet there. By the favor of
-fortune the watch passed over us, and we fetched
-you to the ‘Sceptre’ and had in a close-mouthed
-physician. And I was bravely frightened, Hugh,
-for there was no moving you hence, and here we
-lay in the jaws of the enemy. No, no, you’re in
-no danger now. For so soon as we were safe in
-the alehouse good old Ridydale made for the
-stable, and the watch had not yet searched here,
-so the horses were untouched. He got him on
-his own steed, took your Bayard and my Black
-Boy by the bridles, and rode for the west as fast
-as spur could drive. Toward dawn he faced
-about and trotted home again, the horses all belathered
-and crestfallen, and, jogging along the
-road in such trim, he was seized upon by the zealous
-patrol and haled into the city to answer as to
-our whereabouts.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_232'>232</span>“They did not harm him?” Hugh asked anxiously.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Harm him? Nay, the old scoundrel was more
-than their match. He swore we had posted all
-night, made a change of horses, and headed into
-the enemy’s country to take ship out of the
-realm. They coaxed him and they bullied him
-for three days, but the rascal lied with such liberality
-and discretion that in the end they must
-release him. So the matter stands, for some do
-truly believe we have got beyond seas, and my
-Lord Bellasis has still a hope that we be somewhere
-in the country round about here. And
-the most of the people, Hugh, have clean forgot
-about us by this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“None know where we are? That is why
-none of the others have come hither?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No; ’tis that I wanted few to come drawing
-suspicions to us. Sir William knows, and he was
-pleased to approve your conduct, Hugh, and sent
-us supply of money by the trusty old drawer
-here. Ridydale durst venture to us only once,
-for fear of being tracked. ’Twas when he was
-new released and he had had no word how it was
-faring with you. So he came and he brought
-news of Captain Gwyeth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh made no reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“If you have the strength to hear it, I’d fain
-ease me of it,” Strangwayes went on. “This
-is what he had done, Hugh: When he got my
-word that man had forced a fight upon you because
-you were your father’s son, and when I
-prayed him to meet the hacking cutthroat—Heaven
-forgive me! Bellasis is dead now. Well,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_233'>233</span>you know the answer Captain Gwyeth sent you.
-Having shown his proud temper in that, he set
-out, not to join us and intercept the man upon
-the field, but to seek him in the city. Now
-Bellasis, like a wise man, had withdrawn himself
-on a suspicion of that, so Alan Gwyeth did but
-meet Bellasis’ cousin, Herbert, who drew him into
-a scuffle under the very shadow of the Castle.
-They were promptly put under arrest therefor.
-Then the captain found the hour of the duel
-coming on, and he laid by the heels for his folly,
-and then—” Strangwayes paused, and tried to
-laugh himself into a less earnest tone. “Well,
-Hugh, he prayed to see the officer of the watch,
-and conveyed unto him full information of the
-place and time of the duel.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Then ’tis he that is to thank for bringing the
-watch upon us?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, and for making us hale you into the
-ditch and near rack your poor body to pieces. I
-swear the rough handling we had to give you had
-as much share in bringing on the fever as your
-wounds. And as you lay in the very heat of the
-fever came this fine proud message from him that
-his will was to come unto you. And I wrote back
-unto him so he has not come. But if you wish
-him, Hugh, I’ll—well, doubtless I can crave his
-pardon, and then he will come to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I do not wish to see him,” Hugh answered
-coldly. “What did you write him, Dick?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Twas not just a temperate letter, I’m fearing.
-For your fever had run four days, and there seemed
-no change save the worst change. Oh, well,”
-Strangwayes laughed, “I wrote him that his cursed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_234'>234</span>ugly pride had never brought anything to you
-but disgrace and pain, and now he had killed you
-he should leave you to me. I told him his blundering
-stupidity in sending the watch would have
-wrecked your honor, had they come ten minutes
-earlier, and now it had wrecked your life. And I
-told him he had been no father to you while you
-lived, and he should not play that part in your
-death. I said if he came hither I would bar the
-door in his face. Truth, I must have been near
-mad to write so uncivilly, but—I had been watching
-with you three nights, and I was worried for
-you, lad. So he did not come. And you do not
-wish him to?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No, never,” Hugh said, then lay silent so
-long that Strangwayes, slipping his arm from
-beneath his head, had risen, when Hugh broke
-out, “Dick, you must have sent him a message
-the day of the duel.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Hm,” said Strangwayes, heading for the fireplace.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You promised me—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Only not to speak to him,” the other put in
-hastily. “I did not. I wrote him a letter there
-in the bakeshop, and sent it by a stray trooper.
-Dear lad, I was trained for a lawyer. How could
-I resist a quibble? You’re going to forgive me,
-Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Tis a very little fault in you, Dick,” Hugh
-answered. “Though if another had done it—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, I’ll never attempt to incline Captain
-Gwyeth to his duty again, rest assured,” Strangwayes
-ended their talk earnestly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So, while he still had barely strength to lift
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_235'>235</span>his head from off the pillow, Hugh came to full
-knowledge of how his affairs stood. He was
-glad to be told the worst, not be played with
-like a child, yet the realization of the desperate
-state to which the word and the blow at the
-Oxford ordinary had reduced, not only his own
-fortunes, but those of his friend, made his slow
-convalescence doubly hard to bear. Day followed
-day, all alike, save that on some the fire was
-heaped high for warmth, while on others, more
-frequently as time passed, the narrow window
-was flung wide open, and a breath of spring-like
-air sweeping in made confinement all the less
-endurable. Then Hugh fretted miserably, till he
-looked at Dick, and thought what it must mean
-to a man to be pent up in a sick room while he
-had all his limbs and strength at his command.
-For Strangwayes never left him, save for a half-hour
-or so at night, when he used to slip out by
-the back way and tramp about the bowling green,
-to bring in with him so fine a breeziness that
-Hugh used to lie awake for his coming. At first
-Strangwayes did not quit the chamber even for his
-rest, but, wrapping his cloak about him, stretched
-himself across the hearth, till Hugh, with gaining
-strength, assured him he could fare well enough
-without constant watching, and begged him to
-get a room and a bed. After that Hugh passed
-long, sleepless hours of the night in loneliness,
-while through the little window he watched the
-varying shades of the sky and the stars that had
-so many times looked back at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>During the day the chief diversions were to
-eat, and to note how many minutes more he contrived
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_236'>236</span>to sit up than on the preceding day. In
-the intervals he and Dick played cards, till the
-pack was wofully thumbed, or chess, which Hugh
-found easier, for he need only lie on his back and
-look sidewise at the board. Later Dick unearthed
-the whole library of the “Sceptre,” a fat “Palmerin
-of England,” whose “gallant history” he patiently
-read aloud to Hugh, who did not find the story
-enlivening, but got to appreciate Dick’s sarcastic
-comments. Still better he liked to hear his friend
-talk, half nonsense, half truth, of the things he
-had seen and done when he served in the Low
-Countries and made his stay in Paris. “How
-should you like to go thither yourself?” Strangwayes
-asked abruptly one March morning, when
-for the second time Hugh was sitting up in a chair.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“With you?” the boy asked quickly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No, not with me now,” Strangwayes answered;
-“I cannot quit the kingdom, Hugh, while there’s
-a blow to be struck. Even though I be a volunteer—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Dick!” Hugh cried, “you’ve lost your commission
-through me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No, no, no,” Strangwayes said hastily. “Only
-’twould be awkward to come to the front and
-claim it while this duel is still remembered. Sir
-William will always keep me a place in his regiment.
-And when you are cured, ’tis my purpose
-to go into the North to fight. I’ll not be easily
-recognized now my beard is grown, and I’ll put
-another name to me. There in the North I may
-chance to do something that will bring us a pardon
-for what we had a share in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>All of which Hugh only half heeded as he sat
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_237'>237</span>with his head in his hands. For it was worse
-than the realization that he had killed a man to
-know that he had wrought Dick’s fortunes such
-a terrible shock.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes said what he could that was generous,
-and ended with the old proposition to send
-Hugh, so soon as he was recovered, into the Low
-Countries, where he would be safe from all pursuit.
-But Hugh shook his head. “I cannot,
-Dick; I’d rather be hanged here on English
-ground, or whatever else they would do to me.
-Why, I could not speak their queer language
-yonder. And you’ve pampered me so, I durst
-not venture out among strangers again. I’ll do
-as you do, change my name, and volunteer somewhere
-else.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was at this time he made a resolution, which
-he had a chance to carry out perhaps a week
-later, when Ridydale paid him a cautious visit.
-Sir William’s regiment marched northward in
-two days, the corporal explained, bound to garrison
-Tamworth, and he had thought it well to
-come see Master Hugh ere he went, and bring
-him his accoutrements from his quarters at
-Oxford. Hugh watched his chance till Dick had
-left them alone, then prayed Ridydale get Bayard
-from Turner’s stable and sell him. “I have been
-a heavy charge unto my friends, and am like to
-be heavier,” he explained painfully. “And in any
-case I cannot keep the horse, for he is known as
-mine, and might draw suspicion to me. He’s a
-good beast and should fetch a fair price. Only
-try your best, Corporal, to sell him unto some one
-will use him kindly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_238'>238</span>Ridydale demurred, then yielded; and before
-he left Oxford, brought Hugh five sovereigns, the
-purchase money. Then there was an explanation
-with Strangwayes, who was downright angry, but
-finally laughed at himself. “Only a fool would
-quarrel with such a remnant of a fellow as you
-look now,” he concluded.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh felt the term was justified the first time
-he dragged on his clothes, which seemed cut for
-a lad of vastly greater brawn, and, contriving to
-hobble into the adjoining chamber, got sight of
-himself in the glass. Eyes, mouth, and a raw
-scar sheer across his left cheek, seemed all that
-was left of his face, and his close-cut hair added
-to the unfamiliarity of his look. “Scars are good
-adornments for a soldier,” he said bravely, but he
-tried in vain to find a complimentary phrase for
-the painful stiffness that lingered in his thigh.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>By dint of stumbling about his chamber, however,
-the lameness wore off, till he could walk
-with some surety of not falling against the furniture;
-and then there came a night he never
-forgot, when Strangwayes helped him carefully
-down the stairs, and, pacing slowly across the
-bowling green, they sat down on a bench that
-Hugh remembered. It was a clear spring evening,
-with the stars numerous and bright, and an
-earthy smell in the soft air. Hugh felt the ground
-beneath his feet once more, and stared at the
-poplars that still looked bare in the nighttime,
-while his heart grew full at the thought that he
-was alive to enjoy the spring and all the deeds
-that were yet to do. He spoke it all out, as he
-leaned against Strangwayes, by saying: “I am
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_239'>239</span>well again now, Dick. When shall we be off to
-the North?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“North? Not for you at present, lad,” Strangwayes
-replied. “You’re no figure for a camp yet.
-So I am going to carry you to a farm called
-Ashcroft, somewhat toward Warwickshire, where
-dwells a distant kinswoman of Sir William Pleydall
-and of my mother. ’Tis a good, bluff widow,
-whom I shall bid keep you well hidden, and see
-you go to bed betimes, and do not run off to kill
-Roundheads till I give the word. When you have
-back your strength again, you shall join me in
-Yorkshire, and we’ll go a-soldiering together
-again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For the next week Hugh felt he had something
-to look forward to, though expectation made the
-days even more tedious. With long intervals of
-rest, he furbished up his sword and spurs, and,
-when that interest failed, spent much time in devising
-a name to assume till his peace was made
-with his Majesty. Strangwayes had announced
-early that he meant to go by the name of Henry
-Ramsden, and there was an end of it; but Hugh
-had an unaccountable feeling that he did not wish
-to take any one of the common names that men
-he knew had borne, and bestow it on a hunted
-duellist. He finally ended by calling himself
-Edmund Burley, but it was a long process of
-selection, and the choice was made only on the
-day he left the “Sceptre.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They made their start about midnight, when
-the road was quiet, and the houses in the fields
-beyond the alehouse were all black. Two horses
-were fetched them at the side door, the drawer held
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_240'>240</span>a lantern half screened with his hand as they
-mounted, and the host wished them God-speed in
-a guarded, low voice. Then they paced softly
-into the highway and headed northward under
-the starlight. At first Hugh sat straight, and
-would gladly have talked with Dick to tell him
-how easy, after all, he found the exercise. But
-Dick would have no speaking till almost cock-crow,
-when they were riding through a stretch
-of lonely fields, and by then no jauntiness was
-left in Hugh, only dull pain and faintness, so he
-had no will to say anything except, “Thank
-Heaven!” when Strangwayes, fairly lifting him
-off his horse, half carried him into a dwelling-place.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There he spent the day, sleeping some and for
-the rest lying still as he was bidden, till twilight
-came on and once more they got to saddle. A
-little fine rain was sifting down now, and the cold
-wet on his face refreshed Hugh somewhat, but
-even then, when they halted at last at the gate
-of a lonely farm enclosure, he was drooping over
-his saddle-bow. He noted of the house only that
-there was a green settle in the living room, the
-arm of which was of just the right height to rest
-his head upon, and the loud-voiced woman who
-had roused up to greet them held a guttering
-candle so he was assured the dripping wax must
-soon burn her fingers.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After that he remembered Dick helped him
-to bed in a little upper chamber; the sheets felt
-good, and he shut his eyes to keep out the troublesome
-candlelight. “Rain or no, I’m going
-to push on for Sir William’s house in Worcestershire,”
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_241'>241</span>Dick was saying. “You’re safe here with
-Widow Flemyng, Hugh. And ere long I’ll have
-you with me again. God keep you till then, old
-lad!” He bent down and kissed Hugh, who
-hugged him with a sudden childish feeling that
-he could not let Dick go.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So he turned over with his face in the pillow,
-broad awake now, and he heard Dick’s boots
-creaking down the stairway. He lay listening
-alertly for more, but he heard only the spatter
-of rain upon the window.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_242'>242</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER XV <br /> <span class='small'>THE LIFE OF EDMUND BURLEY</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>At one end of the bench outside the garden
-door of Ashcroft, Widow Flemyng’s great black
-cat lay sunning himself; at the other end Hugh
-Gwyeth sat hugging one knee, while he wondered
-drowsily which were the lazier, he or the cat. In
-the alert blue spring weather the tips of green
-things were bursting through the soft mould of
-the garden; the birds were making a great ado
-in the trees; and in the field beyond the hedge
-the widow’s man, Ralph, was ploughing, and
-whistling as he ploughed. Only Master Hugh
-Gwyeth lingered idly on the garden bench and
-meditatively handled the flabby muscles of his
-arm till he grew impatient with himself. Three
-weeks and more he had been at Ashcroft, yet this
-was all the strength he had gained or was likely
-to gain with sitting still. He dragged the cat,
-heavy and reluctant, up from its nap, and was trying
-to coax the creature to jump over his hands,
-which at least required a little exertion, when
-Nancy, the serving-maid, came out to potter
-about the garden. Spying him, she called: “Don’t
-’ee vex poor Gib, now. Better get thee into the
-kitchen; the mistress is at her baking.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh laughed, and, rising leisurely, made his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_243'>243</span>way down the garden to the rear door. Women
-were droll creatures, he reflected; his mother, of
-course, had always treated him with tenderness,
-but why these strangers should pamper him like
-a child, and concern themselves about his every
-movement, was more than he could puzzle out.
-From the first Nancy had made no end of commiserating
-him for the scar on his face, and even
-the widow herself, for all her sharp ways, had
-been melted to pity, when she came to examine
-his wardrobe. “Well, well, well! when did a
-woman put hand to these shirts?” she had cried,
-whereat Hugh informed her blushingly that ’twas
-his custom to have his shirts washed till they
-grew too tattered to serve even under a buff
-jacket, and then he threw them away. “You
-poor thriftless child!” sighed the widow, “sure,
-you’re not fit to be sent to the wars.” So she
-mended his shirts and stockings, and, when that
-way of showing her motherly care failed, brewed
-him ill-tasting concoctions of herbs, which Hugh
-swallowed courteously, though with inward protests
-against this expression of good-will. He
-was far more grateful when her kindness finally
-took the form of cooking him such food as he
-liked, and pressing him to eat at all times, for his
-illness had left him with an alarming appetite,
-which without such connivance could never have
-been decently satisfied.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He halted now, as he had often done, with his
-elbows on the sill of the opened window in the
-long kitchen, and took a sweeping survey of the
-dressers and the fireplace and the brick oven.
-Just by the window stood a table at which the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_244'>244</span>Widow Flemyng, with her sleeves tucked up and
-her broad face flushed, was rolling out pastry.
-“I marvel you’ve not been here before,” she said
-gruffly, as she caught sight of him; “where have
-you been all this morning now?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Teasing the cat,” Hugh answered. “Before
-that I was down through the meadow—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The widow paused with her rolling-pin suspended.
-“That meadow again? And no doubt
-you wet your feet!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“On my word, good widow,” Hugh laughed,
-“my kinsfolk have trusted me abroad without a
-nurse for several years now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The more fools they!” she replied, smacking
-the pastry smartly once more.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Profiting by the pause, Hugh reached one arm
-in at the window and helped himself to a strip of
-pie-crust, all hot and newly baked, that lay there;
-he might repress his early fondness for honey
-and jam, but crisp pastry was still too great a
-temptation for him to resist.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“That’s a right Roundhead trick to come
-thieving at a poor woman’s window!” said the
-widow.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Was there never such a thing as a Cavalier
-thief?” Hugh suggested.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I never speak treason, sir. There do be some
-that say there is a garrison yonder at Woodstead
-Manor that never was known to pay for what it
-lives by, but I speak no ill of the king’s men,
-you’ll note.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh had cause enough to note and remember
-the conversation a few days later. Of a dull
-gray afternoon he had taken himself to his chamber,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_245'>245</span>dutifully to practise thrusts with his sword
-at a round mark on the wainscot, an exercise
-which proved tedious, so he was glad enough
-when a noise of horses stamping and men calling
-in the yard below gave him an excuse for running
-to the window. At the front of the cottage
-nothing was to be seen, so, flinging on his coat,
-he ran downstairs into the kitchen, whence came
-the sound of high talk. Bursting into the room,
-he found Nancy crouched by the fireplace, and
-Ralph skulking by her, while at the door stood
-Widow Flemyng, arms akimbo, in hot discourse
-with a cross-eyed trooper, who wore the king’s
-colors.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I tell you, it shall not be put up!” the man
-was blustering. “We’d scarce set foot in your
-stable when your rascal would be breaking a
-stave across Garrett’s head.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And I tell you, you shall put up with it!” retorted
-the widow. “Do you think to come plundering
-decent loyal bodies, you minching thieves?
-Not a step do you stir into this house. Reach
-me hither the kettle, you white-livered Ralph.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh prudently got the kettle into his own
-hands, then presented himself at the door with
-the query, “What’s amiss?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Here are three rogues from Woodstead who
-seek to plunder the very horses from my plough,”
-replied the widow, clapping hands on the kettle.
-“Now come in if you dare, the pack of you!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But Hugh stayed her arm, while he looked out
-and got the situation. In the open space between
-the rear door and the stable three horses
-drooped their heads, and by them lingered two
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_246'>246</span>dragoons, one heavy and surly, the other a thin-faced
-fellow, who, looking sharply at Hugh, nudged
-his comrade. It seemed just an ordinary small
-foraging band, who were going beyond their authority,
-so Hugh stepped out and confronted the
-cross-eyed man with a stern, “What’s your warrant
-for this?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“King’s service, sir,” the other replied, gazing
-at him a little doubtfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Tis service that will profit you little if it
-come to your captain’s ears,” Hugh answered.
-“There are none here but loyal people and
-friends to the king. Best take advice and go
-back empty-handed. ’Twill be for your good in
-the end.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Just there a hand was clapped heavily upon his
-collar; instinctively Hugh was ducking to wrest
-himself clear, when the cross-eyed man, too, caught
-him by the throat of his jacket, and, realizing the
-uselessness of a struggle, the boy held himself
-quiet. “We’ll go back to Woodstead right
-enough, sir,” spoke the thin-faced trooper, who
-had first seized him. “But you’ll go with us,
-Master Gwyeth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“My name is Edmund Burley,” Hugh replied
-stoutly, though the heart seemed all at once to
-have gone out of his body.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, you’ve enough the look of the other
-gentleman for Lord Bellasis to pay ten pound for
-the sight of your face. You can explain to him
-who you are, sir,” scoffed the thin-faced man.
-“Fetch a horse from the stable for him, Garrett.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After that, as in an ugly dream, matters went
-without Hugh’s agency. He felt his arm ache
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_247'>247</span>in the hard grip of the cross-eyed man, which he
-had no hope to shake off; he heard the widow in
-heated expostulation with the thin-faced trooper,
-assuring him the gentleman had dwelt with her
-near six months, and could not have had a hand
-in the mischief they charged him with; he saw
-Nancy come out, all blubbering, to bring him his
-hat, and he said, “Why, don’t cry over it, wench,”
-and wondered at the dull tone of his voice. It
-seemed an interminable time, but at length one
-of the plough horses was led out, all saddled, and,
-mounting as they bade him, he rode away with
-them in the gray of the afternoon. As they
-passed out from the yard he heard the door of
-Ashcroft slam, and by that he knew the widow
-was much moved.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then, turning eastward, they trotted slowly
-across gray fields, a trooper on either side Hugh’s
-horse, and he went as they guided. For he took
-no heed to them, as he told himself that Dick
-Strangwayes was far away in the North, Sir
-William busied at Tamworth, and in Oxford
-there was not a friend to aid him. Already he
-seemed to feel the chill of the cells in the old
-Castle at Oxford, and to see a room full of stern
-men who bullied and frightened him; after that
-he thought to hear the cart jolting beneath him
-across the stony streets, while the people ran and
-pointed at him; and then he felt a rope about
-his throat. He tried helplessly to battle off such
-thoughts, but they still pressed upon him till his
-head was stupid with turning them over, and,
-listening uncomprehendingly to the talk of those
-about him, he rode in a sort of daze.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_248'>248</span>The afternoon grew grayer and grayer, and was
-merging into twilight when they rode through a
-poor village, beyond which, upon a barren swell
-of highland, they came to a stockade flung around
-a small manor house. They crossed a rough
-bridge over a moat, and so, keeping to the left
-of the house, drew rein at length before a great
-stable. “Yon’s the captain, now,” spoke the cross-eyed
-man, peering into the dark of the building.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Looking to the cocks, I’ll be bound,” muttered
-he of the sharp face.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What dog’s mischief have you been loitering
-about, you knaves?” came from within the stable,
-and the voice was one Hugh remembered.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Captain Butler!” he cried, flinging himself
-from the saddle, and, stumbling through the door,
-near embraced the big Irishman who came to
-meet him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Good faith, ’tis not—” Butler began.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I am Edmund Burley,” Hugh interrupted
-feverishly. “Sure, you remember me, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Butler pulled him outside, where the light was
-clearer, and after that instant’s pause turned upon
-the troopers with a violent demand as to what
-they meant. One replied, “’Tis he who killed
-Master Bellasis;” but the captain cut him short
-with a volley of abuse, that they durst hale thither
-an innocent man and a friend of his, too, and followed
-it with threats of a flogging to them all and
-bluster and oaths, till the three were cowed into
-a frightened silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, I’ll be easy with you this time, you
-rogues,” Butler resumed after a moment, “for
-Master Burley is a merciful man, and I’m thinking
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_249'>249</span>would be better pleased that you went free.
-And, faith, he bears so little malice he wishes you
-all to drink his health.” Thus admonished, Hugh
-pulled three shillings out of his pocket and tossed
-them to his late captors before Butler led him
-away to the house. “Come have a drink with
-me, Burley,” he said, and added, with a chuckle,
-“I take it you need it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“That was a narrow escape, eh, Gwyeth?” he
-spoke later, as Hugh was swallowing down a
-bumper of Spanish wine in the west parlor of
-the house.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Narrow as I ever wish,” Hugh replied truthfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I think my fellows will hold their tongues
-now, betwixt threats and bribes,” Butler went on.
-“But after this you’d best do as you should have
-done at the first, shelter yourself among honest
-soldiers, who’d die ere they’d let a comrade come
-to harm, just for spitting a paltry civilian.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In the end Hugh thought it best to take the
-advice; if he returned to Ashcroft there was no
-reason that Cavalier marauders should not stray
-thither again, and a second apprehension might
-not end so happily. Then, besides, he was glad,
-after his weeks of illness and dependence, to be
-once more among men, who accepted him as an
-equal and did not fret him with constant care.
-Holding this feeling rather ungrateful, he took
-pains to write a very civil and thankful letter to
-the Widow Flemyng, which George Allestree
-conveyed to her, when he rode to Ashcroft with
-one of the men to fetch away Hugh’s clothes
-and accoutrements.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_250'>250</span>Allestree had welcomed Hugh boisterously,
-although he had an alarming habit of almost
-forgetting to call him Burley; the blue-eyed Irish
-volunteer, Mahone, received him with open arms;
-and even the lieutenant, Cartwright, unbent a
-little toward him. Before a fortnight was out
-Hugh understood, for by then he felt he could
-have fallen on the neck of the meanest scamp,
-just for joy at sight of a new face in the garrison.
-Woodstead lay close upon the borders of Warwickshire,
-where the rebels were up in strength,
-so none were allowed to venture forth far from
-the house. All day long there was nothing to
-do but to walk up and down the cramped enclosure,
-to converse with the troopers as to sick
-dogs and lame horses, or to watch Butler’s cocks
-mangle each other in fight, till in sheer disgust
-Hugh turned away. But within the house he
-found still less amusement; there was not even
-a Gervase Markham or a Palmerin to read, so he
-was reduced to persuading Allestree or Mahone
-into fencing with him, and, that failing, could
-only play at cards or watch the others at dice,
-and listen to Cartwright’s same old stories or
-the everlastingly same chatter of the younger
-men.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Once, to be sure, there came a day of excitement,
-when a part of the troop prepared to ride
-away to forage in the hostile country. They set
-forth bravely in the mid-afternoon, and till they
-were lost in dust Hugh, with neither a horse to
-ride nor sufficient strength for the work, watched
-them wistfully from the entrance gate. Then
-he loitered away to his lonely supper with Cartwright,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_251'>251</span>who cursed the luck that left him behind
-to command the garrison, and drank so deeply
-Hugh must call a man to help him to bed. Next
-day Butler and his men came back, noisy and
-victorious, with cartloads of grain and much
-miscellaneous plunder that the common soldiery
-had taken to themselves. They brought also a
-Roundhead lieutenant, half-stripped, grimy, and
-sullen, whom Butler clapped into an obscure
-room on a spare diet till he could find leisure
-from his more serious affairs to look to him.
-For the captain had laid hands on a considerable
-amount of strong waters, so for two days there
-was high carousing at Woodstead, which shocked
-Hugh, used though he had become among these
-comrades to the sight of hard drinking.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>While Butler and his officers shouted and
-smashed glasses below stairs, and the men in
-their turn let discipline slip, Hugh, in the hope
-of getting some tidings of his Oldesworth kindred,
-bribed his way in to speak with the Roundhead
-prisoner. The man was defiant at first,
-then more communicative when Hugh smuggled
-him in some bread and meat, but, being of a
-Northamptonshire regiment, he could give little
-of the information Hugh sought, save that he
-had heard of Captain Thomas Oldesworth and
-had had speech with Hugh’s other uncle, Lieutenant
-David Millington, who was in garrison
-with his company of foot at Newick in Warwickshire.
-For his Roundhead kinsfolk’s sake Hugh
-lent the lieutenant a coat, and, when Butler, in a
-shaky, white state of sobriety, packed him off
-under guard to prison at Oxford, gave five shillings
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_252'>252</span>to the corporal who had charge of the
-squad, and urged him to use the prisoner as
-civilly as he could. Considering the temper of
-the squad, however, and the fact that his old
-acquaintance, the surly Garrett, was one of them,
-Hugh decided those five shillings had probably
-been expended for nothing.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Near a week later the men came back, and, in
-his joy at any new sight in his monotonous life,
-Hugh turned out to meet them. He counted
-them idly, as they came pacing in at the gate, till
-his eyes fell upon a horse that Garrett led, a bay
-horse, all saddled, which put up its head and
-whickered. “Bayard!” Hugh cried, plunging
-into the press, and, getting the horse clear, fair
-put his arms about its neck in the face of the
-whole garrison. “Where did you find him?”
-he questioned Garrett a moment later, sharply,
-to preserve his dignity.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The man explained they had come home by a
-way that took them near Ashcroft, for he held
-there might be letters Master Burley would
-gladly pay a price for, and there they had found
-both a letter and the horse, which had been waiting
-him some days.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh paid generously, the more so as he saw
-the letter was directed in Dick’s black hand;
-that made the sending of Bayard no longer a
-mystery, for doubtless Dick would have him
-come northward now and so had sent him the
-horse. He could hardly wait to see the beast
-stabled before he ran up to the chamber he
-shared with Allestree, and tore open the letter
-that should summon him. Then he read:—</p>
-
-<div><span class='pageno' id='Page_253'>253</span></div>
-<div class='illo'>
-
-<p class='c000'><span class='sc'>Sweet Friend</span>:</p>
-<p class='c007'>It doth grieve me to bring you aught of disappointment, but
-patience perforce, lad. Sir W. hath need of ammunition and
-of fieldpieces, so he hath commissioned me, because of old
-acquaintance in those parts, to go into the Low Countries and
-see what may be procured. I would I could take you with
-me, but my time is short, for the ship only waits a prosperous
-wind. When my task yonder is done I shall come quietly to
-the place you know of to confer with Sir W. I will convey
-you a word, and if you will join me there we will try another
-bout with Fortune together. Till then you were best keep
-yourself close. There is a rumor that the lord you know of
-hath no such big voice in the king’s counsels as he used. Time,
-then, and patience may bring all right with us. Commend me
-to good Mistress Flemyng, and be assured at longest I shall
-send for you ere the end of summer.</p>
-
-<div class='c013'>Your very loving friend,</div>
-<div class='c014'><span class='sc'>Henry Ramsden</span>.</div>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Newcastle</span>, May 20th, 1643.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>That night Hugh ate no supper. Sitting on
-the broad window-bench he watched the sunlight
-wane upon the floor, and the twilight fill in the
-chamber, and from time to time, till it was quite
-dark, he re-read the letter. In those hours he
-came to realize how much he had lived on the
-expectation that any day Dick might call for
-him, and he sickened at the thought of the dull,
-hateful days of inactivity before him, for now he
-must school himself to endure the long three
-months of summer with Butler’s crew. Below
-he could hear the officers singing over their
-wine, and, fearing lest Allestree might come half-drunk
-to urge him to the table and jeer at his
-sorry silence, he slipped out by the back way to
-the stable, where till bedtime he tried to find
-some comfort in petting Bayard.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_254'>254</span>Next day life was running its old round, save
-that the hope which before had made it tolerable
-was gone. That week Hugh discontinued fencing;
-the weather was over-hot, and besides, what
-use to drill himself for action, when Dick had no
-need of him, and his present companions were
-content to idle? Instead of using the rapier, he
-set himself to watching Allestree and Mahone
-at dice, and at length came to take a hand himself.
-It was an ill memory to him afterward,
-those feverish summer mornings when, sitting in
-their shirt-sleeves, they threw and threw, sometimes
-with high words and oaths, sometimes in silence,
-save for Allestree’s half-laugh when he made a
-winning cast. Fortune varied, but in time there
-came a day when Hugh got up from the table,
-and, thrusting his hands into two empty pockets,
-slouched off with his head down. He heard
-Allestree say, “I hate a fellow who loses with ill
-grace,” and Mahone call, “Hi, Ed! Come back.
-Don’t give over, man, as long as you’ve a shirt
-to stake. Put up your horse now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But Hugh shook his head. Though he had
-diced away every penny he possessed, and with
-it every hope of setting out by himself to seek
-other harborage than Woodstead, he would not
-risk his horse and sword. Not twenty-four hours
-later he had cause to rejoice at having kept his
-equipments, for at the mess table Butler announced
-briskly that next day the troop would
-ride a-foraying into Northamptonshire, to a little
-village called Northrope, where corn could be got
-in plenty. “And wine from a brave tavern
-there,” Allestree whispered Hugh; “Else the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_255'>255</span>captain would not be so forward in this business.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But in his joy at having a hand in active service
-once more, the end of the expedition mattered
-nothing to Hugh. Before noon next day he had
-his buff jacket on and his sword slung over his
-shoulder, then fretted away the long hours of
-expectation by tramping about the enclosure, settling
-Bayard’s saddle, and listening to Allestree’s
-proffered bets on the success of the night’s work.
-The sun had set behind the low green hills, when
-at last Butler led half his troop forth from Woodstead,
-with Allestree to keep the rear and Mahone
-and Hugh to put themselves wherever they were
-bid. In spite of the gathering twilight the air
-was still heavy with the sweltering heat of the
-day, and the dust that was beaten up by the feet
-of the horses prickled and stung. Before the
-first mile was out Hugh had flung open his coat,
-and was more disturbed at Bayard’s sweating
-than at the thought of the skirmish that was
-to come.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The night air was cooler and the stars were
-out thick, when at length the word ran through
-the line that Northrope lay over the next swell
-in the plain. Falling in with the squadron
-behind Butler, who was to sweep around and
-attack the village from the east while Allestree
-rode in at the west side, Hugh drew away noiselessly
-from the rest of the troop, and at a swift
-canter passed through a field into a piece of
-spicy-smelling woodland. Beyond that they rode
-softly along a stretch of sandy road, and at last
-halted upon the brow of a hill, beneath which
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_256'>256</span>the dark roofs of cottages could be seen. At a
-whispered command from Butler Hugh ranged
-himself among the corporal’s guard who were to
-keep the hill and stop whoever fled that way,
-while the rest of the dragoons fell into place
-behind the captain. Then the leader turned to
-a trooper, who, swinging his dragon to his shoulder,
-fired into the air. An instant, and far to the
-west another shot replied, Butler shouted to
-charge, and with his men at his heels galloped
-away down the hill.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Below in the village Hugh heard the sound
-of clattering hoofs, of shouts of attack, and shriller
-cries. A moment later, and, as he gazed, he saw
-over to the west a reddish gleam that broadened
-and brightened. “They’ve fired the village,”
-muttered one trooper, and the rest grumbled
-subduedly that all within the scurvy place would
-be burned ere they came to share the plunder.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The moments ran on, while the fire rose and
-sunk again, till Hugh judged the night more than
-half spent. Still none had fled in their direction;
-the men were restless at their useless stay, and
-Hugh himself had grown to hate this waiting,
-for it left him time to reflect, and to compare this
-raid with the daylight fighting he had had under
-Turner. For all the ugly sights of plunder to be
-seen he felt it a relief when the corporal gave the
-word to descend into the village, and gladly as
-the rest he trotted forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Once in among the houses his comrades scattered
-to plunder, but Hugh, left alone, rode on
-down the street, which grew lighter with the flare
-of the burning houses. He had sight of household
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_257'>257</span>stuff that littered the roadway; in the lee
-of a wall he saw a man sitting with his hand
-pressed to his breast; and down toward the
-blaze, where was a great yelling and confusion,
-he made out against the glare the black shapes
-of men running to and fro. He saw, too, nearer
-at hand, a flapping sign-board before what seemed
-an inn, where a noisy crew had possession, and
-he halted a moment, while he wondered grimly
-if Butler were not there and if he should report
-to him. As he hesitated he heard some one
-shout from an upper window of the cottage on
-his right, and he let his eyes travel thither. The
-place looked dark and blank, but as he gazed the
-door was kicked open and a man came forth, holding
-by the arm a girl, who dragged back with all
-her slender strength. “What devil’s trade are
-you about?” Hugh called angrily. “Bring the
-wench hither.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The man hesitated, then unwillingly slouched
-nearer. As the firelight flared along the street
-Hugh saw it was his old enemy, the cross-eyed
-trooper; then his gaze dropped lower to the
-pallid face of the girl. At that Hugh sprang
-from his saddle with a cry, “Lois, Lois!”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_258'>258</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER XVI <br /> <span class='small'>ROUNDHEADS AND CAVALIERS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>He had thrust the trooper aside and drawn the
-girl close to him. “Sure, you do not fear me,
-Lois?” he urged, for she stood with her hands to
-her face and her body braced tensely against the
-pressure of his arm. “I’m Hugh Gwyeth. You’ve
-not forgot—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At that she uncovered her face and stared at
-him with so piteous a look of fright that Hugh
-hated himself and all who had had a share in
-that night’s work. “Be off with you.” He swung
-round upon the cross-eyed trooper with some of
-Allestree’s favorite oaths. “The gentlewoman is
-kin to me. Get you hence and be thankful I let
-you go with a whole skin.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he looked again to Lois, and, noting now
-that she had no outer covering upon her shoulders,
-unstrapped his cloak from the front of his
-saddle and wrapped it about her, drawing the
-folds up to hide her face somewhat. He felt her
-hands clutch tremulously at his wrist, and her
-voice broke into a choking sob: “O, Hugh!
-In sober truth, ’tis you? You will take care of
-me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“To be sure I will,” he said, and, slipping
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_259'>259</span>Bayard’s bridle over one arm, put the other about
-the girl. “Just come with me now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They walked toward where the cottages were
-burning, slowly, for Lois staggered as she went,
-and Hugh, for all his brave speech, was dazed
-with the necessity of thinking what he was to do
-for her protection. Woodstead was no place to
-which to fetch a girl, nor was any other harbor
-open to him. He halted short in his perplexity,
-then turned to her with a sudden idea: “Look
-you here, Lois; would you wish me to convey
-you unto Newick, to Lieutenant Millington?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Tis thither I was going,” she answered
-faintly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, you shall be safe there ere to-morrow
-noon,” he assured her. “Just a little time here,
-and be not afraid.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Thereupon he faced across the street to the
-house with the sign-board, where he guessed
-might be wine and Captain Butler. Within were
-lights and men stamping to and fro, while without
-at the entrance door lingered others, among
-whom Hugh caught sight of Garrett, still sober,
-and seized on him. “I want your help,” he said
-brusquely; “I’ll pay you for it ere I die. Procure
-some sort of white flag, and find me out a pillion
-for this gentlewoman. Put it on my horse and
-be ready to ride with me when I bid.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Leaving the man with mouth and eyes open in
-astonishment, he led Lois into the tavern. Across
-the corridor a trooper was sprawling, drunk,
-Hugh saw, as he thrust him aside with his foot
-to give the girl passage. Inside the common
-room the floor crackled with broken glass, on the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_260'>260</span>chimney-piece two candles sputtered unevenly,
-and by the table, a bottle in one hand, a great
-mug in the other, stood Butler. Hugh felt Lois
-press closer to him, but he resolutely left her on
-a settle by the wall and went up to the captain.
-“I pray you, sir, give me a safe-conduct to pass
-through the lines with one of your dragoons,” he
-blurted out his business.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Butler cursed him roundly, and Hugh, standing
-stiffly, heard him out without reply, while in his
-heart he prayed the ugly fit of drunkenness might
-speedily give place to the maudlin fit. A heavy
-stamping made him turn in sudden hope as
-Allestree reeled in from superintending the seizure
-of the tavern stores. But one look at the
-guidon told Hugh he was too far gone to aid him
-now, so he could only fall back beside Lois, and,
-taking hold of her hand, bid her wait a little
-longer and not fear.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Presently, after Allestree had pitched into a
-chair with his head on the table, Hugh once
-more made his request to Butler, and once more
-was gruffly refused. But then, chancing to spy
-ink and paper on a shelf, he blotted off a safe-conduct,
-and, again presenting himself to the captain,
-begged him sign. There were refusals of varying
-sternness, but with all the obstinacy of his square
-chin Hugh followed the man up and down the
-chamber, pen in hand, and, holding his temper
-well in check for the girl’s sake, bore the other’s
-abuse and only prayed him sign. At last Butler,
-snatching the pen from his hand, splashed a great
-signature across the sheet. “Take it, in the devil’s
-name, you hell babe!” he cursed.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_261'>261</span>Hugh thrust the paper inside his coat, and,
-running to Lois, jostled a way for her out to the
-open air. By the tavern door Garrett, holding a
-pike with a white napkin bound to it, was sitting
-his horse, and by him stood Bayard with a cushion
-fixed behind the saddle. Hugh helped Lois to
-her place, then, leaping up before her, rode briskly
-out from the village.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Not till the sight of the fire and the noise of
-the shouts of the plunderers were quite lost to
-them did Hugh let Bayard’s eager trot subside
-to an amble. He turned a little to ask Lois how
-she fared, and bid her keep the cloak close about
-her against the damp of the early morning; then
-he called to Garrett, and, in talking with him of
-the road they must take for Newick, time enough
-passed for the stars to grow few in the sky.
-After that they rode a long space in silence, save
-for the soft scuff of the horses now and again
-as they came upon a stretch of sandy road. The
-sky grew a fainter dun color, and in the east a
-slit of pale light showed, while in the west a white
-shred of moon yet lingered on the horizon line.
-The morning breeze, coming damp on Hugh’s
-face, made him heavy with desire to sleep; only
-at a splashing sound of water did he rouse up
-with a jerk to find Bayard knee-deep in a ford
-and drinking greedily. To right and left the
-bushes above the stream were dusky, but flecks
-of lighter gray showed in the water where the
-road ran down to meet it. “’Twill be sunrise
-soon,” Hugh said, and shook himself awake.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Think you, presently, I might have a drink of
-water?” Lois asked hesitatingly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_262'>262</span>“Why, here and now you shall have it!” he
-cried, and, flinging his bridle to Garrett, lifted
-Lois from her place and led her a little upstream
-within the shadow of the bushes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>As she knelt on the brink and drank slowly
-from her hand, Hugh had space to note how
-white her face was and how weary her every
-gesture. So when she rose he drew her back a
-little to the roots of an oak tree, where he bade
-her sit and rest a time. Garrett shrugged his
-shoulders, when the word was passed to him,
-then tied the horses and went to stretch himself
-on the bank farther down-stream. Hugh returned
-to Lois, and, seating himself beside her,
-persuaded her to lean against him, till her eyes
-closed and he hoped that she might sleep. He
-sat very still and looked sometimes at her brown
-head against his shoulder, and sometimes at the
-branches of the oak above him and the clear sky
-beyond that was growing brighter and taking on
-a bluish tinge. He listened to the hurry of the
-brook and the restless stamp of the horses; then,
-shutting his eyes, he seemed only to see Everscombe
-manor house and the sunlight upon the
-eastern terrace.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Are you asleep, too?” The words were
-spoken softly, but they startled him through all
-his body.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I am awake now, in any case,” he replied, and
-laughed a little with a foolish sort of satisfaction
-as he looked down at Lois. For the tense
-look of the night before had left her eyes, and
-she had again the face of his old comrade at
-Everscombe.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_263'>263</span>“Your poor arm will sleep next, Hugh. I am
-leaning too heavily against it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I had not felt it,—if you are content.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Lois smiled slightly and tremulously, then, slipping
-out one hand, drew her fingers through the
-wet grass. “There has been a heavy dew,” she
-said irrelevantly, “and it has soaked my shoes,—my
-shoe, I mean.” She let her feet just show
-beneath her petticoat, and Hugh had sight of one
-stout shoe and the toe of a small gray stocking.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You’ve been tramping with one foot half
-bare?” he broke out.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay, nay, I have been riding. I knew it not
-till this morning, so I did not mind. I must have
-left that other shoe in the closet where I hid
-away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Tell me, Lois, how came you there at Northrope?”
-he asked, after an instant.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The girl’s face lost its flash of gayety. “Why,
-’tis only—” she began, and, pulling some blades
-of grass, twisted them between her fingers without
-looking at him. “Last October ’twas, Aunt
-Delia said perchance I were best now go visit my
-mother’s kinsfolk in Northamptonshire. And
-last week they said I had best visit her again.
-O me, I know not why they will not have me! I
-do not eat so much, Hugh, and I am ready to be
-of service.” She pushed aside his arm and leaned
-forward with her head upon her knee; by the
-movement of her shoulders he knew that she was
-crying.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He realized well why she wept, and he knew,
-too, there was no help that he could offer; so he
-only bent forward, and, speaking her name gently,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_264'>264</span>patted her shoulder. He heard her swallow a
-sob, then, with her head still bowed, she went on
-defiantly, “So there is nothing to tell, Hugh.
-A neighbor was riding to Northrope for the day,
-so they sent me with him and he left me at that
-cottage. They thought perhaps some carrier
-might be going to Newick, and would convey me
-thither; then Lieutenant Millington would find
-means to despatch me to Everscombe. That is
-all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh bit his nails and made no reply. If his
-own father rejected him, how could he reproach
-the uncles and aunts who grudged shelter to an
-orphan girl? Only she was a girl and weak, and
-somehow they seemed worse than Alan Gwyeth.
-He fell back on his stock piece of comfort: “You
-should ha’ been a boy, Lois, and then it had all
-been easy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“But I have no wish to be a boy,” Lois said
-sorrowfully, as she turned away her face to wipe
-her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Perhaps ’twould not be so pleasant,” Hugh
-admitted, and added, with a thought of Frank,
-“Young boys are sometimes vexatious.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Lois gave a laugh that was a bit hysterical.
-“You have grown very arrogant. Prithee, now,
-tell me all about yourself and how you got that
-sorry scar.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh hesitated, to collect himself, then set
-forth at great length what pertained to Strangwayes,
-and very hastily told her that his father
-had disowned him. At that her face grew so
-grave he hurried back to Strangwayes again, and
-forbore to tell her of the duel. So they talked on
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_265'>265</span>till a shaft of sunlight dazzled upon the brook, and
-the trees cast clean dark shadows on the pathway.
-“We must ride for Newick,” said Hugh,
-jumping to his feet. “You’re not so weary, Lois?
-Wait till the next village and you shall have wine
-to hearten you. Perchance you could eat, too?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Perchance, if ’twere offered,” Lois replied
-demurely, as she smoothed her hair with her
-hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“It shall be looked to, I promise you,” he answered
-gayly, and walked away. Before he had
-gone ten paces, however, his gayety was at an
-end, for he tucked his hands into a brace of bare
-pockets. He fidgeted a moment by the horses;
-then, taking his only course, walked over to the
-surly trooper. “Garrett,” he began, in a low tone,
-“have you money about you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Will you lend unto me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You swore the giving should lie all on your
-side,” the other answered suspiciously.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I tell you I’ll pay,” Hugh said angrily; and,
-seizing on the two shillings the other reluctantly
-proffered, walked away with his face burning.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It had been a petty incident, but the ill taste of
-it lingered with him, and took all pleasure from
-the getting to horse once more. Even the sight
-of Lois’s half-smiling face, and her droll efforts
-to spare her stockinged foot, could not restore
-him to his old contented mood. He led her in
-silence to where Bayard stood, and there she
-halted suddenly with eyes upon the horse. “Why,
-’tis indeed the same,” she cried. “’Tis Peregrine’s
-steed they said you—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_266'>266</span>“Stole?” Hugh asked sharply. “Ay, ’tis the
-same.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he lifted her to her place, and without a
-word more set forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>An hour later, in the full heat of the morning
-sun, they rode into a little hamlet, where the people
-stared at the Royalist red sashes, and shouted
-saucy comments on the strangers. Hugh made
-his way scowlingly to the village inn, and, helping
-Lois dismount, led her into the common room,
-where he called on the hostess to bring wine and
-white bread for the girl. “Are you going with
-these ruffians of your own will, sweetheart?” he
-heard the good woman whisper Lois.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He was turning away impatiently, when, just at
-the door, he ran upon the tapster. “Draw two
-mugs of ale for my man and me,” he ordered
-curtly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Will I, sir? Who’s to pay?” retorted the
-other. “An you pay, ’twill be the first of your
-color—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Will you talk?” Hugh cried, with an oath;
-and struck the fellow so he staggered. “Fetch
-what I bid now,” he swore. Then he turned to
-go back into the common room; and there Lois
-sat, not eating, but gazing at him with blank, dismayed
-face.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Without staying to drink his ale, Hugh went
-out and loitered at Bayard’s head, where he kicked
-up spiteful little spurts of dust and would not
-stroke the horse. When Lois hobbled out at
-last in a pair of over-large shoes, he helped her
-to mount; she did not speak, and he only looked
-sharply at her, but said nothing. As the roofs of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_267'>267</span>the village sank behind the hill in their rear, however,
-he turned in the saddle and addressed her
-almost roughly, “So you are not pleased with
-me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Sure, Hugh, I must be pleased; you have
-used me so kindly—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“That’s a right woman’s trick to bungle at a
-plain ‘no,’” he said, with a curt laugh; then
-started, for tone and laugh sounded to him as
-an echo of Allestree, whom he had left drunk at
-Northrope. Putting spurs to Bayard, he pressed
-on at a reckless pace, so the dust rose thick and
-white, and turned his throat dry, and sifted in
-between his collar and his neck. He was hot
-and weary and wretchedly angry against all the
-world, especially against Lois Campion, why, he
-could not tell himself.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In such a mood he cantered into the shadow of
-the first of a straggling line of cottages, where a
-sentinel in a yellow sash, springing to the middle
-of the road, bade him pull up. “Conduct me
-to Lieutenant Millington,” Hugh ordered, showing
-his safe-conduct; so in a few moments he was
-riding down the street at an easy pace, with a
-Roundhead corporal walking at his bridle.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They drew up without the gate of a large, half-timbered
-house, which set back from the road in
-a garden of red roses that dazzled drearily before
-Hugh’s eyes. “If you will accept of my aid—”
-he said brusquely to Lois, and had just swung
-her down from the horse’s back, when he heard
-the gate clatter open behind him. He turned
-about, and came face to face with Peregrine
-Oldesworth.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_268'>268</span>For an instant they confronted each other without
-speaking, time enough for Hugh to take note
-that his cousin wore a pompous great pair of
-boots and a long sword, and had grown a scrap
-of dark mustache that made him look older than
-his years. Then said Peregrine, “Well, have
-you come to fetch back that stolen horse, Master
-Thief?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The horse is best off with him who has the
-wit to keep him,” Hugh replied quickly. “Be
-assured I had not come to you beneath a white
-flag, if it had not been to bring Lois hither.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And a brave convoy you have had, Cousin
-Lois,” Peregrine said, with a dull flush on his
-face. “The next time you must roam the country-side,
-pray you, seek another protector than a
-scape-gallows like this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You know well, Cornet Oldesworth,” Hugh
-retorted, “that I would pay it back to you, if you
-durst put that term to me in any other place.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“So you’d like to murder me as you murdered
-Bellasis?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Murdered! What do you mean?” The
-words came faintly from Lois, and to Hugh’s
-fancy she seemed to draw a little from him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Maybe he will set it forth to you himself,”
-sneered Peregrine.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I killed a man in a fair duel,” Hugh replied
-shortly. “I leave you to your cousin’s care,
-Lois.” With that he seized Bayard’s bridle and
-turned away, he cared not whither, only he did
-not wish to see the horror in Lois’s eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Perhaps you’ll give your horse a rest here at
-the stable, sir?” the Roundhead corporal at his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_269'>269</span>elbow suggested civilly. Hugh slouched down
-the road after him, and scarcely heeded Garrett
-beside him, chuckling, “Well, sir, I knew from
-the start you were Master Gwyeth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Now you’re sure of it, you’d best carry the
-news to Oxford,” Hugh replied; “I cannot buy
-silence.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After they were into the cool of the black
-stable and he had seen Bayard cared for, he sat
-down on a truss of straw and stared at the motes
-that swam in the sunlight by the open door.
-His eyes ached with the light and the dust, and
-his throat was all choked; he crushed the straws
-between his fingers as he sat, and in this destruction
-found his only ease.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He roused up as a petty officer entered the
-stable, who prayed him, from Lieutenant Millington,
-to come back to the house and dine with
-the officers of the company. Hugh hesitated a
-moment, then came, rather sullen and defiant,
-and after washing the dust from his face entered
-the dining room. Millington, a heavy, slow man
-of near forty, greeted him courteously, and presented
-him to his brother officers, who were distant
-and suspicious. “You are of Woodstead,
-are you not, sir?” one asked him, with an implication
-that made Hugh guess the other held
-him to have come from a den of all iniquities.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then they conversed of matters that concerned
-them, while Hugh swallowed his dinner in silence,
-with an occasional pause to stare defiantly at Peregrine,
-who scowled at him from the opposite
-corner of the table. It was a relief when the
-meal was ended and he could rise, bent on setting
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_270'>270</span>out from the place at once; but Millington
-bade him step apart with him into an empty parlor.
-“’Tis an ill report we have had of you this
-winter, Hugh Gwyeth,” he began judicially, as
-he seated himself by the open window; “can you
-give me nothing better to bear to Everscombe?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh stood erect, with a feeling that he was a
-culprit brought to sentence, and replied that he
-had only slain a man in a fair fight, and he held
-that no wrong.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Perhaps not;” Millington waived the question;
-“but I tell you, nephew, ’tis not the part of
-an honest gentleman to be herding with such
-drunken libertines and cowardly bullies as those
-that hold Woodstead.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Mayhap ’tis not the company I would keep
-of my own will,” Hugh admitted, “though they
-have been kind to me. But ’tis best I lie close
-just now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“If you have done no wrong why need you
-hide yourself?” Millington retorted, with a flicker
-of a triumphant smile.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Have me a murderer and a thief, if you will,”
-Hugh flung back.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay, ’tis that I held you a lad of good parts,
-in spite of your running after these strange
-gods. That you have dealt so courteously by
-little Mistress Campion shows you are not all lost
-yet. But take heed to the associates you keep.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh felt a guilty hotness in his face, but,
-bracing himself, he listened with respect to all
-his uncle had to say farther in the same strain,
-and, when he had done, he replied honestly, “I
-thank you, sir; methinks you mean all kindly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_271'>271</span>So he took his leave, and turned away to summon
-Garrett; then remembered, and with a downcast
-look hesitated back to Millington. “An’t
-like you, uncle,” he faltered, “I am ashamed to
-ask it, but I have had to borrow money to provide
-for Lois, and I promised this fellow of mine
-reward for aiding me. And I have no money.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Eh? How do you live, then, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I had some. I lost it at dice,” Hugh admitted
-shamefacedly. “On my honor, I never
-will again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There was an instant’s pause, then Millington
-said more coldly, “I’ll pay the man,” and led the
-way from the house. Hugh, following behind
-like a chidden child, saw his uncle go to Garrett,
-who waited with the horses just outside the gate,
-and saw him fee the trooper; by the man’s face
-he guessed it was done liberally, but he knew
-the fact that the money came from another’s
-hand must always lower him in the fellow’s
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Dreading to meet the trooper’s curious look,
-he was lingering an instant on the garden walk,
-feigning to adjust his boot-tops, when he heard
-behind him some one call his name. He would
-not look up till there came a touch on his arm,
-and he must raise his eyes to meet Lois’s gaze.
-“I wanted to thank you, Hugh,” she said gently.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You need not.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And I wanted to ask your pardon, if I hurt
-you. Truly, I will never believe you have done
-anything that is base, whatever they say. Prithee,
-forgive me, Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I should ask you to forgive it that I was so
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_272'>272</span>surly,” he hesitated. “And—and next time I
-meet you, Lois, I’ll have mended my manners, so
-you need not be dismayed. Farewell now.” He
-looked her frankly in the eyes as he spoke, then
-bent a little and kissed her hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He came out at the gate more briskly than he
-had hoped, and there, by the horses, found Peregrine
-and Lieutenant Millington in talk. “When
-you go back to Thomas Oldesworth tell him from
-me he should have taught you that a white flag
-protects the bearer,” he heard Millington say,
-and he noted Peregrine had fixed covetous eyes
-on Bayard. Indeed, as Hugh swung into the
-saddle, his cousin broke out, “You’ll pay me for
-that horse one day, sirrah.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But Hugh deliberately turned his back upon
-his bluster, while he bade his uncle a second
-farewell, then waved his hat to Lois, who still
-stood among the roses in the garden, and so
-headed his horse away from Newick.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The shadows of the two horsemen showed long
-in the late afternoon sun, and lengthened and
-blended at last into the gray of the twilight.
-Frogs piped to them in the dusk as they threaded
-their way through a bit of bog land, and after that
-they went a long piece in silence under the wakeful
-stars. Hugh suffered Bayard go slowly, while
-he felt the pleasant night air upon his face and
-harked to the hoof-beats, muffled by the yielding
-road, till at length a light upon a distant hill
-showed where Woodstead lay. At that the horses
-freshened their pace, and, with a good flourish,
-they cantered in at the gate of the manor house
-and pulled up at the stables.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_273'>273</span>Bayard once made comfortable, Hugh went
-slowly back to the house, where he found the
-officers, with their coats off and the table well
-stored with glasses, loitering in the west parlor.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“So you’re back, are you, sir?” Butler greeted
-him. “Well, now you’ve had a safe-conduct and
-all at your disposal, is there anything else you’d
-command of me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nothing, sir,” Hugh replied, as he threw off
-his buff coat. “I’ll not need your good offices,
-for—In short, sir, I’m wearied of hiding, and I
-want back my own name again. So ’tis in my
-mind to ride for Oxford to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_274'>274</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER XVII <br /> <span class='small'>THE STRANGER BY THE WAY</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>“You’ve a gray day for a start and a gallows
-at the end,” Allestree spoke encouragingly, as he
-lounged in the doorway of the manor house.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Twill be profitable to you, Master Gwyeth,
-to turn your thoughts as you go to composing
-your last good-night,” Mahone paused in lighting
-his pipe to add cheerfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh put his attention to drawing on his
-gauntlets and made no reply; in the last twelve
-hours there had been threats and expostulations
-and jeers enough to teach him that his only
-course was to be silent and keep to his determination.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’ll lay you five shillings, George, he loses
-courage and sneaks back in time for dinner,”
-Mahone resumed.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The blood shot up to Hugh’s face; he knew
-that was what Mahone wanted, and he was the
-angrier that he had gratified him. He turned
-sharp away and fumbled at Bayard’s headstall
-till he felt surer of his self-control, then asked
-stiffly: “Can you tell me if the captain is in the
-west parlor? I must take my leave of him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I don’t begrudge you the task,” Allestree
-hinted. “The captain lost his temper at Northrope,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_275'>275</span>because the scurvy little tavern was so ill
-supplied, and he has not found it again yet. So
-look to yourself, Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It did not need Allestree’s warning to bring the
-heart down into Hugh’s boots; the mere inhospitality
-of the closely shut door of the west parlor
-and the grim tone in which Butler bade him come
-in were enough to daunt him. The captain had
-been writing ponderously at the table in the centre
-of the room, but at Hugh’s coming he flung down
-his pen, and, after surveying him scowlingly, burst
-out: “You’re still set in your folly, then? Well,
-for Dick Strangwayes’ sake I’d fain have saved
-you, in spite of your cursed sullen ways.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I have not meant to be discourteous to you,
-Captain Butler,” Hugh protested; “I thank you
-for sheltering me and saving me that first time,
-I do thank you heartily. But now I think it
-better—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“To seek other company,” Butler retorted. “If
-you were a bit older, I’d be angry with you, sir;
-and if you were a small bit younger, by the Lord,
-I’d cuff some wit into you; as ’tis—Well, I’ll
-shake hands, if you wish. On my soul, ’tis pity
-so decent a lad should not have the sense to keep
-his head on his shoulders.” Thereupon he turned
-his back, and, with great show of being occupied,
-fell to his writing, so Hugh, feeling miserably rebuked,
-had no course but to go quietly from the
-room.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Perhaps his downcast state touched Allestree
-a little, for he met him more kindly and spared
-farther jests while Hugh was mounting Bayard.
-“Better go to Tamworth if you are ill at ease
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_276'>276</span>here,” he counselled wisely. “But in any case
-God speed you and protect you for the sake of
-the innocence of you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At this Mahone went into a fit of laughter,
-from which he recovered only in time to bawl a
-farewell that reached Hugh but faintly, as he rode
-out by the sentinel at the gate of Woodstead.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Travelling slowly, to spare Bayard after his
-heavy work of the preceding day, he came about
-noon to a cross-road, where for a moment he
-hesitated: should it be north to seek Sir William’s
-help, or south to put himself into the provost’s
-hands and trust to his own innocence of
-ill intent to bring him clear? But he soon told
-himself that, if Sir William had had the power to
-aid, he would long ago have helped Dick Strangwayes;
-and, in any case, he had no will to live
-longer in holes and corners, as if he were indeed
-the murderer Peregrine had called him. Perhaps
-he would find friends if he went on boldly.
-So he jogged southward at an easy pace, so easy,
-indeed, that he gave up all idea of reaching Oxford
-that day. “And we don’t care to lie in the
-fields, Bayard,” he talked softly to the horse.
-“And we’ve not a penny to our names to hire
-lodgings. What say you if we swerve off to
-Ashcroft? Perhaps they’ll shelter us this night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At heart he knew they would, yet, remembering
-how carelessly he had departed thence, he
-felt a little backward about presenting himself to
-the Widow Flemyng. His pace lagged more
-and more as he drew near the farm, and he might
-have halted short to reconsider, had not the spat
-of rain upon the white roadway warned him to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_277'>277</span>look to the sky. There the clouds were black
-with storm and thunder, so, having no wish to
-come at last to Oxford all bedraggled, he spurred
-forward hastily and galloped Bayard into Ashcroft
-stable just as the rain began pelting down.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Storm or no storm, so soon as he had delivered
-over the horse to Ralph’s care, he put his head
-down and ran for the house, where he pitched
-blindly in at the kitchen door. He heard a
-shriek from Nancy, “Preserve us! mistress, ’tis
-Master Burley come back,” and then the widow’s
-peremptory tones: “Take those boots off right
-where you stand, sir, else you’ll track mud over
-my new-sanded floor.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh balanced uneasily on one foot as he
-obeyed, then asked meekly if he mightn’t be permitted
-to sit down now?</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Oh, at table, is it?” questioned the widow,
-bustling to the nearest cupboard. “Hungry as
-ever, I take it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Always,” Hugh replied, and fetched a stool to
-the table against the kitchen wall, where he was
-presently busy with a cold capon.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In the midst the widow paused at his side and
-laid a folded paper by his trencher. “’Tis well
-you came hither now, Master Burley,” she said.
-“This was fetched from Tamworth for you by a
-close-mouthed trooper three days agone. I was
-almost resolving me to get upon the old mare
-and ride to seek you at Woodstead. I am no
-chit of a girl to fear those saucy knaves.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh laughed, and with frank curiosity unfolded
-the paper; within were two gold sovereigns,
-but not a sign of writing, though he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_278'>278</span>turned the sheet over and over. “What does
-this mean?” he asked blankly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’ve told all I know,” replied the widow. “I
-did my best to learn more of the fellow who
-brought it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh finished his dinner in silence, while he
-turned over various solutions. Dick was out of
-the kingdom, and in any case he would never
-have sent the coins and no word; but Sir William
-had supplied them with money while they
-lay hid at the “Sceptre”; or perhaps Frank, with
-his well-filled pockets and his boyish fondness for
-mystery, had had to do with this. At any rate
-the money was there in his hands and made his
-journey easier, so much so that he felt, had he
-been superstitious, he would have hailed it as a
-sign that he was to go on to Oxford as he had
-started.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Yet when the twilight shut in, gray with drizzling
-rain, there came on him a heavy feeling of uncertainty;
-his own determination, though he felt
-so sure of it, weakened a little before the memory
-of the opposition of all his friends. In such
-a mood he loitered into the cottage parlor, where,
-finding the Widow Flemyng sitting idle in the
-dusk, he drew up a stool and blurted out to her
-his true name and how matters stood with him.
-“I fear you’d not have cared to harbor me, had
-you known what a charge I lay under,” he concluded
-humbly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Why, child, I suspected all along,” the good
-woman hastened to reply, and Hugh, staring dutifully
-at the gray rain outside the lattice, thought
-it wise not to contradict her. It gratified him,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_279'>279</span>too, as she continued speaking, to find she did
-not hold him a fool for his resolution. Indeed,
-she said emphatically no worse harm could befall
-a decent lad at Oxford than at Woodstead, and
-in any case she was well assured no one would
-ever have the heart to hang him. “You were
-best cast yourself on the king’s mercy,” she ended.
-“Now had you great friends at court, or could
-get to have audience with his Majesty.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Did you ever hear the ballad of ‘Johnny
-Armstrong’?” Hugh asked. “Dick used to sing
-it. There was a man sought the king for pardon
-and he got little good by it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>All the same her assurances made him more
-confident in himself, so he slept that night untroubled
-and woke ready for whatever the day
-might bring. Perhaps it was the widow’s continued
-encouragements, perhaps it was the good
-breakfast he made, or perhaps the sight of the sun
-struggling through the watery clouds, that served
-still farther to put him in high spirits. Be as that
-may, he took a gay farewell of Widow Flemyng
-and of Nancy, and cantered out by the pasture
-lane at a hopeful pace, as if he were eager to
-cover the distance to Oxford and whatever waited
-him there.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The rain of the preceding day had laid the dust
-well, and left in the air a lingering fragrance of
-moist earth and beaten grasses that made it a
-temptation to slacken speed along the country
-road. In the hedges by the wayside the honeysuckle
-was still dripping with wet; Hugh pulled
-a tuft of blossoms as he passed, and crushed them
-slowly in his bare hand. How sweet and good
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_280'>280</span>was life in summer time, he reflected, and then
-he flung the blossoms away and, whistling persistently,
-thought no more, for his mind was all made
-up.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At the first tavern he came to he bought him
-a draught of ale, bravely, now there was money
-in his pocket, then trotted on without halt till
-past noon. By that the sun had burnt away the
-clouds, and the still heat made the journey less
-pleasant; so, coming upon a sleepy village with
-a small neat inn, the “Bear and Ragged Staff,”
-Hugh thought well to rest the midday hours and
-get food for himself and his horse. The fear of
-being recognized and apprehended before he
-should have a chance to give himself up made
-him call for a private room, where he ate alone,
-except that the host bustled in to serve him and
-retail a variety of gossip. Oxford was near
-enough for the daily news to pass to the village,
-so Hugh heard a deal of authentic information of
-how the king was said to lean now to the counsels
-of the hot-heads and to the army, and how
-the royal troops might any day set forth to take
-in Bristol. He scarcely heeded more, for the
-talk of Oxford had turned his thoughts again to
-what was before him. Where should he eat his
-next meal, he wondered, with a remembrance of
-the grim Castle; and then, impatient at his own
-faltering, he jumped up hastily, and, paying his
-reckoning, went down to the little court of the
-inn, where he bade them saddle Bayard at once.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The horse had been led out into the shade of
-an open shed, and Hugh was lingering by the
-stirrup to fee the hostler, when outside the gateway
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_281'>281</span>sounded a great clattering of hoofs, and a
-gentleman came spurring in upon a white horse,
-that stumbled on three legs. “Have me hither
-a fresh mount, briskly, you knaves!” he shouted,
-flinging a handful of loose coin among the stable-boys
-and loiterers. Then, as he put eyes on
-Bayard, he swung himself from his saddle.
-“This beast will serve my turn,” he called to the
-host, who had just showed himself at the door of
-the inn.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“By the Lord, this beast will not serve your
-turn!” Hugh cried hotly, and, catching hold on
-Bayard’s bridle, flung himself before the horse in
-time to confront the stranger. “This is no post-horse,
-sir, but mine own.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The other turned sharp away with a shrug of
-the shoulders; they were broad shoulders, Hugh
-noted, and the rough gray coat fitted them ill.
-“Put saddle to another horse at once,” the man
-bade.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“There is no other at hand, your Honor,” the
-host apologized, as he ventured out into the court.
-“All are at the smith’s. Belike in a half-hour,
-your Worship—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Enough,” the other interrupted him, and
-strode back to Hugh. “What will you sell this
-beast for?” he asked curtly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Not again for all the gold in England,” Hugh
-replied, tightening his grasp on the bridle.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“My faith, sir, I’ve no intent to knock you
-down and steal the horse,” the other answered,
-with a short laugh.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>His cool tone allayed the heat of Hugh’s anger
-sufficiently for him to note the man more closely
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_282'>282</span>now, and he perceived he was not above three or
-four and twenty, of a tall strong build, with sharp
-eyes. Hugh caught his breath and stared frankly,
-while his mind jumped back to his first day at
-Oxford, when he and Allestree, standing upon the
-steps, had watched the king and his retinue ride
-by. The stranger had turned his back upon him
-now, and drawn over to the centre of the court,
-but his voice was loud, and Hugh could hear him
-bidding the hostler run out and procure him a
-farm-horse or aught that went upon four legs.
-With a sudden desperate impulse Hugh thrust
-forward and spoke boldly, “If it like you, sir,
-you may have my horse now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Your price?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No price. I’ll lend him unto you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You’ve changed your tune quickly, sir,” said
-the man, coming back to Bayard’s side.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’m thinking ’tis likely your business is of
-more weight than mine, your Highness,” Hugh
-answered, in a tone that sank to a whisper.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“So you know me?” asked the stranger, with
-his foot already in the stirrup.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I can guess, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Spare guessing, then, for taxing the brain,”
-retorted the other, as he settled himself in the
-saddle. “Give me your name, though, sir; I’ll
-not forget your service.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh hesitated an instant, then replied, “Hugh
-Gwyeth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’ve heard that name. Perhaps you’re kinsman
-to him that killed Bellasis’ son?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I—I am the man that killed him, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You? The deuce you are!” the stranger
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_283'>283</span>broke out; and, to Hugh’s amazement, he did
-not look horrified, but more as if he were inclined
-to laugh. “Come seek me to-morrow
-morning at my quarters,” he said abruptly, then,
-gathering up the reins, went out of the inn
-yard at a gallop.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh stood gazing blankly after him, and
-could not decide whether to be elated or dismayed,
-for he knew the stranger was Prince
-Rupert, and he was to have audience with him
-next morning. Carry his cause to the king, the
-widow had counselled him, Hugh reflected, and
-he tried to smile at the remembrance, though his
-heart was sober and anxious.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Just there the host interrupted him; what was
-his pleasure now? Surely he would not attempt
-to make his journey with the lame horse? “No,
-let him rest,” Hugh ordered; “I’ll venture him in
-the morning. For now give me a chamber; I’ll
-lie here this night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He was early astir next day, for, though the
-way to Oxford was short, he was not sure of his
-mount, and, in any case, he was burning with
-desire to present himself before the Prince and
-know the worst that was destined for him. The
-white horse still went lame with a strained fore-leg,
-but, sparing him as much as he could, Hugh
-contrived about eleven of the clock to pace slowly
-into the city. Before he entered the suburbs he
-had flung on his cloak, in spite of the heat, and
-pulled his hat low on his forehead; but still he
-was nervously alert to avoid the fixed gaze of those
-he met, and he dreaded any delay in the street.
-By dint of such precautions, perhaps, he came at
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_284'>284</span>last unchallenged to Christ Church, where he remembered
-Prince Rupert had his quarters.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The groom who took his bridle eyed him
-sharply, and, once across the quadrangle and
-within the broad hall, a trig gentleman usher
-looked askance at his worn boots and shabby
-buff coat. Hugh had too much upon his mind,
-however, to trouble for his poor attire. He sat
-uneasily in the great chair to which he had been
-motioned, and studied the sunlight that fell from
-a long window high up toward the roof of the
-hall, till the usher came at last to bid him follow.
-Hugh trudged obediently up a great flight of
-stairs that creaked alarmingly, and, as he went,
-wondered why there was an emptiness where his
-heart ought to be, and his throat felt all choked
-up.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A great door was swung open, he remembered;
-then he was within a long sunshiny chamber,
-with heavy table and big dark chairs, the usher
-had gone, and he was left face to face with his
-Highness, the Prince, and another youngish gentleman,
-who sat at opposite sides of the table
-with a jumble of papers betwixt them. “You
-keep your time well, Master Gwyeth,” spoke the
-Prince, and put by a paper like a map he had
-been studying.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Your Highness bade me,” Hugh stammered.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“So ’twas you killed Bellasis’ son,” the other
-repeated, still amusedly. “Lay down that order,
-Grandison. I want you to have a look at this
-desperate duellist.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“That boy, your Highness?” drawled the man
-at the table.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_285'>285</span>The blood came hot into Hugh’s cheeks. “I
-pray your Highness, hang me, if you will, but do
-not mock me,” he blurted out.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Who speaks of hanging you here, lad?”
-Prince Rupert answered, in so kindly a fashion
-that Hugh gazed at him in surprise. “Nay, had
-I my way, I’d give a captaincy to every man who
-has the goodness to take off one of these cursed
-civilians who are always holding our hands. You
-are of the army, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I hope to be, your Highness. I am only a
-volunteer now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Tis near enough for all soldiers to aid you as
-a fellow-soldier.—And how think you, Grandison,
-my Lord Bellasis would take it, if this gentleman
-received a free pardon?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He would deem himself most notably affronted,”
-the other answered soberly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh made a step forward and let his words
-come fast: “If it be your Highness’s will, if ’tis
-in your thought to aid me, I do entreat you, let
-my case go, so far as it concerns me. But there
-is my friend that went to the field with me, for
-my sake, and cared for me when I was ill with
-my hurt afterward. He lost a commission because
-of me. If there is only one can be pardoned,
-I beseech your Highness let it be he.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And how do they call this notable friend of
-yours?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Richard Strangwayes, your Highness. He
-was lieutenant in the regiment of Sir William
-Pleydall.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Pleydall? Ah, your case was brought unto
-our notice two months back. Ay, surely.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_286'>286</span>Gwyeth and Strangwayes. Sir William Pleydall
-was urging your pardon through a certain
-Captain Gwyeth who came to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh dropped his hand down on the back
-of a chair close by and griped it hard, while he
-gazed blankly at the Prince, yet scarcely saw
-him. Captain Gwyeth had been urging his pardon,
-he repeated over and over to himself, yet
-could not make it comprehensible. Then he
-realized that his Highness was speaking again,
-and he roused himself up to listen. “Two
-months back that was. Well, there is time for
-many matters to change in two months. Perchance
-your business can be settled for you,
-Master Gwyeth. Only you must promise to
-fight no more duels,” the Prince added, with a
-laugh in his sharp eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I will promise, your Highness,” Hugh answered
-soberly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And break it, I’ll wager. You were ready to
-draw your sword on a poor dismounted traveller
-yesterday. Maybe you’d like to have back that
-horse you’d not take all the gold in England for?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“If it does please your Highness,” Hugh said
-politely; then added honestly, “I should be loath
-to part with him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>His Highness laughed outright. “Go to my
-stable and call for the horse,” he bade. “Come
-hither again in a week or so, and there may be
-tidings for you. Only see you do not come to
-court too often, Master Gwyeth; ’twould be a pity
-to spoil the honest blunt soldier you are like to
-be with a slippery courtier polish.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he turned again to his map in sign of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_287'>287</span>dismissal, and Hugh somehow contrived to bow
-himself safely through the door. He was out in
-the green quadrangle before he got it through his
-head that Prince Rupert himself would move for
-his pardon to the king, and then he recollected he
-had not even said “thank you,” and he flushed hot
-with the consciousness of his own churlishness.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It changed his thoughts a trifle to seek out his
-way to the stable and claim Bayard, whom he had
-been ready to give up for lost and was proportionately
-glad to recover. Once upon the horse’s
-back, he took himself unostentatiously through
-the streets to the lodgings of his fencing-master,
-de Sévérac, who received him warmly, when Hugh
-assured him he was fairly sure of pardon and
-sought only to have quiet harborage for the week.
-Those seven days he passed in the dingy sleeping-room
-behind the fencing-hall, where he studied
-the pictures in a great French folio, “<span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">L’Academie
-de l'Espee</span>,” or entertained de Sévérac in his leisure
-moments with a full account of the duel with
-Bellasis. The fencing-master, who took a professional
-pride in his pupil’s success, entreated
-Hugh not to persist in saying the victory was due
-solely to Bellasis’ carelessness; ’twas just as easy
-to give credit to himself and those who taught him
-the use of the rapier.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Thus the week dragged to an end, while Hugh
-counted the days impatiently, and heard with terror
-that troops were setting out for Bristol, for in
-the confusion the great men might well forget his
-business. At last the seventh day came, and,
-having put on a clean shirt and brushed his coat,
-he set out for Christ Church. As he went he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_288'>288</span>tried to steel himself against possible disappointment
-by telling over the many cases of the ingratitude
-of kings; but at heart he knew he did not
-believe so ill of the Prince, and in the end his
-trust was justified. He had not been kept waiting
-many minutes in the great hall, when a trim
-officer came from above-stairs, and, asking him if
-he were not named Gwyeth, delivered to him a
-fair great piece of parchment all sealed up. “’Tis
-my pardon?” Hugh burst out.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The other smiled, not unkindly. “The king
-of his clemency has been pleased, at his Highness’s
-entreaty, to grant a full pardon to those who
-had a hand in the death of Philip Bellasis,” he
-explained formally; then added, “Suffer me congratulate
-you, Master Gwyeth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In a dazed fashion Hugh shook the other’s hand,
-then came forth from the hall into the open air.
-There he paused, and pushed his hat well back on
-his head so all could see his face, then, walking
-out into the South Street, tramped half across the
-city. For he need not skulk nor shrink now, he
-was a free man again; and how stoutly he meant
-to fight for Prince Rupert, since he could show
-his gratitude in no other way. Then it came over
-him that he were best post off at once to Tamworth
-and thank Sir William Pleydall, who had
-first begun the movement to relieve him, and
-thank Alan Gwyeth, who had been Sir William’s
-instrument. Hugh scowled and walked a little
-slower.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But still all his friends lay at Tamworth, and he
-would speed a letter thence to tell Dick the good
-news; so in the end he made briskly for his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_289'>289</span>quarters. Taking time first to hale out de Sévérac
-to a fine dinner at an ordinary, where they ate
-under the full gaze of the town, he got to horse,
-and, ere mid-afternoon, trotted forth from the city.
-He calculated he would make the “Bear and
-Ragged Staff” just about dusk, and, true enough,
-he rode down the village street while the red
-flush of the sunset still lingered in the west.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Inside the court of the inn he saw five horses
-standing, stripped of accoutrements and already
-half rubbed down by the hostler and his groom.
-“Take this beast of mine in to make the half-dozen,”
-Hugh bade, and, dismounting, walked
-leisurely across the court to the side door. His
-eyes travelled above the door to an open lattice,
-and, as he gazed, like the flash of a face in a
-dream, he had sight of Dick Strangwayes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For an instant Hugh stood petrified while he
-took in each detail,—Strangwayes’ clean-shaven
-jaw, the sweep of mustache, the bandage about
-his forehead, even the way in which he leaned
-heavily at the window, resting one hand against
-the casement; then he sprang forward, crying,
-“Dick!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Right on that Strangwayes flung himself forward
-half out at the casement, and shouted, “Into
-the saddle and off with you, off with you!”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_290'>290</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER XVIII <br /> <span class='small'>THE CALL OUT OF KINGSFORD</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Just inside the door of the inn was a steep
-flight of steps; Hugh tripped over the first, but,
-almost ere his outstretched hand touched the
-floor, was on his feet again and rushing up the
-stairway. As he ran he pulled his sword clear
-from the scabbard; if matters were so ill Dick
-wished him thence, he would have need of it.
-But in the corridor above-stairs all was quiet, he
-noted in the instant in which he paused, holding
-his breath, and gazed at the closed doors along
-the gallery. “Dick!” he called again, so there
-came a little echo from the end of the corridor.
-Then he ran headlong for the nearest door, and,
-dashing it open with his foot, flung himself well
-into the centre of the chamber. By his very impetus
-he thrust out of his way a man in a blue
-livery coat, and, clearing free passage thus, pushed
-up to the wall and set his back against it. There
-were three blue-coated serving men in the room,
-he perceived now, and a gross, short-necked man
-in a fine riding-suit, who was deliberately bolting
-the entrance door. Then his eyes rested on
-Dick, who, seated well away from the window,
-was leaning back indolently in his chair and
-tugging at his mustache; only Dick’s white face
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_291'>291</span>was tense, Hugh saw, and he noted, too, that his
-friend wore no sword.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was the short-necked man who broke the
-instant’s expectant hush: “Master Hugh Gwyeth,
-the tall swordsman? On my soul, I be rejoiced
-to meet with you. Put down that sword. You
-are my prisoner.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What knaves are these, Dick?” cried Hugh,
-with his sword-hand alert on the hilt.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Of the old Bellasis breed,” Strangwayes answered,
-and let his hand fall from his mustache
-with the merest gesture toward the open window,
-and just a look which bade Hugh take his
-chance.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, we apprehend you for the foul murder
-of my kinsman, Philip Bellasis,” spoke the man
-by the door.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Is that all?” Hugh asked, with a sudden
-nervous laugh of relief. He clapped his sword
-back into the sheath and tore open his coat.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Seize his arms!” cried the short-necked man.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>One of the serving fellows had sprung at him,
-when Hugh, striving to throw him off, saw Dick
-come to his feet at a jump and hit out. Somebody
-bellowed with pain; he found his arm free,
-and Dick’s shoulder pressing against his as they
-stood to the wall. “Have done, have done!”
-Hugh cried. “Read you there, Dick.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He thrust the parchment into his friend’s hands,
-and Dick, with a smothered exclamation, broke
-the seals. An instant of silence came upon the
-room, as if all had half guessed; only the rustle
-of the parchment and the heavy movement of the
-fallen serving man dragging himself to his feet
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_292'>292</span>broke the quiet, till Strangwayes spoke with ominous
-civility, “Will you deign, Master Bellasis, to
-bestow one glance upon his Majesty’s seal and
-signature?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You’ll not deceive me—” said the gross man
-with much bluster, yet he came hastily, and, gazing
-upon the paper, read with dropping jaw.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Now have you any farther business with
-me, Master Bellasis?” Strangwayes asked easily.
-“Speak quickly, ere I go across the corridor to
-sup with Master Gwyeth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The other said something that was choked
-with inarticulateness in his short throat.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I am ordering my supper now,” Strangwayes
-finished, as he went with much dignity to the
-door; “and hark you, sir, I want my sword
-brought back to me ere supper be on the table.
-For I’ll be wishing to fetch it along with me
-when next I come to seek you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he made Master Bellasis a very low bow,
-and, catching Hugh by the arm, brought him out
-into the corridor. Right across the way was a
-vacant chamber, but almost before they were inside
-the door Hugh’s arms were about Dick, and
-Strangwayes, with his voice half smothered in
-the roughness of the embrace, was jerking out:
-“Heaven forgive Bellasis his other sins for the
-good turn he did in bringing us together. But
-’twould have been a sorry companionship, had
-you not come so furnished.” Thereat he got
-Hugh by the scruff of the neck and set him down
-hard on the nearest stool. “Now, you thick-witted
-rogue,” he ordered, “why in the name of
-reason did you not call out to me from the inn
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_293'>293</span>yard and say you had that piece of parchment
-inside your coat? Here I sat a good half-hour
-and schooled myself into seeing you laid by the
-heels along with me. Faith, I’ll look to find
-white hairs in my head to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh laughed, because the world was so good
-now he could do nothing else, then poured out
-his story thick and fast,—Prince Rupert at
-the “Bear and Ragged Staff,” and behind that
-Newick, and Woodstead, and Ashcroft, all huddled
-together. “Lord save us! We must have
-food to help down such a lump,” cried Dick, and,
-summoning the host thereupon, ordered supper
-to be ready in quick time.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A drawer came speedily to fetch them candles,
-and barely had he gone when one of the bluecoats,
-bowing his way in, handed over to Strangwayes
-his sword. Dick gave him money, and
-bade him and his fellows go drink. “A pleasant
-company I’ve been keeping, eh, Hugh?” he asked,
-with a dry smile, as the man backed out. “How
-came I by it? Alas, a man cannot always choose.
-I was about my business at The Hague, like a
-decent gentleman. And that fat calf, Herbert
-Bellasis,—’tis a cousin to the whole scurvy connection,—he
-was there on some mischief, and
-recognized me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Just there came supper, but across the table
-Strangwayes drawled on: “My friend Bellasis
-feared a young man like myself might come to
-harm in foreign parts. So he fetched me home.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Fetched you, Dick?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Very simply. He and his bluecoats met me
-of a dark night in a byway. He was urgent, but
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_294'>294</span>I refused his invitations. Then they picked me
-up and conveyed me aboard an English ship.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I don’t believe they could,” Hugh said bluntly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“To be sure, they had knocked the senses out
-of me, else I had not come so meekly. ’Twas
-there I got this souse in the head; ’tis near healed
-now. But there were four bluecoats once; one
-of them is still at The Hague, cherishing a punctured
-lung; I gave it to him. We had a merry
-passage over, Hugh; Bellasis and I must share
-the cabin and eat together. He used to tell me
-over the wine—’twas ship’s beer and flat at
-that—how I ought to be hanged, and he hoped
-to live to see it done. And I used to compliment
-him on his mad dare-devil courage. For if at
-five and thirty he durst attack a single man when
-he had only four to back him, no doubt at seventy
-he would dare come on with only two to aid. Nay,
-if he lived long enough, he might yet arrive at
-fighting man to man. Methinks the length of
-years he had to wait discouraged him, by the vile
-temper that put him in. Every pleasure has an
-end, so at last we made the Welsh coast and
-posted hither, in the very nick of time, it seems.
-For, Hugh, after this last exploit of yours, I’d be
-loath to leave you fending for yourself. Man
-alive, where do you think you’d be lying now, if
-you hadn’t chanced to take the Prince’s fancy?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh answered submissively that he didn’t
-know.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Neither do I,” Strangwayes retorted grimly.
-“Nay, nay, don’t look conscience-stricken now,
-for you found the one good chance in a hundred,
-and it has all come well. But ’tis a blessing for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_295'>295</span>us that his Highness delights to fly about noisily
-in disguise, instead of plodding soberly about his
-business. It has been more of a blessing to us,
-perhaps, than to the kingdom.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You shall not speak slurringly of Prince
-Rupert in my presence!” Hugh flared up.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes said, with a laugh, that he would
-make honorable amends by drinking his Highness’s
-health, on his knees, if Hugh desired; so
-they ended amicably by drinking the health together
-as they stood by their chairs, then religiously
-smashed their glasses, and went away to
-bed.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The early sunrise roused them up to repeat
-and re-repeat all that had befallen in the months
-of their separation, a subject which lasted them
-through breakfast till they quitted the table and
-went down to the inn yard. “Why, Herbert
-Bellasis has taken himself and his people hence,”
-Hugh cried, after one glance into the vacant
-stable.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I respect wisdom in any man,” Strangwayes
-commented, as he loitered at Hugh’s side in
-among the stalls. “You say the Prince said something
-to you about not fighting any more? Tut,
-tut! ’Tis a pity.” There he broke off suddenly,
-“Why, lad, how came old Bayard back to you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Why should you ask?” Hugh replied wisely.
-“If you don’t know, I don’t.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’d take it kindly if you’d talk reason,” Strangwayes
-said pathetically. “What have I to do with
-your horse? I don’t know even who bought the
-beast, or whither he was taken from Oxford.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh whistled a stave. “It must ha’ been the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_296'>296</span>same who sent me the two sovereign from Tamworth.
-Maybe ’twas Sir William, or perhaps
-Captain Turner.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Or perhaps Captain Gwyeth,” Dick said, after
-an instant.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh stared blankly a moment, then stamped
-his foot down on the stable floor. “I won’t
-believe it,” he cried fiercely. “I tell you, I’d fling
-away the money and turn the horse loose, if I
-believed it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Captain Gwyeth had a hand in that first
-movement to gain your pardon,” Strangwayes
-spoke impartially.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He was only Sir William’s instrument,” Hugh
-insisted, and, without staying to caress the horse,
-strode out of the stable.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes followed in silence; indeed, that
-instant’s jar ended conversation between them till
-they were back in their chamber, and Dick was
-busied in writing the news of his whereabouts
-and the outcome of the Bellasis affair to Sir
-William. “What use?” urged Hugh, wearied of
-gazing out of the window with no one to talk to.
-“We’ll be at Tamworth soon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Not for a little time,” Strangwayes answered,
-with his eyes intent on the sheet; “I’ve business
-here at Oxford.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He did not tell his companion what the business
-might be, but to all appearances it was furthered
-by taking a room in Oxford, by dining
-with various gentlemen and officers, and by devoting
-some days to a happy and care-free time of
-which Hugh enjoyed every moment. Not till the
-morning succeeding the day on which the king
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_297'>297</span>left the city to take possession of Bristol did
-Strangwayes make mention of the northward
-journey; then he routed Hugh early from his
-bed with the announcement that they would set
-out at once. “But first we must eat a meal at
-the ‘Sceptre,’” he concluded. “Fit yourself for the
-road, Hugh, and gallop thither to order dinner.
-If I’m not with you ere noon I’ll have been called
-north by the other way, so do you post after
-as fast as you can. Remember.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>An hour later Hugh was gayly riding out by
-the western road, which he had last travelled with
-such different feelings, and, coming in the mid-morning
-to the “Sceptre,” ordered dinner grandly.
-Afterward he loitered down to the bowling
-green, now all short velvety grass, where he had
-inveigled Martin, the friendly drawer, into giving
-him a lesson in bowls, when Strangwayes hailed
-him noisily from the doorway. “My business is
-despatched,” he said smilingly, as Hugh came to
-meet him. “After all, we’d best bribe Martin here
-to eat the dinner for us. We must be off.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They went out from the “Sceptre” at a rattling
-pace, but the first hill slackened their speed so
-conversation was possible. Then Strangwayes
-drawled pleasantly, “I’ve no wish to deceive you
-into any danger, Hugh, so you should know I
-have just fought with Herbert Bellasis.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Dick!” Hugh cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I was most circumspect,” Strangwayes apologized.
-“I waited till the king was well away, so
-I might not do it in the very teeth of him. And
-I did not hurt the fat lump, though I’d fain have
-done so. I only knocked the sword out of his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_298'>298</span>fist, and then the poor knave was very ready to
-kneel down and crave my pardon, and swear never
-so to abuse a gentleman again. Don’t put on your
-Puritan face, Hughie. The fellow had so treated
-me I could do nothing else.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Why did you not let me come to the field
-with you?” Hugh protested. “I take it most unkindly
-of you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I was not going to let my folly spoil your new
-fortunes,” Strangwayes answered. “I think ’twas
-done so quietly ’twill all blow over, since we have
-got away to Tamworth. But if not, no charge
-can come against you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Why will you always be sparing me as if I
-were a child?” Hugh cried, with an angry break
-in his voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Because some ways you are still just a long-legged,
-innocent bairn,” Dick replied, with a
-chuckle, whereat Hugh tried to sulk, but that was
-impossible with Dick talking fast of their comrades
-at Tamworth. In the end he must talk, too, and
-laugh with Dick, till he forgot the hurt to his
-dignity.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>By hard riding they contrived before moonrise to
-reach Ashcroft and rouse up the Widow Flemyng.
-She fair hugged Hugh, and said of course she knew
-he’d get his pardon; then fell to cooking their
-supper, while she talked loudly and contentedly
-to either of them or both. Next morning they set
-out in dubious weather, and, going a short stage
-out of their direct road, passed that night with
-Butler and his officers, who made much of Strangwayes,
-though they looked askance at Hugh, and
-were half loath to forgive him for not getting
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_299'>299</span>hanged as they had prophesied. Next evening
-brought them to Sir William Pleydall’s great house
-in Worcestershire, where his widowed daughter,
-Mistress Cresswell, gave them a hearty welcome,
-and, riding thence at sunrise, they came at last
-unto Tamworth.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was about four of the afternoon, hot and
-moist with slow rain, when they rode across the
-King’s Dyke down the narrow High Street of
-the town. At the door of a tavern Hugh caught
-sight of a trooper loitering, a shiftless fellow of
-Turner’s company, but he longed to jump down
-and have speech with the rascal. “Let us push
-on briskly, Dick,” he begged, and so they went at a
-swinging pace down the street and across the river,
-where on its height Tamworth Castle towered
-black against the gray sky. There was a shout
-of greeting to the petty officer of the watch, a
-scurrying of grooms in the paved south court of
-the castle, and then the word of their coming
-must have travelled at high speed, for barely had
-they crossed to the main door of the keep when a
-young officer ran out to meet them, and fell on
-Strangwayes. “Have you forgot me, Lieutenant?”
-he cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Sure, no, Cornet Griffith,” Dick answered
-heartily. “Your leg’s recovered?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A matter of a limp; it does well enough in
-the saddle. I have back my commission under
-Captain Turner now, so we’ll serve in the same
-troop. Ay, your lieutenancy is waiting for you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Talking boisterously, they crossed the great
-hall that was now a guardroom, and, passing into
-one of the lesser rooms that served the officers,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_300'>300</span>came upon Michael Turner. It pleased Hugh
-more than he could show that the captain did not
-scoff at him, but gave him a half-embrace, saying
-kindly: “Faith, we’re glad to have you back,
-Gwyeth.” Though next moment he had turned
-away to talk with Strangwayes: “You’ve come
-in time for work, Lieutenant. They’re drawing
-all the men they can find westward unto Gloucester,
-where they say there will be brisk doings.
-Leveson’s and my troops are here in the castle;
-Gwyeth’s has gone a-raiding into Warwickshire;
-the others are all prancing into the west. We’re
-a scant hundred to defend the whole town, so
-we’ll gladly give you the pleasure of keeping the
-watch to-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes came away laughing, and under
-Griffith’s guidance they went down a corridor to
-a snug parlor, where they had the good fortune
-to find Sir William, idle for the moment, and
-unattended save by a single hound. The dog
-made a dash to meet Dick, barking hilariously
-the while, so Hugh could only see that the baronet
-embraced his nephew warmly, and he stepped
-back a little to leave them to themselves. But
-Dick haled him forward, and Sir William spoke
-to him with a gracious sort of welcome that made
-Hugh stammer, when he tried to thank him for
-the effort to secure his pardon. “Nonsense, nonsense,”
-spoke Sir William; “we had no need to
-seek it, sir. You have the wit or the good fortune
-to be able to maintain yourself without our help.
-Your father ought to be proud of you.” He
-stopped there, then, as he turned again to Strangwayes,
-added with a certain diffidence: “I pray
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_301'>301</span>you, Master Gwyeth, do not forget to go speak to
-Francis; he has been in a fit of the sullens since
-yesternight.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh left the room in some wonderment, and,
-seizing upon a serving man, was speedily conducted
-by a passageway, up a flight of stairs, and along
-a gallery to a closed door. Hugh knocked, and,
-getting no reply, knocked again, then tried the
-door and found it bolted within. “Frank,” he
-called, and began shaking the door. “Open to me.
-’Tis Hugh Gwyeth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There was an instant’s pause, then a slow step
-across the floor, and the grate of the bolt in the
-socket. “Come in, hang you!” Frank’s voice
-reached him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was a big cheerless tower chamber, Hugh
-saw, with heavy scant furniture and windows high
-from the floor that now gave little light. He
-stood a moment, half expecting Frank to speak
-or bid him be seated, but the boy slouched back
-to the bed that stood in the farther corner, and,
-without looking at him, flung himself down upon
-it. “Why, what’s amiss?” Hugh broke out,
-and went to him; now he came nearer he saw
-Frank had been crying much.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nothing,” the boy answered, and kept his face
-bent down as if he were ashamed.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Tell me,” Hugh urged, “you’ll feel the better
-for it. Is it anything because of Griffith?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, it’s that,” Frank cried, raising his head
-defiantly. “They have taken away my cornetcy,
-Hugh. ’Tis all along of Michael Turner. And
-I never harmed him; I had done my best. But
-he comes to my father; he says he must have a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_302'>302</span>man for his troop. So my father turns his anger
-on me; he said I was a selfish, heedless child,
-where ’twas time I bore me as a young man. And
-then Ned Griffith comes back all cured, and they
-stripped me of my cornetcy to give it to him.”
-Frank dropped down with his face buried in the
-pillow. “I pray you, go away,” he choked; and,
-in the next breath, “Nay, come back, Hugh;
-you’ve always been my friend.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh sat down obediently by the bed, scarcely
-knowing what to say, when Frank with his face
-still hidden suddenly broke out, “Hugh, did you
-look to have that cornetcy last winter?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh hesitated: “Yes, I did hope. But I had
-no reason, ’twas no fault of yours.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“My faith, I had not taken it of you, had I
-known. I’d not have used a man as Ned has
-used me, as they all have used me. I have been
-playing the fool, and they all have been scoffing
-at me, and I did not know it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Sure, you must not take it so grievously,
-Frank,” Hugh urged. “Get up and wash your
-face and show you care not. You’ll have another
-commission soon, when they see you are
-in earnest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Between coaxing and encouraging he got Frank
-to his feet at last, and even persuaded him to eat
-supper, which he ventured to order sent to the
-chamber. Throughout Hugh did his best to talk
-to the boy of any and all matters that had befallen
-him, till he roused him to a certain dull interest.
-“So you’ve had back your horse all safe?” Frank
-asked listlessly. “’Twas I procured Captain Gwyeth
-the name of the place where you were hiding.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_303'>303</span>He bought the horse when ’twas sold at Oxford,
-and he wished you to have it, that time when he
-was working for your pardon. Yes, I know your
-father well; he is always kind to me, and does
-not mock me as the others have been doing. I
-used to tell him all about you, and then he asked
-me find where you were lodging. I had influence
-with my father then, so I could learn it,” he added
-bitterly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>All thought of comforting Frank had left Hugh;
-he tried to listen with sympathy to his piteous
-complaints, but it was useless; so he rose, and,
-bidding him as cheery a good night as possible,
-and promising to come back in the morning, went
-out from the chamber. At the end of the gallery
-was a deep window-seat, where he sat down and
-stared out at the roofs of the town that huddled
-gray in the twilight, so intent on his own thoughts
-that he started when Dick touched his shoulder.
-“How did you leave the poor popinjay?” Strangwayes
-asked, with a trace of a laugh in his voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Better, I think,” Hugh replied.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Poor lad! Sir William might remember there
-is a mean betwixt over-indulgence and severity.
-But Frank has brought it on himself. When he
-forgot to do his duty in the troop he would be
-trying to cajole Captain Turner into good humor,
-just as he has always cajoled Sir William. And
-Michael Turner is not the man to coax that way.
-He has influence with Sir William, too, and so—Well,
-’twill be for Frank’s good in the end,” Dick
-concluded philosophically, as he settled himself on
-the window-bench.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh made room for him, then went on staring
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_304'>304</span>at the gray sky. Suddenly he broke out,
-“Dick, it was Captain Gwyeth sent me Bayard.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay?” the other answered, without surprise.
-“And I have it of Sir William, he was main urger,
-and drew him on to what seemed a hopeless attempt
-to gain our pardon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh scowled at his boots. “I take it I must
-wait on him and tell him ‘thank you,’ when he
-comes back out of Warwickshire. I wish he had
-let me alone!” he cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You <em>are</em> like your father,” Strangwayes said
-judicially, leaning back on the window-bench.
-“See to it, Hugh, you do not make the resemblance
-too complete.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“How that?” Hugh asked guiltily.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“By giving way to your ugly pride, so you do
-what it may take months of repentance to undo.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh made no answer, and the silence between
-them lasted till the gallery was quite dark,
-when, slipping off the window-seat, they tramped
-away to their comrades below.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Next day Hugh gave himself up to Frank,
-who, truth to tell, in his present half-subdued
-state was pleasanter company than he had been
-at Oxford. He persuaded Master Pleydall to
-come out and view the town, which took them
-till mid-afternoon; and then they loitered back
-to the castle, with discreet turnings to avoid
-meeting any of the other officers. Frank dodged
-into a tavern to keep out of sight of Griffith, but
-he dragged Hugh half a mile down a blind lane
-to avoid a suspected encounter with Captain
-Turner. “Mayhap I was impudent and forward,
-so he got at last to ask my advice about conducting
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_305'>305</span>the troop, when others of the men were by.
-And I thought he meant it all in sober earnest.”
-Frank made a brave attempt at nonchalance, but
-his lips quivered so Hugh had an improper desire
-to chastise Michael Turner; for all his swagger
-and affectation, Frank had been too innocent
-and childish a lad to be scathed with the captain’s
-pitiless sarcasms.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Luckily they had no more encounters with
-men from the garrison till they were nearly at
-the gate of the castle, and then it was only
-Strangwayes, riding forth in full armor, with
-some twenty men behind him, to post the watch
-about the town for the evening hours. Hugh
-made him a formal salute, which Dick returned
-gayly before he rode on.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Dick is right fond of you,” Frank said, with
-a shade of envy; and after that they sauntered
-in a moody silence, till, the sight of the stables
-cheering Frank a bit, he prayed Hugh come in
-and look at The Jade. “I’ve not seen the old
-lass since day before yesterday,” he explained.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They were still lingering to admire the mare,
-when two grooms came hurrying a lathered horse
-into the stable. “Who’s been riding so hard?”
-Hugh asked carelessly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Messenger from the troop to the south, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“To the south?” Hugh repeated. “Come
-quickly, Frank, I must see—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He walked rapidly across the courtyard to
-the door of the guardroom. About it men were
-crowded, and more were pressing into the room
-itself; but at Hugh’s jostling they made him a
-way into the thick of them. Over on a bench
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_306'>306</span>in the corner he had sight of a man with the
-sleeve cut from his coat, who sat leaning heavily
-against a comrade. Another, whom Hugh recognized
-as the surgeon of the regiment, was washing
-a wound in his arm, and as he moved, Hugh got
-a glimpse of the face of the injured man.
-“Cowper!” he cried, and ran forward, for he
-knew the fellow for one of Captain Gwyeth’s
-old independent troop.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Men gave him place; he heard a mutter amongst
-them, “The captain’s son,” but he did not heed;
-just pushed his way to the wounded man, and
-bent over him: “Cowper, what has happened?
-Is anything wrong with my father? Tell me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“They closed in on us, sir,” the man roused
-up to speak. “Captain Oldesworth’s horse, and
-a company of foot beside. They took our horses
-and they slew Cornet Foster. I came through
-for help. They have the colonel blocked up in
-Kingsford church.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_307'>307</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER XIX <br /> <span class='small'>THE RIDING OF ARROW WATER</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>For a moment the faces of the men about him
-went all blurry to Hugh’s sight; then he was making
-his way fumblingly across the guardroom, and,
-thrusting out one arm before him, found the door
-to the inner part of the castle. Now that he was
-hurrying at a surer pace down the corridor within,
-he realized that his breath was coming in short
-gasps and he was shaking with a nervous tremor.
-Kingsford, Kingsford, the word kept singing
-through his head; the Oldesworths, who had so
-hated Alan Gwyeth, held him at their mercy now
-at Kingsford. Only to Hugh it was no longer
-Alan Gwyeth, but his father, the father whom his
-mother had taught him to respect, who had tried
-to win him a pardon. And he had begrudged
-the man even a grateful thought.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh dashed open the door of his chamber,
-and, kicking off his shoes, began tugging on his
-boots. He heard a step behind him, as he struggled
-with his head bent; then came Frank’s voice:
-“Hugh, you’ve heard? They have cut him off;
-he has cried for help; my father is taking counsel
-with the captains—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Counsel?” cried Hugh, springing to his feet.
-“Why don’t they send him aid?” He tore his
-buff coat down from the wall.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_308'>308</span>“Faith, ’tis a question if there is aid to send,”
-Frank cried, in equal excitement, as he made a
-hindering effort to help Hugh into the coat;
-“they have taken away so many of our regiment;
-we are scant a hundred men all told; they say
-’tis doubtful if we can send—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Then I’ll go to Kingsford alone. Run bid
-them saddle Bayard, Frank, quick.” With that
-Hugh caught up his sword, and, going full speed
-out of the chamber, drowned in the clatter of
-his boots the protests Frank sent after him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Below, in the tower room that served for conferences,
-Sir William would be with his officers,
-and he hoped there to learn farther news. Almost
-at the door he ran upon a man from Turner’s
-troop, all accoutred, who drew back and saluted
-him. “What seek you? Know you what they
-are planning?” Hugh asked excitedly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay, sir; only I was bid have my horse ready,
-and stand at their service.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh could guess the service. Pushing by the
-trooper to the door of the chamber, he knocked
-a rattling, peremptory knock, and another right
-upon it. At that the door was wrenched open,
-and Leveson, grim and dignified, had begun,
-“What brings you, sirrah?” when Turner’s voice
-interrupted: “Hugh Gwyeth, is it? Let him
-come in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After that Hugh had a confused sight of the
-high-studded room, with the sunlight far up on
-the walls and the corners dusky, and of the men
-by the table, who had faced toward him. Then
-he found himself over by Sir William’s armchair,
-his hand resting hard upon the table, and he was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_309'>309</span>speaking rapidly: “I am going to Kingsford, Sir
-William, to my father. If you are seeking a messenger
-for anything, I’ll bear it safely. For I am
-going straightway.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay, I shall not suffer it, Hugh Gwyeth,” the
-baronet cut him short. “Do you understand?
-The roads are close beset; the trooper who
-brought us the tidings was shot in the arm and
-the side.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“But I know the Kingsford roads. I can make
-it,” Hugh protested, and looked from one to another
-of the three dubious faces. “Sure, you’ll
-let me go,” he burst out. “I must. If he be—harmed
-and I not there. I must go.” His eyes
-dropped to his hands that were clinching his hat
-fast, and rested there; he dared not glance again
-at those about him lest he find refusal in their
-looks, and he hoped they might not be gazing at
-him, for he knew his mouth was working.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then Turners voice sounded quick and decided:
-“Let him go, Sir William.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, he is a light rider and he knows the
-roads. A good messenger, after all,” Leveson
-added in a matter-of-fact tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh looked up hopefully and saw a glance
-exchanged between Sir William and his captains
-that meant his case was won. “We’ll not endanger
-you with a written message,” the baronet spoke
-at once; “for I tell you frankly, sir, you run a
-hundred chances of capture. If you do contrive
-to bring yourself through the rebel lines, bid Captain
-Gwyeth from me to hold out but two days,
-till Saturday, and he shall have help. ’Tis so you
-have determined, gentlemen?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_310'>310</span>“If the Lord aid us, we can recall enough
-troops to make the town good and ride for the
-rescue by then,” Turner answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“That’s all your message, Gwyeth,” Sir William
-resumed; “and remember, if the rebels knew the
-time when relief could be looked for, ’twould aid
-them mightily, so if you be taken—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’ll not be taken, sir, I do assure you,” cried
-Hugh, with his hand on the latch of the door;
-“I’ll come through safe to Kingsford.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Heaven grant it!” the other said, with a trace
-of a smile, and then soberly, “I can warn you, the
-captain will be glad at heart to see you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Turner said something kindly, too, Hugh remembered
-afterward, but for the present it was
-just people speaking and wishing him God speed,
-and he was glad when he clapped on his hat outside
-the door and could run for his horse.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Outside, the whole castle seemed emptied into
-the south court; Leveson’s and Turner’s men,
-some in coats and more in shirt-sleeves, who
-shouted questions and the tidings back and forth,
-and swore and scuffled at the jostlings of the
-crowd. The sun was down, but the early twilight
-still was clear between the gray walls,
-enough to bring out every detail of the swarming
-courtyard, and to enable Hugh to distinguish
-the faces of the men. Down in the thick of the
-throng he caught sight of Frank, with a groom
-holding The Jade, and he ran down from the
-doorway to him. At that, some of the men set
-up a cheering, under cover of which Frank, putting
-his arm round Hugh’s shoulders, said in a
-low tone: “I want you to take the mare, Hugh;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_311'>311</span>she’s faster than Bayard, and she’s not been used
-these two days; and I did not know it was your
-cornetcy I was taking, and I want you to ride her.
-Into the saddle with you!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Without wit or time to reply, Hugh found himself
-on the mare’s back, felt her quiver beneath
-him, and had opened his mouth to bid the groom
-let go her head, when the shouting swarm between
-him and the great gateway was suddenly
-cleft apart. Up the lane Black Boy came swinging
-with Strangwayes pulling taut on the bridle
-so he eased up at Hugh’s side. “Get you down,”
-Dick cried without question, and, springing to
-the ground himself, began tearing off his
-cuirass.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“What will you have? Be brisk,” Hugh
-shouted, coming out of his saddle.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Strangwayes flung his cuirass about him, and
-began very deliberately taking in the straps to
-fit Hugh’s body. “Did you think you were going
-on a pleasure ride?” he asked. Frank burst into
-a nervous laugh, which others caught up, and
-some began cheering for the lieutenant. Hugh
-heard The Jade prancing with impatience at the
-sound, and he himself fairly squirmed under
-Dick’s touch. “Let me be off!” he cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You’ve all night before you,” Strangwayes
-drawled. “Hold up your arm so I can get at
-the strap.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Just then, through the clatter of The Jade’s
-restless hoofs and the hum of the eager crowd
-about him, Hugh heard his name called. Looking
-over his shoulder he saw Cowper, with his
-face the color of ashes, limp up between two comrades.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_312'>312</span>“They said ’twas you should go to Kingsford,
-sir,” the man addressed him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’m to venture it,” Hugh answered. “How
-left you matters there, Cowper?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The captain has the church and the graveyard,
-sir. The rebels hold the village and the
-bridge over the Arrow. I got across two mile
-up at the Blackwater ford. The river ran high,
-and they had set no guard. ’Twas breaking
-through the village they shot at me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Go tend your hurt now,” Hugh found thought
-to urge. “I’ll remember the ford, be sure. Are
-you done now, Dick?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Done with that,” replied Strangwayes. “Are
-your pistols in order? And the word for the
-night is ‘Gloucester’; you’ll need it at the gates.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, yes,” Hugh cried, and made a dash for
-The Jade, who, dragging her groom at her head,
-had fretted herself a good ten feet away. A
-trooper jumped forward and caught her bit to
-stay her; but it was Dick, Hugh remembered,
-who held the stirrup so he could swing himself
-easily into the saddle. “God speed!” he heard
-Strangwayes say in the instant that followed.
-“We’ll be at your heels soon. God speed!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>That was all the farewell between them; for
-the men stood back from The Jade’s head, and,
-with a shrill squeal, she darted forward across the
-court. Hugh heard the click of her hoofs on the
-cobblestones, then lost the sound in the cheer
-upon cheer that broke from those about him.
-His arms ached with the tense grip he was holding
-on the bridle, and then he found the mare
-had the bit in her teeth. “Go, if you will,” he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_313'>313</span>cried, letting the reins looser. The shadow of
-the gateway fell upon him; he saw the flicker of
-the torch beneath it and the white faces of the
-men on guard. Then he had jammed his hat on
-hard, and, bending his head, was striving to hold
-The Jade straight as she tore down the slope and
-sped through the town.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Houses and shops rushed by; he heard a
-woman shriek abuse after him for his mad riding;
-the crash of opening casements, as the townsfolk
-leaned out to see him pass; once, too, his
-heart gave a jump as a boy, like a black streak,
-shot across the road just clear of The Jade’s nose.
-Then the bulk of the town gate blocked his way;
-he saw the sentinels spring forth to stay him,
-and, contriving to check the mare an instant, he
-leaned from the saddle to say “Gloucester” to
-the corporal in charge.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Pass free,” came the word; the men stood
-from his path, and, giving loose rein to The Jade,
-he flew by them out into the twilight stretch of
-open country road.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For a time it was just breathless riding, with
-his full weight on the reins to slacken the mare’s
-speed; for the road was all ruts, and he feared for
-her slender legs. The mud spattered up even
-into his eyes, and once, at a dip in the road, he
-felt his mount make a half-slip in the mire, which
-sobered her somewhat, so he could ease her down
-to a slow, careful trot that promised to carry him
-well through the night. Now he was first able
-to look about at the broad, dusky fields and back
-over his shoulder, where Tamworth town and
-castle were merged into the night. The first exhilaration
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_314'>314</span>of the setting forth went from him in
-the stillness and dark; it was steady, grim work
-he had before him, yet he felt assured he would
-come safely into Kingsford, and, spite of the gravity
-of it all, he found himself smiling a little at the way
-in which, at last, he was going to his father. He
-wondered perplexedly how he should greet Captain
-Gwyeth, and how phrase his message; a
-formal tone would perhaps be best till he was
-sure of his welcome. But Sir William had said
-his father would be glad at his coming; at that
-thought Hugh pricked on The Jade a little faster.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Once clear of the first village beyond Tamworth
-he entered a stretch of woodland, where the black
-tips of the trees showed vivid against the starless
-gray sky. Below, the undergrowth was all dense
-darkness and Hugh thought it well to keep a
-hand on his pistol, for he was drawing into Puritan
-country where a Cavalier was fair game for an
-ambuscade. Out beyond he trotted again through
-fields, only blacker and lonelier now than those
-by Tamworth. Such cottages as he passed were
-silent and dark; at one farmstead he heard a dog
-howl, and once, in a tangled hollow, a bat whizzed
-by his head, but he saw or heard no other living
-thing. Though once, as he gazed across the
-fields on his left, he made out in the distance a
-gleam of light; a farm must lie yonder, and he
-pictured to himself the low cottage chamber, where
-the goodwife would be watching with a restless
-child. Such shelter and companionship was betokened
-by the light that he turned in the saddle
-to gaze at it till a clump of trees shut it from him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It must have been something after midnight,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_315'>315</span>though under that starless sky he could not tell
-the time surely, when he clattered into a considerable
-town. An officious watchman with a bobbing
-torch ran from a byway, calling on him to
-stand, so Hugh clapped spurs to The Jade and
-shot through the street at such a pace that the next
-watchman could only get out of his course without
-trying to stay him. But after that he grew
-wary and, when the outlying houses of the next
-town came out of the black, turned off into the
-fields and picked his way about it. The round-about
-course saved him from interference, but it
-took much time; by a dull, unbraced feeling, that
-was not sleepiness nor yet quite weariness alone,
-he knew he had been many hours in the saddle,
-and he began to look to the east, in dread lest he
-catch the first signs of daybreak.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Presently he must give his whole attention to
-The Jade, for they spattered into a ford where the
-going was treacherous. While she halted to drink
-he gazed about at the bushes and the field before
-him, and, spite of the dark, knew the place. It
-was home country he was drawing toward now,
-so he trotted on slowly, with his senses alert and
-his eyes peering into the dusk for the landmarks
-that should guide him. So it was that at last on
-his right hand he caught sight of a big leafless
-oak, beneath which he pulled up short. True
-enough, he remembered the way in which the
-tree stood up bare and alone with scragged common
-at its back; he could not see well for the
-dark, but he knew that at the farther edge of
-the open land was a belt of young oaks that hid
-the ford of Blackwater.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_316'>316</span>He lingered beneath the blasted oak, time
-enough to look to his pistols, and time enough,
-too, for him to recall the ghostly reputation of
-the lonely tree, so his nerves were crisping as
-he rode by it into the common. But he quieted
-The Jade’s fretty step, and, in the action and the
-thought of what might be before him, steadied
-himself till, though his body was trembling with
-eagerness, his head was cool. He took the precaution
-of making the mare keep a slow trot that
-was half muffled in the turf, though he urged her
-as much as he dared on the uneven ground; for
-to the east, as he looked over his shoulder, the
-dark was beginning to pale. The early summer
-morning must be near at hand, for when he had
-crossed the open there was light enough for him
-to make out the break in the trees where the
-bridle path wound down to the ford.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh went in cautiously, with the reins taut
-in his left hand and his right on his pistol; but
-for all that The Jade’s feet splashed in the sloughs
-of the pathway with a loudness that startled him.
-He pulled up a moment and listened; ahead he
-could hear the lap, lap of swift water, but for
-the rest the wood was silent. He was about to
-press the mare forward with a touch of the spur,
-when, flinging up her head, she whickered shrilly.
-Right upon that, somewhere to the front by the
-water’s edge, a horse neighed.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Next moment Hugh felt the lash of low boughs
-across his neck, as he pulled The Jade round
-with her haunches in among the bushes by the
-path. Spite of the crash of the branches, and the
-pounding of the blood in his temples that near
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_317'>317</span>deafened him, he caught the sound of hoof-beats
-on his left, coming down on him from the common
-as well as up from the river. At that he
-urged The Jade forward, straight into the bushes
-at the other side of the path, where the limbs
-grew so low that he bent down with his bare head
-pressed against her mane. For all the hurry and
-tumult, his ears were alert, and presently he heard
-their horses crashing behind him among the trees
-at the right. Then, cautiously as he could pick
-his way in the gray dimness, he turned The Jade’s
-head to the common. Brushing out through the
-last of the oaks he faced southward, and, as he
-did so, cast a glance behind him. Out of the
-shadows of the trees in his rear he saw the dim
-form of a horseman take shape, and a command,
-loud in the hush of morning, reached him: “Halt,
-there!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh laid the spurs to The Jade’s sides and,
-as she ran, instinctively bent himself forward.
-Behind him he heard a shot, then the patter of
-many hoofs upon the turf, and a second shot.
-Right upon it he felt a dull shock above the
-shoulder blade; the ball must have rebounded
-from his cuirass. After that he was in among
-the trees once more; through the wood behind
-him men were crashing and shouting; and even
-such scant shelter as the oaks gave was ending,
-as they grew sparser and sparser, till he dashed
-into an open stretch that sloped to the Arrow.
-To the front he had a dizzy sight of more horsemen
-straggling from cover; there were two patrols
-closing in on him, he realized, and with that, jerking
-the mare to the right, he headed for the river.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_318'>318</span>Before him he could see the slope of hillside,
-the dark water under the bank beyond, even the
-dusky sedge of the low opposite shore. He saw,
-too, a horseman, bursting out from the trees, halt
-across his path, but he neither stayed nor swerved,
-just drove the spurs into The Jade and braced
-himself for the shock. He must have struck the
-other horse on the chest; he had an instant’s
-sight of a trooper’s tense face and a horse’s sleek
-shoulders, then only black water was before him
-and men behind him were shouting to pull up.
-There came a sickening sense of being hurled
-from the earth; a great splashing noise and spray
-in his face. After that was a time of struggling
-to free his feet from the stirrups, to clear himself
-from the frightened mare; all this with water
-choking and strangling him and filling his ears
-and beating down his head. He had no thought
-nor hope nor conscious plan of action, only with
-all the strength of his body he battled clear till
-he found himself in mid-stream, with the current
-tugging at his legs, and his boots and cuirass
-dragging him down. Once his head went under,
-and he rose gasping to a dizzy sight of gray sky.
-He struck out despairingly while he tried in vain
-to kick free from his boots. The current was
-twisting and tossing him helplessly; he turned
-on his back a moment, and still the sky was rushing
-past above him and whirling as it went.
-Above the din of the water he heard faint shouts
-of men and crack of musket-shot. A base end
-for a soldier, to drown like a rat! he reflected,
-and at the thought struck out blindly. The
-water swept him down-stream, but he fought his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_319'>319</span>way obliquely shoreward till of a sudden he found
-the tug of the current had abated. He could
-rest an instant and look to his bearings; quite
-near him lay the shore, a dark sweep of field with
-a hedge that ran down to the water, and on the
-farther side the hedge he saw horsemen following
-down the stream.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh struck out with renewed strength, till,
-finding the bottom beneath his feet at last, he
-splashed shoreward on the run, and, stumbling
-through the sedge and mire of the margin, panted
-upward into the field. Off to the left were the
-roofs of Kingsford, so far the current had swept
-him, but near at hand there was no hiding-place,
-nor even a tree to set his back against, and, with
-his boots heavy with water and his breath exhausted
-with the past struggle, he had no hope
-to run. He halted where he was, in the midst
-of the bare field, and pulled out his sword, just as
-the foremost horseman cleared the hedge at a
-leap. It was not so dark but Hugh recognized
-the square young figure, even before the man
-charged right upon him. “Good morrow, Cousin
-Peregrine,” he cried out, and dodged aside so the
-horse might not trample him. “Get down and
-fight.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>As he spoke he made a cut at the horse’s flank;
-then Peregrine, crying out his name, sprang down
-and faced him. They were blade to blade at
-last, and at the first blow the older lad flinched,
-stumbling back in the long grass of the field, and
-Hugh, with eyes on his set, angry face, pressed
-after him. Horses were galloping nearer and
-nearer, men calling louder, but Hugh did not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_320'>320</span>heed; for Peregrine, mistaking a feint he made,
-laid himself open, and he lunged forward at
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then his sword-arm was caught and held fast,
-and he was flung backward into the grasp of
-a couple of troopers. The man who had first
-seized him, a grim corporal in a yellow sash,
-wrenched the sword out of his hand, and he
-heard him speak to Peregrine: “Has the knave
-done you hurt, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh pulled himself together, though his
-whole body was still a-quiver with the action of
-the last moments, and looked about him. Yellow-sashed
-troopers surrounded him, six or seven,
-he judged, and a few paces distant stood Peregrine,
-with his hand pressed to his right forearm.
-“He slashed me in the wrist,” young Oldesworth
-broke out; “I tripped, else he had not done it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You had not tripped if you had stood your
-ground,” Hugh flung back, with an involuntary
-effort to loosen his arms from the grasp of those
-who had seized him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Hold your tongue, you cur!” snapped Peregrine,
-and might have said more, had there not
-come from across the river a prolonged hail.
-One ran down to the brink to catch the words;
-but Hugh had no chance to listen, for at Peregrine’s
-curt order he was hustled upon one of the
-troop horses. They tied his hands behind him,
-too; whereat Hugh set his teeth and scowled in
-silence. What would Peregrine do with him before
-he were done, he was wondering dumbly,
-when the man from the river came up with the
-report that the captain bade to convey the prisoner
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_321'>321</span>to Everscombe, and see to it that he did
-not escape. “I’ll see to it,” Peregrine said
-grimly, and got to his saddle, awkwardly, because
-of his wounded arm, that was already staining a
-rough bandage red.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The morning was breaking grayly as the little
-squad turned westward through the fields, and by
-a hollow to the Kingsford road. As they descended
-into the highway, Hugh faced a little
-about in his saddle, and gazed down it toward
-the village; a rise in the land shut the spot from
-sight, but he knew that yonder Captain Gwyeth
-lay, awaiting the message that he was not to
-bring. The trooper who rode at his stirrup took
-him roughly by the shoulder then, and made him
-face round to the front. “You don’t go to Kingsford
-to-day, sir,” he jeered.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh had not spirit even to look at the fellow,
-but fixed his eyes on the pommel of the saddle.
-Trees and road he had known slipped by, he was
-aware; he heard the horses stamp upon the
-roadway; and he felt his wet clothes press against
-his body, and felt the strap about his wrists cut
-into the flesh. But nothing of all that mattered
-as his numbed wits came to the full realization
-that this was the end of the boasting confidence
-with which he had set forth, and the end of
-his hope of meeting with his father. The last
-fight would be fought without him, or even now
-Captain Gwyeth, ignorant of the aid that should
-hurry to him, might be putting himself into his
-enemies’ hands. At that, Hugh tugged hopelessly
-at the strap, and found a certain relief in
-the fierce smarting of his chafed wrists.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_322'>322</span>Like an echo of his thoughts Peregrine’s voice
-came at his elbow: “So you were thinking to
-reach Kingsford, were you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I should not be riding here just for my pleasure,”
-Hugh replied, with a piteous effort to force
-a light tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Twould be as well for you if you were less
-saucy,” his cousin said sternly. “You know me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I know you carry one mark of my sword on
-you,” Hugh answered, looking his tormentor in
-the face, “and if you’d not let your troop come
-aid you, you’d carry more.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For a moment he expected Peregrine to strike
-him; then the elder lad merely laughed exasperatingly.
-“You’ll not talk so high by to-night,”
-he said, “when you’re fetched out to see that
-dog Gwyeth hanged up in Everscombe Park.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You’d best catch him before you hang him,”
-Hugh answered stoutly, though the heart within
-him was heavy almost beyond endurance. What
-might the Oldesworths not do if once they laid
-hands on Captain Gwyeth? A prisoner of war
-had no rights, Hugh was well aware, and so many
-accidents could befall. He felt his face must
-show something of his fear, and he dreaded lest
-Peregrine goad him into farther speech, and his
-words betray his wretchedness.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But happily just there they turned in between
-the stone pillars of Everscombe Park, and Peregrine
-paced to the front of his squad. Hugh
-listlessly watched the well-remembered trees and
-turnings of the avenue, which were clear to see
-now in the breaking dawn. The roofs of the
-manor house showed in even outlines against
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_323'>323</span>the dull sky, all as he remembered it, only now
-the lawn beneath the terrace was scarred with hoof-prints,
-and over in the old west wing the door
-was open, and a musketeer paced up and down
-the flagstones before it. Heading thither, the
-squad drew up before the entrance, and Hugh,
-haled unceremoniously from the horse’s back,
-was jostled into the large old hall of the west
-wing, that seemed now a guardroom.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“How do you like this for a home-coming,
-cousin?” Peregrine asked, and Hugh looked him
-in the eyes but answered nothing. His captor
-laughed and turned to his troopers. “Search
-him thoroughly now,” he ordered; “then hold him
-securely till Captain Oldesworth comes.—And I
-can tell you, sirrah,” he addressed Hugh once
-more, “you’ll relish his conversation even less
-than you relish mine.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_324'>324</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER XX <br /> <span class='small'>BENEATH THE ROOF OF EVERSCOMBE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>They had searched Hugh, thoroughly and with
-more than necessary roughness, and now he was
-permitted to drag on his dripping clothes again.
-It was in a long, narrow room at the end of the
-old hall, where the ceiling was high and dark and
-the three tall windows set well up from the floor.
-A year ago it had been a closed and disused
-apartment, but now a couple of tables and some
-stools were placed there; Hugh noted the furniture
-in listless outer fashion as he sat wrestling
-on his sodden boots. For once his captors had
-taken their hands off him; one trooper was
-guarding the door and another was pacing up
-and down beneath the windows, but the corporal
-and the third man stood within arm’s reach of
-him. When Hugh rose to his feet the corporal
-made a little movement, and he realized they
-were all alert for his least suspicious action.
-“My faith, I’m not like to get away from the four
-of you,” Hugh broke out in a despairing sort of
-sullenness. “’Tis only that I’d fain put on my
-coat, unless you claim that along with my cuirass
-and buff jacket.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>One bade him put on and be hanged, and
-Hugh, having drawn on the wet garment, sat
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_325'>325</span>down again on the stool by the table, too utterly
-weary and hopeless to note more than that the
-room was damp and the chill of his soaked clothes
-was striking to his marrow. With a thought of
-tramping some warmth into his body he rose
-again, but the corporal sharply bade him sit down
-quietly or be tied down. Hugh resumed his
-place on the stool with his shoulders against the
-edge of the table and one ankle resting on the
-other knee; he would gladly have swung round
-and rested his head upon the table, so worn-out
-and faint he felt, only he knew if he did his captors
-would think him childish and frightened.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of a sudden he heard the sentinel at the door
-advance a step and announce to the corporal:
-“Captain Oldesworth has just come into the
-guardroom, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A queer tingling went through Hugh’s veins,
-and upon it followed a sickening faintness. Bringing
-both feet down to the ground, he faced about
-with his clinched hand on the table and his eyes
-fastened upon the door. He knew now why he
-had not been able to think, those last moments,
-why every humiliation had been scarcely heeded,
-in the expectation of this that was before him.
-He saw the corporal draw up stiff in salute, the
-sentinel stand back from the door, and then,
-clean-shaven, set-mouthed as ever, he saw Tom
-Oldesworth stride in.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It had been in Hugh’s mind to stand up to
-meet his uncle, but at the last he dared not trust
-his knees to such a test. For the moment the
-old boyish fear of the elder man, whose raillery
-had cut him, whose blows had made him flinch,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_326'>326</span>came back on him, and he could only stare at
-him dumbly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Tis not the place I had looked to find you,
-nephew,” Oldesworth greeted him, in a tone that
-though brusque was kindly enough. Only in the
-hurriedness of his bearing and the eagerness in
-his eyes Hugh read no friendly presage, so he
-let his gaze fall to the table and studied the
-grain of the wood, while he listened to the beating
-of his heart that vibrated through all his
-body.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Oldesworth spoke a word aside to the corporal,
-and as the troopers drew to the farther end of the
-room came and set himself down opposite Hugh.
-“Now attend me, sir,” he began rapidly. “By
-your trappings you seem to have learned something
-of war; then you know how the case stands
-with you now we have you fast. So I trust you
-will not suffer any childish stubbornness to vex
-me or harm you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh watched the man’s hard face with fascinated
-eyes and lips half-opened, but found no
-tongue to reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You were riding to Kingsford,” Oldesworth
-continued, gazing at him fixedly. “You came
-from Tamworth, whither a messenger was posted
-yesterday. You brought an answering message.
-What was it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh flung back his head. “If there be a
-message, think you I’d be such a fool as to tell
-it?” he cried, in a voice that was so firm it made
-him glad. After all, he had no need to fear, for
-this was only a man like the rest, and he was now
-a man, too.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_327'>327</span>“You brought a message from Sir William
-Pleydall,” Oldesworth repeated, unmoved. “He
-is going to send aid to this man, is he not?
-Why, I can read that in your face, Hugh. Aid
-is coming, then. Is it to-day? To-morrow?
-Answer me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh met his uncle’s gaze fairly, with his head
-held a little upward and his lips tight-set now.
-There was nothing for him to say, but he knew
-they fought the battle out betwixt them while
-their glances met.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“So you’re stubborn, are you?” Oldesworth
-said, rising to his feet. “You young fool! Do
-you think you can set your will against mine?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I think I will not tell what you ask,” Hugh
-replied without a tremor.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Oldesworth leaned a little forward with his fist
-upon the table. “I have been waiting all my
-manhood to take satisfaction from Alan Gwyeth,”
-he said slowly. “Now the opportunity is given
-me do you think I shall suffer a boy’s obstinacy
-to hinder me? I will have that message. If
-you’ll not yield it for the asking, why—Come,
-come, speak. I’d be loath to hurt you, Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’d be loath to have you, sir,” Hugh replied
-soberly, though his whole inclination was to
-laugh; for now the worst had come he was
-braced to meet it, and quite unafraid.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Captain Oldesworth’s jaws were set ominously
-at that. “Corporal,” he ordered sharply, “send
-a man to fetch rope and a piece of match.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With an involuntary start Hugh came to his
-feet, for his mind had jumped back to something
-Butler had once hinted,—that a length of burning
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_328'>328</span>match tied between the fingers was the surest
-way to make a dumb knave find his tongue.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Tis no laughing matter, you’ll perceive,” the
-captain said, with a trace of satisfaction. “Now
-you’ll tell?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh shook his head, not looking at his uncle
-but with eyes upon the door. He saw it pushed
-open, and then came in the trooper with a length
-of rope in his hand, but Hugh scarcely heeded,
-for behind him, with an eager step, walked Peregrine
-Oldesworth. After that it did not need
-the tramp of the men crossing from the other
-end of the room to set every fibre of Hugh’s
-body tense for the coming struggle. With a
-quick movement he swung about to catch up
-the stool he had just quitted; Oldesworth must
-have stepped round the table behind him, for he
-blocked his way now, and catching him by the
-shoulders made him stand, for all Hugh’s effort
-to wrench clear. “’Twill be no use fighting, my
-lad,” he said, with something oddly like pity in his
-face. “Do as I ask straightway. You’ve done
-all a gentleman need do. Tell me now when
-Pleydall is coming. Else you go into the hands
-of Cornet Oldesworth and his squad here. And
-Peregrine is keen for this work. But tell, and no
-one shall lay hand on you, nor—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I care not if you kill me!” Hugh cried
-hoarsely.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Have it your way, then!” Oldesworth retorted,
-and, flinging him off, turned his back.
-“Tie him up, lads,” he ordered.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Some one griped his collar, Hugh felt; there
-was a rip of cloth, and for a moment he had torn
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_329'>329</span>himself free and struck out blindly at the mass of
-them. They must have tripped him, for he felt
-the floor beneath his shoulders; but he still had
-hold on one of them, and he heard a shirt tear
-beneath his hands. There came a dull pain between
-his eyes, as if the bones of the forehead
-were bursting outward, and he made a feeble
-effort to strike up as he lay. Then the struggling
-was over; he could not even kick, for one
-that sat upon his legs; a man’s knee was grinding
-down on his back, and his arms were forced
-behind him. His face was pressed to the floor,
-and he could see nothing for a blackness before
-his eyes, but he heard Peregrines voice, cool
-and well-satisfied: “He’ll be quiet enough now.
-Here’s the rope.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Some one else had entered the room, Hugh
-realized; a slow step, a pause, and then a stern
-voice that rang loud: “Thomas Oldesworth!
-Bid your ruffians take their hands from your
-sister’s son.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Father!” the captain’s voice spoke, then after
-an instant’s blank pause ran on: “You do not
-understand, good sir. He—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Will you stand arguing?” There came a
-noise as of a staff’s being struck upon the floor.
-“Do I command in this house, son Thomas, or
-do you? You ruffianly knaves, up with you all!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They had left him free, Hugh found, and
-dragging one arm up to his head he lay panting
-desperately, without strength or heart to move.
-“Help him to his feet,” the stern voice spoke
-again. “Or have you done him serious hurt?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They lifted him up, with gentler handling than
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_330'>330</span>they had yet given him, and staggering a pace to
-the table he leaned against it. He drew his hand
-across his eyes unsteadily to rub away the black
-spots that danced before them; he had a blurry
-sight, then, of the troopers drawn back to the
-windows, and of the captain and Peregrine, who
-stood together with half-abashed faces, for in the
-doorway, leaning on his staff, was Master Gilbert
-Oldesworth. “Get you back to Kingsford
-and fight out your fight with the scoundrel who
-wronged your sister,” he spoke again. “At such
-a time can you find no better task than to maltreat
-a boy?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“If you would only pause to hear how matters
-stand, sir,” the captain urged, with a visible effort
-to maintain a respectful tone. “The lad holds
-the information that shall make us masters of that
-villain Gwyeth. If he will not speak, though he
-were twenty times my nephew, I’ll—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“If he were twenty times the meanest horseboy
-in the king’s camp, he should not be put to
-torture beneath my roof,” Master Oldesworth
-answered grimly. “Come here to me, Hugh
-Gwyeth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Wondering dully why all the strength had gone
-out of his body, Hugh stumbled across the room
-and pitched up against the wall beside his grandfather.
-He noted now that his shirt was torn
-open, and drawing his coat together he tried to
-fasten it; his fingers shook unsteadily, and the
-buttons were hard to find. He felt his grandfather’s
-hand placed firmly on his shoulder. “I
-think you have mishandled this gentleman enough
-to satisfy you,” the old man spoke contemptuously.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_331'>331</span>“Henceforth you will merely hold him as
-a prisoner taken in honorable war. And I shall
-myself be responsible for his custody.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“My good father,” Captain Oldesworth broke
-out, “I cannot suffer him to pass from my keeping.
-My responsibility to the state—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Will you school me, Thomas?” Master Oldesworth
-cut him short. “I am neither bed-ridden
-nor brain-sick that you should try to dictate to
-me now. But I will advise you, sir, that there
-are decencies to be observed even in war, and
-there are those in authority would make you
-to smart if ever they got knowledge of this you
-purposed. Lift your hand against my grandson,
-and this day’s work comes to their ears.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then the grasp on Hugh’s shoulder tightened,
-and submissively he walked at his grandfathers
-side out into the guardroom. Those loitering
-there drew back to make way for them, he
-judged by the sound of footsteps, but he had not
-spirit even to look up. By the difference of the
-oak planking of the floors he perceived they were
-entering the passage that led to the main building,
-when he felt a firmer grip close on his arm
-and heard the voice of the Roundhead corporal:
-“I crave your pardon, sir. The captain bade me
-see the prisoner safely locked up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No need,” Master Oldesworth spoke curtly,
-and then addressed Hugh: “You will give me
-your parole not to attempt an escape.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh looked up helplessly into his grandfather’s
-stern face, and felt the grasp of the corporal
-press upon his arm. His breath came hard
-like a sob, but he managed to force out his answer:
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_332'>332</span>“I cannot, sir, I cannot. You’d better
-thrust me back into my uncle’s hands. I cannot
-promise.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He was trying to nerve himself to be dragged
-back to the chamber behind the guardroom, but
-though Master Oldesworth’s face grew harder,
-he only said, “Bring him along after me,” and led
-the way down the passage.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh followed unsteadily, glad of the grasp on
-his arm that helped to keep him erect. They
-had entered the east wing, he noted listlessly;
-then he was trudging up the long staircase and
-stumbling down the corridor. At the first window
-recess he saw Master Oldesworth halt and
-heard him speak less curtly: “I have indeed to
-thank you, mistress.” Raising his eyes as he
-passed, Hugh saw that by the window, with
-hands wrung tight together, Lois Campion was
-standing.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Instinctively he tried to halt, but the grip on
-his arm never relaxed, and he must come on at
-his captor’s side, down to the end of the corridor.
-There Master Oldesworth had flung open a door
-into a tiny chamber, with one high, narrow slit of
-a window, bare of furniture save for a couple of
-chests and a broken chair, over which the dust
-lay thick. “Since you will have no better lodging,
-you shall stay here,” he said coldly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Dragging his way in, Hugh flung himself down
-on a chest with his head in his hands. “Could
-you let me have a drink of water, sir?” he asked
-faintly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Go to my chamber and fetch the flask of
-Spanish wine, Lois,” Master Oldesworth bade,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_333'>333</span>and Hugh heard the girl’s footsteps die away in
-the corridor, then heard or heeded nothing, just
-sat with his face hidden.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A touch on the shoulder roused him at last; he
-took the glass of wine his grandfather offered him
-and slowly drank it down. They were alone in
-the room now, he noted as he drank, the door
-was drawn to, and Lois was gone. He set down
-the empty glass and leaned forward with his
-elbows on his knees. “I thank you, sir, for this,
-for all you have saved me from,” he said slowly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You might thank me for more, if you were
-less self-willed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“’Tis not from self-will, sir, I did as I have
-done, that I refused my parole,” Hugh broke out,
-“’tis for my father. I cannot bind myself. I
-must go to him. I—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No more words of that man,” Master Oldesworth
-silenced him. “You shall never go to him
-again. A year ago I dealt not wisely with you.
-I gave you choice where you were too young to
-choose. For all your folly there are parts in you
-too good for me to suffer you destroy yourself.
-Now where I let you walk at your will I shall see
-to it that you keep the right path, by force, if you
-drive me to it. For the present I shall hold
-you in safe custody at Everscombe. Later, as
-you conduct yourself, I shall determine what
-course to take.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“But my father!” Hugh cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Captain Oldesworth will deal with Alan
-Gwyeth,” Master Oldesworth replied. “Do you
-forget him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I can never forget him, sir. Sure, I’d liefer
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_334'>334</span>be hanged with him than be saved apart from him
-thus. I—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The door closed jarringly behind Master
-Oldesworth, the key grated in the lock, and the
-bolt was shot creakingly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For a time Hugh sat staring stupidly at the
-door of his prison, then, getting slowly to his feet,
-he began dragging and shoving the chest beneath
-the window. His hands were still unsteady and
-he felt limp and weak, so again and again he must
-pause to sit down. The little room was close and
-hot; the perspiration prickled on the back of his
-neck, and stung above his eyebrows. The movement
-of the chest cleared a white space on the
-gray floor, and the dust that rose thick sifted into
-his mouth and nostrils till he was coughing painfully
-with a miserable feeling that it needed but
-little for the coughing to end in sobbing. He
-hated himself for his weakness, and, gritting his
-teeth, shoved the chest the more vigorously till at
-last it was in position beneath the window. Lifting
-the one chair upon it, he mounted up precariously;
-the sill of the window came level with
-his collar bone while the top grazed his forehead.
-He stretched up his arms and measured the length
-and breadth of the opening twice over, but he
-knew it was quite hopeless; there was no getting
-through that narrow window, and, had it been
-possible, he must risk a sheer fall of two stories
-to the flagged walk below. For a moment he
-stood blinking out at the green branches of the
-elms that swayed before his window, then he
-dropped to the floor again and sat down on the
-chest with his face in his hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_335'>335</span>So he was still sitting, when the door was unlocked
-and one of the serving men of the household
-came in to fetch him dinner. Hugh looked
-up, and, recognizing the fellow, would have spoken,
-but the man only shook his head and backed out
-hastily. Hugh noted that it was no trooper’s
-rations they had sent him, but food from his
-grandfathers table; still he had no heart to eat,
-though he drank eagerly, till presently he reasoned
-this was weak conduct, for he must keep up
-strength if he were ever to come out of his captors’
-hands, so, drawing the plate to him, he resolutely
-swallowed down a tolerable meal.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he set himself to watch the motes dance
-in a sunbeam that ran well up toward the ceiling,
-but presently it went out altogether. He leaned
-back then on the chest where he sat, and perhaps
-had lost himself a time in a numb, half-waking
-sleep, when of a sudden he caught a distant sound
-that brought him to his feet. He could not mistake
-it; off to the east where Kingsford lay he
-could hear the faint crack of musketry fired in
-volleys. Hugh cried out something in a hoarse
-voice he did not recognize; then he was wrenching
-at the latch and hammering on the door with
-his clinched hands, while he shrieked to them to
-let him go. He saw the blood smearing out from
-his knuckles, but he beat on against the unshaken
-panels till the strength left him and he dropped
-down on the floor. Still, as he lay, he could hear
-the distant firing, and then he ground his face
-down between his hands and cried as he had
-never cried before with great sobs that seemed
-to tear him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_336'>336</span>Afterward there came a long time when he had
-not strength even to sob, when the slackening fire
-meant nothing to him, and, lying motionless and
-stupid, he realized only that the light was paling
-in the chamber. The door was pushed open, and
-mechanically he rolled a little out of the way of
-it. The serving man he remembered came in
-with supper, and at sight of him Hugh lifted up
-his head and entreated brokenly: “Tell me, what
-has happened? Have they taken my father? For
-the love of Heaven, tell me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The man hesitated, then, as he passed to the
-doorway, bent down and whispered: “They’ve
-beat the Cavaliers into the church, sir, but they’ve
-not taken the captain yet. Lord bless you, don’t
-cry so, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For the sheer nervous relief had set Hugh choking
-and sobbing again without pride or strength
-enough left to hold himself in check. As the
-darkness closed in, however, he grew a little
-calmer, though sheer exhaustion more than inner
-comfort held him quiet. His eyes were hot
-and smarting, and his throat ached, so he crept
-over to the chest where the food was placed, and
-laying hands on a jug of water gulped down a good
-deal and splashed some over his face. After that
-he stretched himself again upon the floor, where
-for pure weariness he dropped at length into a
-heavy sleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He awoke in darkness, his blood tingling and
-his pulses a-jump in a childish momentary fear at
-the strangeness of the place and a something else
-he could not define. He had recollected his
-position and laid down his head again, with a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_337'>337</span>little effort to place himself more comfortably
-upon the floor, when there came a second time
-the noise that must have wakened him,—a stealthy
-faint click of the latch, as if the door were being
-softly opened. Hugh sprang to his feet and set
-his back to the wall, in the best position for defence,
-if it were some enemy, if it were Captain
-Oldesworth came seeking him. The door was
-opening, he perceived, as his eyes grew accustomed
-to the darkness. “Who is it?” he asked
-in a guarded tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Hush! ’Tis I, Lois.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh caught his breath in a gasp of relief.
-“Lois, you’ve come to free me?” he whispered,
-and, stepping softly to her, fumbled in the dark
-and found her hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, yes. I was afraid for you. I told Master
-Oldesworth that Peregrine was bragging how the
-captain would serve you. He saved you that time.
-But ’tis possible the captain will lay hands on you
-again. I slipped into Master Oldesworth’s chamber
-and took the key. I know ’tis wicked; I care
-not. Pull off your boots and come away, quick.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Noiselessly as he could, Hugh got his boots in
-his hand and in his stockinged feet stole out of
-the chamber. In the corridor it was all black and
-still, just as it had been that other time when
-he ran from Everscombe, only now Lois was with
-him, and when the stairs creaked they pressed
-close together. Then she went forward boldly,
-and he, still half-blinded with sleep, was content
-to follow the guidance of her hand. “In here,”
-she whispered at length, and so led him into the
-east parlor, where the great clock still ticked,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_338'>338</span>solemn and unperturbed. “Go out at the window,”
-Lois spoke softly; “I dare not open the door.
-There are a few men in the house, but they lie
-in the west wing and the stables. The bulk are
-at Kingsford. Northward you will find the way
-clear.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I am not going northward,” Hugh answered,
-as he warily pushed open the casement. “I go
-to my father now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Hugh!” The girl’s voice came in a frightened
-gasp. “I had not released you— If you
-come unto them at last— They wish it not— You
-may be killed! You shall not do this
-thing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Leaning from the casement Hugh dropped his
-boots carefully where the dark showed an edge of
-grass bordered the flagged walk; as he set himself
-astride the window ledge he spoke: “’Tis
-just the thing I shall do, Lois, and the only
-thing. If you be sorry for what you did, call, if
-you will, but I shall jump and run for it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I shall not call,” she answered. “Oh, I care
-not who has the right and wrong of the war. I
-cannot bear they should hurt you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>She was kneeling on the window-bench with
-her face close to his; he suddenly bent forward
-and kissed her. “God bless you for this, Lois,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he swung himself over the window ledge,
-and letting his weight come on his hands dropped
-noiselessly to the walk below. He dragged on
-his boots, and taking a cautious step across the
-flagstones slid down the terrace to the lawn.
-Once more he glanced back, not at Everscombe
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_339'>339</span>manor house, but at the opened window of the
-east parlor. It was too dark more than to distinguish
-the outline of the casement, but he
-knew that at the lattice Lois was still standing
-to wish him God speed to his father.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_340'>340</span>
- <h2 class='c017'>CHAPTER XXI <br /> <span class='small'>THE FATHERHOOD OF ALAN GWYETH</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>The sky was bluish black with heavy masses
-of clouds, but through a rift in the west showed
-a bright star, by which Hugh guessed roughly it
-must be within two hours of dawn. Quickening
-his pace to a run at that, he came into the shelter
-of the park, where it was all black, and he went
-forward blindly, with one arm thrust up to guard
-his face. Now and again he had through the
-tree-tops a distant sight of the sky, and by it took
-his directions; but for the most part he stumbled
-on haphazard, though at a brisk pace, for the
-night was passing rapidly. When at length he
-crushed his way through a thicket to the edge of
-the brook that marked the bounds of the park,
-the bright western star had sunk out of sight behind
-the trees.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Beyond the brook he hurried through a tract
-of woodland, where he bore to the southward to
-keep clear of the Kingsford highway and a farmstead
-that lay back from it. He came out in a
-cornfield, where the blades felt damp against his
-face as he forced a rustling passage through, and
-after that climbed over a wall into the open fields.
-There were no more houses to avoid before
-he reached the village, so with less caution he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_341'>341</span>pressed on at a good jog-trot. For the night was
-waning, and Kingsford was still to come.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>An ominous pale streak showed in the east before
-him as he climbed the swell of land that cut
-off sight of the village. Fearing lest his figure
-show up too distinctly against the sky line, he
-made for a clump of bushes at the summit, and
-had just got within their shadow when he caught
-the sound of hoof-beats. Dropping flat he dragged
-himself in under the bushes, where, peering out
-between the leaves, he saw the black bulk of a
-horseman ride along the slope below him. A
-little to Hugh’s left he pulled up and called to
-another rider a challenge that reached the boy’s
-ears quite clearly, then turned and came pacing
-back.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They had set a mounted guard about the town,
-then; and with that Hugh told himself he must
-slip past it and quickly, too, or the dawn would
-be upon him. But first he waited for the horseman’s
-return, to know what was the time between
-his passing and repassing, and while he waited
-he strained his eyes into the dark to get the lay
-of the land. At the foot of the rising ground was
-a hollow, he remembered, and across it, on the
-higher land, stood an irregular line of three cottages,
-beyond which ran a lane that led by the
-side wall of the churchyard. Very likely troops
-were lodged about the cottages now, perhaps even
-more patrols in the hollow, but all he could see
-was the black depths beneath him and the outline
-of the nearest cottage. Then he heard the sound
-of hoofs loud again, as once more the horseman
-on guard rode by below. Hugh could make out
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_342'>342</span>his form far too clearly; dawn was coming, and
-he durst stay no longer.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>So soon as the man had turned and paced a rod
-on his journey back, Hugh crawled from beneath
-the bushes and, rolling noiselessly, creeping on
-hands and knees, made his way down the hillside.
-He remembered afterward the feel of the moist
-grass in his hands, the look of the mottled dark
-sky and the faint stars, and how at a distant hail
-in the village he pressed flat on the cold ground.
-But at last he crawled across a more level space
-he judged the bridle path, and scrambled down
-into the depth of the hollow, where a chilly mist
-set him shivering. As he lay outstretched, resting
-his weary arms a moment, he heard up above
-him the horseman ride by.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Now that he was within the lines of the patrol
-only caution and quickness were necessary. Still
-on hands and knees, he dragged himself slowly
-up the hillside, bearing ever to the south to get
-behind the cottages, yet not daring to venture too
-far, lest he come upon another line of guards. As
-he approached the first cottage he rose half erect
-and tried a short run, but the bark of a dog made
-him drop flat in the grass, where he lay trembling.
-Next instant, realizing that it was better
-to push on, whatever befell, he sprang up and
-made a dash to the cover of a hedge behind the
-second cottage. For now the protection of the
-night had nearly left him; he could see clearly
-the lattices of the cottage, the whitish line of highway
-beyond it, and others might see him as well.
-But as he crept forward, keeping to the shelter of
-the hedge, he looked up, and against the gray sky
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_343'>343</span>saw what gave him courage. Above the farther
-cottage rose the church tower, and from it stood
-up a staff on which fluttered a red flag with a
-splotch of gold upon it; Captain Gwyeth and his
-men still were holding out.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With renewed hope Hugh worked his way
-past the hedge to the shelter of an outbuilding,
-not a rod from the lane that ran white beneath
-the lich wall. He could see the church clearly
-now, the scowling small windows, the close side
-door, and the gravestones on the slope below.
-There was little prospect of welcome, he was
-reckoning anxiously, as he lay crouched against
-the outbuilding, when suddenly he heard a cry:
-“Stand, there!” Off to his right in the lane he
-beheld a Roundhead sentinel halted with his
-piece levelled.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Springing to his feet Hugh dashed across the
-grass plot to the lane. On the left he heard
-hoof-beats, then a cry: “Shoot him down!” A
-bullet struck the sand at his feet; he heard men
-running, and another shot. He heard, too, the
-crunch of crisp weeds beneath his boots as he
-crashed into the overgrown tangle beyond the
-lane. He felt the rough stones on the top of
-the wall, then he had flung himself clear across
-it, and was struggling up the slope among the
-graves. His boots were heavy and hampered
-him, and his breath seemed gone. He looked
-up to the dead windows of the church and tried
-to cry: “King’s men! To the rescue!” but
-what sound he could make was lost in the din
-behind him. A bullet struck on a headstone just
-to one side; then of a sudden came a numbing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_344'>344</span>pain in his left arm. He staggered, stumbled
-blindly a pace; then the sky was rolled up like a
-gray scroll, the stars were dancing before his
-eyes, and he was down flat upon the ground.
-Lifting his head dizzily he had a dim sight of the
-lane below, men swarming from the cottages, and
-one he saw leap the wall and come running
-toward him. Hugh’s head dropped back on the
-ground; he saw the sky pale above and waited
-for the butt of his pursuer’s musket to crash down
-upon him, and prayed it might not be long to
-wait.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They were still firing, he heard; and he heard,
-too, quick footsteps behind him and a man breathing
-fast. He was swung up bodily from the
-ground, and there came a voice he knew: “Your
-arm round my neck, so. Have no fear, Hugh;
-I’ve got you safe.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There was firing still and faint cheering; the
-rest darkness; but before it closed in on him
-Hugh had one blurred glimpse of a strong, blue-eyed
-face above him, and he knew it was his
-father who held him.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The light returned to Hugh in a dim and unfamiliar
-place; high above him, as he lay on his
-back, he had sight of a vaulted roof full of shadows.
-His head felt heavy and dazed, so he did not care
-to stir or speak, just closed his eyes again. There
-had been faces about him, he remembered vaguely,
-and he felt no surprise when he heard a voice
-that was unmistakably Ridydale’s: “He’s coming
-round, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They were pressing a wet cloth to his forehead,
-Hugh judged, and his head was aching so he tried
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_345'>345</span>to thrust up his arm to stop them. “Let—me—alone,”
-he forced the words out faintly, and opened
-his eyes. It was his father who was bathing his
-head, he saw, and remembering what brought
-him thither his mind went back to the formal
-message he had framed on the way from Tamworth.
-“Captain Gwyeth, Sir William Pleydall
-bade me deliver word, he will send you relief; it
-shall come to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Saxon, take that word to Lieutenant von
-Holzberg,” Captain Gwyeth’s voice came curtly.
-“Spread it through the troop that help is coming.—Spare
-farther speaking now, Hugh; I
-understand.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh closed his eyes heavily and lay quiet.
-He felt a wet cloth tied round his head, and then
-he winced through all his body as a knife ripped
-halfway up his sleeve. “Thank Heaven, ’tis only
-a clean flesh wound,” he heard the captain say.
-“Nay, Jack, I’ll hold him. Do you bandage it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh felt himself lifted up till his head rested
-against the captain’s shoulder. Half opening his
-eyes he had a confused sight down the nave of
-the church, only now it seemed unfamiliar, for
-the pews were torn from their places and piled
-up against the great entrance door. Up and
-down by the walls men were pacing, and some
-lay silent on the floor of the choir, and some he
-heard groaning as they lay. Then he closed his
-eyes and clinched his teeth, for his arm was aching
-rarely, so the lightest touch made him shrink.
-He wondered if the bandages they were putting
-on would never end, and if he could keep on biting
-down all sign of pain, when at last Ridydale
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_346'>346</span>spoke: “There, sir, ’tis done the best I could.
-If we only had water to wash the hurt properly!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>That suggested to Hugh that his mouth was
-dry, so he said under his breath: “I am thirsty.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“If there be a drop of water in the place, fetch
-it,” Captain Gwyeth bade; and a moment later
-Hugh’s head was lifted up and a cup set to his
-lips. It was brackish water, and very little at
-that; he swallowed it with one gulp, and opened
-his eyes to look for more. “Nay, that’s the last,”
-the captain spoke out. “’Tis an ill lodging you
-have taken with us. I would to God you were
-elsewhere!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With the scant power of his returning strength,
-Hugh tried to move clear of the arm that was
-about him. “I had hoped, this time, you would
-not be sorry to see me,” he broke out, in a voice
-that quavered in spite of himself.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He heard the captain give a sharp order to
-Ridydale to be off, and he felt it was to save the
-dignity which had almost slipped from him. He
-put his head down on the captain’s shoulder
-again. “Father, you are glad to have me, after
-all,” he said softly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He felt the sudden tension of the arm that
-drew him closer, though when Captain Gwyeth
-spoke, his tone was of the driest: “After the
-trouble I’ve had to get hold of you, do you not
-think ’tis reasonable I should be glad?” Then
-he cut short all response with a hasty: “Lie you
-down here now and be quiet. You’ve been
-knocked just enough for you to make a fool of
-yourself if you try to talk.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh grinned weakly, and suffered his father to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_347'>347</span>put him down with his head upon a folded cloak.
-“I’ll send Ridydale to have an eye to you,” the
-captain said in a low tone, “and if anything happens,
-I’ll be near.” Then he rose and tramped
-away down the nave of the church, but Hugh,
-watching him through half-shut eyes, saw him
-halt to glance back.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After that Hugh lay a long time in a heavy,
-half-waking state, where he listened to the slow
-pacing up and down of those about him who kept
-guard, and to the quicker step of men who, on other
-errands, hastened across the reëchoing church;
-he heard men shout orders across the aisles or
-nearer to him speak in curt monosyllables; and
-he heard, too, all the time, the labored groaning
-of one who must lie somewhere near. Then
-there were moments when, losing all sounds, he
-drifted off into an unknown world, where he lived
-over again the happenings of the last hours, and
-struggled in the water of the Arrow, and fought
-Oldesworth’s troopers, and made the last run
-through the churchyard under the Roundhead
-fire.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was a relief to come back to consciousness
-and find himself lying comfortably on the floor
-of the choir with the dark roof far above him.
-A glint of purple sunlight from a broken window
-wavered on the ground beside him, and, forcing
-his mind to follow one train of thought, he contrived
-at last to reason out that it must be past
-noon. Pulling himself up on his sound arm, he
-tried to look about the church, but the effort
-made his head ache so he was glad to lie down.
-But he had got sight of Ridydale, who stood on
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_348'>348</span>a bench beneath one of the tall windows in speech
-with a trooper, and after a moment’s rest he called
-the corporal by name.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Ridydale stepped down, carabine in hand, and
-came to Hugh’s side. “Is there anything you’ll
-be wanting, sir?” he began.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes,” Hugh replied, “I’d take it kindly of
-you if you’d just tell me what hit me that time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Ridydale grinned and settled himself close by
-on the steps of the altar with his carabine across
-his knees. “’Tis all very simple, Master Hugh,”
-he explained. “They wasted a deal of lead trying
-to wing you,—they’re clumsy marksmen,
-those Roundhead cowherds. Somehow, by good
-luck, they contrived to shoot you in the arm. I
-take it you stumbled on one of those sunken
-stones, then, for you went down and broke your
-head against another gravestone.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Was that it?” Hugh asked, in some mortification.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“And then the colonel stepped out and fetched
-you in. We had sight of you, those that were
-keeping the west windows, as you came down to
-the lane. ‘It’s Hugh,’ says the colonel, sharplike;
-‘unbar the door.’ Soon as we had the
-barrier tore down, and we made short work of it,
-he out after you. ’Twas a most improper thing,
-too,” Ridydale grumbled; “captain of a troop to
-risk himself under a fire like that for a mere volunteer.
-When there were others ready enough
-to go out. Maybe you were too flustered, sir, to
-note what a pretty shot I had at the knave who
-followed you over the wall?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh confessed he had missed that sight.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_349'>349</span>“Ay, ’twas not a shot to be ashamed of,” the
-corporal resumed, pulling his mustache with much
-satisfaction. “’Twas brisk give and take we
-were having then, sir. The colonel had a bullet
-through the skirts of his coat ere he got you
-within the church. Ay, ’twas improper conduct
-of him. What would have become of us all, tell
-me now, had he been hurt?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Why, just the same that will become of you
-now he is not hurt,” the captain struck in crisply
-as he came up. “Tell me, Hugh, did it commend
-itself to the sapience of Sir William Pleydall to
-say what time Saturday we might look for relief?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Perhaps it does not matter to him whether it
-gets here at sunrise or sunset,” the captain remarked
-dispassionately. “It makes a mighty
-deal of difference to us, though.” He stuck his
-hands in his pockets and stood staring up at the
-broken window where the sun came through. In
-the strong light Hugh noted how haggard his
-face looked about the eyes, and how three days of
-neglect showed in the red-gold beard. But when
-the captain turned from the window there was a
-laugh in his eyes. “Jack,” he addressed Ridydale,
-who was standing at attention, “what devilry
-do you suppose Tommy Oldesworth is at now
-that he keeps so quiet?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Shall I try a shot to stir him up, sir?” the
-corporal proffered.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Not for your life, Jack. Go rest you, while
-they let us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>As Ridydale strode off, Captain Gwyeth, with
-a soberer look, set himself down in his place.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_350'>350</span>“You ought to know, Hugh, that we’re in a bad
-way,” he spoke out in a brusque, low tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“There’s help coming,” Hugh answered stoutly,
-and dragged himself up on one elbow so he could
-rest against the steps beside his father.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ay, but it must be quick,” the captain replied,
-“for Oldesworth is hot upon us. He came hither
-this morning under the white flag to advise us
-surrender to his mercy ere he batter down our
-walls.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Ordnance?” Hugh asked blankly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He may bring it from Warwick. Our only
-hope is that he may be so long in the bringing
-it— Well, he’s bravely worried that you got in
-to us, else he’d not have offered us terms. He’s
-troubled about that relief; and, faith, I’m troubled,
-too. The men will hold out another twenty-four
-hours in the hope, but we’ve had neither food nor
-drink since yesterday afternoon. And we are
-scant thirty men now, and there are six with disabling
-wounds besides.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Couldn’t I make one in the fighting?” Hugh
-ventured hesitatingly. “I might not be able to
-steady a carabine with one hand, but I could
-load—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Then we could not use you long,” the captain
-said, with a dry laugh. “That’s the crowning curse
-of it all, Hugh; there’s not above three bullets
-left to a man.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh gazed down the dismantled church, where
-the pews were all turned to sorry defences and
-the windows were shattered with the rebel balls.
-He noted, too, the set, weary faces of the nearest
-men on guard, and something of the hopelessness
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_351'>351</span>of the whole position came home to him. His
-face must have shown his thought, for the captain
-suddenly put a hand on his shoulder. “That’s
-why I’m sorry you are here,” he said briefly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I care not for that,” Hugh choked, “but if
-they do not bring aid in time,—Peregrine said
-they would hang you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Peregrine?” the captain queried. “Tut, tut!
-He should be old enough by now to know a gentleman
-does not let himself be taken and hanged
-while he has weapons in his hands. Though I
-knew from the start ’twould be a fight to the
-death if ever I came sword to sword with the
-Oldesworths.” There was a space of silence, then
-he broke out: “I suppose they taught you I was
-a scoundrel, did they not?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“At the last, yes, my grandfather said it,”
-Hugh admitted, “but while my mother lived she
-told me only good of you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Then, she had forgiven me?” the captain
-asked in a low tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh’s eyes were not on him, but straying
-across the church to where the great Oldesworth
-pew had stood; even at that distance he seemed
-to read on the tablet set in the wall the name,
-“Ruth Gwyeth.” “She did not hold there was
-anything to forgive; she said the wrong had all
-been hers,” he broke out; “she said you were the
-best and noblest gentleman that ever lived, and
-far too good for her.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Poor lass, poor lass!” the captain said under
-his breath; he was sitting with one hand shielding
-his eyes, Hugh noted, but of a sudden he
-looked down at the boy and spoke curtly: “So
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_352'>352</span>you came seeking me, believing all that, and then
-I thrust you out of doors?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh nodded without looking at his father;
-he was conscious of a queer, shamed feeling, as if
-he had been himself at fault.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yet you stood up before that hound Bellasis
-and took that hack in the face for me. I used
-you like a villain, Hugh,” the captain blurted
-out; “even Ruth could not forgive me for it.
-But, lad, if we come alive from this, I’ll strive to
-make you forget it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I am forgetting now,” Hugh said honestly.
-“And if you’d looked as if you wanted me, I’d
-ha’ come to you before.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I did want you. And you waited for me to
-look it, did you? I’m thinking we’re something
-alike, lad.” He put his arm about the boy’s neck
-with a sudden, half rough caress. “Turner said
-you had as decent a courage as most lads and a
-bit more sense,” he broke out. “Faith, I believe
-him. And if we come through here you shall
-have a chance to show it to every man in the
-troop, yes, to the same fellows that flogged you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh edged a little nearer his father. “I’d do
-my best to show them; I’d like the chance,” he
-answered; then added thoughtfully, “Though,
-after all, I am not sorry for that flogging. If I’d
-not known some hard knocks already, they might
-have been able to frighten me yesterday.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There he stopped, unavailingly, for the captain
-pounced down on him and did not rest till he got
-the whole history of the last hours. Hugh put
-all the emphasis he could on Master Oldesworth
-and on Lois, but Peregrine and Thomas Oldesworth
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_353'>353</span>were dragged in at the captain’s urgence,
-and the captain’s face grew ominous. “’Twas
-not clean dealings on Tom Oldesworth’s part,” he
-said betwixt his teeth. “Well, when it comes to
-the last we’ll remember it against him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With that he got up to go about his business,
-but presently strode back with a cushion. “Put
-that under your head, Hugh,” he bade, and taking
-up the cloak helped the boy wrap it round
-him. “You’ll find it cold here in the church as
-soon as the sun goes down,” he explained. “Try
-to sleep, though; get what strength you can
-against to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>After he had gone, Hugh settled himself to
-sleep, but it took a time, for his arm ached relentlessly,
-and his head was hot and his mouth dry.
-Moment after moment he lay staring down the
-dusky church, where the twilight was filling in,
-and harked to the slow step of those on guard.
-The shades had gathered dark, and his eyes were
-closing, when he realized that the man who had
-been groaning in the transept was quiet now. He
-guessed what that meant, and something of the
-ugliness of death came home to him. He sat up
-eagerly to look for some companionship, then felt
-ashamed and lay down again to listen and listen
-once more, and think on Peregrine’s threats and
-Thomas Oldesworth’s set, implacable face. When
-he went to sleep at last his kinsmen followed him,
-even through his dreams.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Dreams, recollections, of a sudden all were
-blotted out. He was sitting up, he knew, in a
-place that save for two feeble flickers of light was
-pitchy black, he heard men running and shouting,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_354'>354</span>and, over all and subduing all, he heard a crash,
-crash which he judged bewilderedly to be of cannonading.
-The roof must fall soon, he feared,
-and scrambling to his feet he ran forward into
-the darkness and tumult. Above the uproar he
-caught Captain Gwyeth’s voice, steady and distinct:
-“Lieutenant von Holzberg, your squadron
-to their stations at the windows. Corporal Ridydale,
-take six men and bear the wounded down
-into the crypt.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Following the voice, Hugh stumbled into the
-transept and, getting used to the dark, had a vague
-sight of his father, who, with his hands behind
-him, stood giving orders to right and left. Hugh
-leaned against the wall close by and kept his hand
-to his head that throbbed and beat with each stroke
-of the cannon and shake of the building. During
-a lull in the firing he caught the captain’s voice in
-a lower key: “You here, Hugh?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I—I take it I was frightened up,” he stammered.
-“You’ll help me to a sword before the
-end?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No need for that yet,” Captain Gwyeth answered.
-“They’ll not be able to batter in these
-walls for hours. And by then—” His voice took
-a curious change of tone: “You are sure, Hugh,
-they made no mention of what time Saturday the
-aid would come?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No, none,” Hugh replied; “but ’twill surely
-come, sir. Dick promised.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, well, we’ve much to hope,” said the captain,
-“and, faith, that’s all we can do now. Sit
-down here, Hugh,” he went on, leading him over
-to the pulpit stairs. “I’ve a notion ’twould be
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_355'>355</span>pleasing if I could lay hands on you when I want
-you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he went back into the din and confusion
-of the nave, and Hugh, leaning his head against
-the balustrade, harked dazedly to the successive
-boom of cannon. Through it all he found space
-in his heart to be glad that his father had not suggested
-sending him down into the crypt with the
-other wounded.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Out through a shattered window to the east he
-had sight of a strip of sky, uneven with clouds, and
-some small stars. Little by little they paled while
-he sat there, and still the guns kept up their
-clamor. Once, after the shot, came a great rattling,
-and a piece of stone crashed down from
-the western wall; Hugh heard a confused running
-in that direction, and the captains voice that
-checked it. Once again, when oddly he had fallen
-into a numb sort of doze, came another shattering
-crash, and right upon it a man screamed
-out in a way that made Hugh shudder and choke.
-After that he dozed no more, but rigid and upright
-sat listening.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was light enough to distinguish faces when
-at length Captain Gwyeth, with his brows drawn
-and his teeth tugging at one end of his mustache,
-came up to him. “I’ve a sling here for that
-arm of yours,” he said brusquely, beginning to
-fasten the bandage. “’Twould be in your way
-for any fighting purposes. And here’s a sword.
-You may have to use it, unless our friends come
-quickly.” Then he paused a time by Hugh, not
-speaking, but scowling upon the floor, and at last
-strode moodily away.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_356'>356</span>The light broadened and brightened within the
-church; a patch of sunshine gleamed upon the
-floor, and through an east window Hugh could
-catch the rays of yellow light glinting across the
-sombre leaves of the yew tree. It was a rare, warm,
-August day, a strange time for a life and death
-struggle, he told himself, as he drew the sword
-clumsily from its scabbard. Then he looked to
-the western wall of the church, where the light
-was smiting in now at a great gap and the crumbled
-stones lay scattered across the floor. Up
-above he saw a broken fragment of the roof that
-hung and swayed so its motion fascinated him.
-Of a sudden, as he gazed stupidly, he became
-aware the cannonading had ceased, and he wondered
-that he had not marked it before. Then
-he heard again his father’s curt, quick tones, and
-saw the troopers quit their stations to gather opposite
-the gap in the wall.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Getting to his feet, Hugh went down to join
-the others. At the west door he perceived Von
-Holzberg standing with six men, but he passed
-on into the nave of the church. There at the
-gap the men had fallen into double line, a battered,
-haggard little company, some in their
-breastpieces, some in their shirt-sleeves. There
-were bandaged arms and bandaged heads among
-them, Hugh noted, but the carabines were all in
-hand, and each had his sword, too, ready at his
-side. Captain Gwyeth was with Ridydale, peering
-out at the gap in the wall, but now he turned
-to his men. “As you see, they have made a practicable
-breach in our walls,” he began. “Now
-they have it in mind to storm us, and afterward
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_357'>357</span>knock us o’ the head. So it behooves you fight
-for your worthless skins. And in any case, if
-they destroy us, see to it a good crew of these
-cursed rebels go to hell before us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he looked about till his eyes fell on Hugh,
-and, coming to him, he took him by the shoulder
-and brought him over to front the troop. Hugh
-faced the men he had once served, and he saw
-Unger on the farther end of the front line, and
-Saxon, with his head tied up, and Jeff Hardwyn,
-who looked at him and fumbled with his carabine.
-Somehow his eyes rested on Hardwyn, as the captain
-began speaking briskly: “I’m thinking some
-of you know this gentleman, my son. He has
-risked his neck twice to break through the lines
-and share this fight with us. So I set him in
-Cornet Foster’s place, and you will follow him as
-your officer. Cornet Gwyeth, you will take six
-men and make good the north door.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Right on that, some one, Hugh guessed it was
-Saxon, broke into a cheer, which the others took
-up. Under cover of the noise, Captain Gwyeth,
-still holding Hugh by the shoulder, whispered
-him hurriedly: “When they come in, and we
-have the last fight, try to get to me. We’ll fight
-it out back to back, if it be God’s will.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Just there Ridydale, standing by the breach in
-the wall, spoke: “Captain Gwyeth, the rebels are
-advancing up the hill.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_358'>358</span>
- <h2 class='c008'>CHAPTER XXII <br /> <span class='small'>AFTER THE VICTORY</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>In the moments while the besieged held their
-fire, a hush came upon the church. Hugh could
-hear the footfalls startlingly loud as he led his
-squadron briskly to the main door, but it did not
-seem it was himself who went forward. He saw
-the floor slip by him and heard his own tread, but
-it was in an impersonal way, as if it were another
-man who was to fight that last fight, while he
-stood by, unmoved and unaffected, and watched
-and passed judgment. Before him now he saw
-the entrance door, with the broken pews heaped
-in a stiff barricade; to the right, beneath the
-window, the ends of the barrier furnished some
-foothold, so he started to scramble up and reconnoitre.
-His injured arm made him awkward; at
-the first step he tottered, and was glad that one of
-his followers caught him about the body to steady
-him. Glancing down he saw that it was Hardwyn,
-but he felt no surprise; everything now was beyond
-wonder. “Keep hold on me, Corporal,” he
-said, as if Hardwyn had never been any but his
-obedient underling, and made a move to step to
-the next projection.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Just there the heavy stillness of the church was
-broken by a jarring rattle of carabine fire that sent
-a cracking echo through the high roof. Looking
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_359'>359</span>over his shoulder Hugh saw gray smoke belch
-across the nave, and saw the ordered movement of
-the men as the second line, with their carabines
-raised, stepped forward to the breach. Right as
-he looked the second volley rolled out, and there
-came a cracked and dry-throated cheering from
-the men. “Four volleys left,” he heard Hardwyn
-beside him mutter. “Best cheer while we can.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Once more there was a lull, and Hugh, getting
-his sound hand on the window ledge, pulled himself
-up, balancing precariously upon the broken
-boards, and peered out. He could see the white
-walk that ran up to the porch, and on either hand
-the untroubled graves, but he beheld no enemy
-astir. Venturing to lean a little from the window,
-he saw the roadway beyond the church wall, the
-arch of the bridge, the water beneath, bright in
-the sun, and across it the slope of hillside road.
-There Hugh’s eyes rested, and then his voice came
-high and shrill so he scarcely knew it: “Hardwyn,
-look, look you there! What is coming?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hardwyn was elbowing him at the window;
-through the crash of the fourth volley he heard
-the barrier creak under the weight of the rest of
-the little squadron as they pressed up about him.
-But he did not take his eyes from the hilltop till,
-black and clear against the sky, a moving line of
-horse swung into view.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Cavalry, sir,” spoke Hardwyn, imperturbably,
-but Hugh had already turned from the window.
-“Run to the captain, Saxon,” he cried. “Tell
-him they are coming. Relief, relief!” His voice
-rose to a shout that carried through the church,
-and his squadron took up the cry, and ended with
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_360'>360</span>a cheer that spread even to the fighters at the
-breach.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Through the uproar sounded Captain Gwyeth’s
-voice: “If they will have it, out at them!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The besieged swarmed forth at the breach,
-and Hugh, plunging headlong down off the
-barrier, ran to join them. The stones slipped
-noisily beneath his feet, and as he stumbled over
-the crest of the debris he turned his ankle. Outside
-the hot blur of sunshine dazzled him; he was
-conscious of light, light all around him, and men,
-grappling, clubbing, stabbing, in a tumult that bewildered
-his brain. Loud amidst the shrieks and
-oaths and cries for quarter rattled the crack,
-crack of carabines and small arms, but through it
-all he could hear the hollow thud, thud of horses
-thundering across the bridge. Some one struck at
-him, and instinctively he defended himself, though
-it was hard to swing a sword in the press. Then,
-getting sight of his father’s red head, clear from
-the breach in the thick of the fight, he forced his
-way down to his side. At the foot of the fallen
-stones he stumbled over a man and, as he recovered
-himself, came one who tried to strike him
-with a clubbed musket. Hugh ducked, and, as
-he bent, saw the trampled grass beneath his feet,
-then, thrusting low, came away unscathed. Still
-he heard the thud, thud of coming horses, and
-now, too, he caught clearly from the undistinguishable
-shouts and yells the cry: “For a king!
-God and the king!”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh had one glimpse of horsemen leaping the
-low wall; then he was guarding himself from the
-slashes of a Roundhead trooper, and only just
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_361'>361</span>saved his head. He gave the man back an undercut,
-when suddenly the fellow cast the sword from
-his hand. “I yield me, sir. Quarter!” he cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh paused, and, glancing about him now,
-saw the battle was indeed over. Down in the road
-troopers in red sashes were guarding the way, and
-men of the same color were swarming up through
-the churchyard, but there was no resistance, save
-here and there where single conflicts were still
-contested to the end. Then Hugh spied Alan
-Gwyeth, picking himself up from the grass at the
-foot of the shattered wall, and he ran thither, just
-as the captain dragged to his feet the man with
-whom he had been grappling. It was Thomas
-Oldesworth, Hugh saw, with the dirt grimed into
-his coat and his face streaming blood; he stood
-unsteadily with one hand pressed to his side,
-but his lips were hard set as ever. “Take him
-within the church and look to him,” the captain
-bade Ridydale, and then there was no room for
-thought of the vanquished, for Captain Turner
-came riding comfortably up the slope and hailed
-them: “Good day to you, Captain Gwyeth. Is
-there enough of the troop left to pay us for posting
-hither to rescue you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Rescue be hanged!” said the captain, ungraciously,
-as he stood wiping the sweat from his
-forehead with his sleeve. “We could a held out
-three hours longer.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Vour hours und more,” put in the stolid Von
-Holzberg, and such of the troop as had gathered
-thither murmured a resentful assent.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Well, well, I crave all your pardons for coming
-so inopportunely,” Turner answered dryly, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_362'>362</span>then: “So that lad of yours got through in safety?
-Better go look for Lieutenant Strangwayes, Master
-Gwyeth; I think he’s troubled about you. He
-has ridden on the trail of the rebels a piece.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh started down the slope, but, chancing to
-glance back, saw Michael Turner had dismounted,
-and he and Captain Gwyeth were embracing each
-other amicably. Then he went on down the
-sunny hillside, and across one mound saw a man
-lying motionless on his back, and down by the
-wall one who, pulling himself up on his elbow,
-called for water. But Hugh could give him no
-heed, for up the white, hot roadway he saw a
-squadron coming, and at its head a black horse
-that he knew. He scrambled up on the low wall
-and stood staring and meaning to call, but could
-not find voice till the black horse had shot out
-from the bulk of the squadron, and Dick Strangwayes
-had reined up by the wall. “Hugh! And
-safe?” he asked in a low tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh came down off the wall and reached up
-to grasp Dick’s hand. “Safe, I think; I’m not
-sure yet. And, Dick, ’tis all well now between
-my father and me.” Then he stood a moment
-with his head leaning against Black Boy’s neck,
-and gazed up into Dick’s face and the dazzle of
-blue sky beyond, but found nothing he could say.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“So you’re alive, old Hugh?” came Frank’s
-voice behind him. “Faith, you’re a lucky lad.
-Here’s your bay horse I borrowed, turn and turn
-about. You can ride him back, for we’ll have
-enough and to spare.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There they must break off speech, for Turner,
-leading his horse carefully, came down from the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_363'>363</span>church and with him Captain Gwyeth. “Call
-the troop to saddle again, Lieutenant,” Turner ordered;
-“we’ll ride for Everscombe and entreat
-these people give the captain back his horses.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I’ll ride with you,” spoke Alan Gwyeth; “I
-want to see the house again.” Then he turned
-to Hugh and asked in a low tone: “You say
-’twas your grandfather took you out of Captain
-Oldesworth’s hands?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Yes, sir. He sent me dinner, too, though I
-was not feeling hungry then.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The captain smiled a bit. “I’ll remember it to
-his credit,” he said. “Now keep you quiet at the
-church and save your hurt arm.” He walked off
-to mount upon a spare horse, and Hugh watched
-him till he rode away with Turner’s troop.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>As he was clambering back over the wall into
-the graveyard, Frank came panting in his trail.
-“Captain Turner bade me stay with you,” he announced;
-“sure, he has less liking to me as a volunteer
-than as an officer.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nonsense! ’Tis only that he does not wish
-to take you home wounded. And if they find
-The Jade at Everscombe they’ll bring her—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Oh, I have The Jade safe already,” Frank
-answered cheerfully, as he kept step with Hugh
-up into the churchyard; “they found her grazing
-in the fields beyond Tamworth yesterday morning
-with her stirrups flapping loose. Dick shut
-his mouth then as he does on occasion, and before
-nightfall Turner’s and Leveson’s men got off to
-bring help. I know not how they’ll do without
-us,” he went on, “for Captain Marston’s troop was
-the only one recalled to Tamworth. But we are
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_364'>364</span>to make a forced march back to-night, if ’tis in
-our horses. And that reminds me, Hugh, you’re
-not fit to be trusted with a good piece of horse-flesh.
-The Jade has strained the tendons of her
-near foreleg, and her coat is rough as a last year’s
-stubble-field. Not but I’m glad she could serve
-you,” Frank corrected himself with tardily remembered
-courtesy. “And, faith, I am glad as
-Dick that you are still alive.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Up in the church, whither the wounded and
-prisoners were being brought, Hugh reported
-himself to Von Holzberg, who despatched him
-with a squad to forage out food in the village.
-The Roundheads had already stripped it pretty
-clean, but in an hour’s time Hugh secured enough
-for his father’s hungry troop, and, leaving Frank
-idling in the village street, led his men back to
-the church. In the shade outside several of
-Gwyeth’s troop, battered and weary, were easing
-themselves with grumbling that they had not been
-suffered to come share in the plunder of Everscombe.
-The word put it in Hugh’s head that
-now he had eaten and felt a bit like himself he
-would gladly ride to the manor house and, if he
-could, thank his grandfather for the kindness he
-had thought to show him. With that intention
-he passed into the church to seek Von Holzberg
-and get his permission for the journey.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At first, as he came from the bright sunlight,
-the shadows within the church blinded him, but
-he could hear the sorry groaning of injured men,
-and presently made out that the wounded were
-laid in the transept before him. It was an ugly,
-pitiful sight, and knowing his helplessness to aid
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_365'>365</span>he passed on quickly into the choir, where he had
-caught sight of Ridydale. Once more the corporal
-was seated with his carabine on the altar
-stairs, but he now had on his grimmest look, for
-down in Hugh’s old place lay Captain Oldesworth.
-They must have looked to his hurts
-somewhat, for the blood had been washed from
-his face, and his coat was flung open as if his side
-had been bandaged; he lay quiet now, with his
-eyes closed and his lips white, but Hugh, remembering
-how mercilessly the man had dealt by
-him, told himself he did not pity him. Without
-heeding the captain he stepped over to Ridydale
-and asked him where Lieutenant von Holzberg
-might be found. “He has just passed down into
-the nave, Master Hugh,” said Ridydale relaxing
-his grimness a trifle. “Crave your pardon, sir, I
-should have called you Cornet Gwyeth now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Perhaps not yet,” Hugh answered discreetly;
-“Sir William Pleydall will have a word to say in
-the matter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Humph!” Ridydale retorted conclusively.
-“Hasn’t Colonel Gwyeth said you were his cornet?
-What more would you have?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh laughed, and was turning away, when he
-perceived that Captain Oldesworth had opened
-his eyes and was watching him; he halted short
-and waited, for he would not be the first to speak.
-“So it’s your day now,” Oldesworth began, in an
-even tone that might be construed a dozen ways.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Fortune of war, sir,” Hugh answered coldly.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“You got in, after all,” the captain pursued, with
-something like a groan. “That comes of letting
-a civilian meddle with military matters. If you
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_366'>366</span>had remained in my hands—” There he broke
-off. “I crave your forgiveness, sir,” he finished,
-with a bitterness that angered Hugh, yet moved
-him to something faintly like compassion, “I had
-forgot; a prisoner should be circumspect in
-speech.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was on Hugh’s tongue to retort that Cavalier
-gentlemen were not wont to mishandle their
-prisoners, but he thought on Dennis Butler, and
-that speech was silenced. He merely said: “My
-father will not abuse you, sir,” and had half a
-mind to pass on, when Oldesworth struggled up
-on his elbow. “Tell me one thing, Hugh,” he
-broke out as if against his will, “has Peregrine
-been taken?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No, sir, not here at Kingsford.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Oldesworth sank down again with his head
-on his arm. “He ran away, then,” he said in a
-constrained voice. “He should have come in with
-the other squadron. We need not have been so
-cut to pieces had the whole troop been there.
-Lieutenant Ingram came in with me; he was
-killed at the breach. And Peregrine ran away.”
-He paused a moment, then spoke half to himself,
-“If I come free again I’ll strip him out of his
-commission for this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh dropped on one knee beside his uncle.
-“I pray you, sir, take it not so to heart,” he
-urged, “mayhap ’twas not that he ran away—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay, I know Peregrine,” Captain Oldesworth
-answered. “I would ’twere he had turned Cavalier
-and you had stayed Roundhead; you’d not have
-slunk off to save your skin.” But next moment
-he spoke in his bitterest tone: “Nay, get you
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_367'>367</span>hence, lad. I don’t want your pity; I’d liefer
-have your hate.” Then he turned his face to the
-wall, still with his mouth hard set, and closed his
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There was nothing more to be said, Hugh saw,
-so he came to his feet slowly, with a feeling that
-after all he was sorry for Oldesworth, in his pain
-and bitter humiliation, much though he had deserved
-it. He turned again to Ridydale and said
-under his breath: “Corporal, if you love me put
-on a less appalling face and use the gentleman
-more civilly. After all, he is my kinsman.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he walked away to seek Von Holzberg,
-and, getting his permission to ride to Everscombe,
-routed out Saxon to make ready Bayard and two
-other horses, while he went in search of Frank,
-for whom he had a feeling of responsibility. Not
-finding him at first, he was a bit worried till,
-chancing to step into one of the deserted cottages,
-he came upon the lad, curled up snugly on
-a settle and fast asleep. He jumped to his feet
-in a hurry as Hugh’s hand was laid on his forehead,
-and after a first bewildered stare put on a
-great assumption of alertness and came stumbling
-out into the roadway. “You see, we were in the
-saddle all yesternight,” he found tongue to explain,
-as the two boys, with Saxon in their wake,
-rode out from Kingsford. “So perhaps ’tis no
-great blame I just shut my eyes a moment. But,
-Hugh, I’d take it kindly if you did not tell Dick
-I went to sleep for so little. And by no means
-let Captain Turner know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh promised soberly, then, as they trotted
-along the highway, relapsed into heavy silence.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_368'>368</span>But Frank still chattered on gayly, insisting on a
-rejoinder: “How does it seem to come home
-thus? Sure, you’re a dutiful lad to ride this distance
-to see your grandfather.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh blinked at Bayard’s erect ears, and told
-himself in dull fashion that while he was at
-Everscombe he would see Lois again and thank
-her, but he did not hold it necessary to speak it
-all to Frank.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A little patrol of horse guarded the park gate, but
-knowing Hugh they suffered him pass through
-with his companions. For all the roadway was
-cut with horse hoofs they ventured a brisk trot,
-and so came speedily out into the open, and following
-the track across the lawn drew up by the
-west wing. The rest of the house was silent, but
-here were stationed two sentinels of Turner’s
-troop, a wagon had just been brought lumbering
-to the door, and from within the long guardroom
-Strangwayes himself hailed them: “Get off your
-horse, and come in, Master Cornet. I’ve recovered
-my cuirass from the plunder of these crop-eared
-thieves, and I’m thinking I’ve lighted on your
-buff coat and sword.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Sliding off his horse, Hugh strode briskly into
-the big room. At one side a long table had been
-hastily set forth, at which a squad of Turner’s
-men were making a nondescript meal, but the rest
-of the hall was littered with arms and accoutrements
-that the troopers were still fetching in
-noisily; they must have stripped the manor house
-of every warlike furnishing. “Yes, the work is
-near done, and we can be off,” Strangwayes said
-low to Hugh. “Sure, I’m not the man will be
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_369'>369</span>sorry. Did you know, my lad, there’s a harder
-thing than storming a town, and that’s to keep
-your troop from stealing the town after you’ve
-taken it? As ’tis a sort of family matter Captain
-Gwyeth is loath to have this house plundered,
-so we’ve done our best. But it’s well Leveson’s
-thieves have been used in clearing the stable; our
-own men have held the house, and they are the
-best and most obedient in the regiment. I’ve
-knocked down one or two of them, and put three
-under arrest, and promised a few floggings, but
-barring that they’ve been good as lambs and not
-stole from the house more than each man can
-hide in his pockets. Trust them? I’d trust my
-troop anywhere, that I had my eyes on it,” he
-concluded lugubriously. “But now I’m going to
-risk taking one eye off them and leave Griffith
-to see the spoils loaded in the wagons, while I
-tie up your hurts again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Accordingly, Strangwayes sent men running
-for water and bandages, and, putting Hugh on a
-bench against the wall, was dressing his head and
-arm, when Captain Gwyeth came in. Hugh
-caught sight of him as he paused an instant in
-the doorway, and at the changed expression of
-the man’s face a sudden fear struck him, for it
-came home to him that, though the captain forgave
-the son who had defied him, he might never
-forgive the son’s friend who had threatened to
-bar the door upon him. It was a new thought,
-and it checked Hugh’s first impulsive movement
-to rise to meet his father; instead he moved a bit
-nearer Dick. There was an instant’s dangerous
-silence, then Master Frank, nodding half-asleep
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_370'>370</span>at Hugh’s side, perceived Captain Gwyeth and
-ran to him. “Why, this is a lucky meeting,” he
-cried, leading the captain over to the bench.
-“And did I not tell you, sir, when once you were
-acquainted with Hugh, he was a right friendly,
-generous fellow for all his stubborn face?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>That made Dick turn and come to his feet,
-stiff and respectful. “Maybe ’twill please you
-look to Hugh’s hurt now, sir,” he said, with a
-slight bow.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay, you’ve looked to his hurts before this,
-Lieutenant,” the captain said slowly. “You’ve
-the right to do so now.” He hesitated, then held
-out his hand, and Strangwayes took it.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Next moment Strangwayes was tying the bandage
-about Hugh’s arm again, while he talked
-briskly with Captain Gwyeth of the ill ride they
-had had from Tamworth, and the worse ride they
-were like to have back, to which the captain replied
-with a satisfied account of the good spoil of
-horses and arms they had made in compensation
-for those lost at the first overthrow of his troop.
-“So soon as the carts are laden, you are to quit
-the house, so Captain Turner bids,” Captain
-Gwyeth finished in an everyday tone. “We
-must be out of the village before sunset.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then as Strangwayes, ending his surgery,
-jumped to his feet to aid Griffith in superintending
-the loading, the captain turned to Hugh: “I
-bade you stay rest at the church, but since you’ve
-taken your way and come hither you can do me
-service.” He dropped his voice a little, though
-they were screened well enough under the racket
-of the men who were carrying forth the captured
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_371'>371</span>arms: “Get you to the east wing of the house,
-where the family have withdrawn, and, if you can,
-procure access to Master Oldesworth. He denied
-it unto me. Tell him from me that it is for the
-sake of his daughter and his daughter’s son that
-I have saved his house from utter spoil to-day.
-And tell him that I will use Tom Oldesworth
-better than he deserves, and exert my influence to
-have him speedily exchanged. That’s all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hugh passed out through the confusion to the
-front of the house, where the carts were loading,
-and with a rather dubious foreboding crossed the
-terrace to the east wing. Within, the hall was
-cool and dark with long afternoon shadows; the
-din of the western quarter drifted hither only
-faintly, so his mind went back with a vaguely
-homesick feeling to the peaceful, humdrum days
-at Everscombe a year ago. It seemed like a bit
-of the old life to go to the door of the east parlor
-and knock and hear his grandfather’s voice bidding
-him enter.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But once inside, Hugh knew a year had passed
-since last he faced Master Oldesworth there.
-Not only did a glance at his own buff coat and
-high boots, his sword and bandaged arm recall
-the change, but he could see his grandfather bent
-a little in his chair, and his head looked whiter
-even than it had looked two days before. The
-old man was sitting by the window, but at Hugh’s
-step he turned toward him with a cold, angry
-face that made the boy hesitate at first; then taking
-courage he repeated his father’s message
-respectfully. Master Oldesworth’s face relaxed
-a little at the word of Captain Oldesworth, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_372'>372</span>at that Hugh ventured to add in his own behalf:
-“And, aside from my father’s message, sir, I
-wished to come hither and thank you that you
-used me so kindly the other day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“I would use you still better if your stiff-necked
-childishness did not prevent,” the old man answered
-sternly. “So you will yet refuse what I
-would offer and follow this man because he is
-your father?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nay, ’tis not for that now, sir,” Hugh replied
-happily, “’tis because he saved my life yesterday,
-and he has made me his officer. ’Tis because I
-know him to be a valiant and a kindly gentleman,
-though his temper is hot. And I must go, too,
-because my friends all fight for the same cause as
-he.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“So you will play your mother’s part over
-again,” Master Oldesworth said sharply, and gazed
-out at the window so long that Hugh made a
-motion to go, when the old man rose and bade
-him come to him. “You are set to go your own
-way, and ’tis a foolish way,” he began, putting his
-hand on the boy’s shoulder. “’Twas her way, too.
-Yet spite of all I loved her best of all my daughters
-or yet of my sons. Well, well, Hugh, I would
-not say it the first time you went, but now if God
-can look on a man who fights in so unjust a cause
-I pray He may keep you uncorrupted and turn
-your heart aright while there is time. Now go
-your way.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He turned to the window, and Hugh murmured
-that he thanked him from his heart and would
-strive never to shame him by his conduct.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Then he passed out into the hall again, and,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_373'>373</span>with his mind on what had just been said, was
-stepping slowly to the door, when from the stairway
-he heard his name called. Before he faced
-about he knew it was his sharp-tongued Aunt
-Delia, but the sensitive boyish dread of her was
-all gone now. He turned back briskly to learn
-her bidding, and as he turned he perceived Lois
-Campion standing by her at the foot of the stairs.
-“’Tis well you have come back, Hugh Gwyeth,”
-Mistress Oldesworth began in a cutting voice that
-might have made Hugh wince, only he told himself
-that she was Peregrine’s mother, and Peregrine
-was a coward and a runaway; she had need
-of words to vent her bitter sorrow. “There is
-one here maybe has claim on you, if you still
-hold in remembrance this gentlewoman,” she
-went on, leading Lois forward. “She has remembered
-you so well that she has forgotten her
-duty to her kindred and to—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Let me go, aunt!” Lois cried in a smothered
-tone. She had brushed by Hugh and run out at
-the open door before he fully comprehended, and
-without a glance at Mistress Oldesworth he ran
-after.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Out under the elms of the east terrace he overtook
-Lois, and catching her hand made her stay.
-“What is it? What does it mean?” he urged.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Nothing,” she answered, with her head erect
-and her cheeks blazing. “Only, I can never go
-under that woman’s roof again. Some things
-even a poor weak-spirited creature like a girl will
-not endure.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“But if you cannot stay at Everscombe,” Hugh
-repeated blankly, but next moment he was half
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_374'>374</span>laughing. “Faith, Lois, the time has come now;
-you shall run away with me. Come, we’ll be off
-at once.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The most of the troop had already ridden for
-Kingsford, Hugh perceived, as they came to the
-front of the house, but by the west door Dick
-and Frank, with Saxon and a trooper or two, still
-stayed for him. Hugh led Lois up to his two
-friends, a bit slowly, for the girl’s steps faltered
-shyly. “Dick,” he began, “this is Mistress Campion
-of whom I have told you. They have cast
-her out from Everscombe because she set me free
-from them yesterday, so ’tis in my mind to take her
-unto Tamworth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Dick’s expressive eyebrows went up, but before
-Hugh had time for resentment, or even comprehension,
-he had swung round on the trooper who
-waited at Black Boy’s head: “Off to the stable
-with you and fetch a pillion. Frank, use your
-impudence well and bring out a cloak for Mistress
-Campion from the house. ’Tis well thought
-on, Hugh, for surely all the regiment is indebted
-to the gentlewoman who aided you to bear that
-message. Say, by Mistress Campion’s leave, we
-convey her to my cousin, Mistress Cresswell, in
-Worcestershire?”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Did I not tell you, Lois, that Dick was the
-best good fellow ever lived?” Hugh broke out.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Pshaw!” said Strangwayes. “Get to your
-saddle, you one-armed warrior. You’ll have all
-you can do to manage Bayard, so I shall entreat
-Mistress Campion to ride behind me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In such order they went from Everscombe in
-the late afternoon, and, urging the horses a trifle,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_375'>375</span>for Captain Turner and Captain Gwyeth had long
-since ridden forth, came into Kingsford as the
-sun was setting. Already the troops were falling
-into marching order in the road, and Strangwayes,
-only pausing to bid Hugh look that he did not go
-to sleep and pitch over his saddle-bow ere he
-reached Tamworth, trotted ahead to take his
-place in the rear of Turners men. At a word
-from him Frank followed at his side, but Lois,
-seated behind Dick, kept her face turned back
-to Hugh.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He watched till they passed in the rear of the
-troop down to the bridge of the Arrow, then drew
-Bayard back to the little band that represented
-Gwyeth’s men; the troopers were all in the saddle;
-behind them Leveson’s squads were getting
-to horse, and the graveyard was deserted. The
-slope of the hill and the church were red in the
-sunset but very peaceful now; Hugh looked to
-the church tower and saw no flag was flying.
-Then he heard a voice at his elbow: “The colors,
-sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>He looked down at Ridydale, stiff and soldierly,
-who saluted and passed him up the red
-and gold cornet of the troop.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Can you manage the flag, Hugh?” spoke
-Captain Gwyeth, getting leisurely to horse beside
-him. “Leave it to the corporal if your
-arm—”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Sure, sir, I can manage it very well indeed,”
-Hugh broke in, much alarmed; he braced the
-staff against his stirrup and, resting it in the
-crook of his elbow, gathered the reins into his
-sound hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_376'>376</span>“Nay, none shall take it from you, Cornet
-Gwyeth,” the captain laughed, and turned to the
-trumpeter to sound the order to march forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>They rode slowly down the slope to the bridge.
-The water splashed beneath the archway, and the
-horses’ hoofs sounded hollow on the road; Hugh
-listened happily, while his thoughts sped back to
-the last time he had crossed the bridge, a friendless
-little runaway. On the thought he turned in
-his saddle and gazed back at the church that
-now showed black against the sunset sky. Did
-the mother who lay buried there, he wondered,
-know that at last he had found Alan Gwyeth?
-He faced slowly to the front again, and as he
-faced he met the captain’s eyes; there were no
-words between them, but each guessed something
-of the other’s thoughts. Hugh tightened
-his hold on Bayard’s bridle and drew close, so he
-rode knee to knee with his father.</p>
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c004' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>“ANOTHER BEWITCHING ROMANCE”</div>
- <div><span class='small'>—<cite>The Times</cite>, New York</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c018' />
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='xlarge'>THE PRIDE OF JENNICO</span></div>
- <div class='c004'>BEING A MEMOIR OF CAPTAIN BASIL JENNICO</div>
- <div class='c004'>BY</div>
- <div class='c004'><span class='large'>AGNES and EGERTON CASTLE</span></div>
- <div class='c004'>16mo.&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Cloth.&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;$1.50</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c018' />
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='small'>“Picturesque in literary style, rich in local color, rising at times almost to tragic
-intentness, and bristling throughout with dramatic interest.”—<cite>The Record</cite>, Philadelphia.</span></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='small'>"There is a wealth of historic detail which lends an interest to the story apart from
-the romantic love affair between Captain Jennico and the Princess Marie Ottilie of Lausitz.
-The hero’s great-uncle had been one of those lucky English adventurers whose Catholic
-religion and Jacobite leanings had debarred him from promotion at home, and who had
-found advancement in the service of Austria, and wealth with the hand of a Bohemian
-heiress. Such chances were not uncommon with ‘Soldiers of Fortune’ in the times of
-Queen Anne and the early Georges. At his uncle’s death, Captain Basil Jennico became
-the possessor of many millions (reckoned by the florins of that land), besides the great
-property of Tollendahl—fertile plains as well as wild forests, and of the isolated frowning
-castle of Tollendahl with its fathom-thick walls, its odd pictures of half-savage dead and
-gone Woschutzkis, its antique clumsy furniture, tapestries, trophies of chase and war.
-He became master, moreover, of endless tribes of dependents, heiducks and foresters;
-females of all ages whose bare feet in summer pattered oddly on the floors like the tread
-of animals, whose high boots in winter clattered perpetually on the stone flags of stairs
-and corridors; serf peasants, factors, overseers, the strangest mixture of races that can
-be imagined; Slovacks, Bohemians, Poles, to labor on the glebe; Saxons or Austrians to
-rule over them and cipher out rosters and returns; Magyars who condescended to manage
-his horse-flesh and watch over his safety if nothing else; the travelling bands of gypsies,
-ever changing, but never failing with the dance, the song and the music, which was as
-indispensable as salt to the life of that motley population.</span></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='small'>“The story is largely historical, both German and English elements entering into it.
-The scene changes from the old castle of Tollendahl to an English country house and
-London club, always maintaining its old world flavor.”</span></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='small'>“The tale is gracefully told, and owing partly to this fact and to the novelty of the
-setting given to Basil Jennico’s amazing experience, it gains for itself a place apart....
-It is an artistic production and it is original.”—<cite>The York Tribune.</cite></span></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='small'>“One of the newest and best novels of the decade.”—<cite>The Budget</cite> (Boston).</span></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='small'>“No such piece of inimitable comedy, in a literary way, has appeared for years.”—<cite>The
-Inter-Ocean</cite> (Chicago).</span></p>
-
-<hr class='c018' />
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='large'>THE MACMILLAN COMPANY</span></div>
- <div>66 FIFTH AVENUE, NEW YORK</div>
- <div>Chicago&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Boston&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;San Francisco</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c004' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>CROWNED BY THE LONDON ACADEMY</div>
- <div><span class='small'>as one of the three most important books published during the year 1898</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c018' />
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='xlarge'>THE FOREST LOVERS</span></div>
- <div class='c004'><span class='large'>By MAURICE HEWLETT</span></div>
- <div class='c004'><span class='small'><i>Author of “Earth Works out of Tuscany,” “Pan and the Young</i></span></div>
- <div><span class='small'><i>Shepherd,” etc.</i></span></div>
- <div class='c004'>Cloth.&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;12mo.&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;$1.50</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c018' />
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>JAMES LANE ALLEN says:</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“This work, for any one of several solid reasons, must be regarded as
-of very unusual interest. In the matter of style alone, it is an achievement,
-an extraordinary achievement ...; in the matter of interpreting nature
-there are passages in this book that I have never seen surpassed in prose
-fiction.”</p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>HAMILTON W. MABIE says:</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The plot is boldly conceived and strongly sustained; the characters
-are vigorously drawn and are thrown into striking contrast.... It leads
-the reader far from the dusty highway; it is touched with the penetrating
-power of the imagination; it has human interest and idyllic loveliness.”—<cite>Book
-Reviews.</cite></p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>The New York Tribune says:</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A series of adventures as original as they are romantic.... ‘The
-Forest Lovers’ is a piece of ancient arras; a thing mysteriously beautiful,
-a book that is real and at the same time radiant with poetry and art. ‘The
-Forest Lovers’ will be read with admiration and preserved with something
-more than respect.”</p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>The Outlook calls it:</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A story compounded of many kinds of beauty. It has, to begin with,
-enchanting beauty of background; or rather, it moves through a beautiful
-world, the play of whose light upon it is subtle, beguiling, and magical.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c018' />
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='large'>THE MACMILLAN COMPANY</span></div>
- <div>66 FIFTH AVENUE, NEW YORK</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c004' />
-</div>
-<p class='c007'><a id='endnote'></a></p>
-<div class='tnotes'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='large'>Transcriber’s Note</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>Only one typographical error was detected in this volume. At <a id='c_168.6'></a><a href='#corr168.6'>168.6</a>, “I am
-clean [’/”], the closing quotation mark should have been a double-quote,</p>
-
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Hugh Gwyeth, by Beulah Marie Dix
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HUGH GWYETH ***
-
-***** This file should be named 52962-h.htm or 52962-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/2/9/6/52962/
-
-Produced by KD Weeks and the Online Distributed Proofreading
-Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from
-images generously made available by The Internet
-Archive/American Libraries.)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
- </body>
- <!-- created with ppgen.py 3.56a on 2016-09-03 20:35:47 GMT -->
-</html>
diff --git a/old/52962-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/52962-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0e411a4..0000000
--- a/old/52962-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52962-h/images/logo.jpg b/old/52962-h/images/logo.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6e3ebf7..0000000
--- a/old/52962-h/images/logo.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ